TXT. 𓇬◦୦◦◯◦୦◦𞢨🟏ꖅⵙ🟅⦻ꖅ✢𑽇ⵙ𑽇✢ꖅ⦻🟅ⵙꖅ🟏𖢄◇⦻ⵙ⛋ⵙ⦻◇𖢄🟏ꖅⵙ🟅⦻ꖅ✢𑽇ⵙ𑽇✢ꖅ⦻🟅ⵙꖅ🟏𞢨◦୦◦◯◦୦◦𓇬 𓇬◦୦◦◯◦୦◦𞢨🟏ꖅⵙ🟅⦻ꖅ✢𑽇ⵙ𑽇✢ꖅ⦻🟅ⵙꖅ🟏𖢄◇⦻ⵙ⛋ⵙ⦻◇𖢄🟏ꖅⵙ🟅⦻ꖅ✢𑽇ⵙ𑽇✢ꖅ⦻🟅ⵙꖅ🟏𞢨◦୦◦◯◦୦◦𓇬 .TXT 1.5MB

1234567891011121314151617181920212223242526272829303132333435363738394041424344454647484950515253545556575859606162636465666768697071727374757677787980818283848586878889909192939495969798991001011021031041051061071081091101111121131141151161171181191201211221231241251261271281291301311321331341351361371381391401411421431441451461471481491501511521531541551561571581591601611621631641651661671681691701711721731741751761771781791801811821831841851861871881891901911921931941951961971981992002012022032042052062072082092102112122132142152162172182192202212222232242252262272282292302312322332342352362372382392402412422432442452462472482492502512522532542552562572582592602612622632642652662672682692702712722732742752762772782792802812822832842852862872882892902912922932942952962972982993003013023033043053063073083093103113123133143153163173183193203213223233243253263273283293303313323333343353363373383393403413423433443453463473483493503513523533543553563573583593603613623633643653663673683693703713723733743753763773783793803813823833843853863873883893903913923933943953963973983994004014024034044054064074084094104114124134144154164174184194204214224234244254264274284294304314324334344354364374384394404414424434444454464474484494504514524534544554564574584594604614624634644654664674684694704714724734744754764774784794804814824834844854864874884894904914924934944954964974984995005015025035045055065075085095105115125135145155165175185195205215225235245255265275285295305315325335345355365375385395405415425435445455465475485495505515525535545555565575585595605615625635645655665675685695705715725735745755765775785795805815825835845855865875885895905915925935945955965975985996006016026036046056066076086096106116126136146156166176186196206216226236246256266276286296306316326336346356366376386396406416426436446456466476486496506516526536546556566576586596606616626636646656666676686696706716726736746756766776786796806816826836846856866876886896906916926936946956966976986997007017027037047057067077087097107117127137147157167177187197207217227237247257267277287297307317327337347357367377387397407417427437447457467477487497507517527537547557567577587597607617627637647657667677687697707717727737747757767777787797807817827837847857867877887897907917927937947957967977987998008018028038048058068078088098108118128138148158168178188198208218228238248258268278288298308318328338348358368378388398408418428438448458468478488498508518528538548558568578588598608618628638648658668678688698708718728738748758768778788798808818828838848858868878888898908918928938948958968978988999009019029039049059069079089099109119129139149159169179189199209219229239249259269279289299309319329339349359369379389399409419429439449459469479489499509519529539549559569579589599609619629639649659669679689699709719729739749759769779789799809819829839849859869879889899909919929939949959969979989991000100110021003100410051006100710081009101010111012101310141015101610171018101910201021102210231024102510261027102810291030103110321033103410351036103710381039104010411042104310441045104610471048104910501051105210531054105510561057105810591060106110621063106410651066106710681069107010711072107310741075107610771078107910801081108210831084108510861087108810891090109110921093109410951096109710981099110011011102110311041105110611071108110911101111111211131114111511161117111811191120112111221123112411251126112711281129113011311132113311341135113611371138113911401141114211431144114511461147114811491150115111521153115411551156115711581159116011611162116311641165116611671168116911701171117211731174117511761177117811791180118111821183118411851186118711881189119011911192119311941195119611971198119912001201120212031204120512061207120812091210121112121213121412151216121712181219122012211222122312241225122612271228122912301231123212331234123512361237123812391240124112421243124412451246124712481249125012511252125312541255125612571258125912601261126212631264126512661267126812691270127112721273127412751276127712781279128012811282128312841285128612871288128912901291129212931294129512961297129812991300130113021303130413051306130713081309131013111312131313141315131613171318131913201321132213231324132513261327132813291330133113321333133413351336133713381339134013411342134313441345134613471348134913501351135213531354135513561357135813591360136113621363136413651366136713681369137013711372137313741375137613771378137913801381138213831384138513861387138813891390139113921393139413951396139713981399140014011402140314041405140614071408140914101411141214131414141514161417141814191420142114221423142414251426142714281429143014311432143314341435143614371438143914401441144214431444144514461447144814491450145114521453145414551456145714581459146014611462146314641465146614671468146914701471147214731474147514761477147814791480148114821483148414851486148714881489149014911492149314941495149614971498149915001501150215031504150515061507150815091510151115121513151415151516151715181519152015211522152315241525152615271528152915301531153215331534153515361537153815391540154115421543154415451546154715481549155015511552155315541555155615571558155915601561156215631564156515661567156815691570157115721573157415751576157715781579158015811582158315841585158615871588158915901591159215931594159515961597159815991600160116021603160416051606160716081609161016111612161316141615161616171618161916201621162216231624162516261627162816291630163116321633163416351636163716381639164016411642164316441645164616471648164916501651165216531654165516561657165816591660166116621663166416651666166716681669167016711672167316741675167616771678167916801681168216831684168516861687168816891690169116921693169416951696169716981699170017011702170317041705170617071708170917101711171217131714171517161717171817191720172117221723172417251726172717281729173017311732173317341735173617371738173917401741174217431744174517461747174817491750175117521753175417551756175717581759176017611762176317641765176617671768176917701771177217731774177517761777177817791780178117821783178417851786178717881789179017911792179317941795179617971798179918001801180218031804180518061807180818091810181118121813181418151816181718181819182018211822182318241825182618271828182918301831183218331834183518361837183818391840184118421843184418451846184718481849185018511852185318541855185618571858185918601861186218631864186518661867186818691870187118721873187418751876187718781879188018811882188318841885188618871888188918901891189218931894189518961897189818991900190119021903190419051906190719081909191019111912191319141915191619171918191919201921192219231924192519261927192819291930193119321933193419351936193719381939194019411942194319441945194619471948194919501951195219531954195519561957195819591960196119621963196419651966196719681969197019711972197319741975197619771978197919801981198219831984198519861987198819891990199119921993199419951996199719981999200020012002200320042005200620072008200920102011201220132014201520162017201820192020202120222023202420252026202720282029203020312032203320342035203620372038203920402041204220432044204520462047204820492050205120522053205420552056205720582059206020612062206320642065206620672068206920702071207220732074207520762077207820792080208120822083208420852086208720882089209020912092209320942095209620972098209921002101210221032104210521062107210821092110211121122113211421152116211721182119212021212122212321242125212621272128212921302131213221332134213521362137213821392140214121422143214421452146214721482149215021512152215321542155215621572158215921602161216221632164216521662167216821692170217121722173217421752176217721782179218021812182218321842185218621872188218921902191219221932194219521962197219821992200220122022203220422052206220722082209221022112212221322142215221622172218221922202221222222232224222522262227222822292230223122322233223422352236223722382239224022412242224322442245224622472248224922502251225222532254225522562257225822592260226122622263226422652266226722682269227022712272227322742275227622772278227922802281228222832284228522862287228822892290229122922293229422952296229722982299230023012302230323042305230623072308230923102311231223132314231523162317231823192320232123222323232423252326232723282329233023312332233323342335233623372338233923402341234223432344234523462347234823492350235123522353235423552356235723582359236023612362236323642365236623672368236923702371237223732374237523762377237823792380238123822383238423852386238723882389239023912392239323942395239623972398239924002401240224032404240524062407240824092410241124122413241424152416241724182419242024212422242324242425242624272428242924302431243224332434243524362437243824392440244124422443244424452446244724482449245024512452245324542455245624572458245924602461246224632464246524662467246824692470247124722473247424752476247724782479248024812482248324842485248624872488248924902491249224932494249524962497249824992500250125022503250425052506250725082509251025112512251325142515251625172518251925202521252225232524252525262527252825292530253125322533253425352536253725382539254025412542254325442545254625472548254925502551255225532554255525562557255825592560256125622563256425652566256725682569257025712572257325742575257625772578257925802581258225832584258525862587258825892590259125922593259425952596259725982599260026012602260326042605260626072608260926102611261226132614261526162617261826192620262126222623262426252626262726282629263026312632263326342635263626372638263926402641264226432644264526462647264826492650265126522653265426552656265726582659266026612662266326642665266626672668266926702671267226732674267526762677267826792680268126822683268426852686268726882689269026912692269326942695269626972698269927002701270227032704270527062707270827092710271127122713271427152716271727182719272027212722272327242725272627272728272927302731273227332734273527362737273827392740274127422743274427452746274727482749275027512752275327542755275627572758275927602761276227632764276527662767276827692770277127722773277427752776277727782779278027812782278327842785278627872788278927902791279227932794279527962797279827992800280128022803280428052806280728082809281028112812281328142815281628172818281928202821282228232824282528262827282828292830283128322833283428352836283728382839284028412842284328442845284628472848284928502851285228532854285528562857285828592860286128622863286428652866286728682869287028712872287328742875287628772878287928802881288228832884288528862887288828892890289128922893289428952896289728982899290029012902290329042905290629072908290929102911291229132914291529162917291829192920292129222923292429252926292729282929293029312932293329342935293629372938293929402941294229432944294529462947294829492950295129522953295429552956295729582959296029612962296329642965296629672968296929702971297229732974297529762977297829792980298129822983298429852986298729882989299029912992299329942995299629972998299930003001300230033004300530063007300830093010301130123013301430153016301730183019302030213022302330243025302630273028302930303031303230333034303530363037303830393040304130423043304430453046304730483049305030513052305330543055305630573058305930603061306230633064306530663067306830693070307130723073307430753076307730783079308030813082308330843085308630873088308930903091309230933094309530963097309830993100310131023103310431053106310731083109311031113112311331143115311631173118311931203121312231233124312531263127312831293130313131323133313431353136313731383139314031413142314331443145314631473148314931503151315231533154315531563157315831593160316131623163316431653166316731683169317031713172317331743175317631773178317931803181318231833184318531863187318831893190319131923193319431953196319731983199320032013202320332043205320632073208320932103211321232133214321532163217321832193220322132223223322432253226322732283229323032313232323332343235323632373238323932403241324232433244324532463247324832493250325132523253325432553256325732583259326032613262326332643265326632673268326932703271327232733274327532763277327832793280328132823283328432853286328732883289329032913292329332943295329632973298329933003301330233033304330533063307330833093310331133123313331433153316331733183319332033213322332333243325332633273328332933303331333233333334333533363337333833393340334133423343334433453346334733483349335033513352335333543355335633573358335933603361336233633364336533663367336833693370337133723373337433753376337733783379338033813382338333843385338633873388338933903391339233933394339533963397339833993400340134023403340434053406340734083409341034113412341334143415341634173418341934203421342234233424342534263427342834293430343134323433343434353436343734383439344034413442344334443445344634473448344934503451345234533454345534563457345834593460346134623463346434653466346734683469347034713472347334743475347634773478347934803481348234833484348534863487348834893490349134923493349434953496349734983499350035013502350335043505350635073508350935103511351235133514351535163517351835193520352135223523352435253526352735283529353035313532353335343535353635373538353935403541354235433544354535463547354835493550355135523553355435553556355735583559356035613562356335643565356635673568356935703571357235733574357535763577357835793580358135823583358435853586358735883589359035913592359335943595359635973598359936003601360236033604360536063607360836093610361136123613361436153616361736183619362036213622362336243625362636273628362936303631363236333634363536363637363836393640364136423643364436453646364736483649365036513652365336543655365636573658365936603661366236633664366536663667366836693670367136723673367436753676367736783679368036813682368336843685368636873688368936903691369236933694369536963697369836993700370137023703370437053706370737083709371037113712371337143715371637173718371937203721372237233724372537263727372837293730373137323733373437353736373737383739374037413742374337443745374637473748374937503751375237533754375537563757375837593760376137623763376437653766376737683769377037713772377337743775377637773778377937803781378237833784378537863787378837893790379137923793379437953796379737983799380038013802380338043805380638073808380938103811381238133814381538163817381838193820382138223823382438253826382738283829383038313832383338343835383638373838383938403841384238433844384538463847384838493850385138523853385438553856385738583859386038613862386338643865386638673868386938703871387238733874387538763877387838793880388138823883388438853886388738883889389038913892389338943895389638973898389939003901390239033904390539063907390839093910391139123913391439153916391739183919392039213922392339243925392639273928392939303931393239333934393539363937393839393940394139423943394439453946394739483949395039513952395339543955395639573958395939603961396239633964396539663967396839693970397139723973397439753976397739783979398039813982398339843985398639873988398939903991399239933994399539963997399839994000400140024003400440054006400740084009401040114012401340144015401640174018401940204021402240234024402540264027402840294030403140324033403440354036403740384039404040414042404340444045404640474048404940504051405240534054405540564057405840594060406140624063406440654066406740684069407040714072407340744075407640774078407940804081408240834084408540864087408840894090409140924093409440954096409740984099410041014102410341044105410641074108410941104111411241134114411541164117411841194120412141224123412441254126412741284129413041314132413341344135413641374138413941404141414241434144414541464147414841494150415141524153415441554156415741584159416041614162416341644165416641674168416941704171417241734174417541764177417841794180418141824183418441854186418741884189419041914192419341944195419641974198419942004201420242034204420542064207420842094210421142124213421442154216421742184219422042214222422342244225422642274228422942304231423242334234423542364237423842394240424142424243424442454246424742484249425042514252425342544255425642574258425942604261426242634264426542664267426842694270427142724273427442754276427742784279428042814282428342844285428642874288428942904291429242934294429542964297429842994300430143024303430443054306430743084309431043114312431343144315431643174318431943204321432243234324432543264327432843294330433143324333433443354336433743384339434043414342434343444345434643474348434943504351435243534354435543564357435843594360436143624363436443654366436743684369437043714372437343744375437643774378437943804381438243834384438543864387438843894390439143924393439443954396439743984399440044014402440344044405440644074408440944104411441244134414441544164417441844194420442144224423442444254426442744284429443044314432443344344435443644374438443944404441444244434444444544464447444844494450445144524453445444554456445744584459446044614462446344644465446644674468446944704471447244734474447544764477447844794480448144824483448444854486448744884489449044914492449344944495449644974498449945004501450245034504450545064507450845094510451145124513451445154516451745184519452045214522452345244525452645274528452945304531453245334534453545364537453845394540454145424543454445454546454745484549455045514552455345544555455645574558455945604561456245634564456545664567456845694570457145724573457445754576457745784579458045814582458345844585458645874588458945904591459245934594459545964597459845994600460146024603460446054606460746084609461046114612461346144615461646174618461946204621462246234624462546264627462846294630463146324633463446354636463746384639464046414642464346444645464646474648464946504651465246534654465546564657465846594660466146624663466446654666466746684669467046714672467346744675467646774678467946804681468246834684468546864687468846894690469146924693469446954696469746984699470047014702470347044705470647074708470947104711471247134714471547164717471847194720472147224723472447254726472747284729473047314732473347344735473647374738473947404741474247434744474547464747474847494750475147524753475447554756475747584759476047614762476347644765476647674768476947704771477247734774477547764777477847794780478147824783478447854786478747884789479047914792479347944795479647974798479948004801480248034804480548064807480848094810481148124813481448154816481748184819482048214822482348244825482648274828482948304831483248334834483548364837483848394840484148424843484448454846484748484849485048514852485348544855485648574858485948604861486248634864486548664867486848694870487148724873487448754876487748784879488048814882488348844885488648874888488948904891489248934894489548964897489848994900490149024903490449054906490749084909491049114912491349144915491649174918491949204921492249234924492549264927492849294930493149324933493449354936493749384939494049414942494349444945494649474948494949504951495249534954495549564957495849594960496149624963496449654966496749684969497049714972497349744975497649774978497949804981498249834984498549864987498849894990499149924993499449954996499749984999500050015002500350045005500650075008500950105011501250135014501550165017501850195020502150225023502450255026502750285029503050315032503350345035503650375038503950405041504250435044504550465047504850495050505150525053505450555056505750585059506050615062506350645065506650675068506950705071507250735074507550765077507850795080508150825083508450855086508750885089509050915092509350945095509650975098509951005101510251035104510551065107510851095110511151125113511451155116511751185119512051215122512351245125512651275128512951305131513251335134513551365137513851395140514151425143514451455146514751485149515051515152515351545155515651575158515951605161516251635164516551665167516851695170517151725173517451755176517751785179518051815182518351845185518651875188518951905191519251935194519551965197519851995200520152025203520452055206520752085209521052115212521352145215521652175218521952205221522252235224522552265227522852295230523152325233523452355236523752385239524052415242524352445245524652475248524952505251525252535254525552565257525852595260526152625263526452655266526752685269527052715272527352745275527652775278527952805281528252835284528552865287528852895290529152925293529452955296529752985299530053015302530353045305530653075308530953105311531253135314531553165317531853195320532153225323532453255326532753285329533053315332533353345335533653375338533953405341534253435344534553465347534853495350535153525353535453555356535753585359536053615362536353645365536653675368536953705371537253735374537553765377537853795380538153825383538453855386538753885389539053915392539353945395539653975398539954005401540254035404540554065407540854095410541154125413541454155416541754185419542054215422542354245425542654275428542954305431543254335434543554365437543854395440544154425443544454455446544754485449545054515452545354545455545654575458545954605461546254635464546554665467546854695470547154725473547454755476547754785479548054815482548354845485548654875488548954905491549254935494549554965497549854995500550155025503550455055506550755085509551055115512551355145515551655175518551955205521552255235524552555265527552855295530553155325533553455355536553755385539554055415542554355445545554655475548554955505551555255535554555555565557555855595560556155625563556455655566556755685569557055715572557355745575557655775578557955805581558255835584558555865587558855895590559155925593559455955596559755985599560056015602560356045605560656075608560956105611561256135614561556165617561856195620562156225623562456255626562756285629563056315632563356345635563656375638563956405641564256435644564556465647564856495650565156525653565456555656565756585659566056615662566356645665566656675668566956705671567256735674567556765677567856795680568156825683568456855686568756885689569056915692569356945695569656975698569957005701570257035704570557065707570857095710571157125713571457155716571757185719572057215722572357245725572657275728572957305731573257335734573557365737573857395740574157425743574457455746574757485749575057515752575357545755575657575758575957605761576257635764576557665767576857695770577157725773577457755776577757785779578057815782578357845785578657875788578957905791579257935794579557965797579857995800580158025803580458055806580758085809581058115812581358145815581658175818581958205821582258235824582558265827582858295830583158325833583458355836583758385839584058415842584358445845584658475848584958505851585258535854585558565857585858595860586158625863586458655866586758685869587058715872587358745875587658775878587958805881588258835884588558865887588858895890589158925893589458955896589758985899590059015902590359045905590659075908590959105911591259135914591559165917591859195920592159225923592459255926592759285929593059315932593359345935593659375938593959405941594259435944594559465947594859495950595159525953595459555956595759585959596059615962596359645965596659675968596959705971597259735974597559765977597859795980598159825983598459855986598759885989599059915992599359945995599659975998599960006001600260036004600560066007600860096010601160126013601460156016601760186019602060216022602360246025602660276028602960306031603260336034603560366037603860396040604160426043604460456046604760486049605060516052605360546055605660576058605960606061606260636064606560666067606860696070607160726073607460756076607760786079608060816082608360846085608660876088608960906091609260936094609560966097609860996100610161026103610461056106610761086109611061116112611361146115611661176118611961206121612261236124612561266127612861296130613161326133613461356136613761386139614061416142614361446145614661476148614961506151615261536154615561566157615861596160616161626163616461656166616761686169617061716172617361746175617661776178617961806181618261836184618561866187618861896190619161926193619461956196619761986199620062016202620362046205620662076208620962106211621262136214621562166217621862196220622162226223622462256226622762286229623062316232623362346235623662376238623962406241624262436244624562466247624862496250625162526253625462556256625762586259626062616262626362646265626662676268626962706271627262736274627562766277627862796280628162826283628462856286628762886289629062916292629362946295629662976298629963006301630263036304630563066307630863096310631163126313631463156316631763186319632063216322632363246325632663276328632963306331633263336334633563366337633863396340634163426343634463456346634763486349635063516352635363546355635663576358635963606361636263636364636563666367636863696370637163726373637463756376637763786379638063816382638363846385638663876388638963906391639263936394639563966397639863996400640164026403640464056406640764086409641064116412641364146415641664176418641964206421642264236424642564266427642864296430643164326433643464356436643764386439644064416442644364446445644664476448644964506451645264536454645564566457645864596460646164626463646464656466646764686469647064716472647364746475647664776478647964806481648264836484648564866487648864896490649164926493649464956496649764986499650065016502650365046505650665076508650965106511651265136514651565166517651865196520652165226523652465256526652765286529653065316532653365346535653665376538653965406541654265436544654565466547654865496550655165526553655465556556655765586559656065616562656365646565656665676568656965706571657265736574657565766577657865796580658165826583658465856586658765886589659065916592659365946595659665976598659966006601660266036604660566066607660866096610661166126613661466156616661766186619662066216622662366246625662666276628662966306631663266336634663566366637663866396640664166426643664466456646664766486649665066516652665366546655665666576658665966606661666266636664666566666667666866696670667166726673667466756676667766786679668066816682668366846685668666876688668966906691669266936694669566966697669866996700670167026703670467056706670767086709671067116712671367146715671667176718671967206721672267236724672567266727672867296730673167326733673467356736673767386739674067416742674367446745674667476748674967506751675267536754675567566757675867596760676167626763676467656766676767686769677067716772677367746775677667776778677967806781678267836784678567866787678867896790679167926793679467956796679767986799680068016802680368046805680668076808680968106811681268136814681568166817681868196820682168226823682468256826682768286829683068316832683368346835683668376838683968406841684268436844684568466847684868496850685168526853685468556856685768586859686068616862686368646865686668676868686968706871687268736874687568766877687868796880688168826883688468856886688768886889689068916892689368946895689668976898689969006901690269036904690569066907690869096910691169126913691469156916691769186919692069216922692369246925692669276928692969306931693269336934693569366937693869396940694169426943694469456946694769486949695069516952695369546955695669576958695969606961696269636964696569666967696869696970697169726973697469756976697769786979698069816982698369846985698669876988698969906991699269936994699569966997699869997000700170027003700470057006700770087009701070117012701370147015701670177018701970207021702270237024702570267027702870297030703170327033703470357036703770387039704070417042704370447045704670477048704970507051705270537054705570567057705870597060706170627063706470657066706770687069707070717072707370747075707670777078707970807081708270837084708570867087708870897090709170927093709470957096709770987099710071017102710371047105710671077108710971107111711271137114711571167117711871197120712171227123712471257126712771287129713071317132713371347135713671377138713971407141714271437144714571467147714871497150715171527153715471557156715771587159716071617162716371647165716671677168716971707171717271737174717571767177717871797180718171827183718471857186718771887189719071917192719371947195719671977198719972007201720272037204720572067207720872097210721172127213721472157216721772187219722072217222722372247225722672277228722972307231723272337234723572367237723872397240724172427243724472457246724772487249725072517252725372547255725672577258725972607261726272637264726572667267726872697270727172727273727472757276727772787279728072817282728372847285728672877288728972907291729272937294729572967297729872997300730173027303730473057306730773087309731073117312731373147315731673177318731973207321732273237324732573267327732873297330733173327333733473357336733773387339734073417342734373447345734673477348734973507351735273537354735573567357735873597360736173627363736473657366736773687369737073717372737373747375737673777378737973807381738273837384738573867387738873897390739173927393739473957396739773987399740074017402740374047405740674077408740974107411741274137414741574167417741874197420742174227423742474257426742774287429743074317432743374347435743674377438743974407441744274437444744574467447744874497450745174527453745474557456745774587459746074617462746374647465746674677468746974707471747274737474747574767477747874797480748174827483748474857486748774887489749074917492749374947495749674977498749975007501750275037504750575067507750875097510751175127513751475157516751775187519752075217522752375247525752675277528752975307531753275337534753575367537753875397540754175427543754475457546754775487549755075517552755375547555755675577558755975607561756275637564756575667567756875697570757175727573757475757576757775787579758075817582758375847585758675877588758975907591759275937594759575967597759875997600760176027603760476057606760776087609761076117612761376147615761676177618761976207621762276237624762576267627762876297630763176327633763476357636763776387639764076417642764376447645764676477648764976507651765276537654765576567657765876597660766176627663766476657666766776687669767076717672767376747675767676777678767976807681768276837684768576867687768876897690769176927693769476957696769776987699770077017702770377047705770677077708770977107711771277137714771577167717771877197720772177227723772477257726772777287729773077317732773377347735773677377738773977407741774277437744774577467747774877497750775177527753775477557756775777587759776077617762776377647765776677677768776977707771777277737774777577767777777877797780778177827783778477857786778777887789779077917792779377947795779677977798779978007801780278037804780578067807780878097810781178127813781478157816781778187819782078217822782378247825782678277828782978307831783278337834783578367837783878397840784178427843784478457846784778487849785078517852785378547855785678577858785978607861786278637864786578667867786878697870787178727873787478757876787778787879788078817882788378847885788678877888788978907891789278937894789578967897789878997900790179027903790479057906790779087909791079117912791379147915791679177918791979207921792279237924792579267927792879297930793179327933793479357936793779387939794079417942794379447945794679477948794979507951795279537954795579567957795879597960796179627963796479657966796779687969797079717972797379747975797679777978797979807981798279837984798579867987798879897990799179927993799479957996799779987999800080018002800380048005800680078008800980108011801280138014801580168017801880198020802180228023802480258026802780288029803080318032803380348035803680378038803980408041804280438044804580468047804880498050805180528053805480558056805780588059806080618062806380648065806680678068806980708071807280738074807580768077807880798080808180828083808480858086808780888089809080918092809380948095809680978098809981008101810281038104810581068107810881098110811181128113811481158116811781188119812081218122812381248125812681278128812981308131813281338134813581368137813881398140814181428143814481458146814781488149815081518152815381548155815681578158815981608161816281638164816581668167816881698170817181728173817481758176817781788179818081818182818381848185818681878188818981908191819281938194819581968197819881998200820182028203820482058206820782088209821082118212821382148215821682178218821982208221822282238224822582268227822882298230823182328233823482358236823782388239824082418242824382448245824682478248824982508251825282538254825582568257825882598260826182628263826482658266826782688269827082718272827382748275827682778278827982808281828282838284828582868287828882898290829182928293829482958296829782988299830083018302830383048305830683078308830983108311831283138314831583168317831883198320832183228323832483258326832783288329833083318332833383348335833683378338833983408341834283438344834583468347834883498350835183528353835483558356835783588359836083618362836383648365836683678368836983708371837283738374837583768377837883798380838183828383838483858386838783888389839083918392839383948395839683978398839984008401840284038404840584068407840884098410841184128413841484158416841784188419842084218422842384248425842684278428842984308431843284338434843584368437843884398440844184428443844484458446844784488449845084518452845384548455845684578458845984608461846284638464846584668467846884698470847184728473847484758476847784788479848084818482848384848485848684878488848984908491849284938494849584968497849884998500850185028503850485058506850785088509851085118512851385148515851685178518851985208521852285238524852585268527852885298530853185328533853485358536853785388539854085418542854385448545854685478548854985508551855285538554855585568557855885598560856185628563856485658566856785688569857085718572857385748575857685778578857985808581858285838584858585868587858885898590859185928593859485958596859785988599860086018602860386048605860686078608860986108611861286138614861586168617861886198620862186228623862486258626862786288629863086318632863386348635863686378638863986408641864286438644864586468647864886498650865186528653865486558656865786588659866086618662866386648665866686678668866986708671867286738674867586768677867886798680868186828683868486858686868786888689869086918692869386948695869686978698869987008701870287038704870587068707870887098710871187128713871487158716871787188719872087218722872387248725872687278728872987308731873287338734873587368737873887398740874187428743874487458746874787488749875087518752875387548755875687578758875987608761876287638764876587668767876887698770877187728773877487758776877787788779878087818782878387848785878687878788878987908791879287938794879587968797879887998800880188028803880488058806880788088809881088118812881388148815881688178818881988208821882288238824882588268827882888298830883188328833883488358836883788388839884088418842884388448845884688478848884988508851885288538854885588568857885888598860886188628863886488658866886788688869887088718872887388748875887688778878887988808881888288838884888588868887888888898890889188928893889488958896889788988899890089018902890389048905890689078908890989108911891289138914891589168917891889198920892189228923892489258926892789288929893089318932893389348935893689378938893989408941894289438944894589468947894889498950895189528953895489558956895789588959896089618962896389648965896689678968896989708971897289738974897589768977897889798980898189828983898489858986898789888989899089918992899389948995899689978998899990009001900290039004900590069007900890099010901190129013901490159016901790189019902090219022902390249025902690279028902990309031903290339034903590369037903890399040904190429043904490459046904790489049905090519052905390549055905690579058905990609061906290639064906590669067906890699070907190729073907490759076907790789079908090819082908390849085908690879088908990909091909290939094909590969097909890999100910191029103910491059106910791089109911091119112911391149115911691179118911991209121912291239124912591269127912891299130913191329133913491359136913791389139914091419142914391449145914691479148914991509151915291539154915591569157915891599160916191629163916491659166916791689169917091719172917391749175917691779178917991809181918291839184918591869187918891899190919191929193919491959196919791989199920092019202920392049205920692079208920992109211921292139214921592169217921892199220922192229223922492259226922792289229923092319232923392349235923692379238923992409241924292439244924592469247924892499250925192529253925492559256925792589259926092619262926392649265926692679268926992709271927292739274927592769277927892799280928192829283928492859286928792889289929092919292929392949295929692979298929993009301930293039304930593069307930893099310931193129313931493159316931793189319932093219322932393249325932693279328932993309331933293339334933593369337933893399340934193429343934493459346934793489349935093519352935393549355935693579358935993609361936293639364936593669367936893699370937193729373937493759376937793789379938093819382938393849385938693879388938993909391939293939394939593969397939893999400940194029403940494059406940794089409941094119412941394149415941694179418941994209421942294239424942594269427942894299430943194329433943494359436943794389439944094419442944394449445944694479448944994509451945294539454945594569457945894599460946194629463946494659466946794689469947094719472947394749475947694779478947994809481948294839484948594869487948894899490949194929493949494959496949794989499950095019502950395049505950695079508950995109511951295139514951595169517951895199520952195229523952495259526952795289529953095319532953395349535953695379538953995409541954295439544954595469547954895499550955195529553955495559556955795589559956095619562956395649565956695679568956995709571957295739574957595769577957895799580958195829583958495859586958795889589959095919592959395949595959695979598959996009601960296039604960596069607960896099610961196129613961496159616961796189619962096219622962396249625962696279628962996309631963296339634963596369637963896399640964196429643964496459646964796489649965096519652965396549655965696579658965996609661966296639664966596669667966896699670967196729673967496759676967796789679968096819682968396849685968696879688968996909691969296939694969596969697969896999700970197029703970497059706970797089709971097119712971397149715971697179718971997209721972297239724972597269727972897299730973197329733973497359736973797389739974097419742974397449745974697479748974997509751975297539754975597569757975897599760976197629763976497659766976797689769977097719772977397749775977697779778977997809781978297839784978597869787978897899790979197929793979497959796979797989799980098019802980398049805980698079808980998109811981298139814981598169817981898199820982198229823982498259826982798289829983098319832983398349835983698379838983998409841984298439844984598469847984898499850985198529853985498559856985798589859986098619862986398649865986698679868986998709871987298739874987598769877987898799880988198829883988498859886988798889889989098919892989398949895989698979898989999009901990299039904990599069907990899099910991199129913991499159916991799189919992099219922992399249925992699279928992999309931993299339934993599369937993899399940994199429943994499459946994799489949995099519952995399549955995699579958995999609961996299639964996599669967996899699970997199729973997499759976997799789979998099819982998399849985998699879988998999909991999299939994999599969997999899991000010001100021000310004100051000610007100081000910010100111001210013100141001510016100171001810019100201002110022100231002410025100261002710028100291003010031100321003310034100351003610037100381003910040100411004210043100441004510046100471004810049100501005110052100531005410055100561005710058100591006010061100621006310064100651006610067100681006910070100711007210073100741007510076100771007810079100801008110082100831008410085100861008710088100891009010091100921009310094100951009610097100981009910100101011010210103101041010510106101071010810109101101011110112101131011410115101161011710118101191012010121101221012310124101251012610127101281012910130101311013210133101341013510136101371013810139101401014110142101431014410145101461014710148101491015010151101521015310154101551015610157101581015910160101611016210163101641016510166101671016810169101701017110172101731017410175101761017710178101791018010181101821018310184101851018610187101881018910190101911019210193101941019510196101971019810199102001020110202102031020410205102061020710208102091021010211102121021310214102151021610217102181021910220102211022210223102241022510226102271022810229102301023110232102331023410235102361023710238102391024010241102421024310244102451024610247102481024910250102511025210253102541025510256102571025810259102601026110262102631026410265102661026710268102691027010271102721027310274102751027610277102781027910280102811028210283102841028510286102871028810289102901029110292102931029410295102961029710298102991030010301103021030310304103051030610307103081030910310103111031210313103141031510316103171031810319103201032110322103231032410325103261032710328103291033010331103321033310334103351033610337103381033910340103411034210343103441034510346103471034810349103501035110352103531035410355103561035710358103591036010361103621036310364103651036610367103681036910370103711037210373103741037510376103771037810379103801038110382103831038410385103861038710388103891039010391103921039310394103951039610397103981039910400104011040210403104041040510406104071040810409104101041110412104131041410415104161041710418104191042010421104221042310424104251042610427104281042910430104311043210433104341043510436104371043810439104401044110442104431044410445104461044710448104491045010451104521045310454104551045610457104581045910460104611046210463104641046510466104671046810469104701047110472104731047410475104761047710478104791048010481104821048310484104851048610487104881048910490104911049210493104941049510496104971049810499105001050110502105031050410505105061050710508105091051010511105121051310514105151051610517105181051910520105211052210523105241052510526105271052810529105301053110532105331053410535105361053710538105391054010541105421054310544105451054610547105481054910550105511055210553105541055510556105571055810559105601056110562105631056410565105661056710568105691057010571105721057310574105751057610577105781057910580105811058210583105841058510586105871058810589105901059110592105931059410595105961059710598105991060010601106021060310604106051060610607106081060910610106111061210613106141061510616106171061810619106201062110622106231062410625106261062710628106291063010631106321063310634106351063610637106381063910640106411064210643106441064510646106471064810649106501065110652106531065410655106561065710658106591066010661106621066310664106651066610667106681066910670106711067210673106741067510676106771067810679106801068110682106831068410685106861068710688106891069010691106921069310694106951069610697106981069910700107011070210703107041070510706107071070810709107101071110712107131071410715107161071710718107191072010721107221072310724107251072610727107281072910730107311073210733107341073510736107371073810739107401074110742107431074410745107461074710748107491075010751107521075310754107551075610757107581075910760107611076210763107641076510766107671076810769107701077110772107731077410775107761077710778107791078010781107821078310784107851078610787107881078910790107911079210793107941079510796107971079810799108001080110802108031080410805108061080710808108091081010811108121081310814108151081610817108181081910820108211082210823108241082510826108271082810829108301083110832108331083410835108361083710838108391084010841108421084310844108451084610847108481084910850108511085210853108541085510856108571085810859108601086110862108631086410865108661086710868108691087010871108721087310874108751087610877108781087910880108811088210883108841088510886108871088810889108901089110892108931089410895108961089710898108991090010901109021090310904109051090610907109081090910910109111091210913109141091510916109171091810919109201092110922109231092410925109261092710928109291093010931109321093310934109351093610937109381093910940109411094210943109441094510946109471094810949109501095110952109531095410955109561095710958109591096010961109621096310964109651096610967109681096910970109711097210973109741097510976109771097810979109801098110982109831098410985109861098710988109891099010991109921099310994109951099610997109981099911000110011100211003110041100511006110071100811009110101101111012110131101411015110161101711018110191102011021110221102311024110251102611027110281102911030110311103211033110341103511036110371103811039110401104111042110431104411045110461104711048110491105011051110521105311054110551105611057110581105911060110611106211063110641106511066110671106811069110701107111072110731107411075110761107711078110791108011081110821108311084110851108611087110881108911090110911109211093110941109511096110971109811099111001110111102111031110411105111061110711108111091111011111111121111311114111151111611117111181111911120111211112211123111241112511126111271112811129111301113111132111331113411135111361113711138111391114011141111421114311144111451114611147111481114911150111511115211153111541115511156111571115811159111601116111162111631116411165111661116711168111691117011171111721117311174111751117611177111781117911180111811118211183111841118511186111871118811189111901119111192111931119411195111961119711198111991120011201112021120311204112051120611207112081120911210112111121211213112141121511216112171121811219112201122111222112231122411225112261122711228112291123011231112321123311234112351123611237112381123911240112411124211243112441124511246112471124811249112501125111252112531125411255112561125711258112591126011261112621126311264112651126611267112681126911270112711127211273112741127511276112771127811279112801128111282112831128411285112861128711288112891129011291112921129311294112951129611297112981129911300113011130211303113041130511306113071130811309113101131111312113131131411315113161131711318113191132011321113221132311324113251132611327113281132911330113311133211333113341133511336113371133811339113401134111342113431134411345113461134711348113491135011351113521135311354113551135611357113581135911360113611136211363113641136511366113671136811369113701137111372113731137411375113761137711378113791138011381113821138311384113851138611387113881138911390113911139211393113941139511396113971139811399114001140111402114031140411405114061140711408114091141011411114121141311414114151141611417114181141911420114211142211423114241142511426114271142811429114301143111432114331143411435114361143711438114391144011441114421144311444114451144611447114481144911450114511145211453114541145511456114571145811459114601146111462114631146411465114661146711468114691147011471114721147311474114751147611477114781147911480114811148211483114841148511486114871148811489114901149111492114931149411495114961149711498114991150011501115021150311504115051150611507115081150911510115111151211513115141151511516115171151811519115201152111522115231152411525115261152711528115291153011531115321153311534115351153611537115381153911540115411154211543115441154511546115471154811549115501155111552115531155411555115561155711558115591156011561115621156311564115651156611567115681156911570115711157211573115741157511576115771157811579115801158111582115831158411585115861158711588115891159011591115921159311594115951159611597115981159911600116011160211603116041160511606116071160811609116101161111612116131161411615116161161711618116191162011621116221162311624116251162611627116281162911630116311163211633116341163511636116371163811639116401164111642116431164411645116461164711648116491165011651116521165311654116551165611657116581165911660116611166211663116641166511666116671166811669116701167111672116731167411675116761167711678116791168011681116821168311684116851168611687116881168911690116911169211693116941169511696116971169811699117001170111702117031170411705117061170711708117091171011711117121171311714117151171611717117181171911720117211172211723117241172511726117271172811729117301173111732117331173411735117361173711738117391174011741117421174311744117451174611747117481174911750117511175211753117541175511756117571175811759117601176111762117631176411765117661176711768117691177011771117721177311774117751177611777117781177911780117811178211783117841178511786117871178811789117901179111792117931179411795117961179711798117991180011801118021180311804118051180611807118081180911810118111181211813118141181511816118171181811819118201182111822118231182411825118261182711828118291183011831118321183311834118351183611837118381183911840118411184211843118441184511846118471184811849118501185111852118531185411855118561185711858118591186011861118621186311864118651186611867118681186911870118711187211873118741187511876118771187811879118801188111882118831188411885118861188711888118891189011891118921189311894118951189611897118981189911900119011190211903119041190511906119071190811909119101191111912119131191411915119161191711918119191192011921119221192311924119251192611927119281192911930119311193211933119341193511936119371193811939119401194111942119431194411945119461194711948119491195011951119521195311954119551195611957119581195911960119611196211963119641196511966119671196811969119701197111972119731197411975119761197711978119791198011981119821198311984119851198611987119881198911990119911199211993119941199511996119971199811999120001200112002120031200412005120061200712008120091201012011120121201312014120151201612017120181201912020120211202212023120241202512026120271202812029120301203112032120331203412035120361203712038120391204012041120421204312044120451204612047120481204912050120511205212053120541205512056120571205812059120601206112062120631206412065120661206712068120691207012071120721207312074120751207612077120781207912080120811208212083120841208512086120871208812089120901209112092120931209412095120961209712098120991210012101121021210312104121051210612107121081210912110121111211212113121141211512116121171211812119121201212112122121231212412125121261212712128121291213012131121321213312134121351213612137121381213912140121411214212143121441214512146121471214812149121501215112152121531215412155121561215712158121591216012161121621216312164121651216612167121681216912170121711217212173121741217512176121771217812179121801218112182121831218412185121861218712188121891219012191121921219312194121951219612197121981219912200122011220212203122041220512206122071220812209122101221112212122131221412215122161221712218122191222012221122221222312224122251222612227122281222912230122311223212233122341223512236122371223812239122401224112242122431224412245122461224712248122491225012251122521225312254122551225612257122581225912260122611226212263122641226512266122671226812269122701227112272122731227412275122761227712278122791228012281122821228312284122851228612287122881228912290122911229212293122941229512296122971229812299123001230112302123031230412305123061230712308123091231012311123121231312314123151231612317123181231912320123211232212323123241232512326123271232812329123301233112332123331233412335123361233712338123391234012341123421234312344123451234612347123481234912350123511235212353123541235512356123571235812359123601236112362123631236412365123661236712368123691237012371123721237312374123751237612377123781237912380123811238212383123841238512386123871238812389123901239112392123931239412395123961239712398123991240012401124021240312404124051240612407124081240912410124111241212413124141241512416124171241812419124201242112422
  1. 1
  2. ALIEN INTERVIEW
  3. Based On Personal Notes and Interview Transcriptions Provided by :
  4. Matilda O'Donnell MacElroy
  5. Editing and Supplemental Footnotes by:
  6. Lawrence R. Spencer
  7. ( Author of "The Oz Factors" )
  8. 2
  9. Alien Interview
  10. Copyright (c) 2008 by Lawrence R. Spencer.
  11. All Rights Reserved.
  12. Cover and book design by Lawrence R. Spencer
  13. Printed in The United States of America
  14. First Edition Printing: 2008
  15. ISBN: 978-0-6152-0460-4
  16. 3
  17. Acknowledgements
  18. My sincerest thanks to the enthusiastic, insightful editorial support of Michel and
  19. Brenda. Thank you very much to all of the diligent and unselfish work of the owners,
  20. staff and tireless contributors and editors of Wikipedia.org upon which the
  21. material in this book relies heavily for efficacious documentary support of
  22. many of the footnoted items sited in the text of the transcripts and comments
  23. from Matilda O'Donnell MacElroy.
  24. Disclaimer
  25. As far as the Editor of the book, "Alien Interview" is concerned, and for all practical
  26. purposes, the content of the book is a work of fiction. The Editor makes no claim to
  27. the factuality of the content, and in fact, cannot prove that the alleged author
  28. actually ever existed. Although some of the dates, locations, persons and incidents
  29. described may be factual or based on fact, there is no evidence to authenticate that
  30. equally as many may be subjective contrivances of the author.
  31. All of the information, notes and transcripts received by the Editor are contained in
  32. their complete, original form, as represented in the book. The Editor is no longer in
  33. possession of any original documents or copies of original documents from the
  34. author, i.e. Mrs. MacElroy.
  35. Some material contained in the book may have similarities to Earth philosophies as
  36. the variety of these are too numerous to list, and bear too many fundamental
  37. similarities to be easily differentiated. Although the book discusses the origins of the
  38. universe, the time track of the physical universe, paranormal activities of immortal
  39. and/or extraterrestrial beings, "aliens" or "gods", it is in no way the intention of the
  40. Editor to represent, endorse, forward or assume the viewpoint of the author, any
  41. political doctrine, economic vested interest, scientific hypothesis, religious practice
  42. or philosophy, whether terrestrial or extraterrestrial.
  43. The notes and transcripts contained in the book, are solely and only the based on the
  44. representations and documents provided by the author, the late Matilda O'Donnell
  45. MacElroy, unless otherwise specifically annotated by Footnotes in The Appendix of
  46. the book.
  47. The Editor is not responsible for any assumptions, inferences or conclusions made
  48. by the reader based on the material is this book, which are solely and only the
  49. responsibility of the reader.
  50. What is true for you, is true for you.
  51. Lawrence R. Spencer -- Editor
  52. 4
  53. Table Of Contents
  54. ALIEN INTERVIEW TITLE PAGE.................................................................................................2
  55. TABLE OF CONTENTS .....................................................................................................................4
  56. FOREWORD ........................................................................................................................................5
  57. PREAMBLE..........................................................................................................................................6
  58. DEDICATION ......................................................................................................................................7
  59. EDITORIAL GUIDELINES USED IN THIS BOOK .......................................................................8
  60. DEFINITIONS......................................................................................................................................9
  61. INTRODUCTION: THE MYSTERY OF UFOS AND EXTRATERRESTRIALS......................10
  62. ABOUT THE SOURCE OF MATERIAL IN THIS BOOK ...........................................................13
  63. MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY: BIOGRAPHICAL INFORMATION ......................16
  64. THE LETTER FROM MRS. MACELROY ....................................................................................19
  65. THE TRANSCRIPTS:
  66. CHAPTER ONE - MY FIRST INTERVIEW WITH THE ALIEN...............................................27
  67. CHAPTER TWO - MY SECOND INTERVIEW ............................................................................36
  68. CHAPTER THREE - MY THIRD INTERVIEW ...........................................................................38
  69. CHAPTER FOUR - THE LANGUAGE BARRIER........................................................................42
  70. CHAPTER FIVE - READING LESSONS .......................................................................................45
  71. CHAPTER SIX - MY EDUCATION BEGINS ...............................................................................48
  72. CHAPTER SEVEN - A LESSON IN ANCIENT HISTORY.........................................................55
  73. CHAPTER EIGHT - A LESSON IN RECENT HISTORY...........................................................66
  74. CHAPTER NINE - A TIME LINE OF EVENTS ............................................................................80
  75. CHAPTER TEN - A LESSON IN BIOLOGY ..............................................................................106
  76. CHAPTER ELEVEN - A LESSON IN SCIENCE........................................................................121
  77. CHAPTER TWELVE - A LESSON IN IMMORTALITY..........................................................129
  78. CHAPTER THIRTEEN - A LESSON IN THE FUTURE...........................................................133
  79. CHAPTER FOURTEEN - AIRL REVIEWS THE INTERVIEW TRANSCRIPTS..................139
  80. CHAPTER FIFTEEN - MY INTERROGATION .........................................................................144
  81. CHAPTER SIXTEEN - AIRL DEPARTS......................................................................................148
  82. POST SCRIPT FROM MRS. MACELROY..................................................................................150
  83. APPENDIX: EDITOR'S FOOTNOTES............................................................................ 156 - 303
  84. 5
  85. Foreword:
  86. "We ask, as Fools who know not Our Own Spirit:
  87. Where are the hidden traces left by The Gods?"
  88. -- Rig Veda --
  89. book i, stanza 164, lines 5 a & b
  90. 6
  91. Preamble
  92. What greater brutality can be inflicted on anyone than to erase or
  93. deny the spiritual awareness, identity,
  94. ability, and memory that is the essence of oneself?
  95. -- Lawrence R. Spencer --
  96. 2008
  97. 7
  98. Dedication
  99. This book is dedicated to all Immortal Spiritual Beings, whether they are
  100. aware of themselves as such, or not. It is especially dedicated to the
  101. wisdom, courage and integrity of those Greater Beings, who in various
  102. incarnations at various times during the past, in the present and into the
  103. future, enkindle and carry the Flame of Truth into the darkest corners of the
  104. universe.
  105. This dedication is not only to the philosophical teachings and technologies
  106. developed by these beings, but to the demonstrated and documented
  107. courage to apply their philosophy in the face of overwhelming ignorance,
  108. overt hostility and aggressive suppression by lesser beings and by the selfserving vested interests of inter-galactic and planetary political, economic,
  109. and religious institutions.
  110. Though relatively few in number, the profound wisdom and heroic
  111. dedication of such beings, and those who share their quest, have been the
  112. only effective deterrent to spiritual slavery. Freedom, Communication,
  113. Creativity ,Trust and Truth for all Immortal Spiritual Beings in this universe
  114. is their legacy. The Good Examples set by them is our sanctuary and
  115. sustenance. Personal, diligent application of their teachings is our weapon
  116. against the dwindling spiral of chaos and oblivion that is the material
  117. universe.
  118. -- Lawrence R. Spencer --
  119. 8
  120. Editorial Guidelines Used In This Book
  121. I have tried not to edit the material I received from Mrs. MacElroy except to
  122. the degree necessary to make a logical sequence of the material she mailed
  123. to me. Wherever possible I have quoted or transcribed her original written
  124. notes verbatim.
  125. In some instances I have taken editorial liberty to add other information, or
  126. supplementary commentary which I feel will add useful definitions, or
  127. clarification to the information given in the official transcripts, or to her
  128. remarks or observations. These appear as a numbered "(Footnote)" in the
  129. Appendix at the end of the book. All footnote references, where possible,
  130. are copied verbatim from the free internet encyclopedia website
  131. www.wikipedia.org. If information was not available through Wikipedia.org,
  132. I used the popular internet search engine www.google.com to find a website
  133. reference that seemed most appropriate to the subject matter.
  134. Mrs. MacElroy did not make a notation of dates in the most of the
  135. documents, so I am not certain that the sequence of material matches the
  136. actual sequence of events, or sequence of the interviews, except as noted on
  137. the official transcripts themselves.
  138. Since it has been 60 years since the date of the interviews, and considering
  139. the age of Mrs. MacElroy before her death, I reasoned that she did not
  140. necessarily have an acute recollection of exact names, dates and times,
  141. except as recorded in the transcripts of July 8th through August 12th, 1947.
  142. The material in this book is organized into three different types. The
  143. following notations will be used to designate where these appear in this book:
  144. 1) (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTES)
  145. (TYPE FONT: Times Roman, 12 point)
  146. 2) (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  147. (Courier New, 12 point)
  148. 3) 1 (Footnote)
  149. (TYPE FONT: Arial, 10 point, Bold)
  150. -- The Editor
  151. 9
  152. Definitions
  153. Vested Interest:
  154. a survival or non-survival plan or agenda which has been
  155. "clothed" to make it seem like something other than what it actually is.
  156. any person, group or entity which prevents or controls
  157. communication to serve their own purposes, (plans or agenda).
  158. -- Reference: Page 37, The Oz Factors , by Lawrence R. Spencer.
  159. Mystery:
  160. an enigma or problem involving paradox or apparent
  161. contradiction
  162. profound, inexplicable, or secretive quality or character
  163. -- Reference: www.merriam-webster.com
  164. 10
  165. Introduction:
  166. The Mystery of UFOs and Extraterrestrials
  167. If you have studied UFO phenomena at all, you are already familiar with the
  168. infamous Orson Welles radio broadcast of "War of the Worlds, And The
  169. Invasion from Mars" 1
  170. (Footnote) on Oct. 30, 1938. This fictitious radio
  171. dramatization of an invasion of Earth by "aliens" incited a global UFO and
  172. extraterrestrial hysteria long before the UFO crash near Roswell, N.M. in
  173. 1947.
  174. During the past 60 years, since the alleged Roswell crash, there have been
  175. tens of thousands of reported UFO sightings. A global hysteria has emerged
  176. from "evidence" of what is presumed to be extraterrestrial phenomenon.
  177. Concurrently, the unrelenting denial of this phenomenon by the U.S.
  178. government has precipitated an uninterrupted flurry of accusations, counteraccusations, cover-up conspiracy theories, lunatic fringe speculations,
  179. "scientific investigations", etc., etc., ad nauseam, and a growing multitude of
  180. similar alleged "close encounters".
  181. My first thought when I received the package of documents from Mrs.
  182. MacElroy was: "This is just another set of Majestic-12 documents".
  183. 2
  184. (Footnote) I am referring to a "mysterious package" reportedly received by
  185. mail in 1984 shortly after the death of the last surviving member of the socalled "Majestic-12" committee, alleged to have been organized by President
  186. Harry Truman shortly after the Roswell incident in 1947.
  187. There are several similarities to the "Majestic-12" documents and the
  188. package I received from Mrs. MacElroy. In the case of the former, an
  189. envelope was sent from an anonymous sender with no return address. It
  190. contained an undeveloped roll of film. That's all. On the roll of film were
  191. photos of documents that were assumed to be authentic by the recipient and
  192. his colleagues whose vested interest, i.e. livelihood, depend heavily on
  193. attracting public notice and credibility to themselves as "leading authorities"
  194. on the subject of UFO phenomena. They have worked relentlessly since
  195. then to discover "proof" that the documents are authentic. Of course,
  196. government agencies deny everything alleged in the documents and
  197. anything having to do with the subject of extraterrestrials in general.
  198. 11
  199. In addition, the subject has become so thoroughly overwhelmed with obvious
  200. false reports, discredited sources, hearsay, manufactured falsehoods,
  201. misunderstandings, missing information, added inapplicable information and
  202. a myriad of other conflicting complexities which have made the subject
  203. laughable or unapproachable as a science. This may be intentional, or
  204. simply a reflection of the general chaos and barbarism that is Humanity.
  205. As for government denials and cover-ups, the events of September 11, 2001,
  206. have made it abundantly apparent to me that the U.S. government has
  207. destroyed any vestige of trust the American people and the world may have
  208. harbored, even through the Vietnam war, Watergate, and many similar
  209. betrayals, in the "honesty" of the American government, military and
  210. intelligence community, by blatantly lying to it's own people about almost
  211. anything and everything.
  212. In spite of vast numbers of "UFO sightings", innumerable reports of "alien
  213. abductions", and "close encounters" with extraterrestrials that pervade nearly
  214. all of prehistoric and recorded human history I found only one underlying,
  215. unifying, undisputable, axiomatic common denominator that permeates all of
  216. this data:
  217. Assuming that subjective reality, or beliefs, of individuals is acceptable
  218. evidence, there has been no universally agreed upon "proof" that UFOs and
  219. / or extraterrestrial life forms exist whether based on government admission ,
  220. physical evidence, circumstantial or subjective data.
  221. There are several deductions I can infer from the lack of agreement,
  222. government admission or physical evidence that such things are real that, if
  223. verified, may lead to a workable solution to this mystery:
  224. deduction:
  225. In spite of an enormous collection of subjective, circumstantial and objective
  226. "evidence" of extraterrestrial activity on and around Earth, the existence,
  227. intentions and the activities of extraterrestrials remain hidden and
  228. mysterious.
  229. deduction:
  230. Universally agreed upon proof of extraterrestrial life based on subjective
  231. data, government admission, physical and circumstantial evidence are
  232. subject to conflicting vested interests, which has made such proof
  233. unattainable.
  234. Collectively, these deductions beg the obvious question:
  235. If extraterrestrials life forms exist, why is there no consistent, forthright ,
  236. open, interactive communication between Mankind and Extraterrestrials?
  237. 12
  238. Fortunately, subjective reality does not require evidence or "proof".
  239. Therefore, I decided to write this book in order to pass along a subjective
  240. communication I received from Mrs. MacElroy to other people who may be
  241. interested in it.
  242. Personally, I am not assuming that anything I received from Mrs. MacElroy is
  243. in any way authentic, with the exception of the envelope and the paper inside
  244. the envelope. I cannot substantiate any of it. Indeed, I can't truly verify that
  245. there was ever such a person as Mrs. MacElroy other than a voice I heard
  246. over the phone in 1998. The voice could have been anyone. Personally, I
  247. do not have a vested interest in UFO research. Yes, I've written a few books
  248. about immortal spiritual beings -- because I'm interested in the subject. But I
  249. haven't sold enough of those books to pay for the time it took to write them.
  250. It is a hobby. I earn my living as a small business consultant.
  251. It is not my intention to justify, explain, or remedy any disability to perceive or
  252. understand the mysteries of extraterrestrial existence, UFOs, governments
  253. agendas or spiritual abilities. Nor is it intended to educate, persuade, or
  254. promote to anyone that any of these phenomena exist. Furthermore, what I
  255. may or may not think about any of this is irrelevant.
  256. Moreover, I have burned all of the original documents, including the envelope
  257. I received from Mrs. MacElroy. I do not want to spend the rest of my life
  258. being hounded by UFO researchers, government agents, grocery store
  259. tabloids reporters, UFO advocates and de-bunkers alike, or anyone else.
  260. Any "proofs" or attempts to authenticate the assertion that Mrs. MacElroy
  261. actually interviewed an alien in 1947 will have to be done by others.
  262. Ripley says, "Believe It, or Not". 3
  263. (Footnote)
  264. I say, "What's true for you, is true for you".
  265. Lawrence R. Spencer
  266. Editor
  267. 13
  268. About The Source Of Material In This Book
  269. The content of this book is primarily excerpted from the letter, interview
  270. transcripts and personal notes I received from the late Matilda O'Donnell
  271. MacElroy. Her letter to me asserts that this material is based on her
  272. recollection of communication with an alien being, who "spoke" with her
  273. telepathically. During July and August of 1947 she interviewed an
  274. extraterrestrial being who she identifies as "Airl", and whom she claims was
  275. and continues to be an officer, pilot and engineer who was recovered from a
  276. flyer saucer that crashed near Roswell, New Mexico on July 8th, 1947.
  277. Obviously, anyone reading anything about this most famous, or infamous, of
  278. all "flying saucer" or "alien encounter" events must necessarily be highly
  279. suspicious regarding 1) the authenticity of the report and 2) the credibility of
  280. the source of information, especially when it appears for the first time sixty
  281. years after the alleged event!
  282. I received the aforementioned letter from Mrs. MacElroy on September 14th,
  283. 2007, together with a package of documents. The package contained three
  284. types of documents:
  285. 1) hand-written notes in cursive on ordinary, lined, 8 1/2" X 11"school
  286. notebook paper, which I assume had been written personally by Mrs.
  287. MacElroy.
  288. 2) notes typed on a manual typewriter on plain, white 20 lb. bond paper,
  289. which I am assume were prepared personally by her. At least both had the
  290. appearance of having been written in the same hand writing, and / or typed
  291. on the same typewriter consistently throughout. The writing in the notes I
  292. received also appeared to be the same as the writing on the address and
  293. return address of the manila envelope I received from Navan, Ireland, which
  294. was postmarked on 3 September, 2007. Since I am not a forensic expert, or
  295. handwriting analyst, my opinion in these matter is not a professionally
  296. qualified judgment.
  297. 3) many pages of typewritten transcriptions of her interview with the alien.
  298. These were obviously typed on a different typewriter. These pages were
  299. typed on a different type of paper and showed apparent signs of age and
  300. repeated handling.
  301. 14
  302. None of these notes were assembled in any particular order, or by date,
  303. except where indicated by a sentence or paragraph of preamble or
  304. explanation by her, or by extrapolation from the context of the pages.
  305. Voltaire 4 (Footnote) is quoted as having said: "History is a Mississippi of lies".
  306. According to the comments made by the alien in the interview transcripts,
  307. supplied by Mrs. MacElroy, the fundamental lesson of history is that many,
  308. many gods have become men, but very few men, if any, have returned to
  309. being a god again.
  310. According to the alien being -- "Airl" -- if anything he / she / it supposedly
  311. communicated can be trusted -- and if the "translation" or interpretation of
  312. this alleged communication is accurate, the history of this universe is a "River
  313. of Lies" down which the might and freedom of all-powerful, god-like, immortal
  314. spiritual beings ended and was lost in a Sea of Matter and Mortality.
  315. Furthermore, according to the very direct and undiplomatic statements made
  316. -- which seem to express the "personal opinion" of the alien -- if one were
  317. traveling the far reaches of the universe in search of a place called "Hell", it
  318. would be an accurate description of Earth and the inhabitants in its current
  319. condition.
  320. To further compound, complicate and magnify the "incredible" source of the
  321. "interview transcriptions" I received from Mrs. MacElroy is the fact that they
  322. are:
  323. 1) based almost entirely on "telepathic communication" between the alien
  324. and Mrs. MacElroy.
  325. 2) many of these interviews discuss "paranormal" activities of "immortal
  326. spiritual beings".
  327. Of course, most "scientific authorities" are unwilling to acknowledge or
  328. perceive spiritual phenomena of any kind.
  329. The dictionary definition of the word paranormal is:
  330. adjective:
  331. 1. cannot be explained by scientific methods
  332. 2. supernatural, or seemingly outside "normal" sensory channels
  333. By definition, people who use the word "paranormal" are 1) not able to
  334. explain spiritual phenomena and 2) spiritual phenomena are outside of their
  335. normal sensory channels.
  336. 15
  337. In short, scientists suffer from the inability and/or unwillingness to
  338. perceive and/or explain spiritual activities. Therefore, the discussion of
  339. spiritual activities or spiritual universes in this book are expected to be
  340. understood only by those who can and will perceive such things.
  341. According to the time spans related by the alien in several of the interviews,
  342. there are a number of compelling and heretofore unknown reasons that
  343. suggest the possibility that many extraordinary miscalculations have been
  344. made by Earth scientists regarding the origins and antiquity of the universe,
  345. Earth, life forms and events. Of course, these may or may not be accurate
  346. either, as time and it's ugly step-child, history, are largely subjective.
  347. However, it can be observed that, by contrast with interstellar or
  348. "macrocosmic time", the historical perspective of residents of Earth is limited
  349. to a relatively microscopic period of time, compared to what are considered
  350. to be "recent events" in the chronology of an space travel civilization, much
  351. less the entire time span of the universe.
  352. The geological record of Earth is reckoned, by the best guesses of scientists,
  353. to be only about 4 billion years. The antiquity of homo sapiens in the
  354. archaeology textbooks is estimated at only a few million years, at most. Even
  355. the entire biological spectrum is considered to have existed on this planet for
  356. only a few hundred million years. And, by and large, the personal memory of
  357. individual beings on this planet is limited to only one lifetime.
  358. All other dates, events, or interpretations of events cited in this book are from
  359. terrestrial sources, which are purely subjective observations, conjectures, or
  360. inventions of human beings, including those of the author, and must
  361. therefore be credited or disregarded by the reader accordingly, considering
  362. the penchant of Earth inhabitants to myopia, egocentricity, and general
  363. ignorance of the several universes in which we dwell.
  364. This book is intended to be an informal presentation of information provided
  365. to me, sixty years after the fact, of a series of interviews between an alien
  366. space craft officer, pilot & engineer and an Army Air Force surgical nurse.
  367. 16
  368. Matilda O'Donnell MacElroy
  369. Biographical Information
  370. Since I have never met Mrs. MacElroy in person, and spoke with her over the
  371. phone only once for about 20 minutes, I can not vouch personally for her as
  372. a credible source of information. In fact, I cannot factually substantiate that
  373. such a person actually existed, accept that I did speak with her on the phone
  374. and I received hand-written material in the mail which was sent from a
  375. physical address in Ireland.
  376. When I spoke to her on the phone in 1998, I was living in Florida. At the time
  377. of our brief phone interview, Mrs. MacElroy lived on Scotty Pride Drive in
  378. Glasgow, Montana. I know this because I mailed a copy of my book, The Oz
  379. Factors, to her as a gift after it was published in 1999. I am sure she
  380. received the book, because she refers to it by name in the letter I received
  381. from Ireland, and says that she read it.
  382. I did a little research on the internet about Glasgow, Montana for my own
  383. interest. Glasgow was founded in 1887 as a railroad town that became
  384. popular during the 1930s because President FDR requested that Fort Peck
  385. Dam be constructed there which became a huge source of employment for
  386. the Glasgow area. In the 1960s the population flourished up to 12,000
  387. because of Glasgow Air Force Base (SAC), which was used during the
  388. Vietnam conflict and the earlier part of the 'Cold War'. The base was
  389. deactivated and closed in 1969.
  390. When I talked to Mrs. MacElroy on the phone she mentioned that she had
  391. been relocated there by the U.S. Air Force after her service was completed,
  392. and that's where she met her husband, who was an engineer. I don't think
  393. she mentioned his first name. However, he worked on building the Fort Peck
  394. Dam, which created the massive Fort Peck Lake. Although the dam was
  395. finished in 1940, he was a great fisherman and outdoorsman, so he stayed in
  396. the area. I gathered that the Irish heritage of the place had something to do
  397. with it, but didn't pursue that point with her. I haven't been able to find any
  398. record of a "MacElroy" who worked at the dam, but the personnel records
  399. from that period are virtually non-existent as far as I can determine.
  400. I contacted her during my research for The Oz Factors book because I was
  401. led to believe, through a very circuitous line of investigation, that this women
  402. 17
  403. was suspected of having been involved with alien contact at Area 51, or the
  404. Roswell crash site, or something similar.
  405. Through a sequence of circumstantial inferences and accidental referrals, I
  406. actually found her number in the phone book and called her up just on the
  407. chance that there might really be such a person.
  408. Needless to say, when I called her she was less than forthcoming in her
  409. response to my questions. However, I think she was impressed by my
  410. genuine and innocent sincerity to get information for my book, and realized
  411. that I had no nefarious or financially motivated purposes or reason to exploit
  412. her in any way. Nonetheless, she did not give me any useful information at
  413. that time, except to say that she had been in the Army and was stationed in
  414. New Mexico in 1947.
  415. She could not discuss anything whatsoever about any kind of incident, as her
  416. life depended on remaining silent. Although this piqued my interest even
  417. more, it was futile to try to push her any further, so I gave up and forgot about
  418. her until last September, when I got the package from Ireland.
  419. I tried to contact her in Ireland at the return address on the package, but
  420. received no reply from her, nor have I been able to find anyone in Meath
  421. County, Ireland who was acquainted with either of them except the landlady
  422. from whom they rented a room for a few weeks before their deaths, which
  423. seemed to have occurred simultaneously, although I have no real evidence
  424. of this.
  425. However, the post mark of the envelope she sent to me was stamped at the
  426. post office in Navan, Co. Meath, Ireland on the date sited above. Since there
  427. is an actual residence (according to Google Maps) at the return address
  428. shown on the envelope, I wrote to the address and was advised by the home
  429. owner that both Mrs. MacElroy and her husband, whose name turns out to
  430. have been "Paul", were both recently deceased. She said that the cremated
  431. remains of Mrs. MacElroy and her husband were interred at Saint Finian
  432. Cemetery on Athboy Road.
  433. Subsequently, I have not been able to find any record of her under the
  434. maiden name of O'Donnell, nor have I had any success at discovering any
  435. personal friend, family member or document to confirm her birth, medical
  436. education, or military record, marriage or death, with the exception of her
  437. landlady in Ireland (who is not a relative) just before her death. I suspect that
  438. this is the false identity given to her by the military when she left Roswell, as
  439. mentioned in her notes.
  440. In either case, it seems likely that her identity and all evidence of her has
  441. been expunged from the public record. I understand that certain government
  442. 18
  443. agencies are adept at covering up evidence, or making records (and people)
  444. disappear. It seems likely that this has been done in her case, due to the
  445. highly sensitive nature of the Roswell incident and consistent with the rest of
  446. the alleged "cover up".
  447. Inasmuch as I do not have any further information to verify or substantiate
  448. that any of the notes of these "interviews" sent to me by Mrs. MacElroy are in
  449. any way factual, other than what I have already mentioned, let the reader
  450. beware, and take heed accordingly!
  451. 19
  452. The Letter from Mrs. MacElroy
  453. _______________________________________________________________
  454. August 12, 2007
  455. Dear Lawrence,
  456. I am typing this letter to you on my old Underwood
  457. typewriter that I bought after I was discharged from the
  458. Army. Somehow it seems like a fitting contrast to the
  459. subject of this letter and the documents you will find
  460. enclosed in this envelope.
  461. The last time I spoke to you was about eight years ago.
  462. During your brief telephone interview with me you asked
  463. me to assist you with the research for "The Oz Factors"
  464. book you were writing because you suspected that I might
  465. know something that would help your investigation into
  466. the possibility that extraterrestrial beings may have
  467. influenced the history of Earth. When we spoke, I told
  468. you that I did not have any information that I could
  469. share with you about anything.
  470. Since then I have read your book and found it very
  471. interesting and compelling. You are obviously a man who
  472. has done his homework, and who could understand my own
  473. experiences. I've been thinking a lot about your
  474. allusion to the old philosopher whom you paraphrased in
  475. our phone conversation: "with great power, comes great
  476. responsibility". Although I don't think power is
  477. pertinent in my life or to my reasons for sending you
  478. the enclosed documents, you certainly did get me
  479. thinking about my responsibility.
  480. I have reconsidered my position, for a variety of
  481. reasons, not the least of which is my realization that
  482. you were right. I do have a responsibility to myself,
  483. at least. I can not possibly tell you the personal Hell 5
  484. (Footnote) of ethical irresolution and spiritual ambivalence
  485. I have endured since 1947. I do not want to keep playing
  486. the game of "maybe I should have, or maybe I shouldn't
  487. have", through the rest of Eternity!
  488. 20
  489. Many men have been killed to extinguish the possibility
  490. of revealing the knowledge I have helped to withhold
  491. from society, until now. Only a small handful of people
  492. on Earth have seen and heard what I have had the burden
  493. of keeping secret for sixty years. All those years I
  494. thought that I had been entrusted with a great deal of
  495. confidence by the "powers that be" in our government,
  496. although I have often felt that power is greatly
  497. misguided, to "protect" Mankind from the certain
  498. knowledge that, not only do intelligent extraterrestrial
  499. life forms exist, but that they have and continue to
  500. aggressively monitor and invade the lives of everyone on
  501. Earth every day.
  502. Therefore, I think the time has come to pass along my
  503. secret knowledge to someone I think will understand it.
  504. I don't think it would be responsible of me to take the
  505. knowledge I have into the silent afterlife, beyond reach
  506. or recognition. I think there is a greater good to be
  507. served than protecting the "vested interests" for whom
  508. this information is considered a matter of "national
  509. security", whatever that means, and is therefore
  510. justification for making it "TOP SECRET". 6
  511. (Footnote)
  512. Also, I am now 83 years old. I have decided to leave
  513. this body, which has outlasted it's usefulness to me,
  514. using a painless method of self-administered euthanasia. 7
  515. (Footnote) I have a very few months to live, and nothing to
  516. fear or lose.
  517. So, I have moved away from Montana, where my husband and
  518. I lived for most of my life, to spend our remaining days
  519. in a lovely rented upstairs bedroom in a house in the
  520. homeland of my husband's family in County Meath,
  521. Ireland. 8
  522. (Footnote)
  523. I will die not far from "The Great Mound" at Knowth
  524. 9
  525. (Footnote),and Dowth, the "Fairy Mound of Darkness". These
  526. are sacred "cairns" or massive stone structures that
  527. were erected about 3,700 BCE and engraved with
  528. indecipherable hieroglyphs -- about the same time as
  529. pyramids and other inexplicable stone monuments were
  530. being built all over the Earth.
  531. I am also not far from "The Hill of Tara", 10 (Footnote) that
  532. was once the ancient seat of power in Ireland where 142
  533. kings are said to have reigned in prehistoric and
  534. 21
  535. historic times. In ancient Irish religion and mythology
  536. this was the sacred place of dwelling for the "gods" and
  537. was the entrance to the "other world".
  538. Saint Patrick came to Tara to conquer the ancient
  539. religion of the pagans. He may have suppressed the
  540. religious practices in the area, but he certainly did
  541. not have any impact on the "gods" who brought these
  542. civilizations to Earth, as you will discover when you
  543. read the documents enclosed. Therefore, this is a
  544. fitting location for my departure from this unholy world
  545. and final release from the burdens of this life.
  546. The crystal clear perspective of hindsight has revealed
  547. a higher purpose to me: assisting the survival of the
  548. planet, all living beings and life forms in our galaxy!
  549. The status quo of our government establishment has been
  550. to "protect the people" from knowledge of such matters.
  551. In fact, the only protection afforded by ignorance and
  552. secrecy is to hide the private agenda of those in power
  553. to enslave others. And, by doing so, to disarm every
  554. perceived enemy, and ally, through superstition and
  555. stupidity.
  556. Therefore, I have enclosed the original and only
  557. existing copies of my personal notes and reflections on
  558. a matter which I have kept hidden from everyone, even my
  559. own family. I have also enclosed my copies of typed
  560. transcripts created by the stenographer who transcribed
  561. all of my interviews with the alien saucer pilot after
  562. each interview was finished. I do not have any copies
  563. of the tape recordings that were made of my interview
  564. reports. No one, until now, knows that I was able to
  565. secretly retain copies of the official interview
  566. transcripts.
  567. Now I am entrusting these documents to your discretion
  568. to impart to the world in any form or manner you see
  569. fit. My only request is that you do so in a way that
  570. will not threaten your own life or well being, if
  571. possible. If you were to incorporate these notes of my
  572. experiences into a work of fiction, such as a novel, the
  573. factual nature of the material could be easily dismissed
  574. or discredited by any agency for whom "national
  575. security" is used as a personal shield against scrutiny
  576. and justice.
  577. 22
  578. In so doing, you could "disavow any knowledge" of their
  579. true origin, and claim that it is a fictitious work of
  580. your imagination. Whoever said that "truth is stranger
  581. than fiction" was "right as rain". For most people all
  582. of this will be "unbelievable". Unfortunately, beliefs
  583. are not a reliable criteria for reality.
  584. Also, I am sure that if you were to show these notes to
  585. anyone that would prefer physical, economic or spiritual
  586. slavery over freedom, the subject matter contained in
  587. them would seem quite objectionable. If you attempted
  588. to published the documents as a matter of factual
  589. reporting in a newspaper or on the evening TV news they
  590. would be rejected out of hand as the work of a kook.
  591. The very nature of these documents make them
  592. unbelievable, and therefore discreditable. Conversely,
  593. the release of this information is potentially
  594. catastrophic for certain political, religious and
  595. economic vested interests.
  596. These documents contain information which is quite
  597. relevant to your interest and investigations into alien
  598. encounters and paranormal experience. To use your
  599. analogy in "The Oz Factors" book, I can honestly say
  600. that the few factual reports that have been made by
  601. others about "alien" influences are only a gentle breeze
  602. in the eye of an Apocalyptic Hurricane swirling around
  603. Earth. There really are wizards and wicked witches and
  604. flying monkeys in this universe!
  605. This information, which has been suspected and/or
  606. speculated upon by so many for so long, has been
  607. constantly denied by mainstream media, academia, and the
  608. Military-Industrial Complex 11 (Footnote) that President
  609. Eisenhower warned us about in his farewell address.
  610. As you known in July,1947,the Roswell Army Air Field
  611. (RAAF) 12 (Footnote) issued a press release stating that
  612. personnel from the field's 509th Bomb Group had
  613. recovered a crashed "flying disc" from a ranch near
  614. Roswell, New Mexico, sparking intense media interest. 13
  615. (Footnote)
  616. Later the same day, the Commanding General of the Eighth
  617. Air Force 14 (Footnote) stated that Major Jesse Marcel, who
  618. was involved with the original recovery of the debris,
  619. had recovered only the tattered remnants of a weather
  620. 23
  621. balloon. The true facts of the incident have been
  622. suppressed by the United States government since then.
  623. You may not know that I was enlisted in the U.S. Women's
  624. Army Air Force(WAC) 15 (Footnote) Medical Corp which was a
  625. part of the US Army back then. I was assigned to the
  626. 509th Bomb Group as a Flight Nurse 16 (Footnote)at the time
  627. of the incident.
  628. When the news that there had been a crash was received
  629. at the base, I was asked to accompany Mr. Cavitt, the
  630. Counter Intelligence Officer, 17 (Footnote) to the crash site
  631. as the driver of his vehicle, and to render any needed
  632. emergency medical assistance to any survivors, if
  633. necessary. 18 (Footnote) Therefore, I briefly witnessed the
  634. wreckage of an alien space craft, as well as the remains
  635. of the several alien personnel aboard the craft who were
  636. already dead.
  637. When we arrived I learned that one of the personnel on
  638. board the craft had survived the crash, and was
  639. conscious, and apparently uninjured. The conscious
  640. alien was similar in appearance, but not the same as,
  641. the others. 19 (Footnote)
  642. None of the other personnel present could communicate
  643. with the survivor, as the being did not communicate
  644. verbally or by any recognizable signs. However, while I
  645. examined the "patient" for injuries I immediately
  646. detected and understood that the alien being was
  647. attempting to communicate with me by "mental images", or
  648. "telepathic thought", 20 (Footnote) which projected directly
  649. from the mind of the being.
  650. I immediately reported this phenomenon to Mr. Cavitt. As
  651. no other person present could perceive these thoughts,
  652. and the alien seemed able and willing to communicate
  653. with me, it was decided, after a brief consultation with
  654. a senior officer, that I would accompany the surviving
  655. alien back to the base.
  656. This was partly due to the fact that I was a nurse, and
  657. could attend to the physical needs of the alien, as well
  658. as serve as a non-threatening communicator and
  659. companion. After all, I was the only woman at the site
  660. and the only one who was not armed. I was thereafter
  661. assigned permanently to serve as a "companion" of the
  662. alien at all times. 21 (Footnote)
  663. 24
  664. My duty was to communicate with and interview the alien
  665. and to make a complete report of all that I discovered
  666. to command authorities. Subsequently, I was supplied
  667. with specific lists of questions provided to me by
  668. military and non-military personnel, which I was to
  669. "interpret" for the alien, and record the responses to
  670. the questions provided.
  671. I also accompanied the alien at all times during medical
  672. testing and the many other examinations to which the
  673. alien was subjected by staff from numerous government
  674. agencies.
  675. I was given a promotion in rank to Senior Master
  676. Sergeant to improve my security rating, and to increase
  677. my pay grade from $54.00 a month to $138.00 a month, for
  678. this very unusual assignment. I performed these duties
  679. from July 7th through August,1947,at which time the
  680. alien "died" or departed the "body", as you will read
  681. about in my notes.
  682. Although I was never left entirely alone with the alien,
  683. as there were always military personnel, intelligence
  684. agency people and a variety of other officials present
  685. from time to time, I did have uninterrupted access to
  686. and communication with the alien being for nearly six
  687. weeks.
  688. Hereinafter is an overview and summary of my personal
  689. recollections of "conversations" with the alien craft
  690. pilot, whom I came to know by the identity of "Airl".
  691. I feel that it is my duty at this time, in the best
  692. interest of the citizens of Earth, to reveal what I have
  693. learned from my interaction with "Airl" during those six
  694. weeks, on the anniversary of her "death" or departure
  695. sixty years ago.
  696. Although I served as a nurse in the Army Air Force, I am
  697. not a pilot or technician. Further, I did not have any
  698. direct contact with the space craft or other materials
  699. recovered from the crash site at that time, or
  700. thereafter. To that degree it must be taken into
  701. consideration that my understanding of the
  702. communications I had with " Airl" are based on my own
  703. subjective ability to interpret the meaning of the
  704. thoughts and mental images I was able to perceive.
  705. 25
  706. Our communication did not consist of "spoken language",
  707. in the conventional sense. Indeed, the "body" of the
  708. alien had no "mouth" through which to speak. Our
  709. communication was by telepathy. At first, I could not
  710. understand Airl very clearly. I could perceive images,
  711. emotions and impressions, but it was difficult for me to
  712. express these verbally. Once Airl learned the English
  713. language, she was able to focus her thoughts more
  714. precisely using symbols and meanings of words I could
  715. understand. Learning the English language was done as a
  716. favor to me. It was more for my own benefit than hers.
  717. By the end of our interview sessions, and increasingly
  718. since then, I have become more comfortable with
  719. telepathic communication. I have become more adept at
  720. understanding Airl's thoughts as though they are my own.
  721. Somehow, her thoughts become my thoughts. Her emotions
  722. are my emotions. However, this is limited by her
  723. willingness and intention to share her own, personal
  724. universe with me. She is able to be selective about
  725. what communication I am allowed to receive from her.
  726. Likewise, her experience, training, education,
  727. relationships and purposes are uniquely her own.
  728. This is the symbol of "The Domain"
  729. The Domain is a race or civilization of which Airl, the
  730. alien I interviewed, is an officer, pilot and engineer
  731. serving in The Domain Expeditionary Force. The symbol
  732. represents the origin and unlimited boundary of the
  733. known universe, united and integrated into a vast
  734. civilization under the control of The Domain.
  735. Airl is currently stationed at a base in the asteroid
  736. belt which she refers as a "space station" in the solar
  737. system of Earth. First and foremost, Airl is herself.
  738. Secondarily, she voluntarily serves as an Officer, Pilot
  739. and Engineer in The Domain Expeditionary Force. In that
  740. capacity she has duties and responsibilities, but she is
  741. at leave to come and go as she pleases also.
  742. Please accept this material and make it known to as many
  743. people as possible. I repeat that it is not my
  744. intention to endanger your life with the possession of
  745. this material, nor do I really expect you to believe any
  746. 26
  747. of it either. However, I do sense that you can
  748. appreciate the value that such knowledge may have to
  749. those who are willing and able to face the reality of
  750. it.
  751. Mankind needs to know the answers to questions which are
  752. contained in these documents. Who are we? Where did we
  753. come from? What is our purpose on Earth? Is Mankind
  754. alone in the universe? If there is intelligent life
  755. elsewhere why have they not contacted us?
  756. It is vital that people understand the devastating
  757. consequences to our spiritual and physical survival if
  758. we fail to take effective action to undo the longstanding and pervasive effects of alien intervention on
  759. Earth.
  760. Perhaps the information in these documents will serve as
  761. a stepping stone to a better future for Mankind. I hope
  762. that you can be more clever, creative and courageous in
  763. the distribution of this information than I have been.
  764. May The Gods Bless You and Keep You.
  765. Mrs. Matilda O'Donnell MacElroy
  766. Senior Master Sergeant
  767. Women's Army Air Force Medical Corp, Retired
  768. 100 Troytown Heights
  769. Navan, Meath
  770. Co. Meath, Ireland
  771. 27
  772. Chapter One
  773. My First Interview With The Alien
  774. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  775. "By the time the alien had been returned to the base I had already spent several hours
  776. with her. As I mentioned, Mr. Cavitt told me to stay with the alien, since I was the
  777. only person among us who could understand her communication. I could not
  778. understand my ability to "communicate" with the being. I had never before that time
  779. experienced telepathic communication with anyone.
  780. The non-verbal communication I experienced was like the understanding you might
  781. have when a child or a dog is trying to get you to understand something, but much,
  782. much more direct and powerful! Even though there were no "words" spoken, or
  783. signs made, the intention of the thoughts were unmistakable to me. I realized later
  784. that, although I received the thought, I did not necessarily interpret it's meaning
  785. exactly.
  786. I think that the alien being was not willing to discuss technical matters, due to the
  787. nature of her position as an officer and pilot with the duty to maintain the security
  788. and confidentiality required by her own "unit" or organization. Any soldier who is
  789. captured by the "enemy" in the line of duty has a responsibility to withhold vital
  790. information, even in the face of interrogation or torture, of course.
  791. But, in spite of that, I have always felt that the alien being was not really trying to
  792. hide anything from me. I just never got that feeling. Her communication always
  793. seemed honest and sincere to me. But, I suppose you can never know for sure. I
  794. definitely feel that I shared a unique "bond" with the alien. It was a kind of "trust" or
  795. empathy that you have with a patient, or a child. I think this is because the alien
  796. could understand that I was really interested in "her" and had no harmful intention,
  797. nor would I allow any harm to come to her, if I could prevent it. This was true too.
  798. I refer to the alien as "her". Actually, the being was not sexual in any way, either
  799. physiologically or psychologically. "She" did have a rather strong, feminine
  800. presence and demeanor. However, in terms of physiology, the being was "asexual"
  801. and had no internal or external reproductive organs. Her body was more like the
  802. body of a "doll" or "robot". There were no internal "organs", as the body was not
  803. constructed of biological cells. It did have a kind of "circuit" system or electrical
  804. 28
  805. nervous system that ran throughout the body, but I could not understand how it
  806. worked.
  807. In stature and appearance the body was quite short and petite. About a 40 inches tall.
  808. The head was disproportionately large, relative to arms, legs and torso, which where
  809. thin. There were three "fingers" on each of two" hands" and "feet" which were
  810. somewhat prehensile. 22 (Footnote) The head had no operational "nose" or "mouth"
  811. or "ears". I understood that a space officer does not need these as space has no
  812. atmosphere to conduct sound. Therefore, sound related sensory organs are not built
  813. into the body. Nor does the body need to consume food, hence, the absence of a
  814. mouth.
  815. The eyes were quite large. I was never able to determine the exact degree of visual
  816. acuity of which the eyes were capable, but I observed that her sense of sight must
  817. have been extremely acute. I think the lenses of the eyes, which were very dark and
  818. opaque, may also have been able to detect waves or particles beyond the visual
  819. spectrum of light. 23 (Footnote) I suspect that this may have included the full range
  820. of the electromagnetic spectrum, 24 (Footnote) or more, but I do not know this for
  821. sure.
  822. When the being looked at me her gaze seemed to penetrate right through me, as
  823. though she had "x-ray vision". 25 (Footnote) I found this a little embarrassing, at first,
  824. until I realized that she had no sexual intentions. In fact, I don't think she ever even
  825. had the thought that I was male or female.
  826. It become very obvious after a short time with the being that her body did not require
  827. oxygen, food or water or any other external source of nutrition or energy. As I
  828. learned later, this being supplied her own "energy", which animated and operated the
  829. body. It seemed a little bit eerie at first, but I got used to the idea. It's really a very,
  830. very simple body. There is not much to it, compared to our own bodies.
  831. Airl explained to me that it was not mechanical, like a robot, nor was it biological. It
  832. is animated directly by her as a spiritual being. Technically, from a medical
  833. standpoint, I would say that Airl's body could not even be called "alive". Her "doll"
  834. body is not a biological life form, 26 (Footnote) with cells, and so forth.
  835. It had a smooth skin, or covering which was gray in color. The body was highly
  836. tolerant to changes in temperature, atmospheric conditions, and pressure. The limbs
  837. were quite frail, without musculature. In space there is no gravity, 27 (Footnote) so
  838. very little muscle strength is needed. The body was used almost entirely on space
  839. craft or in low, or no-gravity environments. Since Earth has a heavy gravity, the
  840. body was not able to walk around very well as the legs were not really suited to that
  841. purpose. The feet and hands were quite flexible and agile however.
  842. Over night, before my first interview with the alien, the area had been transformed
  843. into a buzzing hive of activity. There were a dozen men working on setting up lights
  844. 29
  845. and camera equipment. A motion picture camera and microphone and a tape
  846. recorder was there also set up in the "interview room". (I don't understand why a
  847. microphone was needed, since there was no verbal communication possible with the
  848. alien.) There was also a stenographer 28 (Footnote) and several people busily typing
  849. on typewriters.
  850. I was informed that an expert foreign language interpreter and a "code breaking"
  851. team had been flown to the base during the night to assist with my efforts to
  852. communicate with the alien. There were also several medical personnel --
  853. specialists in various fields -- to examine the alien. And, a professor of psychology
  854. was there to help formulate questions and "interpret" the answers. As I was just a
  855. nurse, I was not considered to be a "qualified" interpreter, even though I was the only
  856. one there who could understand anything the alien was thinking!
  857. There were many subsequent conversations between us. Each "interview" resulted in
  858. an exponential increase in understanding between us, as I will discuss later on in my
  859. notes. This is the first transcript with the answers to a list of questions provided to
  860. me by the intelligence officer at the base which I debriefed to the stenographer
  861. immediately following the interview."
  862. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  863. TOP SECRET
  864. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  865. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  866. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 9. 7. 1947
  867. "QUESTION - "Are you injured?"
  868. ANSWER -
  869. NO
  870. QUESTION - "What medical assistance do you require?"
  871. ANSWER -
  872. NONE
  873. QUESTION - "Do need food or water or other
  874. sustenance?"
  875. ANSWER -
  876. NO
  877. 30
  878. QUESTION - "Do you have any special environmental
  879. needs, such as air temperature, atmospheric chemical
  880. content, air pressure, or waste elimination?"
  881. ANSWER -
  882. NO. I AM NOT A BIOLOGICAL BEING.
  883. QUESTION - "Does your body or space craft carry any
  884. germs or contamination that may be harmful to humans
  885. or other Earth life forms?"
  886. ANSWER -
  887. NO GERMS IN SPACE.
  888. QUESTION - "Does your government know you are here?"
  889. ANSWER -
  890. NOT AT THIS TIME
  891. QUESTION - "Are others of your kind going to come
  892. looking for you?"
  893. ANSWER -
  894. YES
  895. QUESTION - "What is the weapons capability of your
  896. people?"
  897. ANSWER -
  898. VERY DESTRUCTIVE.
  899. I did not understand the exact nature of the kind of
  900. arms or weapons that they might have, but I did not
  901. feel that there was any malevolent intention in her
  902. reply, just a statement of fact.
  903. QUESTION - "Why did your space craft crash?"
  904. ANSWER -
  905. 31
  906. IT WAS STRUCK BY AN ELECTRICAL DISCHARGE FROM THE
  907. ATMOSPHERE WHICH CAUSED US TO LOSE CONTROL.
  908. QUESTION - "Why was your space craft in this area?"
  909. ANSWER -
  910. INVESTIGATION OF "BURNING CLOUDS" / RADIATION /
  911. EXPLOSIONS 29 (Footnote)
  912. QUESTION - "How does your space craft fly?"
  913. ANSWER -
  914. IT IS CONTROLLED THROUGH "MIND". RESPONDS TO
  915. "THOUGHT COMMANDS".
  916. "Mind" or "thought command" are the only English
  917. language words I can think of to describe the
  918. thought. Their bodies, and I think, the space craft,
  919. are connected directly to them through some kind of
  920. electrical "nervous system" that they control with
  921. their own thoughts.
  922. QUESTION - "How do your people communicate with each
  923. other?"
  924. ANSWER -
  925. THROUGH MIND /THOUGHT.
  926. The words "mind" and "thought" combined together are
  927. the closest English language words I can think of to
  928. describe the idea at this time. However, it was very
  929. obvious to me that they communicate directly from the
  930. mind, just as she is communicating with me.
  931. QUESTION - "Do you have a written language or symbols
  932. for communication?"
  933. ANSWER -
  934. YES
  935. QUESTION - "What planet are you from?"
  936. ANSWER -
  937. 32
  938. THE HOME / BIRTHPLACE WORLD OF THE DOMAIN
  939. Since I am not an astronomer, I have no way of
  940. thinking in terms of stars, galaxies, constellations
  941. and directions in space. The impression I received
  942. was of a planet in the center of a huge cluster of
  943. galaxies that is to her like "home", or "birthplace".
  944. The word "domain" is the closest word I can think of
  945. to describe her concept, images and thoughts about
  946. where she is from. It could as easily be called the
  947. "territory" or the "realm". However, I am sure that
  948. it was not just a planet or a solar system or a
  949. cluster of stars, but an enormous number of galaxies!
  950. QUESTION - "Will your government send representatives
  951. to meet with our leaders?"
  952. ANSWER -
  953. NO
  954. QUESTION - "What are your intentions concerning
  955. Earth?"
  956. ANSWER -
  957. PRESERVE / PROTECT PROPERTY OF THE DOMAIN
  958. QUESTION - "What have you learned about Earth
  959. governments and military installations?"
  960. ANSWER -
  961. POOR / SMALL. DESTROY PLANET.
  962. QUESTION - "Why haven't your people made your
  963. existence known to the people of Earth?"
  964. ANSWER -
  965. WATCH / OBSERVE. NO CONTACT.
  966. I got the impression that contact with people on
  967. Earth was not permitted, but I could not think of a
  968. word or idea that communicated the impression I got
  969. exactly. They are just observing us.
  970. 33
  971. QUESTION - "Have your people visited Earth’s
  972. previously?"
  973. ANSWER -
  974. PERIODIC / REPEATING OBSERVATIONS.
  975. QUESTION - "How long have you known about Earth?"
  976. ANSWER -
  977. LONG BEFORE HUMANS.
  978. I am not sure if the word "prehistoric" would be more
  979. accurate, but it was definitely a very long period of
  980. time before human beings evolved.
  981. QUESTION - "What do you know about the history of
  982. civilization on Earth?"
  983. ANSWER -
  984. SMALL INTEREST / ATTENTION. SMALL TIME.
  985. The answer to this question seemed very vague to me.
  986. However, I perceived that her interest in Earth
  987. history is not very strong or that she did not pay
  988. much attention to it. Or, maybe, ... I don't know.
  989. I didn't really get an answer to the question.
  990. QUESTION - "Can you describe your home world to us?"
  991. ANSWER -
  992. PLACE OF CIVILIZATION / CULTURE / HISTORY. LARGE
  993. PLANET. WEALTH / RESOURCES ALWAYS. ORDER. POWER.
  994. KNOWLEDGE / WISDOM. TWO STARS. THREE MOONS.
  995. QUESTION - "What is the state of development of your
  996. civilization?"
  997. ANSWER -
  998. ANCIENT. TRILLIONS OF YEARS. ALWAYS. ABOVE ALL
  999. OTHERS. PLAN. SCHEDULE. PROGRESS. WIN. HIGH GOALS
  1000. / IDEAS.
  1001. 34
  1002. I use the number "trillions" 30 (Footnote) because I am
  1003. sure that the meaning was a number larger than many
  1004. billions. The idea of the length of time she
  1005. communicated is beyond me. It's really closer to
  1006. the idea of "infinity" in terms of Earth years.
  1007. QUESTION - "Do you believe in God?"
  1008. ANSWER -
  1009. WE THINK. IT IS. MAKE IT CONTINUE. ALWAYS.
  1010. I am sure that the alien being does not understand
  1011. the concept of "god" or "worship" as we do. I assume
  1012. that the people in her civilization were all
  1013. atheists. My impression was that they think very
  1014. highly of themselves and are very prideful indeed!
  1015. QUESTION - "What type of society do you have?"
  1016. ANSWER -
  1017. ORDER. POWER. FUTURE ALWAYS. CONTROL. GROW.
  1018. These are the closest words I could use to describe
  1019. the idea she had about her own society or
  1020. civilization. Her "emotion" when communicating her
  1021. response to this question became very intense, very
  1022. bright and emphatic! Her thought was filled with an
  1023. emotion that gave me a feeling of jubilation or joy.
  1024. But, it made me very nervous also.
  1025. QUESTION - "Are there other intelligent life forms
  1026. besides yourself in the universe?"
  1027. ANSWER -
  1028. EVERYWHERE. WE ARE GREATEST / HIGHEST OF ALL.
  1029. Due to her small stature, I am sure that she did not
  1030. mean "tallest" or "biggest". Again, her prideful
  1031. "nature" showed through in the feeling I received
  1032. from her."
  1033. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1034. 35
  1035. "This was the conclusion of the first interview. When the answers to the first
  1036. list of questions were typed and given to the people who were waiting for them,
  1037. they were very excited that I was able to get the alien to say anything!
  1038. However, after they finished reading my answers they were disappointed that I
  1039. could not understand more clearly. Now they had a lot of new questions
  1040. because of the answers I received to the first list of questions.
  1041. An officer told me to await further instructions. I waited for several hours in the
  1042. adjoining office. I was not allowed to continue my "interview" with the alien.
  1043. However, I was always well treated and allowed to eat and sleep and use the
  1044. restroom facilities whenever I wanted.
  1045. Eventually, a new list of questions was written for me to ask the alien. I
  1046. gathered that quite a few other agents, government and military officials had
  1047. arrived at the base by this time. They told me that several other people would be
  1048. in the room with me during the next interview so they could prompt me to ask
  1049. for more details during the interview. However, when I attempted to conduct
  1050. the interview with these people in the room, I received no thoughts, emotions or
  1051. any other perceptible communication from the alien. Nothing. The alien just sat
  1052. in a chair without moving.
  1053. We all left the interview room. The intelligence agent became very agitated
  1054. about this. He accused me of lying or making up the answers to the first
  1055. questions. I insisted that my answers were honest, and as accurate as I could
  1056. make them!
  1057. Later that day, it was decided that several other people would attempt to ask
  1058. questions of the alien. However, in spite of several attempts by different
  1059. "experts", no one else was ever able to get any communication at all from the
  1060. alien.
  1061. Over the next several days a psychic research scientist from back East was
  1062. flown to the base to interview the alien. Her name was Gertrude something or
  1063. other. I don't recall the last name. 31 (Footnote) On another occasion an Indian
  1064. clairvoyant named Krishnamurti 32 (Footnote) came to the base to try to
  1065. communicate with the alien . Neither one was successful at getting the alien to
  1066. communicate anything. I was personally not able to communicate telepathically
  1067. with either of these people either, although I did think that Mr. Krishnamurti
  1068. was a very kind and intelligent gentleman.
  1069. Finally, it was decided that I should be left with the alien by myself to see if I
  1070. could get any answers."
  1071. 36
  1072. Chapter Two
  1073. My Second Interview
  1074. "In the next interview I was told to ask the alien only one question."
  1075. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1076. TOP SECRET
  1077. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  1078. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  1079. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 10. 7. 1947
  1080. "QUESTION - "Why have you stopped communicating?"
  1081. ANSWER -
  1082. NO STOP. OTHERS. HIDDEN / COVERED. SECRET FEAR.
  1083. The alien can not communicate with them because they
  1084. were afraid of her, or do not trust her. And, it is
  1085. clear to me that the alien is very aware that some
  1086. people have secret intentions toward her and are hiding
  1087. their real thoughts. It is equally obvious to me that
  1088. the alien does not have even a tiny bit of fear of us,
  1089. or anything else, for that matter!"
  1090. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1091. "I pondered the words I chose to convey the meaning of the aliens thoughts very
  1092. carefully before reporting to the stenographer and the people who were waiting
  1093. anxiously in the other room.
  1094. Personally, I never suffered any fear or misapprehension about the alien
  1095. whatsoever. I was very, very curious and excited to learn anything and
  1096. everything I could about her and from her. However, like the alien, I did not
  1097. have much trust or confidence in the agents or "authorities" who were
  1098. 37
  1099. controlling my interviews. I had no idea what their intentions toward her might
  1100. be. However, I am sure that the military officers were very, very nervous about
  1101. having an alien space craft and pilot on their hands!
  1102. At that moment, my greatest worry was how to more clearly understand the
  1103. thoughts and ideas of the alien. I think that I was doing pretty well as a
  1104. telepathic "receiver", but not as good as telepathic "sender".
  1105. I wanted desperately to figure out a better way to communicate with the alien in
  1106. a way that would enable the growing legion of government officials to
  1107. understand her more directly, without having to rely on my interpretation of her
  1108. thoughts. I did not feel very well qualified to act as an interpreter, yet I was the
  1109. only person with whom the alien would communicate, so it was up to me to get
  1110. the job done.
  1111. I was also becoming acutely aware that this was probably the biggest "news
  1112. event" in the history of Earth, and that I should be proud to have any part in it.
  1113. Of course by that time the entire incident had been officially denied in the press
  1114. and a cover-up of immense proportions by the military and the "powers that be"
  1115. 33 (Footnote) had already begun.
  1116. However, I was beginning to feel the pressure of the responsibility for being the
  1117. first person on Earth, as far as I knew, to communicate with an extraterrestrial
  1118. life form! I think I know how Columbus 34 (Footnote) must have felt when he
  1119. discovered a "new world" the size of a continent on one small planet. But, I was
  1120. about to discover an entirely new, unexplored universe! 35 (Footnote)
  1121. While I waited for my next instructions from my superiors I went to my
  1122. quarters, under escort of several heavily armed MPs. Several other men dressed
  1123. in black suits and ties accompanied me also. They were still there when I got up
  1124. in the morning. After breakfast, which was brought to me in my own quarters,
  1125. they escorted me back to the office at the base that was used for the interview."
  1126. 38
  1127. Chapter Three
  1128. My Third Interview
  1129. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1130. "The third interview, and all subsequent interviews that I had with the alien were
  1131. observed and recorded, as I mentioned above, by dozens of other people.
  1132. Although they were not physically present, a special room had been constructed
  1133. with a window of one-way glass through which the interview could be observed
  1134. from an adjoining room, without intruding on the alien.
  1135. The alien had been moved into the newly constructed room and was seated in an
  1136. ordinary overstuffed living room chair covered with a flowery fabric. I'm sure
  1137. that someone had been sent into town to buy a chair from the nearest available
  1138. furniture store. The aliens body was about the same size as a very thin 5 year
  1139. old child, so she was dwarfed by the chair.
  1140. Since her body was not biological it didn't need any food, air or heat, and
  1141. apparently, she didn't sleep either. There were no eyelids, or eyebrows above
  1142. her eyes, so the eyes didn't close. I don't think anyone could tell whether she was
  1143. sleeping or awake as long as she was sitting upright in the chair. Unless she
  1144. moved her body or gestured with her hand, it would be hard to tell whether she
  1145. was even alive or not, unless you could perceive her thoughts.
  1146. Eventually, I learned that the alien was not identified by her body, but by her
  1147. "personality", so to speak. She was known by her fellow aliens as "Airl". This
  1148. is the closest word I can use to describe the name using the English alphabet. I
  1149. sensed that she preferred the feminine gender. I think we shared a natural,
  1150. female empathy and nurturing attitude toward life and each other. I am sure she
  1151. did not feel comfortable with the combative, aggressive, domineering attitude of
  1152. the male officers and agents, each of whom was more concerned with their own
  1153. personal self-importance and power than with discovering the secrets of the
  1154. universe!
  1155. When I entered the room, she was very pleased to see me. I felt a very genuine
  1156. sense of recognition, relief and a "warm" feeling from her. It was like the eager
  1157. excitement and unconditional, platonic affection one feels from a dog or child,
  1158. yet with a calm and reserved control. I must say that I was surprised that I felt
  1159. the same sort of affection for the alien being, especially since we had spent so
  1160. 39
  1161. little time with each other. I was pleased that I was able to continue my
  1162. interviews with her in spite of all the attention it was getting from the stream of
  1163. government and military people arriving at the base.
  1164. It was very obvious that the people who wrote the next series of questions for
  1165. me wanted to learn how to communicate with the alien themselves, without
  1166. having to go through me.
  1167. Here are the answers to the new list of questions:"
  1168. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1169. TOP SECRET
  1170. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  1171. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  1172. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 11. 7. 1947
  1173. "QUESTION - Can you read or write any Earth languages?
  1174. ANSWER -
  1175. NO.
  1176. QUESTION - Do you understand numbers or mathematics?
  1177. ANSWER -
  1178. YES. I AM OFFICER / PILOT / ENGINEER
  1179. QUESTION - Can you write or draw symbols or pictures
  1180. that we may be able to translate into our own
  1181. language?
  1182. ANSWER -
  1183. UNCERTAIN
  1184. QUESTION - Are there any other signs or means of
  1185. communication you can use to help us understand your
  1186. thoughts more clearly?
  1187. ANSWER -
  1188. NO."
  1189. 40
  1190. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1191. "I was very sure that this was not true. But, I understood clearly that Airl was
  1192. not willing to communicate in writing or drawing or sign language. My feeling
  1193. was that she was following orders, like any soldier who has been captured, not to
  1194. reveal any information that might be useful to an enemy, even under torture. She
  1195. was only able and willing to reveal non-confidential, or personal information, or
  1196. "name, rank and serial number"."
  1197. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1198. TOP SECRET
  1199. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  1200. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  1201. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 11. 7. 1947, 2nd Session
  1202. "QUESTION - Can you show us on a map of the stars
  1203. which is the star of your home planet? 36 (Footnote)
  1204. ANSWER -
  1205. NO.
  1206. This is not because she does not know the directions
  1207. from Earth to her home planet. She was unwilling to
  1208. reveal the location. It was also due to the fact that
  1209. the star system of her home planet does not exist on
  1210. any star map on Earth. It is too far away.
  1211. QUESTION - How long will it take your people to locate
  1212. you here?
  1213. ANSWER -
  1214. UNKNOWN.
  1215. QUESTION - How long would it take your people to
  1216. travel here to rescue you?
  1217. ANSWER -
  1218. MINUTES OR HOURS.
  1219. 41
  1220. QUESTION - How can we make them understand that we do
  1221. not intend to harm you?
  1222. ANSWER -
  1223. INTENTIONS ARE CLEAR. SEE IN YOUR MIND / IMAGES /
  1224. FEELINGS.
  1225. QUESTION - If you are not a biological entity, why do
  1226. you refer to yourself as feminine?
  1227. ANSWER -
  1228. I AM A CREATOR. MOTHER. SOURCE."
  1229. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1230. "These questions took me only a few minutes to complete. I realized then that
  1231. we may be in for some serious trouble if the alien was not willing to cooperate,
  1232. or reveal any information that the military or intelligence agencies or scientists
  1233. considered to be useful to them.
  1234. I was also sure that the alien was very certain of the actual intentions of the
  1235. people who wrote these questions, as she could "read their minds" just as easily
  1236. as she could read my thoughts and communicate with me telepathically. Because
  1237. of these intentions, she was unwilling and unable to cooperate with any of them
  1238. in any way, under any circumstances. I am equally sure that since she was not a
  1239. biological life form, that there was no kind of torture or coercion that would
  1240. change her mind!"
  1241. 42
  1242. Chapter Four
  1243. The Language Barrier
  1244. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1245. "After I explained what I thought were the reasons for the "no answer" answer to
  1246. the intelligence agents, there was a great deal of upset and turmoil. A very
  1247. heated discussion took place between some of the intelligence officers, military
  1248. officials, psychologist and the language interpreters. This lasted for several
  1249. hours. It was finally decided that I should be allowed continue to interview the
  1250. alien, provided I could get a satisfactory answer from her to the following
  1251. question:"
  1252. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1253. TOP SECRET
  1254. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  1255. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  1256. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 11. 7. 1947, 3rd Session
  1257. "QUESTION - "What assurance or proof do you require
  1258. from us that will make you feel safe enough to answer
  1259. our questions."
  1260. ANSWER -
  1261. ONLY SHE SPEAKS. ONLY SHE HEARS. ONLY SHE
  1262. QUESTIONS. NO OTHERS. MUST LEARN / KNOW /
  1263. UNDERSTAND."
  1264. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1265. "When I returned from the interview room to report the alien response to this
  1266. question I received a grim and skeptical reception from the assembled
  1267. intelligence agents and military personnel. They could not understand what the
  1268. alien meant by this.
  1269. 43
  1270. I admitted that I couldn't really understand what she meant either, but I was
  1271. doing the best I could to articulate her telepathic intentions. I told the officials
  1272. that perhaps the communication problem had to do with my inability to
  1273. understand the telepathic language of the alien clearly enough to be satisfactory.
  1274. I was so discouraged at that point I almost felt like giving up!
  1275. And now, there was even more arguments than before! I was sure I was going
  1276. to be removed from my position, in spite of the fact that the alien refused to
  1277. communicate with anyone else, or that no one else had been found who could
  1278. communicate with her.
  1279. Fortunately, a very clever fellow named John Newble, who was a Japanese
  1280. language specialist from the Navy, 37 (Footnote) had an explanation and a
  1281. solution to the problem. He explained that, first, the problem had very little to
  1282. do with the inability of the alien to communicate. It had more to do with her
  1283. unwillingness to communicate with anyone other than myself. Second, in order
  1284. for any clear, comprehensive communication to happen, both parties needed to
  1285. understand and communicate through a common language.
  1286. Words and symbols in language convey very precise concepts and meanings.
  1287. He said that the Japanese people have a lot of homonyms 38 (Footnote) in their
  1288. language which cause a lot of confusion in day to day communication. They
  1289. solve this problem by using standard Chinese characters 39 (Footnote) to write
  1290. down the exact meanings of the word they are using. This clears up the matter
  1291. for them.
  1292. Without a defined nomenclature communication was not possible beyond the
  1293. rudimentary understanding between men and dogs, or between two small
  1294. children. The lack of a common vocabulary of clearly defined words that all
  1295. parties can use fluently, was the limiting factor in communication between all
  1296. people, groups, or nations.
  1297. Therefore, he suggested that there were only two choices. I had to learn to
  1298. speak the language of the alien, or the alien had to learn to speak English.
  1299. Factually only one choice was possible: that I persuade Airl to learn English,
  1300. and that I teach it to her with the guidance of the language specialist. No one
  1301. had any objection to trying this approach, as there were no other suggestions.
  1302. The language specialists suggested that I take several children's books, and a
  1303. basic reading primer, and grammar text with me into the interview room. The
  1304. plan was that I would sit next to the alien and read aloud to her from the books,
  1305. while pointing to the text I was reading with my finger so that she could follow
  1306. along.
  1307. The theory was that the alien could eventually be taught to read, just as a child is
  1308. taught to read by word and sound association with the written word, as well as
  1309. 44
  1310. instruction in fundamental grammar. They also assumed, I think, that if the
  1311. alien was intelligent enough to communicate with me telepathically, and fly a
  1312. space craft across the galaxy, that she could probably learn to speak a language
  1313. as quickly as a 5 year old, or faster!
  1314. I returned to the interview room and proposed this idea to Airl. She did not
  1315. object to learning the language, although she did not make any commitment to
  1316. answer questions either. No one else had a better idea, so we went ahead."
  1317. 45
  1318. Chapter Five
  1319. Reading Lessons
  1320. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1321. "I began the reading lessons with the first pages of a school book that had been used
  1322. to teach pioneer children in the 1800s on the frontiers of America. It is called
  1323. "McGuffey's Eclectic Reader, Primer Through Sixth". 40 (Footnote)
  1324. Since I am a nurse, and not a teacher, the language expert who gave me the books
  1325. also gave me an extensive briefing -- a course that took an entire day -- on how to
  1326. use the books to teach the alien. He said the reason he chose these particular books
  1327. was because the original 1836 version of these books were used for three-quarters of
  1328. a century to teach about four-fifths of all American school children how to read. No
  1329. other books ever had so much influence over American children for so long.
  1330. McGuffey's educational course begins in "The Primer" by presenting the letters of
  1331. the alphabet to be memorized, in sequence. Children were then taught, step by step,
  1332. to use the building blocks of the language to form and pronounce words, using the
  1333. phonics method 41 (Footnote) which involves teaching children to connect sounds
  1334. with letters. Each lesson begins with a study of words used in the reading exercise
  1335. and with markings to show the correct pronunciation for each word.
  1336. I discovered that the stories in the "First and Second Readers" picture children in
  1337. their relationship with family members, teachers, friends, and animals. The "Third,
  1338. Fourth, Fifth and Sixth Readers" expanded on those ideas. One of the stories I
  1339. remember was "The Widow and the Merchant". It's kind of a morality tale about a
  1340. merchant who befriends a widow in need. Later, when the widow proves herself to
  1341. be honest, the merchant gives her a nice gift. The books do not necessarily teach you
  1342. to believe that charity is expected only of wealthy people though. We all know that
  1343. generosity is a virtue that should be practiced by everyone.
  1344. All of the stories were very wholesome and they gave very good explanations to
  1345. illustrate virtues like honesty, charity, thrift, hard work, courage, patriotism,
  1346. reverence for God, and respect for parents. Personally, I would recommend this book
  1347. to anyone!
  1348. I also discovered that the vocabulary used in the book was very advanced compared
  1349. to the relatively limited number of words people use commonly in our modern age. I
  1350. 46
  1351. think we have lost a lot of our own language since our Founding Fathers wrote the
  1352. Declaration of Independence over 200 years ago!
  1353. As instructed, I sat next to Airl in the interview room reading aloud to her from each
  1354. successive book in the series of McGuffey's Readers. Each of the books had
  1355. excellent, simple illustrations of the stories and subjects being taught, although they
  1356. are very outdated by today's standards. Nonetheless, Airl seemed to understand and
  1357. absorb every letter, sound, syllable and meaning as we progressed. We continued
  1358. this process for 14 hours a day for 3 consecutive days without interruption, except
  1359. for a few meals and rest breaks on my part.
  1360. Airl did not take breaks for anything. She did not sleep. Instead she remained sitting
  1361. in the overstuffed chair in the interview room, reviewing the lessons we had already
  1362. covered. When I returned each morning to begin where we'd left off, she had already
  1363. memorized the previous lessons and was well into the next pages. This pattern
  1364. continued to accelerate until it became pointless for me to continue reading to her.
  1365. Although Airl did not have a mouth to speak with, she was now able to "think" at me
  1366. in English. At the end of these lessons, Airl was able to read and study by herself. I
  1367. showed her how to use a dictionary to look up new words she encountered. Airl
  1368. consulted the dictionary continually after that. From then on my job was acting as a
  1369. courier for her, requesting that reference books be brought to her in a steady stream.
  1370. Next, Mr. Newble brought in a set of the Encyclopedia Britannica. 42 (Footnote)
  1371. Airl especially enjoyed this because it had a lot of pictures. After that, she requested
  1372. many more picture books and reference books with photographs and drawings
  1373. because it was much easier to understand the meaning if she could see a picture of
  1374. the thing she was studying.
  1375. Over the next six days books were brought in from libraries all over the country, I
  1376. presume, because it wasn't more than a few more days before she had read through
  1377. several hundred of them! She studied every subject I could imagine, and many other
  1378. very technical things I never wanted to know anything about, like astronomy,
  1379. metallurgy, engineering, mathematics, various technical manuals, and so forth.
  1380. Later she began to read fiction books, novels, poetry and the classics of literature.
  1381. Airl also asked to read a great many books on subjects in the humanities, especially
  1382. history. I think she must had read at least 50 books about human history and
  1383. archaeology. Of course, I made sure that she received a copy of the Holy Bible also,
  1384. which she read from cover to cover without comment or questions.
  1385. Although I continued to stay with Airl for 12 to 14 hours each day, most of that time
  1386. during the following week had been spent without much communication between us,
  1387. except for an occasional question she asked me. The questions were usually meant
  1388. to give her a sense of context or to clarify something in the books she was reading.
  1389. Oddly, Airl told me that her favorite books are "Alice's Adventures in Wonderland"
  1390. 47
  1391. 43 (Footnote), "Don Quixote de la Mancha" 44 (Footnote) and "One Thousand and One
  1392. Nights" 45 (Footnote). She said the authors of these stories showed that it is more
  1393. important to have great spirit and imagination than great skill or power.
  1394. I could not answer a lot of her questions, so I consulted with the people in the outer
  1395. room for answers. Most of these had to do with technical and scientific things. A
  1396. few of her questions were about the humanities. The depth of complex
  1397. understanding and subtlety of her questions showed that she had a very penetrating
  1398. intellect.
  1399. Personally, I think she had already known a lot more about the culture and history of
  1400. Earth than she was willing to admit when we started. I would soon discover how
  1401. much more."
  1402. 48
  1403. Chapter Six
  1404. My Education Begins
  1405. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1406. "By the 15th day after "rescuing" Airl from the crash site, I was able to communicate
  1407. fluidly and effortlessly with her in English. She had absorbed so much written
  1408. material by this time that her academic education far exceeded my own. Although I
  1409. graduated from high school in Los Angeles in 1940 and attended college for four
  1410. years of premedical and nursing training, the variety of my own reading had been
  1411. fairly limited.
  1412. I had not studied most of the subjects to which Airl had now been exposed,
  1413. especially considering her acute understanding, very intense study habits and a
  1414. nearly photographic memory! She was able to recall long passages from books she
  1415. read. She was especially fond of sections of her favorite stories from classic
  1416. literature like The Adventures of Huckleberry Finn 46 (Footnote), tales from
  1417. Gulliver's Travels 47 (Footnote) and Peter Pan 48 (Footnote) and The Legend of Sleepy
  1418. Hollow 49 (Footnote).
  1419. By this time Airl had become the teacher, and I was the student. I was about to learn
  1420. what men of Earth do not know and have no way of knowing!
  1421. The throng of scientists and agents who observed us through the one-way glass of
  1422. our interview room, whom Airl and I now referred to as "the gallery", were growing
  1423. increasingly impatient to ask her questions. But Airl continued to refuse to allow
  1424. any questions to be asked of her by anyone other than myself, even vicariously
  1425. through me as an interpreter, or in writing.
  1426. On the afternoon of the 16th day Airl and I sat next to each other as she read. She
  1427. closed the last page of a book she was reading and placed it aside. I was about to
  1428. hand her the next book from a large pile waiting to be read, when she turned and said
  1429. or "thought" to me, "I am ready to speak now". At first I was a little confused by the
  1430. remark. I gestured for her to continue and she began to teach me my first lesson."
  1431. 49
  1432. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1433. TOP SECRET
  1434. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  1435. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  1436. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 24. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  1437. "What would you like to say, Airl?", I asked.
  1438. "I have been a part of the Domain Expeditionary Force in
  1439. this sector of space for several thousand years.
  1440. However, I have not personally had intimate contact with
  1441. beings on Earth since 5,965 BCE. It is not my primary
  1442. function to interact with inhabitants of planets within
  1443. The Domain. I am an Officer, Pilot and Engineer, with
  1444. many duties to perform. Nonetheless, although I am
  1445. fluent in 347 other languages within The Domain, I have
  1446. not been exposed to your English language.
  1447. The last Earth language with which I was conversant was
  1448. the Sanskrit language of the Vedic Hymns. 50 (Footnote) At
  1449. that time I was a member of a mission sent to
  1450. investigate the loss of a Domain base located in the
  1451. Himalaya Mountains. An entire battalion of officers,
  1452. pilots, communications and administrative personnel
  1453. disappeared and the base destroyed.
  1454. Several million years ago I was trained and served as an
  1455. Investigation, Data Evaluation and Program Development
  1456. Officer for The Domain. Because I was experienced in
  1457. that technology, I was sent to Earth as part of the
  1458. search team. One of my duties involved interrogation of
  1459. the human population that inhabited the adjoining area
  1460. at that time. 51 (Footnote) Many of the people in that region
  1461. reported sighting "vimanas" or space craft in the area. 52
  1462. (Footnote)
  1463. Following the logical extension of evidence, testimony,
  1464. observation, as well as the absence of certain evidence,
  1465. I led my team to the discovery that there were still
  1466. "Old Empire" ships and well-hidden "Old Empire"
  1467. installations in this solar system of which we had been
  1468. completely unaware.
  1469. 50
  1470. You and I were unable to communicate in your language
  1471. because I, personally, have not been exposed to your
  1472. language. However, now that I have scanned the books and
  1473. material you provided me this data has been relayed to
  1474. our space station in this region and processed by our
  1475. communications officer through our computers. It has
  1476. been translated into my own language and relayed back to
  1477. me in a context that I can think with. I have also
  1478. received additional information from the files stored in
  1479. our computers about the English language and Domain
  1480. records concerning Earth civilization." 53 (Footnote)
  1481. "Now I am prepared to give you certain information that
  1482. I feel will be of great value to you. I will tell you
  1483. the truth. Although truth is relative to all other
  1484. truth, I wish to share with you as honestly and
  1485. accurately as possible, truth as I see it, within the
  1486. boundaries of my integrity to myself, to my race and
  1487. without violating my obligations to the organization I
  1488. serve and have sworn to uphold and protect".
  1489. "OK", I thought. "Will you answer questions from the
  1490. gallery now?"
  1491. "No. I will not answer questions. I will provide
  1492. information to you that I think will be beneficial to
  1493. the well-being of the immortal spiritual beings who
  1494. comprise humanity, and that will foster the survival of
  1495. all the myriad life forms and the environment of Earth,
  1496. as it is a part of my mission to ensure the preservation
  1497. of Earth.
  1498. "Personally, it is my conviction that all sentient
  1499. beings are immortal spiritual beings. This includes
  1500. human beings. For the sake of accuracy and simplicity I
  1501. will use a made-up word: "IS-BE". Because the primary
  1502. nature of an immortal being is that they live in a
  1503. timeless state of "is", and the only reason for their
  1504. existence is that they decide to "be".
  1505. No matter how lowly their station in a society, every
  1506. IS-BE deserves the respect and treatment that I myself
  1507. would like to receive from others. Each person on Earth
  1508. continues to be an IS-BE whether they are aware of the
  1509. fact or not."
  1510. 51
  1511. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1512. (I will never forget this conversation. Her tone was very matter-of-fact and
  1513. emotionless. However, for the first time, I sensed the presence of a warm and real
  1514. "personality" in Airl. Her reference to "immortal spiritual beings" struck me like a
  1515. flash of light in a dark room. I had never before considered that a human being
  1516. could be an immortal being.
  1517. I thought that status or power was reserved solely for The Father, The Son, and The
  1518. Holy Ghost. And, because I am a devout Catholic and subject to the word of The
  1519. Lord Jesus, and The Holy Father, I have never thought of a woman as an immortal
  1520. spiritual being either -- not even the Holy Mother Mary. Yet, when Airl thought
  1521. that thought, I became vividly aware for the very first time that she, personally, was
  1522. an immortal spiritual being, and so are we all!
  1523. Airl said that she sensed that I was confused about the idea. She said she would
  1524. demonstrate to me that I am also an immortal spiritual being. She said, "Be above
  1525. your body!" Immediately, I realized that I was "outside" of my body, looking down
  1526. from the ceiling at the top of my body's head! 54 (Footnote) I was also able to see the
  1527. room around me, including Airl's body sitting in the chair next to my own body.
  1528. After a moment, I realized the simple, but shocking, reality, that "I" am not a body.
  1529. In that moment a black veil lifted and for the first time in my life, and for a very long
  1530. time into the past, I realized that I am not "my soul", but that "I" am "me" -- a
  1531. spiritual being. This was an unexplainable epiphany, but one that fills me with a joy
  1532. and relief I cannot recall having experienced ever before. As for the "immortal" part,
  1533. I do not understand her meaning, as I have always been taught that I am not immortal
  1534. -- a spirit, perhaps -- but certainly not immortal!
  1535. After a moment -- I'm not sure how long -- Airl asked me if I had a better
  1536. understanding of the idea. Suddenly, I was back inside my body again, and said out
  1537. loud, "Yes! I see what you mean!".
  1538. I was so taken aback by the experience that I had to get up from my chair and walk
  1539. around the room for a few minutes. I made an excuse that I needed to get a drink of
  1540. water, and go to the restroom, which I did. In the restroom I looked at my "self" in
  1541. the mirror. I used the toilet, refreshed my make-up, and straightened my uniform.
  1542. After 10 or 15 minutes I felt more "normal" again and returned to the interview
  1543. room.
  1544. After that I felt as though I was no longer just an interpreter for Airl. I felt as though
  1545. I was a "kindred spirit". I felt like I was safe, at home, with a trusted friend or
  1546. family member, as close as any I have ever had. Airl sensed and understood my
  1547. confusion about the concept of "personal immortality". She began her first "lesson"
  1548. with me by explaining this to me."
  1549. 52
  1550. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW CONTINUED)
  1551. "Airl told me her reasons for coming to Earth and for
  1552. being in the area of the 509th Bomber Squadron. She was
  1553. sent by her superior officers to investigate the
  1554. explosions of nuclear weapons which have been tested in
  1555. New Mexico. Her superiors ordered her to gather
  1556. information from the atmosphere that could be used to
  1557. determine the extent of radiation and potential harm
  1558. this might cause to the environment. During her mission,
  1559. the space craft was struck by a lighting 55 (Footnote), which
  1560. caused her to lose control and crash.
  1561. The space craft is operated by IS-BEs who use "doll
  1562. bodies" in much the same way that an actor wears a mask
  1563. and costume. It is a like a mechanical tool through
  1564. which to operate in the physical world. She, as well as
  1565. all of the other IS-BEs of the officer class and their
  1566. superiors, inhabit these "doll bodies" when they are on
  1567. duty in space. When they are not on duty, they "leave"
  1568. the body and operate, think, communicate, travel, and
  1569. exist without the use of a body.
  1570. The bodies are constructed of synthetic materials,
  1571. including a very sensitive electrical nervous system, to
  1572. which each IS-BE adjusts themselves or "tune in" to an
  1573. electronic wavelength 56 (Footnote) that is matched uniquely
  1574. to the wavelength or frequency emitted by each IS-BE.
  1575. Each IS-BE is capable of creating a unique wave
  1576. frequency which identifies them, much like a radio
  1577. signal frequency. This serves, in part, as
  1578. identification like a finger print. The doll body acts
  1579. like a radio receiver for the IS-BE. No two frequencies
  1580. or doll bodies are exactly the same.
  1581. The bodies of each IS-BE crew member are likewise tuned
  1582. into and connected to the "nervous system" built into
  1583. the space craft. The space craft is built in much the
  1584. same way as the doll body. It is adjusted specifically
  1585. to the frequency of each IS-BE crew member. Therefore,
  1586. the craft can be operated by the "thoughts" or energy
  1587. emitted by the IS-BE. It is really a very simple,
  1588. direct control system. So, there are no complicated
  1589. controls or navigation equipment on board the space
  1590. craft. They operate as an extension of the IS-BE.
  1591. 53
  1592. When the lightning bolt struck the space craft this
  1593. caused a short circuit and consequently "disconnected"
  1594. them from the control of the ship momentarily which
  1595. resulted in the crash.
  1596. Airl was, and still is, an officer, pilot and engineer
  1597. in an expeditionary force which is part of a space opera
  1598. 57 (Footnote) civilization which refers to itself as "The
  1599. Domain". This civilization controls a vast number of
  1600. galaxies, stars, planets, moons and asteroids throughout
  1601. an area of space that is approximately one-fourth of the
  1602. entire physical universe! The continuing mission of her
  1603. organization is to "Secure, control and expand the
  1604. territory and resources of The Domain".
  1605. Airl pointed out that their own activities were very
  1606. similar in many ways to the European explorers who
  1607. "discovered" and "claimed" the New World for The Holy
  1608. Father, The Pope and for the kings of Spain, Portugal
  1609. and later, Holland, England, France and so forth. Europe
  1610. benefited from the property "acquired" from the native
  1611. inhabitants. However, the native inhabitants were never
  1612. consulted with or asked for their permission to become a
  1613. part of the "domain" of European nations and the
  1614. soldiers and priests they sent to acquire territory and
  1615. wealth in order to advance their interests.
  1616. Airl said she read in a history book that the Spanish
  1617. king regretted the brutal treatment of the native
  1618. inhabitants by his soldiers. He feared retribution from
  1619. the gods he worshipped, as described in the various
  1620. testaments of the Bible. He asked the Pope to prepare a
  1621. statement called "The Requirement" 58 (Footnote) which was
  1622. supposed to be read to each of the newly encountered
  1623. native inhabitants.
  1624. The king hoped that the statement, whether it was
  1625. accepted or rejected by the natives, would absolve the
  1626. King of all responsibility for the resulting slaughter
  1627. and enslavement of these people. He used this statement
  1628. as justification to confiscate their lands and
  1629. possessions by his soldiers and the Pope's priests.
  1630. Apparently, the Pope, personally, did not have any
  1631. feelings of guilt or responsibility in the matter.
  1632. Airl thought that such actions were those of a coward
  1633. and that it is no surprise that the territory of Spain
  1634. 54
  1635. was diminished so quickly. Only a few years later the
  1636. king was dead and his empire had been assimilated by
  1637. other nations.
  1638. Airl said that this sort of behavior does not occur in
  1639. The Domain. Their leaders assume full responsibility
  1640. for the actions of The Domain, and would not denigrate
  1641. themselves in this fashion. Nor do they fear any gods
  1642. or have any regret for their actions. This idea
  1643. reinforces my earlier suggestion that Airl and her
  1644. people are probably atheists.
  1645. In the case of the acquisition of Earth by The Domain,
  1646. the rulers of The Domain have chosen not to openly
  1647. reveal this intention to the "native inhabitants" of
  1648. Earth until a later time when it may, or may not, suit
  1649. their interests to reveal themselves. For the present
  1650. time, it is not strategically necessary to make the
  1651. presence of The Domain Expeditionary Force known to
  1652. Mankind. In fact, until now, it has been very
  1653. aggressively hidden, for reasons that will be revealed
  1654. later.
  1655. The asteroid belt near Earth is a very small, but
  1656. important location for The Domain in this part of space.
  1657. Actually, some of the objects in our solar system are
  1658. very valuable for use as low-gravity "space stations".
  1659. They are interested primarily in the low gravity
  1660. satellites in this solar system which consists mainly of
  1661. the side of the moon facing away from Earth 59 (Footnote) and
  1662. the asteroid belt, which was a planet that was destroyed
  1663. billions of years ago, and to a lesser degree, Mars and
  1664. Venus. Doom structures synthesized from gypsum 60 (Footnote)
  1665. or underground bases covered by electromagnetic force
  1666. screens 61 (Footnote) are easily constructed to house the
  1667. Domain forces.
  1668. Once an area of space is acquired by The Domain and
  1669. becomes a part of the territory under its control, it is
  1670. treated as the "property" of The Domain. The space
  1671. station near the planet Earth is important only because
  1672. it lay along a path of The Domain expansion route toward
  1673. the center of the Milky Way galaxy and beyond. Of
  1674. course, everyone in The Domain is aware of this --
  1675. except for the people of Earth."
  1676. 55
  1677. Chapter Seven
  1678. A Lesson In Ancient History
  1679. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1680. "My instruction with Airl continued through the night until dawn of the next
  1681. morning. I must say, that I was fascinated, skeptical, shocked, alarmed, dismayed
  1682. and disgruntled by the "lesson" I was getting from Airl. I could never have imagined
  1683. any of what she was telling me -- not even in my wildest dreams and nightmares!
  1684. The next afternoon, after I had slept, showered and eaten, I was debriefed about my
  1685. interview session the previous evening by members of the gallery who recorded my
  1686. account of what Airl told me. There was a stenographer present for this session, as
  1687. usual, to whom I debriefed after each interview, and there were also 6 or 7 men who
  1688. asked for clarification of my statements. As always, there was constant pressure
  1689. applied to me to use my influence with Airl to persuade her to answer specific
  1690. questions prompted by members of the gallery. I did my best to reassure everyone
  1691. that I would give my very best efforts to do so.
  1692. Nevertheless, only three things happened every day thereafter:
  1693. 1) Airl resolutely refused to answer any questions that she sensed had been posed by
  1694. or suggested to me by the gallery.
  1695. 2) Airl continued to "instruct" me in subject matter of her own choice.
  1696. 3) Every evening after my interview with, or instruction from Airl, she would give
  1697. me a new list of subject matter about which she wanted more information. Each
  1698. evening I presented this list to the gallery. The next day Airl received a large stack
  1699. of books, magazines, articles, and so forth. She would study all of these during the
  1700. night while I slept. This pattern repeated every day during the remainder of the time
  1701. I spent with her.
  1702. The subject matter of my next interview, or lesson, from Airl continued with a brief
  1703. history of Earth, our solar system and nearby space, from the perspective of The
  1704. Domain."
  1705. 56
  1706. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1707. TOP SECRET
  1708. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  1709. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  1710. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 25. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  1711. "Before you can understand the subject of history, you
  1712. must first understand the subject of time. Time is
  1713. simply an arbitrary measurement of the motion of objects
  1714. through space.
  1715. Space is not linear. Space is determined by the point
  1716. of view of an IS-BE when viewing a object. The distance
  1717. between an IS-BE and the object being viewed is called
  1718. "space".
  1719. Objects, or energy masses, in space do not necessarily
  1720. move in a linear fashion. In this universe, objects
  1721. tend to move randomly or in a curving or cyclical
  1722. pattern, or as determined by agreed upon rules.
  1723. History is not only a linear record of events, as many
  1724. authors of Earth history books imply, because it is not
  1725. a string that can be stretched out and marked like a
  1726. measuring tool. History is a subjective observation of
  1727. the movement of objects through space, recorded from the
  1728. point of view of a survivor, rather than of those who
  1729. succumbed. Events occur interactively and concurrently,
  1730. just as the biological body has a heart that pumps
  1731. blood, while the lungs provide oxygen to the cells,
  1732. which reproduce, using energy from the sun and chemicals
  1733. from plants, at the same time as the liver strains toxic
  1734. wastes from the blood, and eliminates them through the
  1735. bladder and the bowels.
  1736. All of these interactions are concurrent and
  1737. simultaneous. Although time runs consecutively, events
  1738. do not happen in an independent, linear stream. In
  1739. order to view and understand the history or reality of
  1740. the past, one must view all events as part of an
  1741. interactive whole. Time can also be sensed as a
  1742. vibration which is uniform throughout the entire
  1743. physical universe.
  1744. 57
  1745. Airl explained that IS-BEs have been around since before
  1746. the beginning of the universe. The reason they are
  1747. called "immortal", is because a "spirit" is not born and
  1748. cannot die, but exists in a personally postulated
  1749. perception of "is - will be". She was careful to explain
  1750. that every spirit is not the same. Each is completely
  1751. unique in identity, power, awareness and ability.
  1752. The difference between an IS-BE like Airl and most of
  1753. the IS-BEs inhabiting bodies on Earth, is that Airl can
  1754. enter and depart from her "doll" at will. She can
  1755. perceive at selective depths through matter. Airl and
  1756. other officers of The Domain can communicate
  1757. telepathically. Since an IS-BE is not a physical
  1758. universe entity it has no location in space or time.
  1759. An IS-BE is literally, "immaterial". They can span great
  1760. distances of space instantly.
  1761. They can experience sensations, more intensely than a
  1762. biological body, without the use of physical sensory
  1763. mechanisms. An IS-BE can exclude pain from their
  1764. perception. Airl can also remember her "identity", so
  1765. to speak, all the way back into the dim mists of time,
  1766. for trillions of years!
  1767. She says that the existing collection of suns in this
  1768. immediate vicinity of the universe have been burning for
  1769. the last 200 trillion years. The age of the physical
  1770. universe is nearly infinitely old, but probably at least
  1771. four quadrillion 62 (Footnote) years since its earliest
  1772. beginnings.
  1773. Time is a difficult factor to measure as it depends on
  1774. the subjective memory of IS-BEs and there has been no
  1775. uniform record of events throughout the physical
  1776. universe since it began. As on Earth, there are many
  1777. different time measurement systems, defined by various
  1778. cultures, which use cycles of motion, and points of
  1779. origin to establish age and duration. 63 (Footnote)
  1780. The physical universe itself is formed from the
  1781. convergence and amalgamation of many other individual
  1782. universes 64 (Footnote), each one of which were created by an
  1783. IS-BE or group of IS-BEs. The collision of these
  1784. illusory universes commingled and coalesced and were
  1785. solidified to form a mutually created universe. Because
  1786. it is agreed that energy and forms can be created, but
  1787. 58
  1788. not destroyed, 65 (Footnote) this creative process has
  1789. continued to form an ever-expanding universe of nearly
  1790. infinite physical proportions.
  1791. Before the formation of the physical universe there was
  1792. a vast period during which universes were not solid, but
  1793. wholly illusionary. You might say that the universe was
  1794. a universe of magical illusions which were made to
  1795. appear and vanish at the will of the magician. In every
  1796. case, the "magician" was one or more IS-BEs. Many ISBEs on Earth can still recall vague images from that
  1797. period. Tales of magic, sorcery and enchantment, fairy
  1798. tales and mythology speak of such things, 66 (Footnote)
  1799. although in very crude terms.
  1800. Each IS-BE entered into the physical universe when they
  1801. lost their own, "home" universe. That is, when an ISBE's "home" universe was overwhelmed by the physical
  1802. universe, or when the IS-BE joined with other IS-BEs to
  1803. create or conquer the physical universe.
  1804. On Earth, the ability to determine when an IS-BE entered
  1805. the physical universe is difficult for two reasons:
  1806. 1) the memory of IS-BEs on Earth have been erased, and
  1807. 2) IS-BEs arrival or invasion into the physical universe
  1808. took place at different times, some 60 trillion years
  1809. ago, and others only 3 trillion. Every once in a short
  1810. while, a few million years, an area or planet will be
  1811. taken over by another group of IS-BEs entering into the
  1812. area.
  1813. Sometimes they will capture other IS-BEs as slaves. 67
  1814. (Footnote) They will be forced to inhabit bodies to perform
  1815. menial, or manual work -- especially mining mineral ores
  1816. on heavy-gravity planets, such as Earth.
  1817. Airl says that she has been a member of The Domain
  1818. Expeditionary Force for more than 625 million years,
  1819. when she became a pilot for a biological survey mission
  1820. which included occasional visits to Earth. She can
  1821. remember her entire career there, and for a very long
  1822. time before that.
  1823. She told me that Earth scientists do not have an
  1824. accurate measuring system to gauge the age of matter.
  1825. They assume that because certain types of materials seem
  1826. to deteriorate rather quickly, such as organic or
  1827. 59
  1828. carbon-based matter, that there is a deterioration of
  1829. matter. It is not accurate to measure the age of stone,
  1830. based on the measurement of the age of wood or bone.
  1831. This is a fundamental error. Factually, matter does not
  1832. deteriorate. It cannot be destroyed. Matter may be
  1833. altered in form, but it is never truly destroyed.
  1834. The Domain has conducted a periodic survey of the
  1835. galaxies in this sector of the universe since it
  1836. developed space travel technologies about 80 trillion
  1837. years ago. A review of changes in the complexion of
  1838. Earth reveal that mountain ranges rise and fall,
  1839. continents change location, the poles of the planet
  1840. shift, ice caps come and go, oceans appear and
  1841. disappear, rivers, valleys and canyons change. In all
  1842. cases, the matter is the same. It is always the same
  1843. sand. Every form and substance is made of the same
  1844. basic material, which never deteriorates.
  1845. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  1846. ("I cannot even begin to imagine how advanced a civilization may have become,
  1847. technically, and mentally, after trillions of years! Just think of how advanced our
  1848. own country has become, compared to only 150 years. Only a few generations ago
  1849. transportation was on foot, horseback or boat, reading was done by candle light,
  1850. heating and cooking were done over a fireplace, and there wasn't any indoor
  1851. plumbing!")
  1852. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  1853. "Airl described the abilities of an IS-BE officer of The
  1854. Domain to me, and she demonstrated one to me when she
  1855. contacted -- telepathically -- a communications officer
  1856. of The Domain who is stationed in the asteroid belt.
  1857. 68 (Footnote)
  1858. The asteroid belt is composed of thousands of broken up
  1859. pieces of a planet that once existed between Mars and
  1860. Jupiter. It serves as a good low-gravity jumping off
  1861. point for incoming space craft traveling toward the
  1862. center of our galaxy.
  1863. She requested that this officer consult information
  1864. stored in the "files" of The Domain, concerning the
  1865. history of Earth. She asked the communications officer
  1866. to "feed" this information to Airl. The communications
  1867. officer immediately complied with the request. Based on
  1868. 60
  1869. the information stored in the files of The Domain, Airl
  1870. was able to give me a brief overview or "history
  1871. lesson". This is what Airl told me that The Domain had
  1872. observed about the history of Earth:
  1873. She told me that The Domain Expeditionary Force first
  1874. entered into the Milky Way galaxy very recently -- only
  1875. about 10,000 years ago. Their first action was to
  1876. conquer the home planets of the "Old Empire" (this is
  1877. not the official name, but a nick-name given to the
  1878. conquered civilization by The Domain Forces) that served
  1879. as the seat of central government for this galaxy, and
  1880. other adjoining regions of space. These planets are
  1881. located in the stars systems in the tail of the Big
  1882. Dipper constellation. 69 (Footnote) She did not mention which
  1883. stars, exactly.
  1884. About 1,500 years later The Domain began the
  1885. installation bases for their own forces along the path
  1886. of invasion which leads toward the center of this galaxy
  1887. and beyond. About 8,200 years ago The Domain forces set
  1888. up a base on Earth in the Himalaya Mountains near the
  1889. border of modern Pakistan and Afghanistan. This was a
  1890. base for a battalion of The Domain Expeditionary Force,
  1891. which included about 3,000 members.
  1892. They set up a base under or inside the top of a
  1893. mountain. The mountain top was drilled into and made
  1894. hollow to create an area large enough to house the ships
  1895. and personnel of that force. An electronic illusion of
  1896. the mountain top was then created to hide the base by
  1897. projecting a false image from inside the mountain
  1898. against a "force screen". The ships could then enter
  1899. and exit through the force screen, yet remain unseen by
  1900. homo sapiens.
  1901. Shortly after they settled there the base was surprised
  1902. by an attack from a remnant of the military forces of
  1903. the "Old Empire". Unbeknownst to The Domain, a hidden,
  1904. underground base on Mars, operated by the "Old Empire",
  1905. had existed for a very long time. The Domain base was
  1906. wiped out by a military attack from the Mars base and
  1907. the IS-BEs of The Domain Expeditionary Force were
  1908. captured.
  1909. You can imagine that The Domain was very upset about
  1910. losing such a large force of officers and crew, so they
  1911. 61
  1912. sent other crews to Earth to look for them. Those crews
  1913. were also attacked. The captured IS-BEs from The Domain
  1914. Forces were handled in the same fashion as all other ISBEs who have been sent to Earth. They were each given
  1915. amnesia, had their memories replaced with false pictures
  1916. and hypnotic commands and sent to Earth to inhabit
  1917. biological bodies. They are still a part of the human
  1918. population today.
  1919. After a very persistent and extensive investigation into
  1920. the loss of their crews, The Domain discovered that "Old
  1921. Empire" has been operating a very extensive, and very
  1922. carefully hidden, base of operations in this part of the
  1923. galaxy for millions of years. No one knows exactly how
  1924. long. Eventually, the space craft of the "Old Empire"
  1925. forces and The Domain engaged each other in open combat
  1926. in the space of the solar system.
  1927. According to Airl, there was a running battle between
  1928. the "Old Empire" forces and The Domain until about 1235
  1929. AD, when The Domain forces finally destroyed the last of
  1930. the space craft of the "Old Empire" force in this area.
  1931. The Domain Expeditionary Force lost many of its own
  1932. ships in this area during that time also.
  1933. About 1,000 years later the "Old Empire" base was
  1934. discovered by accident in the spring of 1914 AD. The
  1935. discovery was made when the body of the Archduke of
  1936. Austria, 70 (Footnote) was "taken over" by an officer of The
  1937. Domain Expeditionary Force. This officer, who was
  1938. stationed in the asteroid belt, was sent to Earth on a
  1939. routine mission to gather reconnaissance.
  1940. The purpose of this "take over" was to use the body as a
  1941. "disguise" through which to infiltrate human society in
  1942. order to gather information about current events on
  1943. Earth. The officer, as an IS-BE, having greater power
  1944. than the being inhabiting the body of the Archduke,
  1945. simply "pushed" the being out and took over control of
  1946. the body.
  1947. However, this officer did not realize how much the
  1948. Hapsburgs were hated by feuding factions in the country,
  1949. so he was caught off guard when the body of the Archduke
  1950. was assassinated by a Bosnian student. The officer, or
  1951. IS-BE, was suddenly "knocked out" of the body when it
  1952. was shot by the assassin. Disoriented, the IS-BE
  1953. 62
  1954. inadvertently penetrated one of the "amnesia force
  1955. screens" and was captured.
  1956. Eventually The Domain discovered that a wide area of
  1957. space is monitored by an "electronic force field"
  1958. 71 (Footnote) which controls all of the IS-BEs in this end of
  1959. the galaxy, including Earth. The electronic force
  1960. screen is designed to detect IS-BEs and prevent them
  1961. from leaving the area.
  1962. If any IS-BE attempts to penetrate the force screen, it
  1963. "captures" them in a kind of "electronic net". The
  1964. result is that the captured IS-BE is subjected to a very
  1965. severe "brainwashing" treatment which erases the memory
  1966. of the IS-BE. This process uses a tremendous electrical
  1967. shock, just like Earth psychiatrists use "electric shock
  1968. therapy" to erase the memory and personality of a
  1969. "patient" and to make them more "cooperative". 72 (Footnote)
  1970. On Earth this "therapy" uses only a few hundred volts of
  1971. electricity. However, the electrical voltage 73 (Footnote)
  1972. used by the "Old Empire" operation against IS-BEs is on
  1973. the order of magnitude of billions of volts! This
  1974. tremendous shock completely wipes out all the memory of
  1975. the IS-BE. The memory erasure is not just for one life
  1976. or one body. It wipes out the all of the accumulated
  1977. experiences of a nearly infinite past, as well as the
  1978. identity of the IS-BE!
  1979. The shock is intended to make it impossible for the ISBE to remember who they are, where they came from, their
  1980. knowledge or skills, their memory of the past, and
  1981. ability to function as a spiritual entity. They are
  1982. overwhelmed into becoming a mindless, robotic nonentity.
  1983. After the shock a series of post hypnotic suggestions 74
  1984. (Footnote) are used to install false memories, and a false
  1985. time orientation in each IS-BE. This includes the
  1986. command to "return" to the base after the body dies, so
  1987. that the same kind of shock and hypnosis can be done
  1988. again, and again, again -- forever. The hypnotic
  1989. command also tells the "patient" to forget to remember.
  1990. What The Domain learned from the experience of this
  1991. officer is that the "Old Empire" has been using Earth as
  1992. 63
  1993. a "prison planet" for a very long time -- exactly how
  1994. long is unknown -- perhaps millions of years.
  1995. So, when the body of the IS-BE dies they depart from the
  1996. body. They are detected by the "force screen", they are
  1997. captured and "ordered" by hypnotic command to "return
  1998. to the light". The idea of "heaven" and the "afterlife"
  1999. are part of the hypnotic suggestion -- a part of the
  2000. treachery that makes the whole mechanism work.
  2001. After the IS-BE has been shocked and hypnotized to erase
  2002. the memory of the life just lived, the IS-BE is
  2003. immediately "commanded", hypnotically, to "report" back
  2004. to Earth, as though they were on a secret mission, to
  2005. inhabit a new body. Each IS-BE is told that they have a
  2006. special purpose for being on Earth. But, of course
  2007. there is no purpose for being in a prison -- at least
  2008. not for the prisoner.
  2009. Any undesirable IS-BEs who are sentenced to Earth were
  2010. classified as "untouchable" 75 (Footnote) by the "Old Empire".
  2011. This included anyone that the "Old Empire" judged to be
  2012. criminals who are too vicious to be reformed or subdued,
  2013. as well as other criminals such as sexual perverts, or
  2014. beings unwilling to do any productive work.
  2015. An "untouchable" classification of IS-BEs also includes
  2016. a wide variety of "political prisoners" 76 (Footnote). This
  2017. includes IS-BEs who are considered to be noncompliant
  2018. "free thinkers" or "revolutionaries" who make trouble
  2019. for the governments of the various planets of the "Old
  2020. Empire". Of course, anyone with a previous military
  2021. record against the "Old Empire" is also shipped off to
  2022. Earth.
  2023. A list of "untouchables" include artists, painters,
  2024. singers, musicians, writers, actors, and performers of
  2025. every kind. For this reason Earth has more artists per
  2026. capita than any other planet in the "Old Empire".
  2027. "Untouchables" also include intellectuals, inventors and
  2028. geniuses in almost every field. Since everything the
  2029. "Old Empire" considers valuable has long since been
  2030. invented or created over the last few trillion years,
  2031. they have no further use for such beings. This includes
  2032. skilled managers also, which are not needed in a society
  2033. of obedient, robotic citizens.
  2034. 64
  2035. Anyone who is not willing or able to submit to mindless
  2036. economic, political and religious servitude as a taxpaying worker in the class system of the "Old Empire"
  2037. are "untouchable" and sentenced to receive memory wipeout and permanent imprisonment on Earth.
  2038. The net result is that an IS-BE is unable to escape
  2039. because they can't remember who they are, where they
  2040. came from, where they are. They have been hypnotized to
  2041. think they are someone, something, sometime, and
  2042. somewhere other than were they really are.
  2043. The Domain officer who was "assassinated" while in the
  2044. body of Archduke of Austria was, likewise, captured by
  2045. the "Old Empire" force. Because this particular officer
  2046. was a high powered IS-BE, compared to most, he was taken
  2047. away to a secret "Old Empire" base under the surface of
  2048. the planet Mars. They put him into a special electronic
  2049. prison cell and held him there.
  2050. Fortunately, this Domain officer was able to escape from
  2051. the underground base after 27 years in captivity. When
  2052. he escaped from the "Old Empire" base, he returned
  2053. immediately to his own base in the asteroid belt. His
  2054. commanding officer ordered that a battle cruiser be
  2055. dispatched 77 (Footnote) to the coordinates of the base,
  2056. provided by this officer, and to destroy that base
  2057. completely. This "Old Empire" base was located a few
  2058. hundred miles north of the equator on Mars in the
  2059. Cydonia region. 78 (Footnote)
  2060. Although the military base of the "Old Empire" was
  2061. destroyed, unfortunately, much of the vast machinery of
  2062. the IS-BE force screens, the electroshock / amnesia /
  2063. hypnosis machinery continues to function in other
  2064. undiscovered locations right up to the present moment.
  2065. The main base or control center for this "mind control
  2066. prison" 79 (Footnote) operation has never been found. So, the
  2067. influences of this base, or bases, are still in effect.
  2068. The Domain has observed that since the "Old Empire"
  2069. space forces were destroyed there is no one left to
  2070. actively prevent other planetary systems from bringing
  2071. their own "untouchable" IS-BEs to Earth from all over
  2072. this galaxy, and from other galaxies nearby. Therefore,
  2073. Earth has become a universal dumping ground for this
  2074. entire region of space.
  2075. 65
  2076. This, in part, explains the very unusual mix of races,
  2077. cultures, languages, moral codes, religious and
  2078. political influences among the IS-BE population on
  2079. Earth. The number and variety of heterogeneous
  2080. societies on Earth are extremely unusual on a normal
  2081. planet. Most "Sun Type 12, Class 7" planets are
  2082. inhabited by only one humanoid body type or race, if
  2083. any.
  2084. In addition, most of the ancient civilizations of Earth,
  2085. and many of the events of Earth have been heavily
  2086. influenced by the hidden, hypnotic operation of the "Old
  2087. Empire" base. So far, no one has figured out exactly
  2088. where and how this operation is run, or by whom because
  2089. it is so heavily protected by screens and traps.
  2090. Furthermore, there has been no operation undertaken to
  2091. seek out, discover and destroy the vast and ancient
  2092. network of electronics machinery that create the IS-BE
  2093. force screens at this end of the galaxy. Until this has
  2094. been done, we are not able to prevent or interrupt the
  2095. electric shock operation, hypnosis and remote thought
  2096. control 80 (Footnote) of the "Old Empire" prison planet.
  2097. Of course all of the crew members of The Domain
  2098. Expeditionary Force now remain aware of this phenomena
  2099. at all times while operating in this solar system space
  2100. so as to prevent detection and the capture by "Old
  2101. Empire" traps."
  2102. 66
  2103. Chapter Eight
  2104. A Lesson In Recent History
  2105. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  2106. "This interview taught me a history lesson I will never read in any text book written
  2107. on Earth! The Domain has a much different view of events than we do."
  2108. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  2109. TOP SECRET
  2110. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  2111. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  2112. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 26. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  2113. "The Domain Expeditionary Force has observed a
  2114. resurgence in science and culture of the Western world
  2115. since 1150 AD when the remaining remnants of the space
  2116. fleet of the "Old Empire" in this solar system were
  2117. destroyed. The influence of the remote control 81 (Footnote)
  2118. hypnosis operation diminished slightly after that time,
  2119. but still remains largely in force.
  2120. Apparently a small amount of damage was done to the "Old
  2121. Empire" remote mind control 82 (Footnote) operation which
  2122. resulted in a small decrease in the power of this
  2123. mechanism. As a result, some memory of technologies
  2124. that IS-BEs already knew before they came to Earth
  2125. started to be remembered. Thereafter the oppression of
  2126. knowledge that is called the "Dark Ages" 83 (Footnote) in
  2127. Europe began to diminish after that time.
  2128. Since then knowledge of the basic laws of physics 84
  2129. (Footnote) and electricity 85 (Footnote) have revolutionized Earth
  2130. culture virtually overnight. The ability to remember
  2131. technology by many of the geniuses in the IS-BE
  2132. population of Earth was partially restored, when not so
  2133. actively suppressed as it was before 1150 AD. Sir Isaac
  2134. Newton, 86 (Footnote) is one of the best examples of this. In
  2135. only a few decades he single-handedly reinvented several
  2136. 67
  2137. major and fundamental scientific and mathematical
  2138. disciplines.
  2139. The men who "remembered" these sciences already knew
  2140. them before they were sent to Earth. Ordinarily, no one
  2141. would ever observe or discover as much about science and
  2142. mathematics in a single life-time, or even in a few
  2143. hundred life-times. These subjects have taken
  2144. civilizations billions and billions of years to create!
  2145. IS-BEs on Earth have only just begun to remember small
  2146. fragments of all the technologies that exist throughout
  2147. the universe. Theoretically, if the amnesia mechanisms
  2148. being used against Earth could be broken entirely, ISBEs would regain all of their memory!
  2149. Unfortunately, similar advances have not been seen in
  2150. the humanities as the IS-BEs of Earth continue to behave
  2151. very badly toward each other. This behavior, however,
  2152. is heavily influenced by the "hypnotic commands" given
  2153. to each IS-BE between lifetimes. 87 (Footnote)
  2154. And, the very unusual combination of "inmates" on Earth
  2155. - criminals, perverts, artists, revolutionaries and
  2156. geniuses - is the cause of a very restive and tumultuous
  2157. environment. The purpose of the prison planet is to
  2158. keep IS-BEs on Earth, forever. Promoting ignorance,
  2159. superstition, and war between IS-BEs helps to keep the
  2160. prison population crippled and trapped behind "the wall"
  2161. of electronic force screens.
  2162. IS-BEs have been dumped on Earth from all over the
  2163. galaxy, adjoining galaxies, and from planetary systems
  2164. all over the "Old Empire", like Sirius, Aldebaron, the
  2165. Pleiades, Orion, Draconis, and countless others. There
  2166. are IS-BEs on Earth from unnamed races, civilizations,
  2167. cultural backgrounds, and planetary environments. Each
  2168. of the various IS-BE populations have their own
  2169. languages, belief systems, moral values, religious
  2170. beliefs, training and unknown and untold histories.
  2171. These IS-BEs are mixed together with earlier inhabitants
  2172. of Earth who came from another star system more than
  2173. 400,000 years ago to establish the civilizations of
  2174. Atlanta 88 (Footnote) and Lemuria 89 (Footnote). Those civilizations
  2175. vanished beneath the tidal waves caused by a planetary
  2176. "polar shift", 90 (Footnote) many thousands of years before
  2177. 68
  2178. the current "prison" population started to arrive.
  2179. Apparently, the IS-BEs from those star systems were the
  2180. source of the original, oriental races of Earth,
  2181. beginning in Australia.
  2182. On the other hand, the civilizations set up on Earth by
  2183. the "Old Empire" prison system were very different from
  2184. the civilization of the "Old Empire" itself, which is an
  2185. electronic space opera, atomic powered conglomeration of
  2186. earlier civilizations that were conquered with nuclear
  2187. weapons and colonized by IS-BEs from another galaxy.
  2188. The bureaucracy that controlled the former "Old Empire"
  2189. was from an ancient space opera society, run by a
  2190. totalitarian 91 (Footnote) confederation of planetary
  2191. governments, regulated by a brutal social, economic, and
  2192. political hierarchy, 92 (Footnote) with a royal monarch as its
  2193. figurehead. 93 (Footnote)
  2194. This type of government emerges with regularity on
  2195. planets where the citizens abandon personal
  2196. responsibility for autonomous, self-regulation. They
  2197. frequently lose their freedom to demented IS-BEs who
  2198. suffer from an overwhelming paranoia that every other
  2199. IS-BE is their enemy who must be controlled or
  2200. destroyed. Their closest friends and allies, whom they
  2201. espouse to love and cherish, are literally "loved to
  2202. death" by them.
  2203. Because such IS-BEs exist, The Domain has learned that
  2204. freedom must be won and maintained through eternal
  2205. vigilance and the ability to use defensive force to
  2206. maintain it. As a result, The Domain has already
  2207. conquered the governing planet of the "Old Empire". The
  2208. civilization of The Domain, although considerably
  2209. younger and smaller in size, is already more powerful,
  2210. better organized, and united by a egalitarian esprit de
  2211. corps 94 (Footnote) never known in the history of the "Old
  2212. Empire".
  2213. The recently despoiled German totalitarian state on
  2214. Earth was similar to the "Old Empire", but not nearly as
  2215. brutal, and about ten thousand times less powerful.
  2216. Many of the IS-BEs on Earth are here because they are
  2217. violently opposed to totalitarian government, 95 (Footnote) or
  2218. because they were so psychotically vicious that they
  2219. could not be controlled by "Old Empire" government.
  2220. 69
  2221. Consequently, the population of Earth is
  2222. disproportionately comprised of a very high percentage
  2223. of such beings. The conflicting cultural and ethical
  2224. moral codes of the IS-BEs on Earth is unusual in the
  2225. extreme.
  2226. The Domain conquest of the central "Old Empire" planets
  2227. was fought with electronic cannon. 96 (Footnote) The citizens
  2228. of the planets forming the core of government for the
  2229. "Old Empire" are a filthy, degraded, slave society of
  2230. mindless, tax-paying workers, who practice cannibalism.
  2231. Violent automotive race tracks and bloody, Roman circus
  2232. type entertainments are their only amusements.
  2233. Regardless of any reasonable justification we may have
  2234. had for using atomic weapons to vanquish the planets of
  2235. the "Old Empire", The Domain is careful not to ruin the
  2236. resources of those planets by using weapons of crude,
  2237. radioactive force.
  2238. The current U.S. civilization is beginning to mimic some
  2239. of the trappings of that civilization, especially in the
  2240. design of airplanes, automobiles, ships, trains, and
  2241. telephones. Likewise, buildings in the cities of Earth
  2242. are thought to be "modern" or "futuristic" if their
  2243. design resembles the architecture of the "Old Empire".
  2244. The government of the "Old Empire", before being
  2245. supplanted by The Domain, was comprised of beings who
  2246. possessed a very craven intelligence, very much like the
  2247. Axis powers 97 (Footnote) during your recent world war. Those
  2248. beings manifested precisely the same behavior as the
  2249. galactic government that exiled them to eternal
  2250. imprisonment on Earth. They were a gruesome reminder of
  2251. the ageless maxim that an IS-BE will often manifest the
  2252. treatment they have received from others. Kindness
  2253. fosters kindness. Cruelty begets cruelty. One must be
  2254. able and willing to use force, tempered with
  2255. intelligence, to prevent harm to the innocent. However,
  2256. extraordinary understanding, self-discipline and courage
  2257. are required to effectively prevent brutality, without
  2258. being overwhelmed by the malice that motivated the
  2259. brutality.
  2260. Only a demonic, self-serving government would employ a
  2261. "logic" or "science" to conceive that an "ultimate
  2262. solution" to any problem is to murder and permanently
  2263. 70
  2264. erase the memory of every artist, genius, skilled
  2265. manager, and inventor, and cast them into a planetary
  2266. prison together with political opponents, killers,
  2267. thieves, perverts, and disabled beings of an entire
  2268. galaxy!
  2269. Once the IS-BEs expelled from the "Old Empire" arrived
  2270. on Earth, they were given amnesia, and hypnotically
  2271. tricked into thinking that something else had happened
  2272. to them. The next step was to implant the IS-BEs into
  2273. biological bodies on Earth. The bodies became the human
  2274. populations of "false civilizations" which were designed
  2275. and installed in the minds of IS-BEs to look completely
  2276. unlike the "Old Empire".
  2277. All of the IS-BEs of India, Egypt, Babylon, Greece,
  2278. Rome, and Medieval Europe were guided to pattern and
  2279. build the cultural elements of these societies based on
  2280. standard patterns developed by the IS-BEs of many
  2281. earlier, similar civilizations on "Sun Type 12, Class 7"
  2282. planets that have existed for trillions of years
  2283. throughout the universe.
  2284. In the earliest times the IS-BEs sent to prison Earth
  2285. lived in India. They gradually spread into Mesopotamia,
  2286. Egypt, Mesoamerica, Achaea, Greece, Rome, Medieval
  2287. Europe, and to the New World. They were hypnotically
  2288. "commanded" to follow the pattern of a given
  2289. civilization by the "Old Empire" prison operators. This
  2290. is an effective mechanism to disguise the actual time
  2291. and location from the IS-BEs imprisoned on Earth. The
  2292. languages, costumes and culture of each false
  2293. civilization are intended to reinforce amnesia because
  2294. they do not remind the IS-BEs on Earth of the original
  2295. "Old Empire" planets from which they were deported.
  2296. On the very far back-track of time these types of
  2297. civilizations tended to repeat themselves over and over
  2298. because the IS-BEs who created them become familiar with
  2299. certain patterns and styles, and stayed with them. It
  2300. is a lot of work to invent an entire civilization,
  2301. complete with culture, architecture, language, customs,
  2302. mathematics, moral values, and so forth. It is much
  2303. easier to replicate a copy based on a familiar and
  2304. successful pattern.
  2305. 71
  2306. A "Sun Type 12, Class 7" planet is the designation given
  2307. to a planet inhabited by carbon-oxygen based life forms.
  2308. The class of the planet is based on the size and
  2309. radiation intensity of the star, the distance of the
  2310. planetary orbit from the star, and the size, density,
  2311. gravity, and chemical composition of the planet.
  2312. Likewise, flora and fauna are designated and identified
  2313. according to the star type and class of planet they
  2314. inhabit.
  2315. On the average, the percentage of planets in the
  2316. physical universe with a breathable atmosphere is
  2317. relatively small. Most planets do not have an
  2318. atmosphere upon which life-forms "feed", as on Earth,
  2319. where the chemical composition of the atmosphere
  2320. provides nutrition to plants, and other organisms, which
  2321. in turn support other life forms.
  2322. When the Domain Force brought the Vedic Hymns 98 (Footnote) to
  2323. the Himalayas region 8,200 years ago, some human
  2324. societies already existed. The Aryan people invaded and
  2325. conquered India 99 (Footnote) , bringing the Vedic Hymns 100
  2326. (Footnote) to the area.
  2327. The Vedas were learned by them, memorized and carried
  2328. forward verbally for 7,000 years before being committed
  2329. to written form. During that span of time one of the
  2330. officers of The Domain Expeditionary Force was
  2331. incarnated on Earth as "Vishnu" 101 (Footnote). He is
  2332. described many times in the Rig-Veda. He is still
  2333. considered to be a god by the Hindus. Vishnu fought in
  2334. the religious wars against the "Old Empire" forces. He
  2335. is a very able and aggressive IS-BE as well as a highly
  2336. effective officer, who has since been reassigned to
  2337. other duties in The Domain.
  2338. This entire episode was orchestrated as an attack and
  2339. revolt against the Egyptian pantheon installed by "Old
  2340. Empire" administrators. The conflict was intended to
  2341. help free humankind from implanted elements of the false
  2342. civilization that focused attention on many "gods" and
  2343. superstitious ritual worship demanded by the priests who
  2344. "managed" them. It is all part of the mental
  2345. manipulation by the "Old Empire" to hide their criminal
  2346. actions against the IS-BEs on Earth.
  2347. 72
  2348. A priesthood, or prison guards, were used to help
  2349. reinforce the idea that an individual, is only a
  2350. biological body, and is not an Immortal Spiritual Being.
  2351. The individual has no identity. The individuals have no
  2352. past lives. 102 (Footnote) The individual has no power. Only
  2353. the gods have power. And, the gods are a contrivance of
  2354. the priests who intercede between men and the gods they
  2355. serve. Men are slaves to the dictates of the priests
  2356. who threaten eternal spiritual punishment if men do not
  2357. obey them.
  2358. What else would one expect on a prison planet where all
  2359. prisoners have amnesia, and the priests themselves are
  2360. prisoners? The intervention of The Domain Force on
  2361. Earth has not been entirely successful due to the secret
  2362. mind-control operation of the "Old Empire" that still
  2363. continues to operate.
  2364. A battle was waged between the "Old Empire" forces and
  2365. The Domain through religious conquest. Between 1500 BCE
  2366. and about 1200 BCE, The Domain Forces attempted to teach
  2367. the concept of an individual, Immortal Spiritual Being
  2368. to several influential beings on Earth.
  2369. One such instance resulted in a very tragic
  2370. misunderstanding, misinterpretation and misapplication
  2371. of the concept. The idea was perverted and applied to
  2372. mean that there is only one IS-BE, instead of the truth
  2373. that everyone is an IS-BE! Obviously, this was a gross
  2374. incomprehension and an utter unwillingness to take
  2375. responsibility for one's own power.
  2376. The "Old Empire" priests managed to corrupt the concept
  2377. of individual immortality into the idea that there is
  2378. only one, all-powerful IS-BE, and that no one else is or
  2379. is allowed to be an IS-BE. Obviously, this is the work
  2380. of the "Old Empire" amnesia operation.
  2381. It is easy to teach this altered notion to beings who do
  2382. not want to be responsible for their own lives. Slaves
  2383. are such beings. As long as one chooses to assign
  2384. responsibility for creation, existence and personal
  2385. accountability for one's own thoughts and actions to
  2386. others, one is a slave.
  2387. As a result, the concept of a single monotheistic "god"
  2388. resulted and was promoted by many self-proclaimed
  2389. 73
  2390. prophets, such as the Jewish slave leader -- Moses -- 103 (Footnote) who grew up in the household of the Pharaoh
  2391. Amenhotep III 104 (Footnote) and his son, Akhenaten 105 (Footnote)
  2392. and his wife Nefertiti, 106 (Footnote) as well as his son
  2393. Tutankhamen. 107 (Footnote)
  2394. The attempt to teach certain beings on Earth the truth
  2395. that they are, themselves, IS-BEs, was part of a plan to
  2396. overthrow the fictional, metaphorical, anthropomorphic
  2397. panoply of gods created by the "Old Empire" mystery cult
  2398. called "The Brothers of The Serpent" 108 (Footnote) known in
  2399. Egypt as the Priests of Amun. 109 (Footnote) They were a very
  2400. ancient, secret society within the "Old Empire".
  2401. The Pharaoh Akhenaten was not a very intelligent being,
  2402. and was heavily influenced by his personal ambition for
  2403. self-glorification. He altered the concept of the
  2404. individual spiritual being and embodied the concept in
  2405. the sun god, Aten. His pitiful existence was soon
  2406. ended. He was assassinated by Maya and Parennefer, two
  2407. of the Priests of Amun, or "Amen", which the Christians
  2408. still say, who represented the interests of the "Old
  2409. Empire" forces.
  2410. The idea of "One God" was perpetuated by the Hebrew
  2411. leader Moses 110 (Footnote) while he was in Egypt. He left
  2412. Egypt with his adopted people, the Jewish slaves. While
  2413. they were crossing the desert, Moses was intercepted by
  2414. an operative of the "Old Empire" near Mt. Sinai. Moses
  2415. was tricked into believing that this operative was "the"
  2416. One God through the use of hypnotic commands, as well as
  2417. technical and aesthetic tricks which are commonly used
  2418. by the "Old Empire" to trap IS-BEs. Thereafter, the
  2419. Jewish slaves, who trusted the word of Moses implicitly,
  2420. have worshiped a single god they call "Yaweh". 111 (Footnote).
  2421. The name "Yaweh" means "anonymous", as the IS-BE who
  2422. "worked with" Moses could not use an actual name or
  2423. anything that would identify himself, or blow the cover
  2424. of the amnesia / prison operation. The last thing the
  2425. covert amnesia / hypnosis / prison system wants to do is
  2426. to reveal themselves openly to the IS-BEs on Earth.
  2427. They feel that this would restore the inmates memories!
  2428. This is the reason that all traces of physical
  2429. encounters between operatives of space civilizations and
  2430. 74
  2431. humans is very carefully hidden, disguised, covered-up,
  2432. denied or misdirected.
  2433. This "Old Empire" operative contacted Moses on a desert
  2434. mountain top and delivered the "Ten Hypnotic Commands"
  2435. to him. These commands are very forcefully worded, and
  2436. compel an IS-BE into utter subservience to the will of
  2437. the operator. These hypnotic commands are still in
  2438. effect and influence the thought patterns of millions of
  2439. IS-BEs thousands of years later!
  2440. Incidentally, we later discovered that the so-called
  2441. "Yaweh" also wrote, programmed and encoded the text of
  2442. the Torah, which when it is read literally, or in its
  2443. decoded, 112 (Footnote) form, will provide a great deal more
  2444. false information to those who read it.
  2445. Ultimately, the Vedic Hymns became the source of nearly
  2446. all of Eastern the religions and were the philosophical
  2447. source of the ideas common to Buddha 113 (Footnote), Laozi
  2448. 114 (Footnote), Zoroaster 115 (Footnote), and other philosophers.
  2449. The civilizing influences of these philosophies
  2450. eventually replaced the brutal idolatry of the "Old
  2451. Empire" religions and were the true genesis of kindness
  2452. and compassion.
  2453. You asked me earlier why The Domain, and other space
  2454. civilizations do not land on Earth or make their
  2455. presence known. Land on Earth? Do you think we are
  2456. crazy or want to be crazy? It takes a very brave IS-BE
  2457. to come down through the atmosphere and land on Earth,
  2458. because this is a prison planet, with a very
  2459. uncontrolled, psychotic population. And, no IS-BE is
  2460. entirely proof against the risk of entrapment, as with
  2461. the members of The Domain Expeditionary Force who were
  2462. captured in the Himalayas 8,200 years ago.
  2463. No one knows what IS-BEs on Earth are going to do. We
  2464. are not scheduled to invest the resources of The Domain
  2465. to take total control of all the space surrounding the
  2466. area at this time. This will occur in the not-todistant future -- about 5,000 Earth years -- according
  2467. to the time schedule of The Domain. At this time we do
  2468. not prevent transports from other planetary systems or
  2469. galaxies from continuing to drop IS-BEs into the amnesia
  2470. force screen area. Eventually, this will change.
  2471. 75
  2472. In addition, Earth, inherently, is a highly unstable
  2473. planet. It is not suitable for settlement or permanent
  2474. habitation for any sustainable civilization. This is
  2475. part of the reason why it is being used as a prison
  2476. planet. No one else would seriously consider living
  2477. here for a variety of simple and compelling reasons:
  2478. 1) The continental land masses of Earth are floating on
  2479. a sea of molten lava beneath the surface which causes
  2480. the land masses to crack, crumble and drift continually.
  2481. 116 (Footnote)
  2482. 2) Because of the liquid nature of the core, the planet
  2483. is largely volcanic and subject to earthquakes and
  2484. volcanic explosions.
  2485. 3) The magnetic poles of the planet shift radically
  2486. about once every 20,000 years. 117 (Footnote) This causes a
  2487. greater or lesser degree of devastation as a result of
  2488. tidal waves, and climatic changes.
  2489. 4) Earth is very distant from the center of the galaxy
  2490. and from any other significant galactic civilization.
  2491. This isolation makes it unsuitable for use, except as a
  2492. "pit stop" or jumping off point along the way between
  2493. galaxies. The moon and asteroids are far more suitable
  2494. for this purpose because they do not have any
  2495. significant gravity.
  2496. 5) Earth is a heavy gravity planet, with heavy metallic
  2497. soil and a dense atmosphere. This makes it treacherous
  2498. for navigational purposes. That fact that I am in this
  2499. room, as the result of an in flight accident, in spite
  2500. of the technology of my craft and my extensive expertise
  2501. as a pilot, are proof of these facts.
  2502. 6) There are approximately sixty billion Earth-like (Sun
  2503. Type 12, Class 7) planets in the Milky Way galaxy alone,
  2504. not to mention the vast expanses of The Domain, and the
  2505. territories we will claim in the future. It is
  2506. difficult to stretch our resources to do much more than
  2507. a periodic reconnaissance of Earth. Especially when
  2508. there are no immediate advantages to invest resources
  2509. here.
  2510. 7) On Earth most beings are not aware that they are ISBEs, or that there are spirits of any kind. Many other
  2511. 76
  2512. beings are aware of this, but nearly everyone has a very
  2513. limited understanding of themselves as an IS-BE.
  2514. One of the reasons for this is that IS-BEs have been
  2515. waging war against each other since the beginning of
  2516. time. The purpose of these wars have always been to
  2517. establish domination by one IS-BE or group of IS-BEs
  2518. over another. Since an IS-BE cannot be "killed", the
  2519. objective has been to capture and immobilize IS-BEs.
  2520. This has been done in an nearly unlimited variety of
  2521. ways. The most basic method to capture and immobilize
  2522. an IS-BE is through the use of various kinds of "traps".
  2523. IS-BE traps have been made and put in place by many
  2524. invading societies, such as the one that established the
  2525. "Old Empire", beginning about sixty-four trillion years
  2526. ago. Traps are often set up in the "territory" of the
  2527. IS-BEs being attacked. Usually a trap is set with the
  2528. electronic wave of "beauty" to attract the interest and
  2529. attention of the IS-BE. When the IS-BE moves toward the
  2530. source of the aesthetic wave, such as a beautiful
  2531. building or beautiful music, the trap is activated by
  2532. the energy put out by the IS-BE.
  2533. One of the most common trap mechanism uses the IS-BE's
  2534. own thought energy output when the IS-BE tries to attack
  2535. or fight back against the trap. The trap is activated
  2536. and energized by the IS-BE's own thought energy. The
  2537. harder the IS-BE fights against the trap, the more it
  2538. pulls the IBS toward it and keeps them "stuck" in the
  2539. trap.
  2540. Throughout the entire history of this physical universe,
  2541. vast areas of space have been taken over and colonized
  2542. by IS-BE societies who invade and take over new areas of
  2543. space in this fashion. In the past, these invasions
  2544. have always shared common elements:
  2545. 1) the overwhelming use of force of arms, usually with
  2546. nuclear or electronic weapons.
  2547. 2) mind control of the IS-BEs in the invaded area
  2548. through the use of electroshock, drugs, hypnosis,
  2549. erasure of memory and the implantation of false memory
  2550. or false information intended to subjugate and enslave
  2551. the local IS-BE population.
  2552. 77
  2553. 3) take over of natural resources by the invading ISBEs.
  2554. 4) political, economic and social slavery of the local
  2555. population.
  2556. These activities continue in present time. All of the
  2557. IS-BEs on Earth have been members of one or more of
  2558. these activities in the past, both as an invader, or as
  2559. part of the population being invaded. There are no
  2560. "saints" in this universe. Very few have avoided or
  2561. been exempted from warfare between IS-BEs.
  2562. IS-BEs on Earth are still the victims of this activity
  2563. at this very moment. The between-lives amnesia
  2564. administered to IS-BEs is one on the mechanisms of an
  2565. elaborate system of "Old Empire" IS-BE traps, that
  2566. prevent an IS-BE from escaping.
  2567. This operation is managed by an illicit, renegade secret
  2568. police 118 (Footnote) force of the "Old Empire", using false
  2569. provocation operations to disguise their activities
  2570. 119 (Footnote) in order to prevent detection by their own
  2571. government, The Domain and by the victims of their
  2572. activities. They are mind-control methods developed by
  2573. government psychiatrists. 120 (Footnote)
  2574. Earth is a "ghetto" 121 (Footnote) planet. It is the result
  2575. of an intergalactic "Holocaust". 122 (Footnote) IS-BEs have
  2576. been sentenced to Earth either because:
  2577. 1) They are too viciously insane or perverse to function
  2578. as part of any civilization, no matter how degraded or
  2579. corrupt.
  2580. 2) Or, they are a revolutionary threat to the social,
  2581. economic and political caste system that has been so
  2582. carefully built and brutally enforced in the "Old
  2583. Empire". Biological bodies are specifically designed
  2584. and designated as the lowest order of entity in the "Old
  2585. Empire" caste system. When an IS-BE is sent to Earth,
  2586. and then tricked or coerced into operating in a
  2587. biological body, they are actually in a prison, inside a
  2588. prison.
  2589. 3) In an effort to permanently and irreversibly rid the
  2590. "Old Empire" of such "untouchables", the eternal
  2591. 78
  2592. identity, memory, and abilities of every IS-BE is
  2593. forcefully erased. This "final solution" 123 (Footnote) was
  2594. conceived and carried out by the psychopathic criminals
  2595. who are controlled by the "Old Empire".
  2596. The mass extermination of "untouchables" and prison
  2597. camps created by Germany during World War II were
  2598. recently revealed. Likewise, the IS-BEs of Earth are the
  2599. victims of spiritual eradication and eternal slavery
  2600. inside frail, biological bodies, inspired by the same
  2601. kind of craven hatred in the "Old Empire".
  2602. The kind and creative inmates of Earth are continuously
  2603. tortured by butchers and lunatics who are controlled by
  2604. the "Old Empire" prison operators. The so-called
  2605. "civilizations" of Earth, from the age of useless
  2606. pyramids to the age of nuclear holocaust, have been a
  2607. colossal waste of natural resources, a perverted use of
  2608. intelligence, and an overt oppression of the spiritual
  2609. essence of every single IS-BE on the planet.
  2610. If The Domain sent ships to every corner of the universe
  2611. in search of "Hell", their quest could end on Earth.
  2612. What greater brutality can be inflicted on anyone than
  2613. to erase the spiritual awareness, identity, ability,
  2614. and memory that is the essence of oneself?
  2615. The Domain has, as yet, been unable to rescue the 3,000
  2616. IS-BEs of the Expeditionary Force Battalion either.
  2617. They are forced to inhabit biological bodies on Earth.
  2618. We have been able to recognize and track most of them
  2619. for the past 8,000 years. However, our attempts to
  2620. communicate with them are usually futile, as they are
  2621. unable to remember their true identity.
  2622. The majority of lost members of The Domain force have
  2623. followed the general progression of Western civilization
  2624. from India, into the Middle East, then to Chaldea, and
  2625. Babylon, into Egypt, through Achaia, Greece, Rome, into
  2626. Europe, to the Western Hemisphere, and then all around
  2627. the world.
  2628. The members of the lost Battalion and many other IS-BEs
  2629. on Earth, could be valuable citizens of The Domain, not
  2630. including those who are vicious criminals or perverts.
  2631. Unfortunately, there has been no workable method
  2632. conceived to emancipate the IS-BEs from Earth.
  2633. 79
  2634. Therefore, as a matter of common logic, as well as the
  2635. official policy of The Domain, it is safer and more
  2636. sensible to avoid contact with the IS-BE population of
  2637. Earth until such time as the proper resources can be
  2638. allocated to locate and destroy the "Old Empire" force
  2639. screen and amnesia machinery and develop a therapy to
  2640. restore the memory of an IS-BE."
  2641. 80
  2642. Chapter Nine
  2643. A Time Line of Events
  2644. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  2645. "For this interview I took written notes because Airl gave me a lot of dates and
  2646. names that I couldn't possibly remember without writing them down. I didn't usually
  2647. take notes, but during this lesson I thought it was important to get the information
  2648. exactly as she gave it to me. However, I discovered that my note taking made it
  2649. much more difficult for me to focus on receiving the communication from Airl. I
  2650. was sometimes so distracted by my own writing that I lost the train of her thought, so
  2651. I had to ask her to "repeat" herself several times.
  2652. Airl continued to stay in communication with the Communications Officer on the
  2653. asteroid belt space station, from which she received much of this information. Since
  2654. Airl was an officer / pilot / engineer of The Domain, and not a historian, she had to
  2655. get this information from records of reconnaissance missions conducted by other
  2656. officers of The Domain Expeditionary Force."
  2657. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  2658. TOP SECRET
  2659. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  2660. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  2661. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 27. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  2662. "The actual history of Earth is very bizarre. It is so
  2663. nonsensical that is it is incredible to anyone on Earth
  2664. who attempts to investigate it. A myriad of vital
  2665. information is missing from it. A huge conglomeration
  2666. of non sequitur relics and mythology has been arbitrarily
  2667. introduced into it. The volatile nature of the Earth
  2668. itself cyclically covers, drowns, mixes and shreds
  2669. physical evidence.
  2670. These factors, combined with amnesia and post-hypnotic
  2671. suggestions, false facades and covert manipulation make
  2672. a reconstruction of the factual origins and history of
  2673. Earth civilizations virtually indecipherable. Any
  2674. 81
  2675. investigator, no matter how brilliant, is doomed to
  2676. wallow in a quagmire of inconclusive assumptions,
  2677. unworkable hypotheses, and perpetual mystery.
  2678. Since The Domain does not suffer these afflictions,
  2679. having the advantage of memory, longevity and an
  2680. exterior point of view, I will add some clarification to
  2681. your fragmentary knowledge of the history of Earth.
  2682. These are some of the dates and events that are not
  2683. mentioned in Earth history textbooks. These dates are
  2684. significant because they provide some information
  2685. concerning the influences of the "Old Empire" and of The
  2686. Domain on Earth.
  2687. Although I have attended several briefings by our
  2688. mission control personnel on the general background of
  2689. Earth within the past few hundred years, I will rely
  2690. principally on data gathered from records captured
  2691. after our invasion of the "Old Empire" planetary
  2692. headquarters. Since that time The Domain Expeditionary
  2693. Force has tracked the general progress of events on
  2694. Earth.
  2695. As I mentioned, in some cases The Domain has chosen to
  2696. intervene in certain affairs on Earth in order to ensure
  2697. the success of our long term expansion plans. Although
  2698. The Domain has no interest in Earth, per se, or in the
  2699. population of IS-BEs on this planet, it does serve our
  2700. interests to ensure that the resources of Earth are not
  2701. destroyed or spoiled. To that end, certain officers of
  2702. The Domain have been sent to Earth on reconnaissance
  2703. missions from time to time to gather information.
  2704. However, the following dates and events have been
  2705. extrapolated from the accumulated information in the
  2706. data files of The Domain -- at least those that are
  2707. accessible to me through the space station
  2708. communications center.
  2709. 208,000 BCE --
  2710. The establishment of the "Old Empire", whose
  2711. headquarters were located near one of the "tail stars"
  2712. in the Ursa Major (Big Dipper) Constellation 124 (Footnote) of
  2713. this galaxy. The "Old Empire" invasion force conquered
  2714. the area with nuclear weapons sometime earlier. After
  2715. 82
  2716. the radioactivity 125 (Footnote) subsided and the clean-up and
  2717. restoration were completed, it received the immigration
  2718. of beings from another galaxy into this galaxy. Those
  2719. beings set up a society that kept going until about
  2720. 10,000 years ago when it was superseded by The Domain.
  2721. Very recently Earth civilization has come to resemble
  2722. aspects of that civilization, now that it has fallen out
  2723. of its immediate control. In particular, the appearance
  2724. and technology of transportation such as planes, trains,
  2725. ships, fire engines, and automobiles, as well as what
  2726. you consider to be "modern" or "futuristic"
  2727. architecture, which emulate the design of buildings in
  2728. the major cities of the "Old Empire".
  2729. Before 75,000 BCE --
  2730. The Domain records contain very little information about
  2731. the civilizations on the continental land masses of
  2732. Atlanta 126 (Footnote) and Lemur 127 (Footnote), except to note that
  2733. they did coexist on Earth at more or less the same time.
  2734. Apparently, both civilizations were founded by remnants
  2735. of electronic, space opera cultures who fled from their
  2736. native planetary systems to escape political or
  2737. religious persecution.
  2738. The Domain knows that a long-standing edict of the "Old
  2739. Empire" prohibits unauthorized colonization of planets.
  2740. Therefore, it is possible that their destruction was
  2741. caused by police or military forces who pursued the
  2742. colonists as criminals and destroyed them. Although
  2743. this seems a likely supposition, no conclusive evidence
  2744. exists that explains the complete destruction and
  2745. disappearance of two entire electronic civilizations.
  2746. Another possibility is that a massive submarine volcanic
  2747. eruption in the region of Lake Toba, in Sumatra 128 (Footnote)
  2748. and Mt. Krakatoa 129 (Footnote) in Java caused the destruction
  2749. of Lemur. The flood waters caused by the eruption
  2750. overwhelmed all the land masses, including the highest
  2751. mountains. Survivors of the destruction of the
  2752. civilization, the Lemurians, are the earliest ancestors
  2753. of the Chinese. Australia and the ocean areas to the
  2754. north were the center of the Lemurian civilization and
  2755. are the source of Oriental races. Both civilizations
  2756. possessed electronics, flight and similar technologies
  2757. of space opera cultures.
  2758. 83
  2759. Apparently, the volcanic eruption expelled such a
  2760. significant mass of molten rock that the resulting
  2761. vacuum beneath the crust of Earth caused great areas of
  2762. the land masses to sink below the oceans. The
  2763. continental areas occupied by both civilizations were
  2764. covered with volcanic matter, and then submerged,
  2765. leaving very little evidence that they ever existed
  2766. except for legends of a global flood which prevail in
  2767. every culture of the Earth, and for survivors who are
  2768. the genus of oriental races and cultures.
  2769. That kind of colossal volcanic explosion 130 (Footnote) fills
  2770. the stratosphere with toxic gases which are carried
  2771. around the whole planet. The usual refuse of these
  2772. volcanic eruptions can easily cause a rain that lasts
  2773. for "40 days and 40 nights" due to atmospheric pollution
  2774. as well as an extensive period during which radiation
  2775. from the sun is deflected back into space, and cause
  2776. global cooling. 131 (Footnote) Certainly such an event would
  2777. cause an ice age, extinctions of life forms and many
  2778. other relatively long-term changes lasting thousands of
  2779. years.
  2780. Due to the myriad types of naturally occurring global
  2781. cataclysmic events which are indigenous to Earth, it is
  2782. not a suitable planet for habitation by IS-BEs. In
  2783. addition there have been occasional global cataclysms
  2784. caused by IS-BEs such as the one that destroyed the
  2785. dinosaurs 132 (Footnote) more than 70 million years ago. That
  2786. destruction was caused by intergalactic warfare during
  2787. which time Earth, and many other neighboring moons and
  2788. planets, were bombarded by atomic weapons. Atomic
  2789. explosions cause atmospheric fallout much like that of
  2790. volcanic eruptions. 133 (Footnote) Most of the planets in this
  2791. sector of the galaxy have been uninhabitable deserts
  2792. since then.
  2793. Earth is undesirable for many other reasons: heavy
  2794. gravity and dense atmosphere, floods, earthquakes,
  2795. volcanoes, polar shifts, continental drift, meteor
  2796. impacts, atmospheric and climatic changes, to name a
  2797. few. What kind of lasting civilization could any
  2798. sophisticated culture propose to develop in such an
  2799. environment?
  2800. 84
  2801. In addition, Earth is a small planet of a "rim star" of
  2802. a galaxy. This makes Earth very isolated geographically
  2803. from the more concentrated planetary civilizations which
  2804. exist toward the center of the galaxy. These obvious
  2805. facts have made Earth suitable for use only as a
  2806. zoological or botanical garden, or for it's current use
  2807. as a prison -- but not much else.
  2808. Before 30,000 BCE --
  2809. Earth started being used a dumping ground and prison for
  2810. IS-BEs who were judged "untouchable", meaning criminal
  2811. or non-conformists. IS-BEs were captured, encapsulated
  2812. in electronic traps and transported to Earth from
  2813. various parts of the "Old Empire". Underground "amnesia
  2814. stations" were set up on Mars and on Earth in the
  2815. Rwenzori Mountains 134 (Footnote) in Africa, in the Pyrenees
  2816. Mountains 135 (Footnote) of Portugal, and in steppes of
  2817. Mongolia. 136 (Footnote)
  2818. These electronic monitoring points create force screens
  2819. designed to detect and capture IS-BEs, when the IS-BE
  2820. departs the body at death. IS-BEs are brainwashed using
  2821. extreme electronic force in order to maintain Earth's
  2822. population in state of perpetual amnesia. Further
  2823. population controls are installed through the use of
  2824. long range electronic thought control mechanisms.
  2825. These stations are still in operation and they are
  2826. extremely difficult to attack or destroy, even for The
  2827. Domain, which will not maintain a significant military
  2828. force in this area until a later date.
  2829. The pyramid civilizations were intentionally created as
  2830. part of the IS-BE prison system on Earth. The pyramid
  2831. is alleged to be the symbol for "wisdom". However, the
  2832. "wisdom" of the "Old Empire" on planet Earth is intended
  2833. to operate as part of the elaborate amnesia "trap"
  2834. consisting of MASS, MEANING and MYSTERY. These are
  2835. opposite to the qualities of an Immortal Spiritual Being
  2836. which have no mass, or meaning. An IS-BE "is" solely
  2837. because it thinks that it "is".
  2838. MASS represents the physical universe, including objects
  2839. such as stars, planets, gases, liquids, energy particles
  2840. and tea cups. The Pyramids were very, very solid
  2841. objects, as were all of the structures created by the
  2842. "Old Empire". Heavy, massive, dense, solid objects
  2843. 85
  2844. create the illusion of eternity. Dead bodies wrapped in
  2845. linen, soaked in resin, placed inside engraved golden
  2846. coffins and entombed with Earthly possessions amid
  2847. cryptic symbols create an illusion of eternal life.
  2848. However, dense, heavy physical universe symbols are the
  2849. exact opposite of an IS-BE. An IS-BE has no mass or
  2850. time. Objects do not endure forever. An IS-BE "is"
  2851. forever.
  2852. MEANING: False meanings prevent knowledge of the truth.
  2853. The pyramid cultures of Earth are a fabricated illusion.
  2854. They are nothing more than "false civilizations"
  2855. contrived by the "Old Empire" mystery cult called the
  2856. Brothers of the Serpent. False meanings were invented
  2857. to create the illusion of a false society to further
  2858. reinforce the amnesia mechanism among the intimates in
  2859. the Earth prison system.
  2860. MYSTERY is built of lies and half-truths. Lies cause
  2861. persistence because they alter facts which are comprised
  2862. of exact dates, places and events. When truth is known,
  2863. a lie no longer persists. If the exact truth is
  2864. revealed, it is no longer a mystery.
  2865. All of the pyramid civilizations of Earth were carefully
  2866. contrived of layer upon layer of lies, skillfully
  2867. combined with a few truths. The priest cult of the "Old
  2868. Empire" combined sophisticated mathematics and space
  2869. opera technology, with theatrical metaphors and
  2870. symbolism. All of these are complete fabrications of
  2871. truth, baited with the allure of aesthetics and mystery.
  2872. The intricate rituals, astronomical alignments, secret
  2873. rites, massive monuments, marvelous architecture,
  2874. artistically rendered hieroglyphs and man-animal "gods"
  2875. were designed to create a unsolvable mystery for the ISBE prison population on Earth. The mystery diverts
  2876. attention away from the truth that IS-BEs have been
  2877. captured, given amnesia and imprisoned on a planet far,
  2878. far away from their home.
  2879. The truth is that every single IS-BE on Earth came to
  2880. Earth from some other planetary system. Not one person
  2881. on Earth is a "native" inhabitant. Human beings did not
  2882. "evolve" on Earth.
  2883. 86
  2884. In the past, Egyptian society was run by the prison
  2885. administrators or priests, who, in turn, manipulated a
  2886. Pharaoh, controlled the treasury and kept the inmate
  2887. population enslaved physically and spiritually. In
  2888. modern times, the priests have changed, but the function
  2889. is the same. However, now the priest are prisoners too.
  2890. Mystery reinforces the walls of the prison. The "Old
  2891. Empire" feared that the IS-BEs on Earth might regain
  2892. their memory. Therefore, one of the primary functions
  2893. of The "Old Empire" priesthood is to prevent IS-BEs on
  2894. Earth from remembering who they really are, how they
  2895. came to Earth, where they came from.
  2896. The "Old Empire" operators of the prison system, and
  2897. their superiors, do not want IS-BEs to remember who
  2898. murdered them, captured them, stole all of their
  2899. possessions, sent them to Earth, gave them amnesia and
  2900. condemned them to eternal imprisonment!
  2901. Imagine what might happen if all of the inmates in the
  2902. prison suddenly remembered that they have the right to
  2903. be free! What if they suddenly realized that they have
  2904. been falsely imprisoned and rise up as one against the
  2905. guards?
  2906. They are afraid to reveal anything that looks like the
  2907. civilization of the inmates home planets. A body, a
  2908. piece of clothing, a symbol, a space ship, an advanced
  2909. electronics device, or any other remnant of civilization
  2910. from a home planet could "remind" a being and rekindle
  2911. his memory.
  2912. Sophisticated technologies of entrapment and
  2913. enslavement, which were developed over millions of
  2914. years in the "Old Empire", have been applied to the ISBEs on Earth with the intention to create a false facade
  2915. for the prison. These facades were installed on Earth
  2916. in totality, all at once. Every piece is a fully
  2917. integrated part of the prison system.
  2918. This includes a religion of mumbo-jumbo double-speak.
  2919. Every pyramid civilization uses this as part of a
  2920. control mechanism to keep the population enslaved by
  2921. force, by fear and by ignorance. The indecipherable
  2922. muddle of irrelevant information, geometric designs,
  2923. mathematical calculation, astronomical alignments, are
  2924. 87
  2925. part of a false spirituality based on solid objects,
  2926. rather than immortal spirits, in order to confuse and
  2927. disorient the IS-BEs on Earth.
  2928. When the body of a person died they were buried with
  2929. their Earthly possessions, including their former body
  2930. wrapped in linen, to sustain their "soul" or "Ka" after
  2931. death. An IS-BE does not "have" as soul. An IS-BE is a
  2932. soul.
  2933. On the home planet of an IS-BE their material
  2934. possessions were not lost, stolen or forgotten when the
  2935. being died or left the body. An IS-BE could return and
  2936. claim the possessions. However, if the IS-BE has
  2937. amnesia, they will not remember that they had any
  2938. possession. So, governments, insurance companies,
  2939. bankers, family members and other vultures can pick
  2940. their possessions clean without fear of retribution from
  2941. the deceased. 137 (Footnote)
  2942. The only reason for these false meanings is to instill
  2943. the idea that an IS-BE is NOT a spirit, but a physical
  2944. object! This is a lie. It is a trap for an IS-BE.
  2945. Countless people have spent endless hours attempting to
  2946. solve the jig-saw puzzle of Egypt and other "Old Empire"
  2947. civilizations. They are puzzles made of pieces that do
  2948. not fit. A question states its own answer. What is the
  2949. mystery of Egypt and other pyramid cultures? Mystery!
  2950. circa 15,000 BCE --
  2951. The "Old Empire" forces supervised the construction of a
  2952. hydraulic mining operations in the Andes Mountains in
  2953. present day Bolivia near Lake Titicaca (Lake of Tin
  2954. Stones) at Tiahuanaco 138 (Footnote) including construction of
  2955. the massive stone complex of carved stone buildings
  2956. known as Kalasasaya and its "Gate of the Sun" at an
  2957. elevation of nearly 14,000 feet.
  2958. 11,600 BCE --
  2959. The Polar Axis of Earth shifted 139 (Footnote) to a sea area.
  2960. The last Ice Age came to an end abruptly as the polar
  2961. ice caps melted and the level of the ocean rose to
  2962. submerge large sections of the land masses of Earth.
  2963. The last remaining vestiges of Atlantis and Lemuria were
  2964. 88
  2965. covered by water. Massive extinctions of animals
  2966. occurred in the Americas, Australia and the Artic
  2967. Regions due to the shift of the poles.
  2968. 10,450 BCE --
  2969. Plans were made by the "Old Empire" IS-BE called Thoth
  2970. for construction of a Great Pyramid of Giza. The 4 "air
  2971. shafts" of the pyramid point precisely to key stars in
  2972. the "Old Empire" as seen from Giza in this year. The
  2973. alignment of the Pyramids of Giza on the ground matches
  2974. perfectly the alignment of the constellation of Orion as
  2975. seen in the sky from Giza relative to the Nile as the
  2976. earthly representation of the Milky Way in the sky. 140
  2977. (Footnote)
  2978. 10,400 BCE --
  2979. According to the Earth historian, Herodotus, records
  2980. from the ruined civilization of Atlantis, containing
  2981. electronic technology and other technology of that
  2982. society, were buried in a vault beneath the paws of The
  2983. Sphinx. The Greek historian wrote that he was told this
  2984. by some of his friends who were Priests of Anu, the
  2985. Sumerian god, at the Egyptian city of Heliopolis.
  2986. However, it is highly unlikely that any traces of an
  2987. electronic civilization would be allowed to be left
  2988. intact on Earth by the "old empire" prison system
  2989. administrators. 141 (Footnote).
  2990. 8,212 BCE --
  2991. The Veda or Vedic hymns are a set of religious hymns
  2992. that were introduced into the societies of Earth. They
  2993. came forward in spoken tradition, memorized, from
  2994. generation to generation. "The Hymn to the Dawn Child''
  2995. includes an idea called the "cycle of the physical
  2996. universe": the creation, growth, conservation, decay and
  2997. death or destruction of energy and matter in a space.
  2998. These cycles produce time. The same set of hymns
  2999. describes the "theory of evolution". Here is a
  3000. tremendous body of knowledge which contains a great deal
  3001. of spiritual truth. Unfortunately, it has been
  3002. incorrectly evaluated by humans and altered with lies
  3003. and reversals of fact by priests which are a booby trap
  3004. to prevent anyone from using the wisdom to discover a
  3005. way to escape from the prison planet.
  3006. 89
  3007. 8,050 BCE --
  3008. Destruction of the "Old Empire" home planet government
  3009. in this galaxy. This was the end of the "Old Empire" as
  3010. a political entity in the galaxy. However, the vast
  3011. size of the "Old Empire" will take many thousands of
  3012. years for The Domain to conquer completely. The inertia
  3013. of the political, economic and cultural systems of the
  3014. "Old Empire" will remain in place for some time to come.
  3015. However, remnants of the "Old Empire" space fleet in the
  3016. solar system of Earth were finally destroyed in 1,230
  3017. AD. In addition to operatives of the "Old Empire" who
  3018. run the Earth prison operation, there were other beings
  3019. from the "Old Empire" who came to Earth. Since Earth
  3020. was no longer under the control of the "Old Empire"
  3021. after their defeat by The Domain Forces, there was no
  3022. police force to control military renegades, space
  3023. pirates, miners, merchants and entrepreneurs who came to
  3024. Earth to exploit the resources of the planet for
  3025. personal gain, and many other nefarious reasons.
  3026. For example, the history of Earth, according to the
  3027. Jewish people, describes the "Nephilim". 142 (Footnote) Chapter
  3028. 6 of The Book of Genesis, describes the origin of the
  3029. "Nephilim" :
  3030. "Now it came about, when men began to multiply on
  3031. the face of the land, and daughters were born to
  3032. them, that the "sons of God" saw that the daughters
  3033. of men were beautiful; and they took wives for
  3034. themselves, whomever they chose.
  3035. The Nephilim were on the earth in those days, and
  3036. also afterward, when the sons of God came in to the
  3037. daughters of men, and they bore children to them.
  3038. Those were the mighty men who were of old, men of
  3039. renown."
  3040. The ancient Jewish people who wrote the history book
  3041. called the Old Testament were slaves, herders and
  3042. gatherers. Any modern technology, even a simple
  3043. flashlight, would seem astounding and miraculous to
  3044. them. They attributed any unexplainable phenomenon or
  3045. technology to the workings of a "god". Unfortunately,
  3046. this behavior is universal among all IS-BEs who have
  3047. been given amnesia, and cannot remember their own
  3048. 90
  3049. experiences, training, technology, personality or
  3050. identity.
  3051. Obviously, if these were men, and they mated with Earth
  3052. women, they were not "sons of god". They were IS-BEs
  3053. who inhabited biological bodies in order to take
  3054. advantage of the political situation in the "Old
  3055. Empire", or simply to indulge in physical sensation.
  3056. They set up small colonies of their own on Earth beyond
  3057. the reach of the police and tax authorities.
  3058. Coincidentally, one of the most serious crimes an IS-BE
  3059. could commit in the "Old Empire" was to violate income
  3060. tax regulations. Income taxes were used as a slavery
  3061. mechanism and as a punishment in the "Old Empire". The
  3062. slightest error in a tax report made an IS-BE
  3063. "untouchable", followed by imprisonment on Earth.
  3064. 6,750 BCE --
  3065. Other Pyramid civilizations were set up by the "Old
  3066. Empire" on Earth. These were established in Babylon,
  3067. Egypt, China and Mesoamerica. The Mesopotamian area
  3068. provided service facilities, communication stations,
  3069. space ports, and stone quarry operations for these false
  3070. civilizations.
  3071. Ptah was the name given to the first in a succession of
  3072. administrators from the "Old Empire" who represented
  3073. themselves to the Earth population as "divine" rulers.
  3074. Ptah's importance may be understood when one learns that
  3075. the word "Egypt" is a Greek corruption of the phrase
  3076. "Het-Ka-Ptah," or "House of the Spirit of Ptah". Ptah,
  3077. was nick-named "The Developer". He was a construction
  3078. engineer. His high priest was given the title 'Great
  3079. Leader of Craftsmen'.
  3080. Ptah was also the god of reincarnation in Egypt. He
  3081. originated the "opening of the mouth ceremony" which was
  3082. performed by priests at funerals to "release souls" from
  3083. their corpses. Of course, when the "souls" were
  3084. released, they were captured, given amnesia, and
  3085. returned to Earth again.
  3086. The so-called "Devine" rulers who followed Ptah on Earth
  3087. were called "Ntr", meaning "Guardians or Watchers" by
  3088. 91
  3089. the Egyptians. Their symbol was the Serpent, or Dragon
  3090. which represented a secret priesthood of the "Old
  3091. Empire" called the "Brothers of the Serpent".
  3092. "Old Empire" engineers used cutting tools of highly
  3093. concentrated light waves to quickly carve and excavate
  3094. stone blocks. 143 (Footnote) They also used force fields and
  3095. space craft to lift and transport blocks of stone
  3096. weighing hundred or thousands of tons each. The
  3097. placement on the ground of some of these structures will
  3098. be found to have geodetic or astronomical significance
  3099. relative to various stars in this galactic region.
  3100. The buildings are crude and impractical, compared to
  3101. building standards on most planets. As an engineer of
  3102. The Domain, I can attest that make-shift structures like
  3103. these would never pass inspection on a planet in The
  3104. Domain. Stone blocks such as those used in the pyramid
  3105. civilizations can still be seen, partially excavated, in
  3106. the stone quarries in the Middle East 144 (Footnote) and
  3107. elsewhere.
  3108. Most of the structures were hastily built "props", much
  3109. like the false facades of a western town on the set of a
  3110. motion picture. They appear to be real, and to have
  3111. some use or value however, they have no value. They have
  3112. no useful purpose. The pyramids and all of the other
  3113. stone monuments erected by the "Old Empire" could be
  3114. called "mystery monuments". For what reason would
  3115. anyone waste so many resources to construct so many
  3116. useless buildings? To create a mysterious illusion.
  3117. The fact of the matter is that each one of the "divine
  3118. rulers" were IS-BEs who served as operatives of the "Old
  3119. Empire". They were certainly not "divine", although
  3120. they were IS-BEs.
  3121. 6248 BCE --
  3122. The beginning of active warfare between The Domain Space
  3123. Command and the surviving remnants of the "Old Empire"
  3124. space fleet in this solar system that lasted nearly
  3125. 7,500 years. It began when an installation was
  3126. established in the Himalaya mountains by a battalion of
  3127. the 3,000 officers and crew members of The Domain
  3128. Expeditionary Force. The installation was not fortified
  3129. 92
  3130. as The Domain was not aware that the "Old Empire"
  3131. maintained Earth as a prison planet.
  3132. The Domain installation was attacked and destroyed by
  3133. space forces of the "Old Empire" who continued to
  3134. operate in the solar system of Earth. IS-BEs of The
  3135. Domain battalion were captured, taken to Mars, given
  3136. amnesia, and sent back to Earth to inhabit human
  3137. biological bodies. They are still on Earth.
  3138. 5,965 BCE --
  3139. Investigations into the disappearance of Domain forces
  3140. in this solar system led to the discovery of "Old
  3141. Empire" bases on Mars and elsewhere. The Domain took
  3142. over the planet Venus 145 (Footnote) as a defensive position
  3143. against the space forces of the "Old Empire". The
  3144. Domain Expeditionary Force also monitors life forms on
  3145. Venus which has a very dense, hot and heavy atmosphere
  3146. of sulfuric acid clouds. There are a few life forms on
  3147. Earth that can endure an atmospheric environment like
  3148. Venus. 146 (Footnote)
  3149. The Domain also established secret installations or
  3150. space stations in the Earth solar system. This solar
  3151. system has a planet that is broken up -- the asteroid
  3152. belt. 147 (Footnote) It provides a very useful low-gravity
  3153. platform for take off and landing of space craft. It is
  3154. used as a "galactic jump" between the Milky Way and
  3155. adjoining galaxies. There aren't any planets at this end
  3156. of the galaxy that can serve as a good galactic entering
  3157. spot for incoming transport, and other ships. But this
  3158. broken up planet makes a very ideal space station. As a
  3159. result of our war against the "Old Empire", this area of
  3160. the solar system is now a valuable possession of The
  3161. Domain.
  3162. 3,450 - 3,100 BCE --
  3163. The intervention into the affairs on Earth by the "Old
  3164. Empire" operatives or "divine gods" was disrupted at
  3165. this time by The Domain Forces. They were forced to
  3166. replace themselves with human rulers. The First Dynasty
  3167. of human Pharaohs who united Upper and Lower Egypt began
  3168. with the rule of a Pharaoh who, coincidentally, was
  3169. named "MEN". He established the capital city called
  3170. Men-Nefer, "The Beauty of Men" in Egypt. This started
  3171. 93
  3172. the first succession of 10 human Pharaohs and a period
  3173. of 350 years of chaos that followed in the
  3174. administrative ranks of the "Old Empire".
  3175. 3,200 BCE --
  3176. As I mentioned earlier, Earth was under attack between
  3177. The Domain and the "Old Empire" forces during this
  3178. period. Of course this does not make any sense to
  3179. archaeologists or historians on Earth, because the
  3180. Egyptian period is a space opera era period. Since
  3181. Earth historians have amnesia, they assume that this was
  3182. only a religious period.
  3183. Further, because the technology and civilizations
  3184. installed on Earth during this period were "prepackaged", they did not "evolve" on Earth. Of course,
  3185. there is no evidence anywhere on Earth of an
  3186. evolutionary transition which resulted in sophisticated
  3187. mathematics, language, writing, religion, architecture,
  3188. cultural traditions in Egypt or any of the pyramid
  3189. civilizations. These cultures, complete with all of the
  3190. details of racial body types, hair-styles, facial makeup, rituals, moral codes and so forth, just "appeared"
  3191. as complete integrated packages.
  3192. The physical evidence suggests that all evidence of the
  3193. intervention of The Domain or "Old Empire" Forces, or
  3194. any other extraterrestrial activity, has been carefully
  3195. "cleaned up", so as not to create suspicion. The "Old
  3196. Empire" force does not want the IS-BEs of Earth to
  3197. suspect that they have been captured, transplanted to
  3198. Earth and brainwashed.
  3199. So, Earth historians continue to assume that Egyptian
  3200. priests were not supposed to have "ray guns" or other
  3201. technology of the "Old Empire". And, they suppose that
  3202. there was nothing going on, on Earth, except some
  3203. priests walking around saying 'Amen', which the
  3204. Christians still say.
  3205. 3,172 BCE --
  3206. Layout of the astronomical grid that joins the key
  3207. mining sites and astronomical buildings of 'the gods' in
  3208. the Andes Mountains such as Tiahuanaco, 148 (Footnote) Cuzco,
  3209. Quito, the cities of Ollantaytambu, 149 (Footnote) Machupiccu 150
  3210. 94
  3211. (Footnote) and Pachacamac 151 (Footnote) for the mining of rare
  3212. metals, including tin for use in making bronze. Metals
  3213. were the property of "the gods", of course.
  3214. A great variety of entrepreneurial mining was done on
  3215. Earth at that time due to the war between the "Old
  3216. Empire" force and The Domain. These miners did carve a
  3217. few sculptures of themselves. They are seen wearing
  3218. mining helmets. The Ponce stela sculpture in the sunken
  3219. courtyard of the Kalasasaya temple is a crude rendering
  3220. of a stone worker using an electronic, light-wave
  3221. emitting stone cutter and carving tools, held in a
  3222. holster. 152 (Footnote)
  3223. The "Old Empire" has also maintained mining operations
  3224. on planets throughout the galaxy for a very long time.
  3225. The mineral resources of Earth are now a property of The
  3226. Domain.
  3227. 2,450 BCE --
  3228. The "great" pyramid 153 (Footnote) and complex of pyramids
  3229. near Cairo were completed. An inscription created by
  3230. the "Old Empire" administrators can be seen in the socalled Pyramid texts. 154 (Footnote) The texts say that the
  3231. pyramid was built under the direction of Thoth, Son of
  3232. Ptah. Of course there was never a King buried in the
  3233. chamber, since the pyramids were never intended to be
  3234. used as a burial chamber.
  3235. The great pyramid was located precisely at the exact
  3236. center of all of the land masses of Earth, 155 (Footnote) as
  3237. viewed from space. Obviously such precise measurements
  3238. require aerial perspective and a view of the land masses
  3239. of Earth from space. Purely mathematical calculations
  3240. of the geodetic center of the continents of Earth could
  3241. not be made otherwise.
  3242. Shafts were constructed inside the pyramid to align with
  3243. the configuration of stars in the constellation of
  3244. Orion, Canus Majora, and specifically Sirius. The
  3245. shafts are also aligned to the Big Dipper, where the
  3246. home planet of the "Old Empire" existed. Also, Ainitak,
  3247. Alpha Draconis and Beta Ursa Minor. 156 (Footnote) These stars
  3248. are each one of the key systems in the "Old Empire" from
  3249. which IS-BEs were brought to Earth and dumped, as
  3250. unwanted merchandise.
  3251. 95
  3252. The configuration of all the pyramids of the Giza
  3253. Plateau was intended to create a "mirror image", on
  3254. Earth of the solar system and certain constellations
  3255. within the "Old Empire".
  3256. 2,181 BCE --
  3257. MIN, became the God of Fertility of Egypt. The IS-BE,
  3258. also known as Pan, was also a Greek god. Min or Pan,
  3259. was an IS-BE who somehow managed to escape from the "Old
  3260. Empire" amnesia system. 157 (Footnote)
  3261. 2,160 - 2040 BCE --
  3262. One of the results of the intensifying battle between
  3263. The Domain Forces and the "Old Empire" forces was that
  3264. the control of the "divine rulers", was broken at this
  3265. time. They finally left Egypt and returned to the
  3266. "heavens", so to speak, in defeat. Human beings took
  3267. over the ruling role as Pharaohs. The first human
  3268. pharaoh moved the Capital city of Egypt from Memphis to
  3269. Heracleopolis. 158 (Footnote)
  3270. 1,500 BCE --
  3271. This is the date for the destruction of Atlantis given
  3272. by the Egyptian high-priests, Psenophis of Heliopolis,
  3273. and Sonchis of Sais, to the Greek sage Solon. 159 (Footnote)
  3274. The Priests of Anu recorded that the Mediterranean area
  3275. was invaded by "Atlantean" people about this time. Of
  3276. course, these people were not from the ancient continent
  3277. of Atlanta, in the Atlantic Ocean, which existed more
  3278. than 70,000 years earlier.
  3279. These were refugees from the Minoan civilization on
  3280. Crete escaping from the volcanic eruption and tidal
  3281. waves of Mt. Thera that destroyed their civilization.
  3282. Plato's references to Atlantis were borrowed from the
  3283. writings of the Greek philosopher Solon, who was given
  3284. the information by the Egyptian priest who called
  3285. Atlantis "Kepchu", which also happens to be the Egyptian
  3286. name for the people of Crete. Some of the survivors of
  3287. the Minoan volcanic disaster asked Egypt for help, since
  3288. they were the only other civilization with high culture
  3289. in the Mediterranean area at the time. 160 (Footnote)
  3290. 96
  3291. 1351 BCE - 1337 BCE --
  3292. The Domain Expeditionary Force actively waged a war of
  3293. religious conquest against the Egyptian mystery cult
  3294. called the Priest of Amun, also known as the "Old
  3295. Empire" Brothers of The Serpent. During this time the
  3296. Pharaoh Akhenaten abolished the priesthood of Amun, and
  3297. moved the capital of Egypt from Thebes to the new
  3298. location at Amarna, at the exact geodetic center of
  3299. Egypt 161 (Footnote). However, this plot to overthrow the "Old
  3300. Empire" religious control was quickly spoiled.
  3301. 1,193 BCE --
  3302. In the Near East and Achaea, the Greeks and Trojans
  3303. fought for supremacy, which ended in the destruction of
  3304. Troy as the finale of the Trojan War. 162 (Footnote) During
  3305. this same time, war was being fought out in the space of
  3306. the solar system between two forces for control of the
  3307. "space stations" surrounding Earth. That period of 300
  3308. years was a very violent resistance to The Domain Forces
  3309. by the remnants of the "Old Empire" forces. It did not
  3310. last long however, as it is futile to resist The Domain.
  3311. 850 BCE --
  3312. Homer, the blind Greek poet, 163 (Footnote) wrote the stories
  3313. 'the gods' as borrowed and modified from earlier sources
  3314. in Vedic texts, Sumerian texts, Babylonian and Egyptian
  3315. mythology. His poems, as well as many other "myths" of
  3316. the ancient world are very accurate descriptions of the
  3317. exploits of IS-BE's on Earth who were able to avoid the
  3318. "Old Empire amnesia operation and operate without
  3319. biological bodies.
  3320. 700 BCE --
  3321. The Vedic Hymns were first translated in the Greek
  3322. language. This was the beginning of a cultural
  3323. revolution in Western civilization that transformed
  3324. crude and brutal tribal cultures into democratic
  3325. republics based on more reasonable conduct.
  3326. 638 - 559 BCE --
  3327. Solon, a wise man from Greece, reported the existence of
  3328. Atlantis. This was information he received from the
  3329. 97
  3330. "Old Empire" high-priests, Psenophis of Heliopolis and
  3331. Sonchis of Sais, with whom he studied in Egypt. 164 (Footnote)
  3332. 630 BCE --
  3333. Zoroaster 165 (Footnote) created religious practices in Persia
  3334. around an IS-BE called Ahura Mazda. 166 (Footnote) This was yet
  3335. another of the growing number of "monotheistic" gods put
  3336. in place by operatives of The Domain to displace a
  3337. panoply of "Old Empire" gods.
  3338. 604 BCE --
  3339. Laozi, a philosopher who wrote a small book called "The
  3340. Way", 167 (Footnote) was an IS-BE of great wisdom, who
  3341. overcame the effects of the "Old Empire" amnesia /
  3342. hypnosis machinery and escaped from Earth. His
  3343. understanding of the nature of an IS-BE must have been
  3344. very good to accomplish this.
  3345. According to the common legend, his last lifetime as a
  3346. human was lived in a small village in China. He
  3347. contemplated the essence of his own life. Like Guatama
  3348. Siddhartha, he confronted his own thoughts, and past
  3349. lives. In so doing, he recovered some of his own
  3350. memory, ability and immortality.
  3351. As an old man, he decided to leave the village and go to
  3352. the forest to depart the body. The village gatekeeper
  3353. stopped him and begged him to write down his personal
  3354. philosophy before leaving. Here is a small piece of
  3355. advice he gave about "the way" he rediscovered his own
  3356. spirit:
  3357. "He who looks will not see it;
  3358. He who listens will not hear it;
  3359. He who gropes will not grasp it.
  3360. The formless nonentity, the motionless source of motion.
  3361. The infinite essence of the spirit is the source of
  3362. life.
  3363. Spirit is self.
  3364. Walls form and support a room,
  3365. yet the space between them is most important.
  3366. A pot is formed of clay,
  3367. yet the space formed therein is most useful.
  3368. Action is caused by the force of nothing on something,
  3369. 98
  3370. just as the nothing of spirit is the source of all form.
  3371. One suffers great afflictions because one has a body.
  3372. Without a body what afflictions could one suffer?
  3373. When one cares more for the body than for his own
  3374. spirit,
  3375. One becomes the body and looses the way of the spirit.
  3376. The self, the spirit, creates illusion.
  3377. The delusion of Man is that reality is not an illusion.
  3378. One who creates illusions and makes them more real than
  3379. reality, follows the path of the spirit and finds the
  3380. way of heaven".
  3381. 593 BCE --
  3382. The Genesis story written by the Jewish people describe
  3383. "angels" or "sons of god" mating with women of Earth,
  3384. who bore them children. These were probably renegades
  3385. from the "Old Empire". They may also have been space
  3386. pirates or merchants from a system outside the galaxy
  3387. who came to steal mineral resources, or smuggle drugs.
  3388. The Domain has observed that there are many visitors to
  3389. Earth from neighboring planets and galaxies, but they
  3390. rarely stop and live here. What kind of beings would
  3391. live on a prison planet if they were not forced to do
  3392. so?
  3393. The same book also reports the story of a human named
  3394. Ezekiel who witnessed a spacecraft or aircraft landing
  3395. near Chebar River in Chaldea. His description of the
  3396. craft uses very archaic language, technically, but is
  3397. nevertheless, quite an accurate description of an "Old
  3398. Empire" saucer or scout craft. It is similar to the
  3399. sighting of "vimanas" by the people in the foothills of
  3400. the Himalayas.
  3401. Their Genesis story also mentions that "Yahweh" designed
  3402. biological bodies to live for 120 years on Earth.
  3403. Biological bodies on most "Sun Type 12, Class 7" planets
  3404. are usually engineered to last for an average of about
  3405. 150 years. Human bodies on Earth last only about one
  3406. half as long. We suspect this is because the prison
  3407. administrators have altered the biological material of
  3408. human bodies on Earth to die more frequently so that the
  3409. 99
  3410. IS-BEs who inhabit them will recycle through the amnesia
  3411. mechanism more frequently. 168 (Footnote)
  3412. It should be noted that much of the "Old Testament" was
  3413. written during the captivity of the Jews who were
  3414. enslaved in Babylon, which was very heavily controlled
  3415. by priests of the "Old Empire". The book introduces a
  3416. false sense of time and a false concept of the origin of
  3417. the creation.
  3418. The serpent is the symbol of the "Old Empire". It
  3419. appears in the beginning of their creation story, or as
  3420. the Greeks say, "Genesis", and causes the spiritual
  3421. destruction of the first human beings, who are
  3422. metaphorically represented by Adam and Eve.
  3423. The Old Testament, clearly influenced by the "Old
  3424. Empire" Forces, gives a detailed description of the ISBEs being induced into biological bodies on Earth. This
  3425. book also describes many of the "Old Empire"
  3426. brainwashing activities, including the installation of
  3427. false memories, lies, superstitions, commands to
  3428. "forget" and all manner of tricks and traps designed to
  3429. keep IS-BEs on Earth. Most importantly, it destroys the
  3430. awareness that humans are Immortal Spiritual Beings.
  3431. 580 BCE --
  3432. The Oracle at Delphi was one temple in a network of many
  3433. oracle temples. Each temple was a communication center.
  3434. The "Old Empire" priests designated a local "god" for
  3435. each temple. Each of the temples in this network were
  3436. located at precisely 5 degrees of latitude intervals
  3437. from the capital city of Thebes throughout the
  3438. Mediterranean area as far north as the Baltic Sea.
  3439. The shrines served, among other things, as a grid,
  3440. housing electronic beacons, later called "Omphalus
  3441. Stones". 169 (Footnote) The grid arrangement of Oracle sites
  3442. can only be seen from miles above the Earth. The
  3443. original network of electronic communications beacons
  3444. were disabled when the priesthood was dispersed, and
  3445. were replaced by carved stones.
  3446. The symbol of the "Old Empire" priesthood is a Python,
  3447. dragon or serpent. It was called the "earth-dragon" at
  3448. 100
  3449. Delphi, which is always represented in sculpture and
  3450. vase-paintings as a serpent.
  3451. In Greek mythology the guardian of the Omphalus Stone at
  3452. the temple at Delphi was an oracle whose name was
  3453. Python, the serpent. 170 (Footnote) She was an IS-BE, who was
  3454. conquered by a "god" named Apollo. He buried her under
  3455. the Omphalos stone. This is a case of one "god" setting
  3456. up his temple on the grave of another. This is a very
  3457. accurate euphemism for The Domain Force that detected
  3458. and disabled the "Old Empire" temple network on Earth.
  3459. It was one of the fatal blows to the "Old Empire" Force
  3460. in the solar system of Earth.
  3461. 559 BCE --
  3462. The Commanding Officer of The Domain Battalion who was
  3463. lost in 5,965 BCE was detected and located by a search
  3464. party sent to Earth from The Domain Expeditionary Force.
  3465. He was incarnated as Cyrus II of Persia during this
  3466. time. 171 (Footnote)
  3467. A unique system of organization was used by Cyrus II 172
  3468. (Footnote) and the members of that Battalion who followed
  3469. him from India through his progression of human lives on
  3470. Earth. In part, it enabled them to build the largest
  3471. empire in the history of the Earth to that date.
  3472. The Domain Search Party who located him traveled around
  3473. the Earth searching for the lost Battalion for several
  3474. thousand years. The party consisted of 900 officers of
  3475. The Domain, divided into teams of 300 each. One team
  3476. searched the land, another team search the oceans and
  3477. the third team searched the space surrounding Earth.
  3478. There are many reports made in various human
  3479. civilizations concerning their activities, which humans
  3480. did not understand, of course.
  3481. The Domain Search Party devised a wide variety of
  3482. electronic detection devices needed to track the
  3483. electronic signature or wavelength of each of the
  3484. missing members of the Battalion. Some were used in
  3485. space, others on land, and special devices were invented
  3486. to detect IS-BEs under water.
  3487. One of these electronic detection devices is referred to
  3488. as a "tree of life". 173 (Footnote) The device is literally a
  3489. 101
  3490. tool designed to detect the presence of life, which is
  3491. an IS-BE. This was a large electronic screen generator
  3492. designed to permeate wide areas. To the ancient humans
  3493. on Earth it resembled a sort of tree, since is consists
  3494. of an interwoven lattice of electronic field generators
  3495. and receivers. The electronic field detects the
  3496. presence of IS-BEs, whether the IS-BE is occupying a
  3497. body, or if they are outside a body.
  3498. A portable version of this detection device was carried
  3499. by each of the members of The Domain Search Party.
  3500. Stone carvings in Sumeria show winged beings using
  3501. pinecone-shaped instruments to scan the bodies of human
  3502. beings. They are also shown carrying the power unit for
  3503. the scanner which are depicted as stylized baskets or
  3504. water buckets, being carried by eagle-headed, winged
  3505. beings. 174 (Footnote)
  3506. Members of the aerial unit of The Domain Search Party,
  3507. led by Ahura Mazda, were often called "winged gods" in
  3508. human interpretations. Throughout the Persian
  3509. civilization there are a great many stone relief carving
  3510. that depict winged space craft, that they called a
  3511. "faravahar". 175 (Footnote)
  3512. Members of the Aquatic Unit of The Domain Search Party
  3513. were called "Oannes" by local humans. 176 (Footnote) Stone
  3514. carvings of the so-called Oannes are shown wearing
  3515. silver diving suits. They lived in the sea and appeared
  3516. to the human population to be men dressed to look like
  3517. fish. Some members of the lost Battalion were found in
  3518. the oceans inhabiting the bodies of dolphins or whales. 177
  3519. (Footnote)
  3520. On land, The Domain Search Party members were referred
  3521. to as "Annunaki" 178 (Footnote) by the Sumerians, and
  3522. "Nephilim", in the Bible. Of course, their true mission
  3523. and activities were never disclosed to homo sapiens.
  3524. Their activities have been purposefully disguised.
  3525. Therefore, the human stories and legends about the
  3526. Annunaki, and the other members of The Domain Search
  3527. Party have not been understood and were badly
  3528. misinterpreted.
  3529. In the absence of complete and accurate data, anyone
  3530. observing a phenomenon will assume or hypothesize
  3531. explanations in an attempt to make sense of the data.
  3532. 102
  3533. Therefore, although mythology and history may be based
  3534. on factual events, they are likewise full of
  3535. misunderstood and misinterpreted evaluations of the
  3536. data, and embellished with assumptions, theories and
  3537. hypotheses which are false.
  3538. The space unit of The Domain Expeditionary Force are
  3539. shown flying in a "Winged-Disc". 179 (Footnote) This is an
  3540. allusion to the spiritual power of the IS-BEs, as well
  3541. as to the space craft used by The Domain Search Party.
  3542. The Commander of the lost Battalion, as Cyrus II, was an
  3543. IS-BE who was regarded as a messiah on Earth by both the
  3544. Jews, and the Muslims. In less than 50 years he
  3545. established a highly ethical, and humanitarian
  3546. philosophy which pervaded all of Western Civilization.
  3547. 180 (Footnote)
  3548. His territorial conquests, organization of people and
  3549. monumental building projects were unprecedented before
  3550. or since. Such sweeping accomplishments in a short
  3551. period of time could only have been achieved by a leader
  3552. and a team of trained officers, pilots, engineers and
  3553. crew members of a unit of The Domain, acting as a team,
  3554. who had been trained and worked together for thousands
  3555. of years.
  3556. Although we have discovered the location of many of the
  3557. IS-BEs in the lost Battalion, The Domain has been unable
  3558. to restore their memory and return them to active duty
  3559. as yet.
  3560. Of course we cannot transport IS-BEs who are inhabiting
  3561. biological bodies to the space stations of The Domain
  3562. since there is no oxygen in our space craft. Also we do
  3563. not maintain life support facilities for biological
  3564. entities there. Our only hope has been to locate and
  3565. rekindle the awareness, memory and identity of the ISBEs of the Lost Battalion. One day they will be capable
  3566. of rejoining us.
  3567. 200 BCE --
  3568. The last remnant of the "Old Empire" pyramid
  3569. civilization is at "Teotihuacán" 181 (Footnote). The Aztec
  3570. name means “place of the gods” or “where men were
  3571. transformed into gods”. Like the astronomical
  3572. 103
  3573. configuration of the Giza pyramids in Egypt, the entire
  3574. complex is a precise scale-model of the solar system
  3575. that accurately reflects the orbital distances of the
  3576. inner planets, the asteroid belt, Jupiter, Saturn,
  3577. Uranus, Neptune, and Pluto. Since the planet Uranus had
  3578. only been "discovered" with modern Earth telescopes in
  3579. 1787, and Pluto not until 1930, it is apparent that the
  3580. builders had information from "other sources".
  3581. A common element of the Pyramid Civilizations around the
  3582. Earth is the constant use of the image of the snake,
  3583. dragon, or serpent. This is because the beings who
  3584. planted these civilizations here want to create an
  3585. illusion that the "gods" are reptilian. This is also a
  3586. part of an illusion designed to perpetuate amnesia. The
  3587. beings who placed false civilizations on Earth are ISBEs, just like you. Many of the biological bodies
  3588. inhabited by IS-BEs in the "Old Empire" are very similar
  3589. in appearance to the bodies on Earth. The "gods" are
  3590. not reptiles, although they often behave like snakes.
  3591. 1,034 - 1,124 AD --
  3592. The entire Arab world was enslaved by one man: Hasan
  3593. ibn-al-Sabbah 182 (Footnote) , the Old Man of the Mountain. He
  3594. established the Hashshashin who operated a part of
  3595. Mohammedanism which controlled by terror and fear much
  3596. of India, Asia Minor and most of the Mediterranean
  3597. Basin. They became a priesthood that used an extremely
  3598. effective mind-control mechanism and extortion tool that
  3599. enabled the "Assassins" to control the civilized world
  3600. for several hundred years.
  3601. Their method was simple. Young men were kidnapped and
  3602. knocked unconscious with hashish. They were taken to a
  3603. garden filled with beautiful black-eyed houris in a
  3604. harem decorated with rivers of milk and honey. The
  3605. young men were told that they were in paradise. They
  3606. were promised they could return and live there forever
  3607. if they sacrificed themselves as an assassin of whomever
  3608. they were commanded to kill. The men were knocked out
  3609. again, and shoved out into the world to carry out the
  3610. assassination mission.
  3611. Meanwhile, the Old Man of the Mountain sent a messenger
  3612. to the caliph or, whatever wealthy ruler from whom they
  3613. demanded payment, demanding camel-loads of gold, spices,
  3614. 104
  3615. incense or other valuables. If payment did not arrive
  3616. on time, the assassin would be sent to kill the
  3617. offending party. There was virtually no defense against
  3618. the unknown assailant who wanted nothing more than to
  3619. carry out his mission, be killed and return to "heaven".
  3620. This is a very crude example of how simple and effective
  3621. a brainwashing and mind-control operation can be when it
  3622. is used skillfully, and forcefully. It is a small scale
  3623. demonstration of how the amnesia mind-control operation
  3624. is used against the entire IS-BE population of Earth by
  3625. the "Old Empire".
  3626. 1119 AD --
  3627. The Knights Templar 183 (Footnote) was established as a
  3628. Christian military unit after the First Crusade but
  3629. quickly transformed into the basis for the international
  3630. banking system to accumulate money to conduct the agenda
  3631. of operatives for vestiges of the "Old Empire" on Earth.
  3632. 1135 - 1230 AD --
  3633. The Domain Expeditionary Force completed the
  3634. annihilation of the remaining remnants of the "Old
  3635. Empire" space fleet operating in the solar system around
  3636. Earth. Unfortunately, their long established thought
  3637. control operation remains largely intact.
  3638. 1307 AD --
  3639. The Knights Templar was disbanded by King Philip IV of
  3640. France, who was deeply in debt to the Order. 184 (Footnote) He
  3641. pressured Pope Clement V to condemn the Order's members,
  3642. have them arrested, tortured them into giving false
  3643. confessions, and burned them at the stake in an effort
  3644. to erase his debt by seizing all of their wealth.
  3645. A majority of the Templars fled to Switzerland where
  3646. they established an international banking system 185
  3647. (Footnote) which secretly controls the economy of Earth.
  3648. "Old Empire" operatives act as an unseen influence on
  3649. international bankers. 186 (Footnote) The banks are operated
  3650. covertly as a on-combatant provocateur to covertly
  3651. promote and finance weapons and warfare between the
  3652. nations of Earth. Warfare is an internal mechanism of
  3653. 105
  3654. control over the inmate population. 187 (Footnote)
  3655. The purpose of the senseless genocide and carnage of
  3656. wars financed by these international banks is to prevent
  3657. the IS-BEs of Earth from sharing open communication,
  3658. cooperate together in activities that might enable ISBEs to prosper, become enlightened, and escape their
  3659. imprisonment."
  3660. 106
  3661. Chapter Ten
  3662. A Lesson In Biology
  3663. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  3664. "My debrief was also tape recorded as a back up and to add clarification to the
  3665. stenographic notes. I debriefed immediately after my interview so that everything
  3666. that was said was still fresh in my mind.
  3667. When I recounted these stories to the gallery stenographer I was still reeling a bit.
  3668. The perspective on Earth history from the point of view of The Domain is very
  3669. strange, to say the least. I wasn't sure if my uncomfortable feeling came from being
  3670. dis-oriented, or if it came from being re-oriented. Either way, I felt unsteady and
  3671. confused. Yet, at the same time, there was a ring of truth to it. I was elated and
  3672. incredulous at the same time!
  3673. The stenographer looked askance at me more than a few times as she recorded the
  3674. "history lesson" I passed on to her. I'm sure she thought I was losing my mind!
  3675. Maybe she was right. However, if my mind had been filled with hypnotic
  3676. suggestions and false memories by the "Old Empire", as Airl suggested, perhaps
  3677. losing my mind would be a good idea!
  3678. I didn't have much time to ponder my own, personal thoughts about these things at
  3679. the time. It was my duty to get all of the information I could from Airl and pass it on
  3680. to the stenographer as soon as Airl was finished. My job was not to analyze the
  3681. information, just report it as accurately as possible. The analysis would be left to the
  3682. men in the gallery, or whomever else was receiving copies of the transcripts.
  3683. I also delivered a list of books and materials requested by Airl to the agent in the
  3684. gallery room so these could be gathered and delivered to Airl. Each night after I left
  3685. Airl, she spent the rest of the night reading or "scanning" the materials which had
  3686. been delivered to her. The members of the gallery each received a transcript of the
  3687. stenographic dictation to study, each looking for information that was of interest to
  3688. them. In the morning after breakfast I reported back to the interview room to
  3689. continue my interviews or "lessons" with Airl."
  3690. 107
  3691. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  3692. TOP SECRET
  3693. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  3694. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  3695. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 28. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  3696. "The origins of this universe and life on Earth, as
  3697. discussed in the textbooks I have read, are very
  3698. inaccurate. Since you serve your government as a
  3699. medical personnel, your duties require that you
  3700. understand biological entities. So, I am sure that you
  3701. will appreciate the value of the material I will share
  3702. with you today.
  3703. The text of books I have been given on subjects related
  3704. to the function of life forms contain information that
  3705. is based on false memories, inaccurate observation,
  3706. missing data, unproven theories, and superstition.
  3707. For example, just a few hundred years ago your
  3708. physicians practiced bloodletting 188 (Footnote) as a means to
  3709. release supposed ill-humors from the body in an attempt
  3710. to relieve or heal a wide variety of physical and mental
  3711. afflictions. Although this has been corrected somewhat,
  3712. many barbarisms are still being practiced in the name of
  3713. medical science.
  3714. In addition to the application of incorrect theories
  3715. concerning biological engineering, many primary errors
  3716. that Earth scientists make are the result of an
  3717. ignorance of the nature and relative importance of ISBEs as the source of energy and intelligence which
  3718. animate every life form.
  3719. Although it is not a priority of The Domain to intervene
  3720. in the affairs of Earth, The Domain Communications
  3721. Office has authorized me to provide you with some
  3722. information in an effort to provide a more accurate and
  3723. complete understanding of these things and thereby
  3724. enable you to discover more effective solutions to the
  3725. unique problems you face on Earth.
  3726. The correct information about the origins of biological
  3727. entities has been erased from your mind, as well as from
  3728. 108
  3729. the minds of your mentors. In order to help you regain
  3730. your own memory, I will share with you some factual
  3731. material concerning the origin of biological entities.
  3732. I asked Airl if she was referring to the subject of
  3733. evolution. Airl said, "No, not exactly".
  3734. You will find "evolution" mentioned in the ancient Vedic
  3735. Hymns. 189 (Footnote) The Vedic texts are like folk tales or
  3736. common wisdoms and superstitions gathered throughout the
  3737. systems of The Domain. These were compiled into verses,
  3738. like a book of rhymes. For every statement of truth,
  3739. the verses contain as many half-truths, reversals of
  3740. truth and fanciful imaginings, blended without
  3741. qualification or distinction.
  3742. The theory of evolution assumes that the motivational
  3743. source of energy that animates every life form does not
  3744. exist. It assumes that an inanimate object or a
  3745. chemical concoction can suddenly become "alive" or
  3746. animate accidentally or spontaneously. Or, perhaps an
  3747. electrical discharge into a pool of chemical ooze will
  3748. magically spawn a self-animated entity.
  3749. There is no evidence whatsoever that this is true,
  3750. simply because it is not true. Dr. Frankenstein did not
  3751. really resurrect the dead into a marauding monster,
  3752. except in the imagination of the IS-BE who wrote a
  3753. fictitious story one dark and stormy night. 190 (Footnote)
  3754. No Western scientist ever stopped to consider who, what,
  3755. where, when or how this animation happens. Complete
  3756. ignorance, denial or unawareness of the spirit as the
  3757. source of life force required to animate inanimate
  3758. objects or cellular tissue is the sole cause of failures
  3759. in Western medicine.
  3760. In addition, evolution does not occur accidentally. It
  3761. requires a great deal of technology which must be
  3762. manipulated under the careful supervision of IS-BEs.
  3763. Very simple examples are seen in the modification of
  3764. farm animals or in the breeding of dogs. However, the
  3765. notion that human biological organisms evolved naturally
  3766. from earlier ape-like forms is incorrect. No physical
  3767. evidence will ever be uncovered to substantiate the
  3768. notion that modern humanoid bodies evolved on this
  3769. planet.
  3770. 109
  3771. The reason is simple: the idea that human bodies evolved
  3772. spontaneously from the primordial ooze of chemical
  3773. interactivity in the dim mists of time is nothing more
  3774. than a hypnotic lie instilled by the amnesia operation
  3775. to prevent your recollection of the true origins of
  3776. Mankind. Factually, humanoid bodies have existed in
  3777. various forms throughout the universe for trillions of
  3778. years.
  3779. This was compounded by the fact that The Vedic Hymns
  3780. were brought to Earth 8,200 years ago by The Domain
  3781. Expeditionary Force. While they were based in the
  3782. Himalaya Mountains, the verses were taught to some of
  3783. the local humans who memorized them. However, I should
  3784. note that this was not an authorized activity for the
  3785. crew of The Domain installation, although I am sure it
  3786. seemed like an innocent diversion for them at the time.
  3787. The verses were passed along verbally from one
  3788. generation to the next for thousands of years in the
  3789. foothills and eventually spread throughout India. No
  3790. one in The Domain credits any of the material in the
  3791. Vedic Hymns as factual material, any more than you would
  3792. use "Grimm's Fairy Tales" 191 (Footnote) as a guide for
  3793. rearing children. However, on a planet where all of the
  3794. IS-BEs have had their memory erased, one can understand
  3795. how these tales and fantasies could be taken seriously.
  3796. Unfortunately, the humans who learned the Vedic verses
  3797. passed them along to others saying that they came from
  3798. "the gods". Eventually, the content of the verses were
  3799. adopted verbatim as "truth". The euphemistic and
  3800. metaphorical content of the Veda were accepted and
  3801. practiced as dogmatic fact. The philosophy of the
  3802. verses were ignored and the verses became the genesis of
  3803. nearly every religion practice on the planet, especially
  3804. Hinduism. 192 (Footnote)
  3805. As an officer, pilot and engineer of The Domain, I must
  3806. always assume a very pragmatic point of view. I could
  3807. not be effective or accomplish my missions if I were to
  3808. use philosophical dogma or rhetoric as my operations
  3809. manual. Therefore, our discussion of history is based
  3810. on actual events that occurred long before any IS-BEs
  3811. arrived on Earth, and long before the "Old Empire” came
  3812. 110
  3813. into power. I can relate part of this history from
  3814. personal experience:
  3815. Many billions of years ago I was a member of a very
  3816. large biological laboratory in a galaxy far from this
  3817. one. It was called the "Arcadia Regeneration Company".
  3818. 193 (Footnote) I was a biological engineer working with a
  3819. large staff of technicians. It was our business to
  3820. manufacture and supply new life forms to uninhabited
  3821. planets. There were millions of star systems with
  3822. millions of inhabitable planets in the region at that
  3823. time.
  3824. There were many other biological laboratory companies at
  3825. that time also. Each of them specialized in producing
  3826. different kinds of life forms, depending on the "class"
  3827. of the planet being populated. Over a long span of time
  3828. these laboratories developed a vast catalogue of species
  3829. throughout the galaxies. The majority of basic genetic
  3830. material is common to all species of life. 194 (Footnote)
  3831. Therefore, most of their work was concerned with
  3832. manipulating alterations of the basic genetic pattern to
  3833. produce variations of life forms that would be suitable
  3834. inhabitants for various planetary classes.
  3835. The "Arcadia Regeneration Company" specialized in
  3836. mammals for forested areas and birds for tropical
  3837. regions. Our marketing staff negotiated contracts with
  3838. various planetary governments and independent buyers
  3839. from all over the universe. The technicians created
  3840. animals that were compatible with the variations in
  3841. climate, atmospheric and terrestrial density and
  3842. chemical content. In addition we were paid to integrate
  3843. our specimens with biological organisms engineered by
  3844. other companies already living on a planet.
  3845. In order to do this our staff was in communication with
  3846. other companies who created life forms. There were
  3847. industry trade shows, publications and a variety of
  3848. other information supplied through an association that
  3849. coordinated related projects.
  3850. As you can imagine, our research required a great deal
  3851. of interstellar travel to conduct planetary surveys.
  3852. This is when I learned my skills as a pilot. The data
  3853. gathered was accumulated in huge computer databases and
  3854. evaluated by biological engineers. 195 (Footnote)
  3855. 111
  3856. A computer is an electronic device that serves as an
  3857. artificial "brain" or complex calculating machine. It
  3858. is capable of storing information, making computations,
  3859. solving problems and performing mechanical functions.
  3860. In most of the galactic systems of the universe, very
  3861. large computers are commonly used to run the routine
  3862. administration, mechanical services and maintenance
  3863. activities of an entire planet or planetary system.
  3864. Based on the survey data gathered, designs and artistic
  3865. renderings were made for new creatures. Some designs
  3866. were sold to the highest bidder. Other life forms were
  3867. created to meet the customized requests of our clients.
  3868. The design and technical specifications were passed
  3869. along an assembly line through a series of cellular,
  3870. chemical, and mechanical engineers to solve the various
  3871. problems. It was their job to integrate all of the
  3872. component factors into a workable, functional and
  3873. aesthetic finished product.
  3874. Prototypes of these creatures were then produced and
  3875. tested in artificially created environments.
  3876. Imperfections were worked out, modifications made and
  3877. eventually the new life form was "endowed" or "animated"
  3878. with a life force or spiritual energy before being
  3879. introduced into the actual planetary environment for
  3880. final testing.
  3881. After a new life form was introduced, we monitored the
  3882. interaction of these biological organisms with the
  3883. planetary environment and with other indigenous
  3884. life-forms. Conflicts resulting from the interaction
  3885. between incompatible organisms were resolved through
  3886. negotiation between ourselves and other companies. The
  3887. negotiations usually resulted in compromises requiring
  3888. further modification to our creatures or to theirs or
  3889. both. This is part of a science or art you call
  3890. "Eugenics". 196 (Footnote)
  3891. In some cases changes were made in the planetary
  3892. environment, but not often, as planet building is much
  3893. more complex than making changes to an individual life
  3894. form.
  3895. 112
  3896. Coincidentally, a friend and engineer with whom I used
  3897. to work with at the Arcadia Regeneration Company -- a
  3898. long time after I left the company -- told me that one
  3899. of the projects they contracted to do, in more recent
  3900. times, was to deliver life forms to Earth to replenish
  3901. them after a war in this region of the galaxy devastated
  3902. most of the life on the planets in this region of space.
  3903. This would have been about seventy million years ago.
  3904. The skill required to modify the planet into an
  3905. ecologically interactive environment that will support
  3906. billions of diverse species was an immense undertaking.
  3907. Specialized consultants from nearly every biotechnology
  3908. company in the galaxy were brought in to help with the
  3909. project.
  3910. What you see now on Earth is the huge variety of life
  3911. forms left behind. Your scientists believe that the
  3912. fallacious "theory of evolution" is an explanation for
  3913. the existence of all the life forms here. The truth is
  3914. that all life forms on this and any other planet in this
  3915. universe were created by companies like ours.
  3916. How else can you explain the millions of completely
  3917. divergent and unrelated species of life on the land and
  3918. in the oceans of this planet? How else can you explain
  3919. the source of spiritual animation which defines every
  3920. living creature? To say it is the work of "god", is far
  3921. too broad. Every IS-BE has many names and faces in many
  3922. times and places. Every IS-BE is a god. When they
  3923. inhabit a physical object they are the source of Life.
  3924. For example, there are millions of species 197 (Footnote) of
  3925. insects. About 350,000 of these are species of beetles.
  3926. 198 (Footnote) There may be as many as 100 million species of
  3927. life forms on Earth at any given time. In addition,
  3928. there are many times more extinct species of life on
  3929. Earth than there are living life forms. Some of these
  3930. will be rediscovered in the fossil or geological records
  3931. of Earth.
  3932. The current "theory of evolution" of life forms on Earth
  3933. does not consider the phenomena of biological diversity.
  3934. Evolution by natural selection is science fiction. One
  3935. species does not accidentally, or randomly evolve to
  3936. become another species, as the Earth textbooks indicate,
  3937. 113
  3938. without manipulation of genetic material by an IS-BE. 199
  3939. (Footnote)
  3940. A simple example of IS-BE intervention is the selective
  3941. breeding of a species 200 (Footnote) on Earth. Within the past
  3942. few hundred years several hundred dog breeds and
  3943. hundreds of varieties of pigeons and dozens of Koi fish
  3944. have been "evolved" in just a few years, beginning with
  3945. only one original breed. Without active intervention by
  3946. IS-BEs, biological organisms rarely change.
  3947. The development of an animal like the 'duck-billed
  3948. platypus' required a lot of very clever engineering to
  3949. combine the body of a beaver with the bill of a duck and
  3950. make a mammal that lays eggs. Undoubtedly, some wealthy
  3951. client placed a "special order" for it as a gift or
  3952. curious amusement. I am sure the laboratory of some
  3953. biotechnical company worked on it for years to make it a
  3954. self-replicating life form!
  3955. The notion that the creation of any life form could have
  3956. resulted from a coincidental chemical interaction
  3957. moldering up from some primordial ooze is beyond
  3958. absurdity! Factually, some organisms on Earth, such as
  3959. Proteobacteria, 201 (Footnote) are modifications of a Phylum 202
  3960. (Footnote) designed primarily for "Star Type 3, Class C"
  3961. planets. In other words, The Domain designation for a
  3962. planet with an anaerobic atmosphere nearest a large,
  3963. intensely hot blue star, 203 (Footnote) such as those in the
  3964. constellation of Orion's Belt in this galaxy.
  3965. Creating life forms is very complex, highly technical
  3966. work for IS-BEs who specialize in this field. Genetic
  3967. anomalies are very baffling to Earth biologists who have
  3968. had their memory erased. Unfortunately, the false
  3969. memory implantations of the "Old Empire" prevent Earth
  3970. scientists from observing obvious anomalies.
  3971. The greatest technical challenge of biological organisms
  3972. was the invention of self-regeneration, or sexual
  3973. reproduction. It was invented as the solution to the
  3974. problem of having to continually manufacture replacement
  3975. creatures for those that had been destroyed and eaten by
  3976. other creatures. Planetary governments did not want to
  3977. keep buying replacement animals.
  3978. 114
  3979. The idea was contrived trillions of years ago as a
  3980. result of a conference held to resolve arguments between
  3981. the disputing vested interests within the biotechnology
  3982. industry. The infamous "Council of Yuhmi-Krum" was
  3983. responsible for coordinating creature production.
  3984. 204 (Footnote)
  3985. A compromise was reached, after certain members of the
  3986. Council were strategically bribed or murdered, to author
  3987. an agreement which resulted in the biological phenomenon
  3988. which we now call the "food chain".
  3989. The idea that a creature would need to consume the body
  3990. of another life form as an energy source was offered as
  3991. a solution by one of the biggest companies in the
  3992. biological engineering business. They specialized in
  3993. creating insects and flowering plants.
  3994. The connection between the two is obvious. Nearly every
  3995. flowering plant requires a symbiotic relationship with
  3996. an insect in order to propagate. The reason is obvious:
  3997. both the bugs and the flowers were created by the same
  3998. company. Unfortunately, this same company also had a
  3999. division which created parasites and bacteria.
  4000. The name of the company roughly translated into English
  4001. would be "Bugs & Blossoms" . They wanted to justify the
  4002. fact that the only valid purpose of the parasitic
  4003. creatures they manufactured was to aid the decomposition
  4004. of organic material. There was a very limited market
  4005. for such creatures at that time.
  4006. In order to expand their business they hired a big
  4007. public relations firm and a powerful group of political
  4008. lobbyists to glorify the idea that life forms should
  4009. feed from other life forms. They invented a "scientific
  4010. theory" to use as a promotion gimmick. The theory was
  4011. that all creatures needed to have "food" as a source of
  4012. energy. Before that, none of the life forms being
  4013. manufactured required any external energy. Animals did
  4014. not eat other animals for food, but consumed sunlight,
  4015. minerals or vegetable matter only.
  4016. Of course, "Bugs & Blossoms" went into the business of
  4017. designing and manufacturing carnivores. Before long, so
  4018. many animals were being eaten as food that the problem
  4019. of replenishing them became very difficult. As a
  4020. 115
  4021. 'solution', "Bugs & Blossoms" proposed, with the help of
  4022. some strategically placed bribes in high places, that
  4023. other companies begin using 'sexual reproduction' as the
  4024. basis for replenishing life-forms. "Bugs & Blossoms"
  4025. was the first company to develop blueprints for sexual
  4026. reproduction, of course.
  4027. As expected, the patent licenses for the biological
  4028. engineering process 205 (Footnote) required to implant
  4029. stimulus-response mating, cellular division and preprogrammed growth patterns for self-regenerating animals
  4030. were owned by "Bugs & Blossoms" too.
  4031. Through the next few million years laws were passed that
  4032. required that these programs be purchased by the other
  4033. biological technology companies. These were required to
  4034. be imprinted into the cellular design of all existing
  4035. life-forms. It became a very expensive undertaking for
  4036. other biotechnology companies to make such an awkward,
  4037. and impractical idea work.
  4038. This led to the corruption and downfall of the entire
  4039. industry. Ultimately, the 'food and sex' idea
  4040. completely ruined the bio-technology industry, including
  4041. "Bugs & Blossoms". The entire industry faded away as
  4042. the market for manufactured life forms disappeared.
  4043. Consequently, when a species became extinct, there is no
  4044. way to replace them because the technology of creating
  4045. new life forms has been lost. Obviously, none of this
  4046. technology was ever known on Earth, and probably never
  4047. will be.
  4048. There are still computer files on some planets far from
  4049. here which record the procedures for biological
  4050. engineering. Possibly the laboratories and computers
  4051. still exist somewhere. However, there is no one around
  4052. doing anything with them. Therefore, you can understand
  4053. why it is so important for The Domain to protect the
  4054. dwindling number of creatures left on Earth.
  4055. The core concept behind 'sexual reproduction' technology
  4056. was the invention of a chemical/electronic interaction
  4057. called "cyclical stimulus-response generators". 206 (Footnote)
  4058. This is an programmed genetic mechanism which causes a
  4059. seemingly spontaneous, recurring impulse to reproduce.
  4060. The same technique was later adapted and applied to
  4061. biological flesh bodies, including Homo Sapiens.
  4062. 116
  4063. Another important mechanism used in the reproductive
  4064. process, especially with Homo Sapiens type bodies, is
  4065. the implantation of a "chemical-electrical trigger"
  4066. mechanism 207 (Footnote) in the body. The "trigger" which
  4067. attracts IS-BEs to inhabit a human body, or any kind of
  4068. "flesh body", is the use of an artificially imprinted
  4069. electronic wave which uses "aesthetic pain" to attract
  4070. the IS-BE.
  4071. Every trap in the universe, including those used to
  4072. capture IS-BEs who remain free, is "baited" with an
  4073. aesthetic electronic wave. The sensations caused by the
  4074. aesthetic wavelength are more attractive to an IS-BE
  4075. than any other sensation. When the electronic waves of
  4076. pain and beauty are combined together, this causes the
  4077. IS-BE to get "stuck" in the body.
  4078. The "reproductive trigger" used for lesser life forms,
  4079. such as cattle and other mammals, is triggered by
  4080. chemicals emitted from the scent glands, combined with
  4081. reproductive chemical-electrical impulses stimulated by
  4082. testosterone, or estrogen. 208 (Footnote)
  4083. These are also interactive with nutrition levels which
  4084. cause the life form to reproduce more when deprived of
  4085. food sources. Starvation promoted reproductive activity
  4086. as a means of perpetuating survival through future
  4087. regenerations, when the current organism fails to
  4088. survive. These fundamental principles have been applied
  4089. throughout all species of life.
  4090. The debilitating impact and addiction to the "sexual
  4091. aesthetic-pain" electronic wave 209 (Footnote) is the reason
  4092. that the ruling class of The Domain do not inhabit flesh
  4093. bodies. This is also why officers of The Domain Forces
  4094. only use doll bodies. This wave has proven to be the
  4095. most effective trapping device ever created in the
  4096. history of the universe, as far as I know.
  4097. The civilizations of The Domain and the "Old Empire"
  4098. both depend on this device to "recruit" and maintain a
  4099. work force of IS-BEs who inhabit flesh bodies on planets
  4100. and installations. These IS-BEs are the "working class"
  4101. beings who do all of the slavish, manual, undesirable
  4102. work on planets.
  4103. 117
  4104. As I mentioned, there is a very highly regimented and
  4105. fixed hierarchy or "class system" for all IS-BEs
  4106. throughout the "Old Empire", and The Domain, as follows:
  4107. The highest class are "free" IS-BEs. That is, they are
  4108. not restricted to the use of any type of body and may
  4109. come and go at will, provided that they do not destroy
  4110. or interfere with the social, economic or political
  4111. structure.
  4112. Below this class are many strata of "limited" IS-BEs who
  4113. may or may not use a body from time to time.
  4114. Limitations are imposed on each IS-BE regarding range of
  4115. power, ability and mobility they can exercise.
  4116. Below these are the "doll body" classes, to which I
  4117. belong. Nearly all space officers and crew members of
  4118. space craft are required to travel through intergalactic
  4119. space. Therefore, they are each equipped with a body
  4120. manufactured from light weight, durable materials.
  4121. Various body types have been designed to facilitate
  4122. specialized functions. Some bodies have accessories,
  4123. such as interchangeable tools or apparatus for
  4124. activities such as maintenance, mining, chemical
  4125. management, navigation, and so forth. There are many
  4126. gradations of this body type which also serve as an
  4127. "insignia" of rank.
  4128. Below these are the soldier class. The soldiers are
  4129. equipped with a myriad of weapons, and specialized
  4130. armaments designed to detect, combat and overwhelm any
  4131. imaginable foe. Some soldiers are issued mechanical
  4132. bodies. Most soldiers are merely remote controlled
  4133. robots with no class designation.
  4134. The lower classes are limited to "flesh bodies". Of
  4135. course, it is not possible for these to travel through
  4136. space for obvious reasons. Fundamentally, flesh bodies
  4137. are far too fragile to endure the stresses of gravity,
  4138. temperature extremes, radiation exposure, atmospheric
  4139. chemicals and the vacuum of space. There are also the
  4140. obvious logistical inconveniences of food, defecation,
  4141. sleep, atmospheric elements, and air pressure required
  4142. by flesh bodies, that doll bodies do not require.
  4143. Most flesh bodies will suffocate in only a few minutes
  4144. without a specific combination of atmospheric chemicals.
  4145. 118
  4146. After 2 or 3 days the bacteria which live internally and
  4147. externally on the body cause severe odors to be emitted.
  4148. Odors of any kind are not acceptable in a space vessel.
  4149. Flesh can tolerate only a very limited spectrum of
  4150. temperatures, whereas in space the contrast of
  4151. temperatures may vary hundreds of degrees within
  4152. seconds. Of course flesh bodies are utterly useless for
  4153. military duty. A single shot from a hand-held,
  4154. electronic blast gun instantly turns a flesh body into a
  4155. noxious vapor cloud.
  4156. IS-BEs who inhabit flesh bodies have lost much of their
  4157. native ability and power. Although it is theoretically
  4158. possible to regain or rehabilitate these abilities, no
  4159. practical means has been discovered or authorized by The
  4160. Domain.
  4161. Even though space craft of The Domain travel trillions
  4162. of "light years" in a single day, 210 (Footnote) the time
  4163. required to traverse the space between galaxies is
  4164. significant, not to mention the length of time to
  4165. complete just one set of mission orders, which may
  4166. require thousands of years. Biological flesh bodies
  4167. live for only a very short time -- only 60 to 150 years,
  4168. at most -- whereas doll bodies can be re-used and
  4169. repaired almost indefinitely.
  4170. The first development of biological bodies began in this
  4171. universe about seventy-four trillion years ago. It
  4172. rapidly became a fad for IS-BEs to create and inhabit
  4173. various types of bodies for an assortment of nefarious
  4174. reasons: especially for amusement, this is to
  4175. experience various physical sensations vicariously
  4176. through the body.
  4177. Since that time there has been a continuing "deevolution" in the relationship of IS-BEs to bodies. As
  4178. IS-BEs continued to play around with these bodies,
  4179. certain tricks were introduced to cause IS-BEs to get
  4180. trapped inside a body so they were unable to leave
  4181. again.
  4182. This was done primarily by making bodies that appeared
  4183. sturdy, but were actually very fragile. An IS-BE, using
  4184. their natural power to create energy, accidentally
  4185. injured a body when contacting it. The IS-BE was
  4186. 119
  4187. remorseful about having injured this fragile body. The
  4188. next time they encountered a body they began to be
  4189. "careful" with them. In so doing, the IS-BE would
  4190. withdraw or minimize their own power so as not to injure
  4191. the body. A very long and treacherous history of this
  4192. kind of trickery, combined with similar misadventures
  4193. eventually resulted in a large number of IS-BEs becoming
  4194. permanently trapped in bodies.
  4195. Of course this became a profitable enterprise for some
  4196. IS-BEs who took advantage of this situation to make
  4197. slaves of others. The resulting enslavement progressed
  4198. over trillions of years, and continues today.
  4199. Ultimately the dwindling ability of IS-BEs to maintain a
  4200. personal state of operational freedom and ability to
  4201. create energy resulted in the vast and carefully guarded
  4202. hierarchy or class system. Using bodies as a symbol of
  4203. each class is used throughout the "Old Empire", as well
  4204. as The Domain.
  4205. The vast majority of IS-BEs throughout the galaxies of
  4206. this universe inhabit some form of flesh body. The
  4207. structure, appearance, operation and habitat of these
  4208. bodies vary according to the gravity, atmosphere, and
  4209. climatic conditions of the planet they inhabit. Body
  4210. types are predetermined largely by the type and size of
  4211. the star around which the planet revolves, the distance
  4212. from the star, the geological, as well as the
  4213. atmospheric components of the planet.
  4214. On the average, these stars and planets fall into
  4215. gradients of classification which are fairly standard
  4216. throughout the universe. For example, Earth is
  4217. identified, roughly, as a "Sun Type 12, Class 7 planet".
  4218. That is a heavy gravity, nitrogen/oxygen atmosphere
  4219. planet, 211 (Footnote) with biological life-forms, in
  4220. proximity to a single, yellow, medium-size, lowradiation sun or "Type 12 star". The proper
  4221. designations are difficult to translate accurately due
  4222. to the extreme limitations of astronomical nomenclature
  4223. in the English language.
  4224. There are as many varieties of life forms as there are
  4225. grains of sands on the beach. You can imagine how many
  4226. different creatures and types of bodies have been
  4227. manufactured by the millions of companies such as "Bugs
  4228. 120
  4229. & Blossoms" for all of the myriad planetary systems
  4230. during the course of seventy-four trillion years!"
  4231. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  4232. "When Airl finished telling me this "story", there was a long, silent pause while I
  4233. muddled through all this in my mind. Had Airl been reading science fiction books
  4234. and fantasy stories during the night? Why would she tell me something so incredibly
  4235. far-fetched? If there had not been a 40 inch tall alien, with gray "skin", and three
  4236. fingers on each hand and foot sitting directly across from me, I would not have
  4237. believed a single word of it!
  4238. In retrospect, over the 60 years since Airl gave me this information, Earth doctors
  4239. have begun to develop some of the biological engineering technology that Airl told
  4240. me about right here on Earth. Heart bypasses, cloning, test tube babies, organ
  4241. transplants, plastic surgery, genes, chromosomes, and so forth.
  4242. One thing is very sure: I have never looked at a bug or flower the same way since
  4243. then, not to mention my religious belief in Genesis."
  4244. 121
  4245. Chapter Eleven
  4246. A Lesson In Science
  4247. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  4248. "The transcript of this interview is verbatim. There is nothing more I can add to
  4249. it. It says everything".
  4250. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  4251. TOP SECRET
  4252. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  4253. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  4254. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 29. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  4255. "Today Airl told me about some very technical things. I
  4256. took a few notes to remind myself, so I can repeat what
  4257. she said as closely as possible. She began with an
  4258. analogy about scientific knowledge:
  4259. Can you imagine how much progress could have been made
  4260. on Earth if people like Johannes Gutenberg 212 (Footnote), Sir
  4261. Isaac Newton, Benjamin Franklin, George Washington
  4262. Carver, 213 (Footnote) Nicola Tesla, Jonas Salk, 214 (Footnote) and
  4263. Richard Trevithick,215 (Footnote) and many thousands of
  4264. similar geniuses and inventors were living today?
  4265. Image what technical accomplishments might have been
  4266. developed if men like these never died? What if they
  4267. were never given amnesia and made to forget everything
  4268. they knew? What if they continued to learn and work
  4269. forever?
  4270. What level of technology and civilization could be
  4271. attained if Immortal Spiritual Beings like these were
  4272. 122
  4273. allowed to continue to create -- in the same place and
  4274. at the same time -- for billions or trillions of years?
  4275. Essentially, The Domain is one civilization that has
  4276. existed for trillions of years with relatively
  4277. uninterrupted progress. Knowledge has been accumulated,
  4278. refined, and improved upon in nearly every field of
  4279. study imaginable -- and beyond imagining.
  4280. Originally, the interaction of IS-BE illusions or
  4281. inventions created the very fabric of the physical
  4282. universe -- the microcosm and the macrocosm. Every
  4283. single particle of the universe has been imagined and
  4284. brought into existence by an IS-BE. Everything created
  4285. from an idea -- a thought with no weight or size or
  4286. location in space.
  4287. Every speck of dust in space, from the size of the
  4288. tiniest subatomic particle, to the size of a sun or a
  4289. magelantic cloud the size of many galaxies, was created
  4290. from the nothingness of a thought. Even the tiniest,
  4291. individual cells were contrived and coordinated to
  4292. enable a microbial entity to sense, and navigate through
  4293. infinitesimally small spaces. These also came from an
  4294. idea thought up by an IS-BE.
  4295. You, and every IS-BE on Earth, have participated in the
  4296. creation of this universe. Even though you are now
  4297. confined to a fragile body made of flesh; you live for
  4298. only 65 short rotations of your planet around a star;
  4299. you have been given overwhelming electric shock
  4300. treatments to wipe out your memory; you must learn
  4301. everything all over again each lifetime; in spite of all
  4302. these circumstances, you are who you are and will always
  4303. be. And, deep down, you still know that your are and
  4304. what you know. You are still the essence of you.
  4305. How else can one understand the child prodigy? An IS-BE
  4306. who plays concertos on a piano at three years of age,
  4307. without formal training? Impossible, if they did not
  4308. simply remember what they have already learned from
  4309. thousands of lives spent in front of a keyboard in times
  4310. untold, or on planets far away. They may not know how
  4311. they know. They just know.
  4312. Humankind has developed more technology in the past 100
  4313. years than in the previous 2,000 years. Why? The
  4314. 123
  4315. answer is simple: the influence of the "Old Empire"
  4316. over the mind and over the affairs of Mankind has been
  4317. diminished by The Domain.
  4318. A renaissance 216 (Footnote) of invention on Earth began in
  4319. 1,250 AD with the destruction of the "Old Empire" space
  4320. fleet in the solar system. During the next 500 years,
  4321. Earth may have the potential to regain autonomy and
  4322. independence, but only to the degree that humankind can
  4323. apply the concentrated genius of the IS-BEs on Earth to
  4324. solve the amnesia problem.
  4325. However, on a cautionary note, the inventive potential
  4326. of the IS-BEs who have been exiled to this planet is
  4327. severely compromised by the criminal elements of the
  4328. Earth population. Specifically, politicians, warmongers and irresponsible physicists who create
  4329. unlimited weapons such as nuclear bombs, chemicals,
  4330. diseases and social chaos. These have the potential to
  4331. extinguish all life forms on Earth, forever.
  4332. Even the relatively small explosions that were tested
  4333. and used in the past two years on Earth have the
  4334. potential to destroy all of life, if deployed in
  4335. sufficient quantities. Larger weapons could consume all
  4336. of the oxygen in the global atmosphere in a single
  4337. explosion! 217 (Footnote)
  4338. Therefore, the most fundamental problems that must be
  4339. solved in order to ensure that Earth will not be
  4340. destroyed by technology, are social and humanitarian
  4341. problems. The greatest scientific minds of Earth, in
  4342. spite of mathematical or mechanical genius, have never
  4343. addressed these problems.
  4344. Therefore, do not look to scientists to save Earth or
  4345. the future of humanity. Any so-called "science" that is
  4346. solely based on the paradigm 218 (Footnote) that existence is
  4347. composed only of energy and objects moving through space
  4348. is not a science. Such beings utterly ignore the
  4349. creative spark originated by an individual IS-BE and
  4350. collective work of the IS-BEs who continually create the
  4351. physical universe and all universes. Every science will
  4352. remain relatively ineffective or destructive to the
  4353. degree that it omits or devaluates the relative
  4354. importance of the spiritual spark that ignites all of
  4355. creation and life.
  4356. 124
  4357. Unfortunately this ignorance has been very carefully and
  4358. forcefully instilled in human beings by the "Old Empire"
  4359. to ensure that IS-BEs on this planet will not be able to
  4360. recover their innate ability to create space, energy,
  4361. matter and time, or any other component part of
  4362. universes. As long as awareness of the immortal,
  4363. powerful, spiritual "self" is ignored, humanity will
  4364. remain imprisoned until the day of its own, selfdestruction and oblivion.
  4365. Do not rely on the dogma of physical sciences to master
  4366. the fundamental forces of creation any more than you
  4367. would trust the chanted incantations of an incenseburning shaman. The net result of both of these is
  4368. entrapment and oblivion. Scientists pretend to observe,
  4369. but they only suppose that they see, and call it fact.
  4370. Like the blind man, a scientist can not learn to see
  4371. until he realizes that he is blind. The "facts" of
  4372. Earth science do not include the source of creation.
  4373. They include only the result, or byproducts of creation.
  4374. The "facts" of science to not include any memory of the
  4375. nearly infinite past experience of existence.
  4376. The essence of creation and existence cannot be found
  4377. through the lens of a microscope or telescope or by any
  4378. other measurement of the physical universe. One cannot
  4379. comprehend the perfume of a flower or the pain felt by
  4380. an abandoned lover with meters and calipers.
  4381. Everything you will ever know about the creative force
  4382. and ability of a god can be found within you -- an
  4383. Immortal Spiritual Being.
  4384. How can a blind man teach others to see the nearly
  4385. infinite gradients that comprise the spectrum of light?
  4386. The notion that one can understand the universe without
  4387. understanding the nature of an IS-BE is as absurd as
  4388. conceiving that an artist is a speck of paint on his own
  4389. canvas. Or, that the lace on a ballet shoe is the
  4390. choreographer's vision, or the grace of a dancer, or the
  4391. electric excitement of opening night.
  4392. Study of the spirit has been booby-trapped by the
  4393. thought control operation through religious
  4394. superstitions they instill in the minds of men.
  4395. Conversely, the study of the spirit and the mind have
  4396. 125
  4397. been prohibited by science which eliminates anything
  4398. that is not measurable in the physical universe.
  4399. Science is the religion of matter. It worships matter.
  4400. The paradigm of science is that creation is all, and the
  4401. creator is nothing. Religion says the creator is all,
  4402. and the creation is nothing. These two extremes are the
  4403. bars of a prison cell. They prevent observation of all
  4404. phenomenon as an interactive whole.
  4405. Study of creation without knowing the IS-BE, the source
  4406. of creation, is futile. When you sail to the edge of a
  4407. universe conceived by science, you fall off the end into
  4408. an abyss of dark, dispassionate space and lifeless,
  4409. unrelenting force. On Earth, you have been convinced
  4410. that the oceans of the mind and spirit are filled with
  4411. gruesome, ghoulish monsters that will eat you alive if
  4412. you dare to venture beyond the breakwater of
  4413. superstition.
  4414. The vested interest of the "Old Empire" prison system is
  4415. to prevent you from looking at your own soul. They fear
  4416. that you will see in your own memory the slave masters
  4417. who keep you imprisoned. The prison is made of shadows
  4418. in your mind. The shadows are made of lies, and pain,
  4419. and loss, and fear.
  4420. The true geniuses of civilization are those IS-BEs who
  4421. will enable other IS-BEs to recover their memory and
  4422. regain self-realization and self-determination. This
  4423. issue is not solved through enforcing moral regulation
  4424. on behavior, or through the control of beings through
  4425. mystery, faith, drugs, guns or any other dogma of a
  4426. slave society. And certainly not through the use of
  4427. electric shock and hypnotic commands!
  4428. The survival of Earth and every being on it depends on
  4429. the ability to recover the memory of skills you have
  4430. accrued through the trillenia; to recover the essence
  4431. of yourself. Such an art, science, or technology has
  4432. never been conceived in the "Old Empire". Otherwise,
  4433. they would not have resorted to the "solution" that
  4434. brought you to your current condition on Earth.
  4435. Neither has such technology ever been developed by The
  4436. Domain. Until recently, the necessity of rehabilitating
  4437. an IS-BE with amnesia has not been needed. Therefore,
  4438. 126
  4439. no one has ever worked on solving this problem. So far,
  4440. unfortunately, The Domain has no solution to offer.
  4441. A few officers of The Domain Expeditionary Force have
  4442. taken it upon themselves to provide technology to Earth
  4443. during their off duty time. These officers leave their
  4444. "doll" at the space station and, as an IS-BE, assume or
  4445. take over a biological body on Earth. In some cases an
  4446. officer can remain on duty while they inhabit and
  4447. control other bodies at the same time.
  4448. This is a very dangerous and adventurous undertaking.
  4449. It requires a very able IS-BE to accomplish such a
  4450. mission, and return to base successfully. One officer
  4451. who did this recently, while continuing to attend to his
  4452. official duties, was known on Earth as the electronics
  4453. inventor, Nicola Tesla. 219 (Footnote)
  4454. It is my intention, although is not a part of my mission
  4455. orders, to assist you in your efforts to advance
  4456. scientific and humanitarian progress on Earth. My
  4457. intention is to help other IS-BEs to help themselves. In
  4458. order to solve the amnesia problem on Earth you will
  4459. need much more advanced technology, as well as social
  4460. stability to allow enough time for research and
  4461. development of techniques to free the IS-BE from the
  4462. body, and to free the mind of the IS-BE from amnesia.
  4463. Although The Domain has a long term interest in
  4464. maintaining Earth as a useful planet, it has no
  4465. particular interest in the human population of Earth,
  4466. other than its own personnel here. We are interested in
  4467. preventing destruction, as well as accelerating the
  4468. development of technologies that will sustain the
  4469. infrastructures of the global biosphere, hydrosphere and
  4470. atmosphere.
  4471. To this end, you will discover, on very careful and
  4472. thorough examination, that my space craft contains a
  4473. wide assortment of technology that does not yet exist on
  4474. Earth. If you distribute pieces of this craft to
  4475. various scientists for study, they will be able to
  4476. reverse engineer 220 (Footnote) some of the technology to the
  4477. extent that Earth has the raw materials required to
  4478. replicate these components.
  4479. 127
  4480. Some features will be indecipherable. Other features
  4481. cannot be duplicated as Earth does not have the natural
  4482. resources required to replicate them. This is
  4483. especially true of the metals used to construct the
  4484. craft. Not only do these metals not exist on Earth, the
  4485. refining process required to produce these metals took
  4486. billions of years to develop.
  4487. It is also true of the navigation system which requires
  4488. an IS-BE whose own personal wavelength has been
  4489. specifically attuned to the "neural network" of the
  4490. craft. 221 (Footnote) The pilot of the craft must possess a
  4491. very high order of energy volition, discipline, training
  4492. and intelligence to manipulate such a craft. IS-BEs on
  4493. Earth are incapable of this expertise because it
  4494. requires the use of an artificial body specifically
  4495. created for this purpose.
  4496. Certain individual Earth scientists, some of whom are
  4497. among the most brilliant minds in the history of the
  4498. universe, will have their memory of this technology
  4499. jogged when they examine the craft components. Just as
  4500. some of the scientists and physicists on Earth have been
  4501. able to "remember" how to recreate electric generators,
  4502. internal combustion and steam locomotion, refrigeration,
  4503. aircraft, antibiotics, and other tools of your
  4504. civilization, they will also rediscover other vital
  4505. technology in my craft.
  4506. The following are the specific systems embodied in my
  4507. craft that contain useful components:
  4508. 1) There is an assortment of microscopic wiring or
  4509. fibers 222 (Footnote) within the walls of the craft that
  4510. control such things as communications, information
  4511. storage, computer function, and automatic navigation.
  4512. 2) The same wiring is used for light, sub-light and
  4513. ultra-light spectrum detection and vision. 223 (Footnote)
  4514. 3) The fabrics of the interior of the craft 224 (Footnote) are
  4515. far superior to any on Earth at this time and have
  4516. hundreds or thousands of applications.
  4517. 4) You will also find mechanisms for creating,
  4518. amplifying and channeling light particles or waves as a
  4519. form of energy. 225 (Footnote)
  4520. 128
  4521. As an officer, pilot and engineer of The Domain Forces,
  4522. I am not at liberty to discuss or convey the detailed
  4523. operation or construction of the craft in any way, other
  4524. than what I have just disclosed. However, I am
  4525. confident that there are many competent engineers on
  4526. Earth who will develop useful technology with these
  4527. resources.
  4528. I am providing these details to you in the hope that the
  4529. greater good of The Domain will be served."
  4530. 129
  4531. Chapter Twelve
  4532. A Lesson In Immortality
  4533. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  4534. "I think the following transcript is pretty much self-explanatory."
  4535. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  4536. TOP SECRET
  4537. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  4538. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  4539. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 30. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  4540. Immortal Spiritual Beings, which I refer to as "IS-BEs",
  4541. for the sake of convenience, are the source and creators
  4542. of illusions. Each one, individually and collectively,
  4543. in their original, unfettered state of being, are an
  4544. eternal, all-powerful, all-knowing entity.
  4545. IS-BEs create space by imagining a location. The
  4546. intervening distance between themselves and the imagined
  4547. location is what we call space. An IS-BE can perceive
  4548. the space and objects created by other IS-BEs.
  4549. IS-BEs are not physical universe entities. They are a
  4550. source of energy and illusion. IS-BEs are not located
  4551. in space or time, but can create space, place particles
  4552. in space, create energy, and shape particles into
  4553. various forms, cause the motion of forms, and animate
  4554. forms. Any form that is animated by an IS-BE is called
  4555. life.
  4556. An IS-BE can decide to agree that they are located in
  4557. space or time, and that they, themselves, are an object,
  4558. or any other manner of illusion created by themselves or
  4559. another or other IS-BEs.
  4560. The disadvantage of creating an illusion is that an
  4561. illusion must be continually created. If not
  4562. continually created, it disappears. Continual creation
  4563. 130
  4564. of an illusion requires incessant attention to every
  4565. detail of the illusion in order to sustain it.
  4566. A common denominator of IS-BEs seems to be the desire to
  4567. avoid boredom. A spirit only, without interaction with
  4568. other IS-BEs, and the unpredictable motion, drama, and
  4569. unanticipated intentions and illusions being created by
  4570. other IS-BEs, is easily bored.
  4571. What if you could imagine anything, perceive everything,
  4572. and cause anything to happen, at will? What if you
  4573. couldn't do anything else? What if you always knew the
  4574. outcome of every game and the answer to every question?
  4575. Would you get bored?
  4576. The entire back time track of IS-BEs is immeasurable,
  4577. nearly infinite in terms of physical universe time.
  4578. There is no measurable "beginning" or "end" for an ISBE. They simply exist in an everlasting now.
  4579. Another common denominator of IS-BEs is that admiration
  4580. of one's own illusions by others is very desirable. If
  4581. the desired admiration is not forthcoming, the IS-BE
  4582. will keep creating the illusion in an attempt to get
  4583. admiration. One could say that the entire physical
  4584. universe is made of unadmired illusions.
  4585. The origins of this universe began with the creation of
  4586. individual, illusionary spaces. These were the "home"
  4587. of the IS-BE. Sometimes a universe is a collaborative
  4588. creation of illusions by two or more IS-BEs. A
  4589. proliferation of IS-BEs, and the universes they create,
  4590. sometimes collide or become commingled or merge to an
  4591. extent that many IS-BEs shared in the co-creation of a
  4592. universe.
  4593. IS-BEs diminish their ability in order to have a game to
  4594. play. IS-BEs think that any game is better than no
  4595. game. They will endure pain, suffering, stupidity,
  4596. privation, and all manner of unnecessary and undesirable
  4597. conditions, just to play a game. Pretending that one
  4598. does not know all, see all and cause all, is a way to
  4599. create the conditions necessary for playing a game:
  4600. unknowns, freedoms, barriers and/or opponents and goals.
  4601. Ultimately, playing a game solves the problem of
  4602. boredom.
  4603. 131
  4604. In this fashion, all of the space, galaxies, suns,
  4605. planets, and physical phenomena of this universe,
  4606. including life forms, places, and events that have been
  4607. created by IS-BEs and sustained by mutual agreement that
  4608. these things exist.
  4609. There are as many universes as there are IS-BEs to
  4610. imagine, build and perceive them, each existing
  4611. concurrently within its own continuum. 226 (Footnote) Each
  4612. universe is created using its own, unique set of rules,
  4613. as imagined, altered, preserved or destroyed by one or
  4614. more IS-BEs who created it. Time, energy, objects and
  4615. space, as defined in terms of the physical universe, may
  4616. or may not exist in other universes. The Domain exists
  4617. in such a universe, as well as in the physical universe.
  4618. One of the rules of the physical universe is that energy
  4619. can be created, but not destroyed. So, the universe
  4620. will keep expanding as long as IS-BEs keep adding more
  4621. new energy into it. It is nearly infinite. It is like
  4622. an automobile assembly line that never stops running and
  4623. none of the cars are ever destroyed.
  4624. Every IS-BE is basically good. Therefore, an IS-BE does
  4625. not enjoy doing things to other IS-BEs which they
  4626. themselves do not want to experience. For an IS-BE
  4627. there is no inherent standard for what is good or bad,
  4628. right or wrong, ugly or beautiful. These ideas are all
  4629. based on the opinion of each individual IS-BE.
  4630. The closest concept that human beings have to describe
  4631. an IS-BE is as a god: all-knowing, all-powerful,
  4632. infinite. So, how does a god stop being a god? They
  4633. pretend NOT to know. How can you play a game of "hide
  4634. and seek" if you always know where the other person is
  4635. hiding?
  4636. You pretend NOT to know where the other players are
  4637. hiding, so you can go off to "seek" them. This is how
  4638. games are created. You have forgotten that you are just
  4639. "pretending". In so doing, IS-BEs become entrapped and
  4640. enslaved inside a maze of their own devising.
  4641. How does one create a cage, lock one's own self inside
  4642. the cage, throw away the key, and forget there is a key
  4643. or a cage, and forget there is an "inside" or "outside",
  4644. and even forget there is a self? Create the illusion
  4645. 132
  4646. that there is no illusion: the entire universe is real,
  4647. and that no other universe exists or can be created.
  4648. On Earth, the propaganda taught and agreed upon is that
  4649. the gods are responsible, and that human beings are not
  4650. responsible. You are taught that only a god can
  4651. create universes. So, the responsibility for every
  4652. action is assigned to another IS-BE or god. Never
  4653. oneself.
  4654. No human being ever assumes personal responsibility for
  4655. the fact that they, themselves -- individually and
  4656. collectively -- are gods. This fact alone is the source
  4657. of entrapment for every IS-BE.
  4658. 133
  4659. Chapter Thirteen
  4660. A Lesson In The Future
  4661. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  4662. "I think this transcript speaks for itself also. I relayed Airl's exact communication as
  4663. faithfully as possible. My superior officers became very alarmed about the possible
  4664. military implications of what Airl said in this interview."
  4665. (OFFICIAL TRANSCRIPT OF INTERVIEW)
  4666. TOP SECRET
  4667. Official Transcript of the U.S. Army Air Force
  4668. Roswell Army Air Field, 509th Bomb Group
  4669. SUBJECT: ALIEN INTERVIEW, 31. 7. 1947, 1st Session
  4670. " 'It is my personal belief that the truth should not be
  4671. sacrificed on the altar of political, religious or
  4672. economic expediency. 227 (Footnote) As an officer, pilot and
  4673. engineer of The Domain it is my duty to protect the
  4674. greater good of The Domain and its possessions. However,
  4675. we cannot defend ourselves against forces of which we
  4676. are not aware.
  4677. The isolation of Earth from the rest of civilization
  4678. prevents me from discussing many subjects with you at
  4679. this time. Security and protocol prevent me from
  4680. revealing any but the broadest, general statements about
  4681. the plans and activities of The Domain. However, I can
  4682. give you some information that you may find useful.
  4683. I must return to my assigned duties on the "space
  4684. station" now. I have provided as much help as I feel
  4685. ethically able to offer, given the requirements and
  4686. constraints of my duties as an officer, pilot and
  4687. engineer of The Domain Forces. Therefore, I will
  4688. depart, as an IS-BE, from Earth within the next 24
  4689. hours.'
  4690. 134
  4691. (EDITOR'S NOTE: The following several paragraphs appear to be personal
  4692. comments made by Matilda to the stenographer regarding her interview with
  4693. Airl.)
  4694. What this means is that Airl will leave her "doll" with
  4695. us, as her craft is damaged beyond repair. We can
  4696. examine, dissect and study the body at our leisure. She
  4697. does not have any further use for it, nor does she have
  4698. any personal feelings or attachments to it as others are
  4699. readily available for her use.
  4700. Airl does not recommend that there is any technology in
  4701. the body that Earth scientists will find useful,
  4702. however. The technology of the body is simple, yet
  4703. vastly beyond the reckoning of our current ability to
  4704. analyze or reverse engineer any facet of it. The body
  4705. is neither biological or mechanical, but a unique
  4706. fabrication a materials and ancient technologies not
  4707. found on any Earth-type planet.
  4708. As Airl mentioned previously, a very rigid and
  4709. distinctive hierarchy of social, economic and cultural
  4710. classes exists throughout The Domain which has remained
  4711. unvaried and inviolate for many millennia. The body
  4712. type and function assigned to an IS-BE officer varies
  4713. specifically according to the rank, class, longevity,
  4714. training level, command level, service record, and
  4715. meritorious citations earned by each individual IS-BE,
  4716. as with any other military insignia.
  4717. The body used by Airl is specifically designed for an
  4718. officer, pilot and engineer of her rank and class. The
  4719. bodies of her companions, which were destroyed in the
  4720. crash, were not of the same rank or class, but of a
  4721. junior rank. Therefore, the appearance, features,
  4722. composition and functionality of those bodies were
  4723. specialized, and limited to the requirements of their
  4724. duties.
  4725. The junior officers whose bodies were damaged in the
  4726. crash have left their bodies and returned to their
  4727. duties on the space station. The damage suffered by
  4728. their bodies was due primarily to the fact that they
  4729. were officers of lower rank. They used bodies which were
  4730. partially biological and therefore far less durable and
  4731. resilient than hers.
  4732. 135
  4733. (EDITOR'S NOTE: At this point, the transcript appears to resume with
  4734. statements made by Airl.)
  4735. Although The Domain will not hesitate to destroy any
  4736. active vestiges of the "Old Empire" operations where
  4737. ever they are discovered this is not our primary mission
  4738. in this galaxy. I am sure that the "Old Empire" mindcontrol mechanisms can be deactivated and destroyed
  4739. eventually. However, it is not possible to estimate how
  4740. long this make take, as we do not understand the extent
  4741. of this operation at this time.
  4742. We do know that the "Old Empire" force screen is vast
  4743. enough to cover this end of the galaxy, at least. We
  4744. also know from experience that each force generator and
  4745. trapping device is very difficult to detect, locate and
  4746. destroy. Also, it is not the current mission of The
  4747. Domain Expeditionary Force to commit resources to this
  4748. endeavor.
  4749. The eventual destruction of these devices may make it
  4750. possible for your memory to be restored, simply by
  4751. virtue of not having it erased after each lifetime.
  4752. Fortunately, the memory of an IS-BE cannot be
  4753. permanently erased.
  4754. There are many other active space civilizations who
  4755. maintain various nefarious operations in this area, not
  4756. the least of which is dumping unwanted IS-BEs on Earth.
  4757. None of these craft are hostile or in violent opposition
  4758. to The Domain Forces. They know better than to
  4759. challenge us!
  4760. For the most part The Domain ignores Earth and its
  4761. inhabitants, except to ensure that the resources of the
  4762. planet itself are not permanently spoiled. This sector
  4763. of the galaxy was annexed by The Domain and is the
  4764. possession of The Domain, to do with or dispose of as it
  4765. deems best. The moon of Earth and the asteroid belt
  4766. have become a permanent base of operations for The
  4767. Domain Forces.
  4768. Needless to say, any attempt by humans or others to
  4769. interfere in the activities of The Domain in this solar
  4770. system -- even if it were possible, which it definitely
  4771. is not -- will be terminated swiftly. This is not a
  4772. 136
  4773. serious concern, as I mentioned earlier, since homo
  4774. sapiens cannot operate in open space.
  4775. Of course we will continue with the next steps of The
  4776. Domain Expansion Plan which has remained on schedule for
  4777. billions of years. Over the next 5,000 years there will
  4778. be increasing traffic and activity of The Domain Forces
  4779. as we progress toward the center of this galaxy and
  4780. beyond to spread our civilization through the universe.
  4781. If humanity is to survive, it must cooperate to find
  4782. effective solutions to the difficult conditions of your
  4783. existence on Earth. Humanity must rise above its human
  4784. form and discover where they are, and that they are ISBEs, and who they really are as IS-BEs in order to
  4785. transcend the notion that they are merely biological
  4786. bodies. Once these realizations have been made, it may
  4787. be possible to escape your current imprisonment.
  4788. Otherwise, there will be no future for the IS-BEs on
  4789. Earth.
  4790. Although there are no active battles or war being waged
  4791. between The Domain and the "Old Empire", there still
  4792. exists the covert actions of the "Old Empire" taken
  4793. against Earth through their thought control operation.
  4794. When one knows that these activities exist, the effects
  4795. can be observed clearly. The most obvious examples of
  4796. these actions against the human race can be seen as
  4797. incidents of sudden, inexplicable behavior. A very
  4798. recent instance of this occurred in the United States
  4799. military just before the Japanese attack on Pearl
  4800. Harbor. 228 (Footnote)
  4801. Just three days before the attack, someone in authority
  4802. ordered all the ships in Pearl Harbor to go into port
  4803. and secure for inspection. The ships were ordered to
  4804. take all the ammunition out of their magazines, and
  4805. store it below. On the afternoon before attack all of
  4806. the admirals and generals were attending parties, even
  4807. though two Japanese aircraft carriers were discovered
  4808. standing right off Pearl Harbor.
  4809. The obvious action to take would have been to contact
  4810. Pearl Harbor by telephone to warn them of the danger of
  4811. a fight starting and to put the ammunition back and
  4812. order the ships to get out of port into open sea.
  4813. 137
  4814. About six hours before the Japanese attack began, a U.S.
  4815. navy ship sank a small Japanese submarine right outside
  4816. the harbor. Instead of contacting Pearl Harbor by
  4817. telephone to report the incident, a warning message was
  4818. put into top secret code, which took about two hours to
  4819. encode, and then it took another two hours to decode.
  4820. The word of warning to Pearl Harbor did not arrive until
  4821. 10:00 AM Pearl Harbor time, Sunday -- two hours after
  4822. the Japanese attack destroyed the U.S. fleet.
  4823. How do things like this happen?
  4824. If the men who were responsible for these obviously
  4825. disastrous errors were stood up and asked bluntly to
  4826. justify their actions and intentions you would find out
  4827. that they were quite sincere in their jobs. Ordinarily,
  4828. they do the very best they can do for people and
  4829. nations. However, all of a sudden, from some
  4830. completely unknown and undetectable source enters these
  4831. wild, unexplainable situations that just 'can't exist'.
  4832. The "Old Empire" thought control operation is run by a
  4833. small group of old "baboons" with very small minds.
  4834. They are playing insidious games with no purpose and no
  4835. goal other than to control and destroy IS-BEs who could
  4836. otherwise manage themselves perfectly well, if left
  4837. alone.
  4838. These types of artificially created incidents are being
  4839. forced upon the human race by the operators of the mindcontrol prison system. The prison guards will always
  4840. promote and support oppressive or totalitarian
  4841. activities of IS-BEs on Earth. Why not keep the inmates
  4842. fighting between themselves? Why not empower madmen to
  4843. run the governments of Earth? The men who run the
  4844. criminal governments of Earth mirror the commands given
  4845. them by covert thought-controllers of the "Old Empire".
  4846. The human race will continue to shadow box with this for
  4847. a long time -- as long as it remains the human race.
  4848. Until then, the IS-BEs on Earth will continue to live a
  4849. series of consecutive lives, over and over and over.
  4850. The same IS-BEs who lived during the rise and fall of
  4851. civilizations in India, China, Mesepotamia, Greece, and
  4852. Rome are inhabiting bodies in the present time in
  4853. America, France, Russia, Africa, and around the world.
  4854. 138
  4855. In between each lifetime an IS-BE is sent back again, to
  4856. begin all over, as though the new life was the only life
  4857. they had ever lived. They begin anew in pain, in
  4858. misery, and mystery.
  4859. Some IS-BEs have been transported to Earth more recently
  4860. than others. Some IS-BEs have been on Earth only a few
  4861. hundred years, so they have no personal experiences with
  4862. the earlier civilizations of Earth. They have no
  4863. experiences of having lived on Earth, so could not
  4864. remember a previous existence here, even if their memory
  4865. was restored. They might, however, remember lives they
  4866. lived elsewhere on other planets and in other times.
  4867. Others have been here since the first days of Lemuria.
  4868. In any case, the IS-BEs of Earth are here forever, until
  4869. they can break the amnesia cycle, conquer the electronic
  4870. traps set up by their captors and free themselves.
  4871. Because The Domain has three thousand of their own ISBEs in captivity on Earth also, they have an interest in
  4872. solving this problem. This problem has never been
  4873. encountered or effectively solved before in the
  4874. universe, as far as they know. They will continue their
  4875. efforts to free those IS-BEs from Earth, where and when
  4876. it is possible, but it will require time to develop an
  4877. unprecedented technology and the diligence to do so.'
  4878. (EDITOR'S NOTE: The following statement is a comment by Matilda.)
  4879. I think it is Airl's sincere desire, as one IS-BE to
  4880. another, that the rest of our eternity will be as
  4881. pleasant as possible."
  4882. 139
  4883. Chapter Fourteen
  4884. Airl Reviews The Interview Transcripts
  4885. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  4886. "Shortly after I finished recounting the previous interview with Airl to the
  4887. stenographer, I was summoned urgently to the office of the Commanding Officer of
  4888. the base. I was escorted by four heavily armed military policemen. When I arrived,
  4889. I was asked to be seated in a very large, make-shift office that had been arranged
  4890. with a conference table and chairs. In the office were several dignitaries I had seen
  4891. at various times in "the gallery". I recognized a few of them because they were
  4892. famous men.
  4893. I was introduced to these men, which included:
  4894. Army Air Force Secretary Symington, 229 (Footnote) General Nathan Twining,
  4895. 230 (Footnote) General Jimmy Doolittle , 231 (Footnote) General Vandenberg, 232 (Footnote) and General Norstad. 233 (Footnote)
  4896. Much to my surprise Charles Lindbergh 234 (Footnote) was also in the office.
  4897. Secretary Symington explained to me that Mr. Lindberg was there as a consultant to
  4898. the chief of staff of the U.S. Air Force. There were several other men present in the
  4899. room who were not introduced. I assume these men were personal aides to the
  4900. officers or agents of some intelligence service.
  4901. All of this sudden attention, not only from the Secretary and generals, but from such
  4902. world famous people as Mr. Lindbergh, and General Doolittle, made me realize how
  4903. critically important my role as an "interpreter" for Airl was, as seen through the eyes
  4904. of others. Until this time I was not really aware of this except in an peripheral sense.
  4905. I suppose this was because I was so absorbed in details of the extraordinary situation.
  4906. Suddenly, I began to grasp the magnitude of my role. I think that the presence of
  4907. these men in that meeting was intended, in part, to impress me with this fact!
  4908. The Secretary instructed me not to be nervous. He said that I was not in any trouble.
  4909. He asked me if I thought the alien would be willing to answer a list of questions they
  4910. had prepared. He explained that they were very eager to discover many more details
  4911. about Airl, the flying disc, The Domain, and many other subjects that Airl had
  4912. disclosed in the interview transcripts. Of course, they were mainly interested in
  4913. questions relating to the military security and the construction of the flying disc.
  4914. 140
  4915. I told them that I was very sure that Airl had not changed her mind about answering
  4916. questions, as nothing had changed that would cause her to trust the intentions of the
  4917. men in the gallery. I repeated that Airl had communicated everything that she was
  4918. willing and at liberty to discuss already.
  4919. In spite of this, they insisted that I would ask Airl again if she would answer
  4920. questions. And, if the answer was still "NO", I was to ask her if she would be
  4921. willing to read the written copies of the transcripts of my interview "translations".
  4922. They wanted to know if Airl would verify that my understanding and translation of
  4923. our interviews was correct.
  4924. Since Airl could read English very fluently, the Secretary asked if they could be
  4925. allowed to observe for themselves while Airl read the transcripts, and verify that they
  4926. were correct in writing. They wanted her to write on a copy of the transcript whether
  4927. the "translations" were correct, or not, and make a note of anything that was not
  4928. accurate on the transcripts. Of course, I had no choice but to obey orders and I did
  4929. exactly what the Secretary requested.
  4930. I was given a copy of the transcripts, with a signature page, which I was to show to
  4931. Airl. After Airl completed her review, I was also directed to request that Airl sign
  4932. the cover-page, attesting that all of the translations in the transcripts were correct, as
  4933. amended by her.
  4934. About an hour later I entered the interview room, as instructed, with copies of the
  4935. transcripts and signature page to deliver to Airl as the members of the gallery,
  4936. including the Generals, (and Mr. Lindberg also, I presume) and others watched
  4937. through the glass of the gallery room.
  4938. I went to my usual seat, sitting 4 or 5 feet across from Airl. I presented the envelope
  4939. of transcripts to Airl, and passed on the instructions I had received from the
  4940. Secretary, telepathically. Airl looked at me, and looked at the envelope, without
  4941. accepting it.
  4942. Airl said: "If you have read them and they are accurate in you own estimation, there
  4943. is no need for me to review them also. The translations are correct. You can tell
  4944. your commander that you have faithfully conveyed a record of our communication."
  4945. I assured Airl that I had read them, and they were exact recordings of everything I
  4946. told the transcription typist.
  4947. "Will you sign the cover page then?", I asked.
  4948. "No, I will not.", said Airl.
  4949. 141
  4950. "May I ask why not?", I said. I was a little confused as to why she wasn't willing to
  4951. do such a simple thing.
  4952. "If your commander does not trust his own staff to make an honest and accurate
  4953. report to him, what confidence will my signature on the page give him? Why will he
  4954. trust an ink mark on a page made by an officer of The Domain, if he does not trust
  4955. his own, loyal staff?"
  4956. I didn't quite know what to say to that. I couldn't argue with Airl's logic, and I
  4957. couldn't force her to sign the document either. I sat in my chair for a minute
  4958. wondering what to do next. I thanked Airl and told her I needed to go ask my
  4959. superiors for further instructions. I placed the envelope of the transcripts in the
  4960. inside breast pocket of my uniform jacket and began to rise from my chair.
  4961. At that moment the door from the gallery room slammed open! Five heavily armed
  4962. military police rushed into the room! A man in a white laboratory coat followed
  4963. closely behind them. He pushed a small cart that carried a box-shaped machine with
  4964. a lot of dials on the face of it.
  4965. Before I could react, two of the MPs grabbed Airl and held her firmly down in the
  4966. overstuffed chair she had been sitting on since the first day of our interviews
  4967. together. The two other MPs grabbed my shoulders and pushed me back down on
  4968. my chair and held me there. The other MP stood directly in front of Airl, pointing a
  4969. rifle directly at her, not more than six inches from her head.
  4970. The man in the lab coat quickly wheeled the cart behind Airl's chair. He deftly
  4971. placed a circular head band over Airl's head and turned back to the machine on the
  4972. cart. Suddenly, he shouted the word "clear!"
  4973. The soldiers who were holding Airl released her. At that instant I saw Airl's body
  4974. stiffen and shudder. This lasted for about 15 or 20 seconds. The machine operator
  4975. turned a knob on the machine and Airl's body slumped back into the chair. After a
  4976. few seconds he turned the knob again and Airl's body stiffened as before. He
  4977. repeated the same process several more times.
  4978. I sat in my chair, being held down all the while by the MPs. And I didn't understand
  4979. what was going on. I was terrified and transfixed by what was happening! I couldn't
  4980. believe it!
  4981. After a few minutes several other men wearing white lab coats entered the room.
  4982. They briefly examined Airl who was now slumped listlessly in the chair. They
  4983. mumbled a few words to each other. One of the men waved to the gallery window.
  4984. A gurney was immediately rolled into the room by two attendants. These men lifted
  4985. Airl's limp body onto the gurney, strapped her down across her chest and arms, and
  4986. rolled it out of the room.
  4987. 142
  4988. I was immediately escorted out of the interview room by the MPs and taken directly
  4989. to my quarters, where I was locked in my room with the MPs remaining at guard
  4990. outside the door.
  4991. After about half an hour there was a knock at the door to my quarters. When I
  4992. opened it General Twining entered, together with the machine operator in the white
  4993. lab coat. The General introduced the man to me as Dr. Wilcox. 235 (Footnote). He
  4994. asked me to accompany him and the doctor. We left the room, followed by the MPs.
  4995. After several twists and turns through the complex we entered a small room where
  4996. Airl had been wheeled on the gurney.
  4997. The General told me that Airl and The Domain were considered to be a very great
  4998. military threat to the United States. Airl had been "immobilized" so that she could
  4999. not depart and return to her base, as she said she would do in the interview. It would
  5000. be a very grave risk to national security to allow Airl to report what she observed
  5001. during her time at the base. So, it had been determined that decisive action was
  5002. needed to prevent this.
  5003. The General asked me if I understood why this was necessary. I said that I did,
  5004. although I most certainly did not agree that it was the least bit necessary and I
  5005. certainly did not agree with the "surprise attack" on Airl and me in the interview
  5006. room! However, I said nothing about this to the General because I was very afraid
  5007. of what might happen to me and Airl if I protested.
  5008. Dr. Wilcox asked me to approach the gurney and stand next to Airl. Airl lay
  5009. perfectly still and unmoving on the bed. I could not tell whether she was alive or
  5010. dead. Several other men in white lab coats, who I assumed were also doctors, stood
  5011. on the opposite side of the bed. They had connected two pieces of monitoring
  5012. equipment to Airl's head, arms and chest. One of these devices I recognized from
  5013. my training as a surgical nurse as an EEG machine 236 (Footnote) which is used to
  5014. detect electrical activity in the brain. The other device was a normal hospital room
  5015. vital signs monitor, which I knew would be useless since Airl did not have a
  5016. biological body.
  5017. Dr. Wilcox explained to me that he had administered a series of "mild" electroshocks
  5018. to Airl in an attempt to subdue her long enough to allow the military authorities time
  5019. to evaluate the situation and determine what to do with Airl.
  5020. He asked me to attempt to communicate with Airl, telepathically.
  5021. I tried for several minutes but couldn't sense any communication from Airl. I
  5022. couldn't even sense whether Airl was present in the body any longer!
  5023. "I think you must have killed her", I said to the doctor.
  5024. 143
  5025. Dr. Wilcox told me that they would keep Airl under observation and that I would be
  5026. asked to return later to try to establish communication with Airl again."
  5027. 144
  5028. Chapter Fifteen
  5029. My Interrogation
  5030. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  5031. "The next morning I was escorted from my quarters, under the guard of four MPs, to
  5032. the interview room. Airl's overstuffed chair had been removed from the room and
  5033. replaced by a small desk and several office chairs. I was asked to sit down and wait
  5034. to be interviewed. After a few minutes Dr. Wilcox came into the office together with
  5035. another man wearing a plain business suit. The man introduced himself as John
  5036. Reid. 237 (Footnote)
  5037. Dr. Wilcox explained to me that Mr. Reid had been flown in from Chicago at the
  5038. request of my superior officers to conduct a lie detector 238 (Footnote) test on me!
  5039. My surprise at this statement was so obvious, that Dr. Wilcox noticed that I was
  5040. obviously taken aback, and insulted, at the insinuation that I had ever lied about
  5041. anything!
  5042. Nonetheless, Mr. Reid began to set up his polygraph device on the desk next to my
  5043. chair, while Dr. Wilcox continued to explain, in a calm voice, that the test was being
  5044. administered for my own protection. Since all of the interviews with the alien had
  5045. been conducted telepathically, and Airl had declined to read and attest that the typed
  5046. transcripts were accurate, that the truth and accuracy of the statements contained in
  5047. the transcripts depended entirely on my personal word alone. There was no other
  5048. reliable way to test the accuracy of the transcripts without submitting me to a battery
  5049. of tests and psychological examinations to determine, in the opinion of "experts",
  5050. meaning himself, whether the transcripts should be taken seriously, or not.
  5051. The tone of his voice said very clearly, "or dismissed as the delusional ranting of a
  5052. mere woman!"
  5053. Mr. Reid proceeded to strap a rubber tube around my chest, as well as an ordinary
  5054. blood-pressure cuff around my upper arm. He then placed electrodes on the fingers
  5055. and surfaces of my hands. He explained that he would be very objective during the
  5056. interview because he had been thoroughly trained in scientific interrogation. This
  5057. training was supposed to make his interrogation free from human error.
  5058. 145
  5059. Mr. Reid explained to me that, in response to the questions he and Dr. Wilcox were
  5060. going to ask me, that actual physiological changes would be transmitted through a
  5061. small panel unit. The readings would then be tracked on moving graph paper, which
  5062. he placed beside the machine on the desk. The parallel graphs on the paper would
  5063. then be correlated and interpreted by Mr. Reid, with the "expert" assistance of Dr.
  5064. Wilcox, to determine whether or not I was lying.
  5065. Both Mr. Reid and Dr. Wilcox asked me a series of innocuous questions to begin,
  5066. which advanced into a more pointed interrogation about my interviews with Airl.
  5067. Here is what I remember about the questions:
  5068. "What is your name?"
  5069. "Matilda O'Donnell", I replied.
  5070. "What is your date of birth?"
  5071. "June 12th, 1924", I said.
  5072. "What is your age?"
  5073. "Twenty-three".
  5074. "Where were you born?"
  5075. "Los Angeles, California", I said.
  5076. (And so on, and so forth.)
  5077. "Are you able to communicate by telepathy?"
  5078. "No. I have never been able to do this with anyone except Airl." I said.
  5079. "Were any of the statements you made to the stenographer falsified?
  5080. "No", I answered.
  5081. "Have you intentionally or unintentionally imagined or fabricated any of the
  5082. communication you claimed to have had with the alien?"
  5083. "No, of course not", I said.
  5084. "Are you intentionally attempting to deceive anyone?"
  5085. "No."
  5086. 146
  5087. "Are you attempting to obstruct this test?"
  5088. "No."
  5089. "What color are your eyes?"
  5090. "Blue".
  5091. "Are you a Catholic?"
  5092. "Yes."
  5093. "Would you tell the same stories to your parish priest in a Catholic church
  5094. confessional that you told to the stenographer here at the base?"
  5095. "Yes."
  5096. "Are you trying to hide anything from us?"
  5097. "No. Nothing."
  5098. "Do you believe everything the alien communicated to you?"
  5099. "Yes."
  5100. "Do you consider yourself to be a gullible person?"
  5101. "No."
  5102. The questions continued in this manner for more than an hour. Finally, I was
  5103. unhooked from the polygraph machine and allowed to return to my quarters, still
  5104. under guard by the MPs.
  5105. Later in the afternoon I returned to the interview room. This time the desk was
  5106. replaced by a hospital gurney. Dr. Wilcox was accompanied by a staff nurse this
  5107. time. He asked me to lie down on the gurney. He said that he had been requested to
  5108. ask me the same series of questions that I answered for the lie detector test.
  5109. This time, however, I would respond to the questions under the influence of a "truth
  5110. serum", 239 (Footnote) known as sodium pentothal. As a trained surgical nurse, I was
  5111. familiar with this barbiturate drug as it was sometimes used as an anesthetic.
  5112. Dr. Wilcox asked me if I had any objection to submitting to such a test. I told him
  5113. that I had nothing to hide. I cannot recall anything about this interview. I assumed
  5114. that when I finished answering the questions I was escorted back to my room by the
  5115. 147
  5116. MPs, with their assistance this time, as I was too wobbly and woozy from the drug to
  5117. navigate by myself. However, I had a very peaceful sleep that night.
  5118. Apparently neither of these interrogations yielded any suspicious results as I was not
  5119. asked any more questions after that. Thankfully, I was left alone during the rest of
  5120. my time at the base."
  5121. 148
  5122. Chapter Sixteen
  5123. Airl Departs
  5124. (MATILDA O'DONNELL MACELROY PERSONAL NOTE)
  5125. "I remained at the base, mostly confined to my quarters, for another 3 weeks
  5126. after Airl had been "incapacitated" by Dr. Wilcox. Once a day I was escorted to
  5127. the room where Airl lay on the bed under continued surveillance by Dr. Wilcox,
  5128. and others, I assume. Each time I went to the room, I was asked to try to
  5129. communicate with Airl again. Each time there was no response. This saddened
  5130. me a great deal. As the days continued I became increasing more certain and
  5131. distressed that Airl was "dead", if that is the right word for it.
  5132. Every day, I re-read the transcripts of my interviews with Airl, searching for a
  5133. clue that might remind me of something or help me in some way to re-establish
  5134. communication with Airl. I still had the envelope in my possession with copies
  5135. of the transcripts that Airl was asked to sign. To this day, I don't understand
  5136. why no one ever asked me to return them. I suppose they forgot about the copy
  5137. of the transcripts in all the excitement. I did not offer to return them. I kept
  5138. them concealed under the mattress of my bed all the time I remained at the base,
  5139. and have kept them with me ever since then. You will be the first person to see
  5140. these transcripts.
  5141. Since Airl's body was not biological, the doctors could not detect whether the
  5142. body was alive or dead unless it moved. Of course I knew that if Airl was not
  5143. consciously animating the body as an IS-BE, the body would not move.
  5144. I explained this to Dr. Wilcox. I explained this to him several times. Each time
  5145. he just gave me a patronizing sort of smile, patted my arm, and thanked me for
  5146. trying again.
  5147. At the end of the third week I was told by Dr. Wilcox that my services would no
  5148. longer be needed because it had been decided by the military to move Airl to a
  5149. larger, more secure military medical facility that was better equipped to deal
  5150. with the situation. He didn't say anything about where the facility was located.
  5151. That was the last time I saw Airl's doll body.
  5152. 149
  5153. The following day I received written orders, signed by General Twining. The
  5154. orders said that I had completed my service to the U.S. military and was
  5155. officially discharged from further duty and that I would receive an honorable
  5156. discharge and a generous military pension. I would be also be relocated by the
  5157. military, and given a new identity with the appropriate documents.
  5158. Along with the orders I received a document that I was instructed to read and
  5159. sign. It was an oath of secrecy. The language of the document was full of
  5160. "legalese", but the point was very clearly made that I was to never, ever discuss
  5161. anything whatsoever with anyone whatsoever about anything whatsoever that I
  5162. has seen, heard or experienced during my service in the military -- under pain of
  5163. death as an Act of Treason against the United States of America!
  5164. As it turned out, I was placed into a Federal government witness protection
  5165. program 240 (Footnote), except that I would be protected from the government by
  5166. the government. In other words, as long as I stayed quiet I could stay alive!
  5167. The following morning I was placed aboard a small military transport plane and
  5168. flown to a relocation destination. After being shuttled to several locations for
  5169. short periods, I eventually I ended up in Glasgow, Montana near Fort Peck.
  5170. The night before I was scheduled to board the transport plane, as I lay in bed
  5171. contemplating the whole affair and wondering what happened to Airl, and to me,
  5172. I suddenly heard Airl's "voice". I sat bolt upright in my bed and turned on the
  5173. light on the night stand! I looked around the room frantically for a few seconds.
  5174. Then I realized that it was Airl, the IS-BE. Her body was not in the room with
  5175. me, of course, and it didn't need to be.
  5176. She said "Hello!". The tone of her thought was plain and friendly. It was
  5177. unmistakably Airl. I did not have the least doubt about that!
  5178. I thought, "Airl? Are you still here?" She answered that she was "here", but
  5179. not in a body on Earth. She had returned to her post at The Domain base when
  5180. the doctor and MPs attacked us in the interview room. She was pleased to
  5181. perceive that I was well, and that I was going to be released unharmed.
  5182. I wondered how she escaped from them. I was worried that they might have
  5183. injured Airl by the shock machine. Airl said that she was able to leave the body
  5184. before the shock was administered and avoided the electric current running
  5185. through the body. She wanted to let me know that she was safe and not to worry
  5186. about her. I was very relieved, to say the least!
  5187. I asked Airl if I would every see her again. Airl reassured me that we are both
  5188. IS-BEs. We are not a physical bodies. Now that she had located me in space
  5189. and time we would always stay in communication. Airl wished me well and my
  5190. communication with her ended for the moment."
  5191. 150
  5192. Post Script from Mrs. MacElroy
  5193. EDITOR' NOTE: The following message was enclosed in a separate
  5194. envelope marked "READ ME LAST", together with the original letter, the
  5195. transcripts and the other notes of explanation I received in the envelope
  5196. from Mrs. MacElroy. This is what the message said:
  5197. "The other documents in this envelope are the end of
  5198. the story, as far as what happened back in 1947.
  5199. However, several months after the government got me
  5200. settled at my final relocation destination, I
  5201. continued my communication with Airl on a regular
  5202. basis.
  5203. It has been almost exactly 40 years since the crash
  5204. at Roswell. Since then it has become obvious to me
  5205. that I have been able to communicate telepathically
  5206. with Airl for one reason: I am one of the 3,000
  5207. members of the Lost Battalion. At this time, all of
  5208. the members of the Lost Battalion have been located
  5209. on Earth as a result of The Domain Annunaki Mission
  5210. and their use of the "Tree of Life" detection device.
  5211. Through my communication with Airl, I have recovered
  5212. some of my memory of lives I've spent on Earth over
  5213. the past 8,000 years. Most of these memories are not
  5214. especially important compared to the long backtrack
  5215. of events, but it has been a necessary stepping stone
  5216. to regaining my awareness and ability as an IS-BE.
  5217. I can also remember some dim patches of my life in
  5218. The Domain Expeditionary Force. I was a nurse there
  5219. too. For the most part I've been a nurse over and
  5220. over and over again down through the ages. I stick
  5221. with being a nurse because it is familiar to me. And,
  5222. I enjoy the work of helping people, as well as
  5223. members of the race of biological beings in The
  5224. Domain whose bodies look more like insects than
  5225. mammals, especially their hands. Even doll bodies
  5226. need some repair once in awhile, too.
  5227. As I remember more about my past, I realize that the
  5228. rest of my life is in the future. Eternity is not
  5229. just in the past. Eternity is in the future. At
  5230. 151
  5231. this point I am still not able to fully return to The
  5232. Domain. I am sentenced to eternal imprisonment, like
  5233. all other IS-BEs in the living Hell called Earth,
  5234. until we can disable the "Old Empire" force screens.
  5235. Because I won't keep my biological body much longer
  5236. now, I am intensely aware that very soon I will be
  5237. recycled through the amnesia process of the "Old
  5238. Empire", and stuck back into another baby body to
  5239. start all over again -- without any memory of what
  5240. went before.
  5241. As you know, members of The Domain Expeditionary
  5242. Force have been working to solve this problem for
  5243. thousands of years. Airl says that even though The
  5244. Domain has located all of the Lost Battalion officers
  5245. and crew, the success of freeing them depends on the
  5246. IS-BEs who are already on Earth. The Domain Central
  5247. Command cannot authorize any personnel or resources,
  5248. at this time, to conduct a "rescue mission" as this
  5249. in not the primary mission of The Domain
  5250. Expeditionary Force in this galaxy.
  5251. So, if IS-BEs on Earth are going to escape from this
  5252. prison, it will have to be an "inside job", so to
  5253. speak. The inmates will have to figure out how to
  5254. get themselves out. Various methods of recovering
  5255. the memory and ability of IS-BEs have been developed
  5256. over the past 10,000 years on Earth, but none have
  5257. proven to be consistently effective so far.
  5258. Airl mentioned that the most significant breakthrough
  5259. was made by Gautama Siddhartha about 2,500 years ago.
  5260. However, the original teachings and techniques taught
  5261. by The Buddha have been altered or lost over the
  5262. millennia since then. The practical techniques of
  5263. his philosophy were perverted into robotic religious
  5264. rituals by priests as a self-serving instrument of
  5265. control or slavery.
  5266. However, another major advance occurred recently. An
  5267. acquaintance of The Commanding Officer of The Domain
  5268. Expeditionary Force Space Station is an IS-BE who had
  5269. once been an important engineer and officer in the
  5270. "Old Empire" Space Fleet. He become an "untouchable"
  5271. himself about 10,000 years ago and was sentenced to
  5272. Earth for leading a mutiny against the oppressive
  5273. 152
  5274. regime of the "Old Empire". The engineer was trained
  5275. in Advanced Scientific Improvisation Theory thousands
  5276. of years ago. This man has applied his expertise to
  5277. helping The Domain solve the apparently unsolvable
  5278. problem of rescuing the members of the Lost
  5279. Battalion, as well as the IS-BEs on Earth.
  5280. Careful observation and experimental analysis of the
  5281. mechanics of memory in IS-BEs by he and his wife, who
  5282. assisted him, led to the realization that IS-BEs can
  5283. recover from amnesia and also regain lost abilities.
  5284. Together they discovered and developed effective
  5285. methods that they used to rehabilitate their own
  5286. memories. They eventually codified their methods so
  5287. that others can safely be trained to apply them to
  5288. themselves and others, without detection by the "Old
  5289. Empire" thought control operators.
  5290. Their research also revealed that IS-BEs can occupy
  5291. and operate more than one body at the same time --
  5292. a fact that previously was thought to be uniquely
  5293. limited to officers of The Domain.
  5294. One example of this fact is that the engineer, in a
  5295. previous lifetime on Earth, was Suleiman The
  5296. Magnificent 241 (Footnote). His assistant was a harem girl
  5297. who rose up from slavery to become his wife and rule
  5298. the Ottoman empire with him. 242 (Footnote) Simultaneously,
  5299. she inhabited another body and ruled her own empire
  5300. as Queen Elizabeth. 243 (Footnote) As the Queen of England,
  5301. she never married, because she was already married to
  5302. the Sultan of the Ottoman Empire!
  5303. In a later life he was incarnated as Cecil Rhodes.
  5304. 244 (Footnote). During his life as Rhodes she was, again,
  5305. a princess, this time from Poland. 245 (Footnote) As such,
  5306. she pursued Rhodes unsuccessfully toward the end of
  5307. his life. However, in their next incarnation they met
  5308. again, were married, had a family, and again, worked
  5309. together successfully all of their lives.
  5310. Several other notable examples of this phenomena were
  5311. observed. For example, the process of refining steel
  5312. was invented by the same IS-BE who inhabited two
  5313. bodies simultaneously. One was named Kelly 246 (Footnote)
  5314. who lived in Kentucky, and the other was a man named
  5315. 153
  5316. Bessemer 247 (Footnote) who lived in England. They both
  5317. conceived the same process at the same time.
  5318. Another example is Alexander Graham Bell 248 (Footnote) the
  5319. inventor of the telephone, which was invented by
  5320. several others at the same time, including Elisha
  5321. Gray. 249 (Footnote) The telephone was conceived
  5322. concurrently in several locations around the world
  5323. all at once. This was a single IS-BE of such
  5324. tremendous energy and ability that he was able to
  5325. operate several bodies in several different locations
  5326. while conducting complex research work!
  5327. Thanks to these revelations, The Domain has been able
  5328. to return some of IS-BEs of the Lost Battalion to
  5329. active duty on a limited, part-time basis. For
  5330. example, two young girls who occupy biological bodies
  5331. on Earth are now, at the same time, working as active
  5332. members of The Domain Expeditionary Force on the
  5333. asteroid space station as operators of a
  5334. communication switchboard. These operators relay
  5335. messages between The Domain Expeditionary Force and
  5336. The Domain Command Headquarters.
  5337. Recently, I, myself have been able to resume some of
  5338. my own duties for The Domain Expeditionary Force
  5339. while continuing to live on Earth. This is not an
  5340. easy task however, and can only be done while my
  5341. biological body is sleeping.
  5342. It makes me very, very happy to know that we may not
  5343. have to stay on Earth forever! There is hope of
  5344. escape, not just for the Lost Battalion, but for many
  5345. other IS-BEs on Earth.
  5346. However, all IS-BEs could be helped to become more
  5347. aware of the actual situation on Earth through the
  5348. information in this envelope. This is why I sent
  5349. these letters and transcripts to you. I want you to
  5350. get these documents published. I want IS-BEs on
  5351. Earth to have a chance to find out what is really
  5352. happening on Earth.
  5353. Most people will not believe any of it, I'm sure. It
  5354. seems too incredible. No "reasonable" person would
  5355. ever believe a word of it. However, it only seems
  5356. "incredible" to an IS-BE whose memory has been erased
  5357. 154
  5358. and replaced with false information inside the
  5359. electronically controlled illusion of a prison
  5360. planet. We must not allow the apparent incredibility
  5361. of our situation to prevent us from confronting the
  5362. reality of it.
  5363. Frankly, "reasons" have nothing to do with reality.
  5364. There are no reasons. Things are what they are. If
  5365. we don't face the facts of our situation, we're going
  5366. to stay under the thumb of the "Old Empire" forever!
  5367. The biggest weapon the "Old Empire" has left now is
  5368. our ignorance of what they are doing to all the ISBEs on Earth. Disbelief and secrecy are the most
  5369. effective weapons they have!
  5370. The government agencies that classified the enclosed
  5371. transcripts as "TOP SECRET" are run by IS-BEs who are
  5372. nothing more than mindless automatons covertly
  5373. ordered about through hypnotic commands given by the
  5374. "Old Empire" prison operators. They are the
  5375. unknowing slaves of unseen slave masters -- and all
  5376. the more enslaved by their willingness to be slaves.
  5377. Most of the IS-BEs on Earth are good, honest, able
  5378. beings: artists, managers, geniuses, free thinkers
  5379. and revolutionaries who have harmed no one, really.
  5380. They are no threat to anyone except the criminals who
  5381. have imprisoned them.
  5382. They must find out about the "Old Empire" amnesia and
  5383. hypnosis operation. They must remember their own past
  5384. lives. The only way this will ever happen is to
  5385. communicate, coordinate and fight back. We have to
  5386. tell other people and they have to discuss it openly
  5387. with each other. Communication is the only effective
  5388. weapon against secrecy and oppression.
  5389. This is why I am asking you to tell this story.
  5390. Please share these transcripts with as many people as
  5391. you can. If the people of Earth are told what is
  5392. really going on here, perhaps they will begin to
  5393. remember who they are, and where they came from.
  5394. For now, we can begin our own release and rescue with
  5395. words. We can be free again. We can be ourselves
  5396. again. Perhaps I will meet you in person, with or
  5397. without a body, somewhere in our Eternal Future.
  5398. 155
  5399. Good Luck To All Of Us,
  5400. Matilda O'Donnell MacElroy
  5401. -- END OF MRS. MACELROY DOCUMENTS --
  5402. 156
  5403. Appendix: Editor's Footnotes
  5404. 157
  5405. Literature for Immortal Spiritual Beings
  5406. Written by
  5407. Lawrence R . Spencer
  5408. The Oz Factors
  5409. The "Wizard of Oz" as an Analogy to the Mysteries of Life
  5410. ( www.ozfactors.com )
  5411. Pan - God of The Woods
  5412. ( www.godofthewoods.com )
  5413. The Big Bleep
  5414. The Mystery of a Different Universe
  5415. ( www.thebigbleep.com )
  5416. Alien Interview
  5417. ( www.alieninterview.org )
  5418. 158
  5419. 1
  5420. "..."War of the Worlds, and The Invasion from Mars"..."
  5421. "... the day before Halloween, on Oct. 30, 1938, when millions of Americans tuned in to a
  5422. popular radio program that featured plays directed by, and often starring, Orson Welles. The
  5423. performance that evening was an adaptation of the science fiction novel The War of the
  5424. Worlds, about a Martian invasion of the Earth. But in adapting the book for a radio play,
  5425. Welles made an important change: under his direction the play was written and performed
  5426. so it would sound like a news broadcast about an invasion from Mars, a technique that,
  5427. presumably, was intended to heighten the dramatic effect.
  5428. As the play unfolded, dance music was interrupted a number of times by fake news bulletins
  5429. reporting that a "huge flaming object" had dropped on a farm near Grovers Mill, New Jersey.
  5430. As members of the audience sat on the edge of their collective seat, actors playing news
  5431. announcers, officials and other roles one would expect to hear in a news report, described
  5432. the landing of an invasion force from Mars and the destruction of the United States. The
  5433. broadcast also contained a number of explanations that it was all a radio play, but if
  5434. members of the audience missed a brief explanation at the beginning, the next one didn't
  5435. arrive until 40 minutes into the program.
  5436. At one point in the broadcast, an actor in a studio, playing a newscaster in the field,
  5437. described the emergence of one of the aliens from its spacecraft. "Good heavens,
  5438. something's wriggling out of the shadow like a gray snake," he said, in an appropriately
  5439. dramatic tone of voice. "Now it's another one, and another. They look like tentacles to me.
  5440. There, I can see the thing's body. It's large as a bear and it glistens like wet leather. But that
  5441. face. It...it's indescribable. I can hardly force myself to keep looking at it. The eyes are black
  5442. and gleam like a serpent. The mouth is V-shaped with saliva dripping from its rimless lips
  5443. that seem to quiver and pulsate....The thing is raising up. The crowd falls back. They've seen
  5444. enough. This is the most extraordinary experience. I can't find words. I'm pulling this
  5445. microphone with me as I talk. I'll have to stop the description until I've taken a new position.
  5446. Hold on, will you please, I'll be back in a minute."
  5447. As it listened to this simulation of a news broadcast the audience concluded that it was
  5448. hearing an actual news account of an invasion from Mars. People packed the roads,
  5449. hid in cellars, loaded guns, even wrapped their heads in wet towels as protection from
  5450. Martian poison gas, in an attempt to defend themselves against aliens, oblivious to
  5451. the fact that they were acting out the role of the panic-stricken public that actually
  5452. belonged in a radio play.
  5453. News of the panic (which was conveyed via genuine news reports) quickly generated
  5454. a national scandal. There were calls, which never went anywhere, for government
  5455. regulations of broadcasting to ensure that a similar incident wouldn't happen again.
  5456. In a prescient column, in the New York Tribune, Dorothy Thompson foresaw that the
  5457. broadcast revealed the way politicians could use the power of mass communications
  5458. to create theatrical illusions, to manipulate the public."
  5459. -- Reference: http://www.transparencynow.com/welles.htm
  5460. 2
  5461. "...Majestic-12 documents."
  5462. 159
  5463. "Majestic 12" or "MJ-12". (NOTE: All of the following information and/or assertions
  5464. concerning the MJ-12 documents are those of the authors of the following website:
  5465. http://www.majesticdocuments.com)
  5466. "Operation Majestic-12 was established by special classified presidential order on
  5467. September 24, 1947 at the recommendation of Secretary of Defense James Forrestal and
  5468. Dr. Vannevar Bush, Chairman of the Joint Research and Development Board. The goal of
  5469. the group was to exploit everything they could from recovered alien technology.
  5470. Buried in a super-secret "MAJIC EYES ONLY" classification that was above TOP SECRET
  5471. — long before the modern top secret codeword special access programs of today — Major
  5472. General Leslie R. Groves (who commanded the Manhattan Project to deliver the atomic
  5473. bomb) kept just one copy of the details of crashed alien technology in his safe in
  5474. Washington, D.C.
  5475. Ambitious, elite scientists such as Vannevar Bush, Albert Einstein, and Robert
  5476. Oppenheimer, and career military people such as Hoyt Vandenberg, Roscoe Hillenkoetter,
  5477. Leslie Groves, and George Marshall, along with a select cast of other experts, feverishly and
  5478. secretively labored to understand the alien agenda, technology, and their implications.
  5479. Einstein and Oppenheimer were called in to give their opinion, drafting a six-page paper
  5480. titled “Relationships With Inhabitants Of Celestial Bodies.” They provided prophetic insight
  5481. into our modern nuclear strategies and satellites, and expressed agitated urgency that an
  5482. agreement be reached with the President so that scientists could proceed to study the alien
  5483. technology.
  5484. The extraordinary recovery of fallen airborne objects in the state of New Mexico, between
  5485. July 4 – July 6, 1947, caused the Chief of Staff of the Army Air Force’s Interplanetary
  5486. Phenomena Unit, Scientific and Technical Branch, Counterintelligence Directorate to initiate
  5487. a thorough investigation. The special unit was formed in 1942 in response to two crashes in
  5488. the Los Angeles area in late February 1942. The draft summary report begins “At 2332 MST,
  5489. 3 July 47, radar stations in east Texas and White Sands Proving Ground, N.M. tracked two
  5490. unidentified aircraft until they both dropped off radar. Two crash sites have been located
  5491. close to the WSPG. Site LZ-1 was located at a ranch near Corona, Approx. 75 miles
  5492. northwest of the town of Roswell. Site LZ-2 was located approx. 20 miles southeast of the
  5493. town of Socorro, at latitude 33-40-31 and longitude 106-28-29”.
  5494. The first-ever-known UFO crash retrieval case occurred in 1941 in Cape Girardeau,
  5495. Missouri. This crash kicked off early reverse-engineering work, but it did not create a unified
  5496. intelligence effort to exploit possible technological gains apart from the Manhattan Project
  5497. uses.
  5498. The debris from the primary field of the 1947 crash 20 miles southeast of Socorro, New
  5499. Mexico was called ULAT-1 (Unidentified Lenticular Aerodyne Technology), and it excited
  5500. metallurgists with its unheard-of tensile and shear strengths. The fusion nuclear (called
  5501. neutronic at that time) engine used heavy water and deuterium with an oddly arranged
  5502. series of coils, magnets, and electrodes — descriptions that resemble the “cold fusion”
  5503. studies of today.
  5504. Harry Truman kept the technical briefing documents of September 24, 1947 for further study,
  5505. pondering the challenges of creating and funding a secret organization before the CIA
  5506. 160
  5507. existed (although the Central Intelligence Group or CIG did exist) and before there was a
  5508. legal procedure of funding non-war operations.
  5509. In April 1954, a group of senior officers of the U.S. intelligence community and the Armed
  5510. Forces gathered for one of the most secret and sensational briefings in history. The subject
  5511. was Unidentified Flying Objects — not just a discussion of sightings, but how to recover
  5512. crashed UFOs, where to ship the parts, and how to deal with the occupants. For example, in
  5513. the “Special Operations Manual (SOM1-01) Extraterrestrial Entities Technology Recovery
  5514. and Disposal,” MAJESTIC–12 “red teams” mapped out UFO crash retrieval scenarios with
  5515. special attention given to press blackouts, body packaging, and live alien transport, isolation,
  5516. and custody.
  5517. Majestic Documents.com is not another rehash of the famous Roswell story — it contains
  5518. over 500 pages (and growing) of newly surfaced documents, many of which date years
  5519. before the Roswell crash. Unlike other websites, a central theme of validating authenticity is
  5520. woven throughout the site while telling the exciting story of the U.S. government's work on
  5521. retrieval and analysis of extraterrestrial hardware and alien life forms from 1941 to present."
  5522. -- Reference: http://www.majesticdocuments.com/
  5523. 3
  5524. "Like Ripley said..."
  5525. Robert LeRoy Ripley (December 25, 1893 - May 27, 1949) was a cartoonist, entrepreneur,
  5526. and amateur anthropologist who created the world famous Ripley's Believe It or Not!
  5527. newspaper panel series, featuring odd but true facts from around the world. Subjects
  5528. covered in Ripley's cartoons and text ranged from sports feats to little known facts about
  5529. unusual and exotic sites, but what ensured the concept's popularity may have been that
  5530. Ripley also included items submitted by readers, who supplied photographs of a wide variety
  5531. of small town American trivia, ranging from unusually shaped vegetables to oddly marked
  5532. domestic animals, all documented by photographs and then engagingly depicted by Ripley's
  5533. prolific pen."
  5534. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5535. 4
  5536. "...Voltaire..."
  5537. "François-Marie Arouet (21 November 1694 – 30 May 1778), better known by the pen
  5538. name Voltaire, was a French Enlightenment writer, essayist, deist and philosopher known
  5539. for his wit, philosophical sport, and defense of civil liberties, including freedom of religion and
  5540. the right to a fair trial. He was an outspoken supporter of social reform despite strict
  5541. censorship laws and harsh penalties for those who broke them. A satirical polemicist, he
  5542. frequently made use of his works to criticize Christian Church dogma and the French
  5543. institutions of his day. Many of Voltaire's works and ideas would influence important thinkers
  5544. of both the American and French Revolutions."
  5545. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5546. 5
  5547. "...personal Hell..."
  5548. "The modern English word Hell is derived from Old English hel, helle (about 725 AD) and
  5549. ultimately from Proto-Germanic halja, meaning "one who covers up or hides something".
  5550. 161
  5551. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5552. 6
  5553. "...Top Secret"...
  5554. "Top Secret is the highest acknowledged level of classified information in many countries,
  5555. where it is defined as material that would cause "exceptionally grave damage" to national
  5556. security if disclosed. The term top secret can be applied to information, actions,
  5557. organizations, projects, etc. of which any knowledge is highly restricted."
  5558. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5559. 7
  5560. "... self-administered euthanasia...."
  5561. "The term euthanasia comes from the greek words "eu" and "thanatos" which combined
  5562. means “well-death” or "dying well". Hippocrates mentions euthanasia in the Hippocratic
  5563. Oath, which was written between 400 and 300 B.C. The ancient Greeks and Romans
  5564. generally did not believe that life needed to be preserved at any cost and were, in
  5565. consequence, tolerant of suicide in cases where no relief could be offered to the dying or, in
  5566. the case of the Stoics and Epicureans, where a person no longer cared for his life."
  5567. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5568. 8
  5569. "...County Meath, Ireland..."
  5570. "Meath (the "middle") was formed from the eastern part of the province of Midhe - see Kings
  5571. of Mide - but now forms part of Leinster. Historically this province of Meath included all of the
  5572. current county as well as all of Westmeath and parts of Cavan, Longford, Louth, Offaly,
  5573. Dublin and Kildare. The High King of Ireland sat at Tara in Meath. The archaeological
  5574. complex of Brú na Bóinne is 5,000 years old and includes the burial sites of Newgrange,
  5575. Knowth and Dowth, in the northeast of the county."
  5576. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5577. 9 "...The Great Mound" at Knowth, and Dowth, the "Fairy Mound of Darkness". These
  5578. are sacred "cairns" or massive stone structures that were erected about 3,700 BCE
  5579. and engraved with indecipherable hieroglyphs..."
  5580. "The astronomical significance of Kerbstone 51, the "Stone of the Seven Suns", at Dowth:
  5581. If moonlight were to shine on the back stone of the eastern passage at Knowth, it would
  5582. illuminate a map of the moon itself, the world's oldest known depiction of the lunar maria*.
  5583. The carvings are about 4800 years old. The next oldest depiction of the maria known to
  5584. science is that by Leonardo da Vinci in about 1505 AD.
  5585. * Lunar maria (singular: mare, two syllables) are large, dark, basaltic plains on Earth's
  5586. Moon, formed by ancient volcanic eruptions. They were dubbed maria, Latin for "seas", by
  5587. early astronomers who mistook them for actual seas. They are less reflective than the
  5588. "highlands" as a result of their iron-rich compositions, and hence appear dark to the naked
  5589. eye. The maria cover about 16% of the lunar surface, mostly on the near-side visible from
  5590. Earth. The few maria on the far-side are much smaller, residing mostly in very large craters
  5591. where only a small amount of flooding occurred. -- Reference: Wikipedia
  5592. The mythology about Dowth speaks of a bull and seven cows, it seems likely that the site
  5593. has some connection with the constellation of Taurus, the Bull, which contains the open
  5594. 162
  5595. cluster the Pleiades, otherwise known as "The Seven Sisters". This constellation was very
  5596. important around the year 3000BC, when the Boyne Valley mounds were being constructed,
  5597. as it contained the Sun on the Spring Equinox, that very important moment of the year when
  5598. the Sun's path along the ecliptic crossed the celestial equator heading northwards. It is the
  5599. Sun's position among the zodiac stars at this time which determines the current 'age' – i.e.
  5600. the "Age of Taurus".
  5601. Another interesting phenomenon which occurs at this time is what is known to astronomers
  5602. as a 'heliacal rising' of the Pleiades. This happens when the stars in question rise at the
  5603. eastern horizon but are quickly lost in the glare of the rising sun. It is interesting to note that
  5604. the Egyptians, and the Dogon tribe in Africa, (See: The Oz Factors) among others, used the
  5605. same Dowth-like 'sun-wheel' symbols to signify a heliacal rising.
  5606. If these 'sun-wheel' symbols do represent the heliacal rising of the Pleiades, it tells us
  5607. something very significant about the Neolithic people – they were aware of the great cycle of
  5608. precession, the slow wobble of the Earth's axis which causes the celestial pole to shift over
  5609. time, resulting in the Vernal Equinox point, that place where the Sun crosses the celestial
  5610. equator, moving backwards, or westwards, through the Zodiac over a huge 25,800-year
  5611. period. This Vernal point moves just one degree (about two widths of the full moon) every 72
  5612. years, and spends on average 2,150 years in each of the twelve constellations of the
  5613. Zodiac."
  5614. -- Reference: http://www.mythicalireland.com/ancientsites/dowth/candlelight.html
  5615. 10 "...In ancient Irish religion and mythology this (Tara) was the sacred place of
  5616. dwelling for the "gods"..."
  5617. " Sitting on top of the King's Seat (Forradh) of Temair is the most famous of Tara's
  5618. monuments - Ireland's ancient coronation stone - the Lia Fail or "Stone of Destiny", which
  5619. was brought here according to mythology by the godlike people, the Tuatha Dé Danann, as
  5620. one of their sacred objects. It was said to roar when touched by the rightful king of Tara.
  5621. A new theory suggests Tara was the ancient capital of the lost kingdom of Atlantis. The
  5622. mythical land of Atlantis was Ireland, according to a new book. There are a large number of
  5623. monuments and earthen structures on the Hill of Tara. The earliest settlement at the site was
  5624. in the Neolithic, and the Mound of the Hostages was constructed in or around 2500BC."
  5625. -- Reference: http://www.mythicalireland.com/ancientsites/tara/
  5626. 11 "...the Military - Industrial Complex that President Eisenhower warned us about in
  5627. his farewell address..."
  5628. "A military-industrial complex (MIC) is composed of a nation's armed forces, its suppliers
  5629. of weapons systems, supplies and services, and its civil government.
  5630. The term "MIC" is most often used in reference to the United States, where it gained
  5631. popularity after its use in the farewell address of President Dwight D. Eisenhower. In the
  5632. penultimate draft of the address, Eisenhower initially used the term military-industrialcongressional complex, and thus indicated the essential role that the United States
  5633. Congress plays in the propagation of the military industry. But, it is said, that the president
  5634. 163
  5635. chose to strike the word congressional in order to placate members of the legislative branch
  5636. of the federal government.
  5637. It is sometimes used more broadly to include the entire network of contracts and flows of
  5638. money and resources among individuals as well as institutions of the defense contractors,
  5639. The Pentagon, and the Congress and Executive branch. This sector is intrinsically prone to
  5640. Principal-agent problem, moral hazard, and rent seeking. Cases of political corruption have
  5641. also surfaced with regularity.
  5642. President of the United States (and former General of the Army) Dwight D. Eisenhower
  5643. later used the term in his Farewell Address to the Nation on January 17, 1961:
  5644. "A vital element in keeping the peace is our military establishment. Our arms must be
  5645. mighty, ready for instant action, so that no potential aggressor may be tempted to risk his
  5646. own destruction...
  5647. This conjunction of an immense military establishment and a large arms industry is new in
  5648. the American experience. The total influence — economic, political, even spiritual — is felt in
  5649. every city, every statehouse, every office of the federal government. We recognize the
  5650. imperative need for this development. Yet we must not fail to comprehend its grave
  5651. implications. Our toil, resources and livelihood are all involved; so is the very structure of our
  5652. society.
  5653. In the councils of government, we must guard against the acquisition of unwarranted
  5654. influence, whether sought or unsought, by the military-industrial complex. The potential for
  5655. the disastrous rise of misplaced power exists and will persist.
  5656. We must never let the weight of this combination endanger our liberties or democratic
  5657. processes. We should take nothing for granted. Only an alert and knowledgeable citizenry
  5658. can compel the proper meshing of the huge industrial and military machinery of defense with
  5659. our peaceful methods and goals so that security and liberty may prosper together."
  5660. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5661. 12 "... Roswell Army Air Field (RAAF)..."
  5662. "In May 1946, the Army Air Forces (AAF) gave SAC the responsibility of delivering the
  5663. atomic bomb. Only one of the command’s bombardment units, the 509th at Walker Air Force
  5664. Base (then Roswell Field) in New Mexico, was trained and ready for the atomic bomb
  5665. mission. The 509th Wing, training on the B-29 aircraft, dropped the first atomic bomb on
  5666. Japan."
  5667. -- Reference: http://www.strategic-air-command.com/bases/Walker_AFB.htm
  5668. 13 "...July 8, 1947, the Roswell Army Air Field (RAAF) issued a press release stating
  5669. that personnel from the field's 509th Bomb Group had recovered a crashed "flying
  5670. disc" from a ranch near Roswell, New Mexico..."
  5671. THE FOLLOWING LIST OF WITNESSES AND TESTIMONY REGARDING THE
  5672. "CRASHED FLYING DISC" INCIDENT THAT MRS. MACELROY DESCRIBES IN HER
  5673. LETTER:
  5674. 164
  5675. NOTE: Testimonial, Signed Affidavits, Photos And Other Resource Materials About The
  5676. Incident Can Be Viewed At The Following Website:
  5677. -- http://roswellproof.homestead.com/index.html
  5678. (Copyright ©2001 by David Rudiak. E-Mail: drudiak@lmi.net )
  5679. ______________________________________________________________________
  5680. "When we look at the contents of the message in conjunction with witness testimony, the
  5681. evidence clearly points to an actual flying saucer crash, as astonishing as this conclusion
  5682. may seem to many.
  5683. This testimony is gone into in much greater detail elsewhere in this Website. It consists
  5684. primarily of numerous and consistent descriptions of highly anomalous debris and to a
  5685. lesser extent of alien bodies. Here are a few key witnesses:
  5686. Major Jesse Marcel: Then the intelligence chief at Roswell and the first to investigate
  5687. sheep rancher Mack Brazel's find, Marcel confirmed in a number of interviews 30 years later
  5688. that the crash debris had highly anomalous properties and was "not of this Earth." Marcel
  5689. also spoke of Ramey's weather balloon cover-up at Fort Worth. Note particularly highly
  5690. laudatory post-Roswell evaluations by base commander Col. William Blanchard, Gen.
  5691. Ramey, and future USAF Chief of Staff Col. John Ryan.
  5692. Lt. Walter Haut: Former Roswell base public information officer who issued the base press
  5693. release. Haut's "deathbed" sealed affidavit has just been published. In it he confesses to
  5694. seeing the spacecraft and bodies in base Hangar 84/P-3 and tells us the mysterious press
  5695. release was General Ramey's idea to divert press and public attention away from the closer
  5696. and more important craft/body site.
  5697. Sgt Frederick Benthal: Army photographer flown in from Washington D.C., said he
  5698. photographed alien bodies in a tent at crash site and saw large quantities of crash debris
  5699. being hauled away in trucks.
  5700. PFC Elias Benjamin: Roswell MP, said he escorted the alien bodies from the heavily
  5701. guarded base Hangar P-3 to the base hospital, and saw a live one being worked on by
  5702. doctors; was threatened afterwards if he didn't keep quiet.
  5703. 1st Lt. Chester P. Barton: A crypto specialist and assigned to an MP unit, Barton said he
  5704. was ordered to the crash site 45 minutes north of town to check on the cleanup, saw a
  5705. football-field-size burn impact area heavily guarded by MPs, scattered metal debris, was told
  5706. radiation was at the site, heard archeologists had first discovered it, and also heard bodies
  5707. were taken to base hospital and then to Fort Worth. Because of what he saw, he knew that
  5708. the balloon explanation was ridiculous and there had been a cover-up. However, Barton
  5709. was unusual in being a flying saucer crash skeptic, instead thinking that it was maybe a B-29
  5710. crash and nuclear accident.
  5711. Bill Brazel Jr.: Rancher Mack Brazel's son, Bill Brazel independently corroborated many
  5712. details of Marcel's testimony, including the strange debris, the large, elongated debris field,
  5713. and his father's story of an explosion in the middle of a violent electrical storm.
  5714. Louis Rickett: One of the regular Army CIC agents in Marcel's office, Rickett confirmed the
  5715. anomalous quality of the debris, a major cleanup operation at Brazel's ranch, high secrecy,
  5716. and being involved in a subsequent investigation to determine the trajectory of the craft. He
  5717. 165
  5718. was also told by others about the shape of the main craft. Like Chester Barton, he placed
  5719. the main impact site a 45 minute drive north of Roswell.
  5720. Brig. Gen. Arthur Exon: Though not a direct participant, Exon was stationed at Wright
  5721. Field at the time, over flew the area soon afterwards, and was later commanding officer of
  5722. Wright-Patterson AFB. Exon when first interviewed flatly stated, "Roswell was the recovery
  5723. of a craft from space." Among other things, he confirmed the existence of two main crash
  5724. sites. Exon also said he heard that bodies were recovered and confirmed the debris was
  5725. highly anomalous based on testing done by labs at Wright-Patterson. Exon added that he
  5726. was aware of other crash-recoveries that occurred while he was C/O at Wright-Patterson.
  5727. Steven Lovekin (served in the White House Army Signal Corp during Eisenhower and
  5728. Kennedy administrations, 1959-1961) Although like Exon not a direct participant, Lovekin
  5729. said he received 1959 Pentagon briefings and being shown a metallic beam with symbols
  5730. from a 1947 N.M. crash (presumably Roswell) plus being told of either 3 or 5 aliens being
  5731. recovered, one initially alive. He also said he was shown very compelling photographic
  5732. and radar evidence of UFOs. He also testified of the threats against military personnel given
  5733. this information if they were to publicly reveal it. Finally, he told of Eisenhower's concern
  5734. over losing control of the situation with power falling into the hands of private corporations
  5735. given access to the materials.
  5736. Brig. Gen. Thomas Dubose: Gen. Ramey's Chief of Staff in 1947, Dubose handled the
  5737. high-level phone communications between Roswell, Fort Worth, and Washington. Dubose
  5738. went on record many times about the high secrecy involved (including the matter going
  5739. directly to the White House), receiving direct orders from Washington to instigate a cover-up,
  5740. Gen. Ramey's weather balloon cover story, and a highly secret shipment of debris from
  5741. Roswell to Fort Worth, Washington, and Wright Field. Dubose's damning testimony made
  5742. him a complete nonentity in the Air Force's 1995 Roswell report, which didn't even bother to
  5743. identify him in the photos taken of Gen. Ramey with his weather balloon. (Visit the website
  5744. to view Dubose's Air Force biography, his sworn affidavit, and a more detailed discussion of
  5745. his testimony which the Air Force was so eager to avoid.)
  5746. Sgt. Robert Slusher and PFC Lloyd Thompson: Crew members on a mysterious B-29
  5747. flight from Roswell to Fort Worth on July 9, 1947, transporting a large wooden crate in the
  5748. bomb bay surrounded by an armed guard. Upon arrival, the plane was met by high brass
  5749. and a mortician. This is probably the flight referred to in the Ramey memo that would ship
  5750. whatever was "in the 'disc'" to Fort Worth by a B-29 Special Transport plane. New witnesses
  5751. to the flight, including daughter of the head security guard, saying that alien bodies were
  5752. inside the crate.
  5753. Frank Kaufmann: A highly controversial witness claiming to be one of the exclusive
  5754. members of a special CIC-team (Army Counter-Intelligence Corp) in charge of the Roswell
  5755. recovery operation. Nonetheless, some of Kaufmann's claims seem to be corroborated by
  5756. the Ramey message, including the existence of such a team, the recovery of an intact "disk"
  5757. with bodies inside about 35 miles north of Roswell base, and the special team being
  5758. responsible for the initial Roswell base press release. Kaufmann also testified to knowing of
  5759. a wooden crate guarded in a hangar with the bodies packed inside awaiting shipment,
  5760. perhaps the same crate independently described by Slusher and Thompson.
  5761. Glenn Dennis: A Roswell mortician and another highly controversial witness, Dennis spoke
  5762. of receiving strange calls from the base about preservation techniques and child-sized
  5763. coffins. Dennis also claimed to be at the Roswell base hospital, seeing unusual debris in the
  5764. back of an ambulance including a pod-like object perhaps alluded to in the Ramey message,
  5765. 166
  5766. and being threatened. He also claimed to know a Roswell nurse who assisted in a
  5767. preliminary autopsy at the base hospital and who described the aliens to him.
  5768. The nurse subsequently disappeared. However, attempts to identify the mystery nurse have
  5769. proven to be a complete failure after Dennis provided a false name. However, also see
  5770. some corroborative evidence immediately following Dennis' affidavit, such as David
  5771. Wagnon, a medical technician, who remembered the nurse fitting Dennis' description, as did
  5772. Pete Anaya, who said the pretty nurse he knew and encountered at the base hangar telling
  5773. him of the bodies there subsequently disappeared.
  5774. Roswell police chief L. M. Hall stated that Dennis was telling him of calls from the base about
  5775. small coffins for the aliens only a few days after the crashed saucer story broke in the
  5776. Roswell papers. Similarly, S/Sgt. Milton Sprouse also said he heard of the coffin call from
  5777. Dennis and a medic friend told him of the alien bodies and autopsy at the hospital.
  5778. The medic and doctors and nurses involved in the autopsy all immediately were
  5779. transferred and their fate remained unknown. In addition, other independent witnesses
  5780. have provided first and second-hand testimony about small bodies being found with details
  5781. very similar to those provided by Dennis, including Walter Haut, Frederick Benthal, Eli
  5782. Benjamin, and relatives of "Pappy" Henderson.
  5783. Family and friends of Oliver "Pappy" Henderson: Henderson was one of the senior pilots
  5784. at Roswell. When the first public stories of a Roswell saucer crash began circulating in
  5785. 1981, Henderson confided to family and friends of being the pilot who flew bodies of the
  5786. aliens and crash wreckage to Wright Field. He also claimed to have seen the craft and
  5787. bodies, and provided a description of the aliens.
  5788. Sgt. Robert E. Smith: A member of an air transport unit at Roswell, Smith said he helped
  5789. load crates filled with debris for transport by C-54's, including one flown by Henderson and
  5790. his crew. Smith was also among the witnesses to describe the mysterious "memory foil"
  5791. which he said was in the crates. He further described strangers to the base dressed in
  5792. plainclothes and flashing ID cards for some unknown project, perhaps part of the special
  5793. CIC-team mentioned in the Ramey memo and by Frank Kaufmann. Finally he claimed that
  5794. distant cousin of his was with the Secret Service and was there at the base representing
  5795. President Truman. (The same name was also provided by Kaufmann.)
  5796. S/Sgt. Earl V. Fulford: In the engineering squadron, Fulford said he participated in the large
  5797. debris field cleanup guarded by MPs, handled the mysterious "memory foil," saw what may
  5798. have been the tarped crash object on a flatbed truck being towed to Hangar 84, and in the
  5799. middle of the night was made to load a large wooden crate into an idling C-54.
  5800. Earl Zimmerman: Formerly with AFOSI (AF counterintelligence). While in officers' club
  5801. heard many rumors about flying saucer crash and of it being investigated under the guise of
  5802. an airplane crash. Several times observed Gen. Ramey and Charles Lindbergh being at
  5803. base unannounced in connection with this. Like Robert Smith, spoke of seeing an unknown
  5804. CIC man being at base. Col. Blanchard told him it was OK. Later worked with astronomer
  5805. Dr. Lincoln LaPaz and corroborated story of Roswell CIC man Lewis Rickett that LaPaz
  5806. investigated Roswell afterwards with the help of the CIC to try to determine objects
  5807. trajectory. Again an airplane crash was the cover story.
  5808. Lt. Robert Shirkey: Then the assistant operations officer, Shirkey witnessed the loading of
  5809. the
  5810. 167
  5811. B-29 that took Major Marcel to Fort Worth to see Gen. Ramey. He said he saw boxes of
  5812. debris being carried on board, including an I-beam with raised markings and a large piece of
  5813. metal, brushed stainless steel in color, obviously not part of a tinfoil radar target. He was
  5814. told it was from a flying saucer. Along with witness Robert Porter, he also stated that the
  5815. plane's pilot was Deputy Commanding Officer Lt. Col. Payne Jennings, who was now the
  5816. Acting C/O with Col. Blanchard officially on leave. Nine days later, Shirkey was abruptly
  5817. transferred to the Philippines to a post that didn't exist. Jennings personally flew him to his
  5818. next assignment.
  5819. Sgt. Robert Porter: Was on Marcel's flight to Fort Worth and was handed wrapped
  5820. packages of debris samples. Said that flight was piloted by Deputy base commander
  5821. Jennings. He was told on board that the crash material was from a flying saucer. Later, they
  5822. told him it was a weather balloon. Said debris was loaded onto another plane.
  5823. Art McQuiddy: Former editor of the Roswell Morning Dispatch. Said base commander Col.
  5824. Blanchard admitted to authorizing base press release and of strange material being found by
  5825. his men.
  5826. Judd Roberts: Co-owner of Roswell radio station KGFL owner. Spoke of how they wirerecorded an interview with rancher Mack Brazel for later airing, then withdrew it about
  5827. receiving warnings from Washington about losing their license. Testified to seeing a military
  5828. cordon around Brazel crash site.
  5829. William Woody: Another witness to a military cordon thrown up up north of town along the
  5830. main highway, blocking access to the west.
  5831. Lydia Sleppy: Albuquerque teletype operator and one of earliest witnesses. Stated that the
  5832. story phoned in from field by Roswell radio reporter Johnny McBoyle about seeing the
  5833. crashed saucer and hearing of bodies was intercepted and cut-off on the teletype wire by the
  5834. FBI.
  5835. Loretta Proctor: Neighbor of rancher Mack Brazel. Brazel told her and her husband of
  5836. finding strange material before going to Roswell, and showing them a wood-like piece that
  5837. couldn't be cut or burned. They advised him to go to Roswell and report it. Brazel was
  5838. detained at the base and complained bitterly of his treatment when he returned.
  5839. Sally Strickland Tadolini: Another neighbor of Brazel's. Although only 9 years old at the
  5840. time, remembered Mack Brazel's grown son Bill Brazel bringing over a piece of metalliclooking debris with memory properties to show to her family (incident corroborated by her
  5841. mother). Described it as tough, resembled a smooth "fabric" like silk or satin, and, of course,
  5842. unfolded itself to its original shape after being crumpled up. Independently corroborated Bill
  5843. Brazel's story of finding material and also Marcel's of a metallic fabric material with memory
  5844. properties which he could blow through (therefore not balloon material). Also remembered
  5845. the adults talking about Mack Brazel's bad treatment at hands of military.
  5846. Dr. Jesse Marcel Jr.: 11-year old son of Major Marcel in 1947, recounts how his father
  5847. woke up his mother and himself in the middle of the night when he returned from the debris
  5848. field, showing them the pieces of a "flying saucer." Among other material, he distinctly
  5849. remembers a small metallic "I-beam" with purplish "hieroglyphics."
  5850. ____________________________________________________________________
  5851. 14 "... the Commanding General of the Eighth Air Force..."
  5852. 168
  5853. "General Roger M. Ramey was a major player in the Roswell Incident, but information on
  5854. him is hard to come by. Even though he became a fairly important Air Force general in the
  5855. early 1950s, for some reason the Air Force biographical Web page on their generals doesn't
  5856. list him.
  5857. Ramey was born in 1903 in Sulphur Springs, Texas, but grew up in Denton, Texas, about 40
  5858. miles north of Fort Worth. He graduated from North Texas State Teachers College in
  5859. Denton and wanted to study medicine. But he won a rodeo competition and "preferred
  5860. working on a ranch to books."
  5861. He was the mess sergeant in a local National Guard unit, and the captain insisted young
  5862. "Cowboy" Ramey take the competitive examination for entrance to the U.S. Military
  5863. Academy, winning the West Point appointment. He entered West Point in 1924.
  5864. July 26,1946: Ramey wrote Roswell intelligence chief Major Jesse Marcel a commendation
  5865. for his work during Crossroads, citing his important contributions to security, his handling of
  5866. complex intelligence matters, and the perfection of his staff briefings. A year later, Marcel
  5867. was to handle the initial investigation into the strange crash debris found by rancher Mac
  5868. Brazel near Roswell and fly the debris to Fort Worth for examination by Gen. Ramey.
  5869. June 30, 1947: Ramey and his intelligence chief were giving press interviews and
  5870. debunking the new flying saucer phenomenon.
  5871. July 6, 1947: Ramey spent all day attending an air show in his home town of Denton, TX
  5872. (and probably visiting relatives). Meanwhile, back in Fort Worth with Ramey away from the
  5873. base, his chief of staff, Brig. Gen. Thomas Dubose, said he first learned of the find at
  5874. Roswell by phone from SAC acting chief of staff Gen. McMullen. According to Dubose,
  5875. McMullen ordered debris samples flown immediately to Washington by "colonel courier," first
  5876. stopping in Fort Worth. The whole operation was carried out under the strictest secrecy, said
  5877. Dubose. McMullen ordered him not to tell anyone, not even Ramey.
  5878. July 8, 1947: The infamous Roswell base flying disk press release and Ramey's subsequent
  5879. debunking of it as a weather balloon. According to Dubose, McMullen ordered the cover-up
  5880. in another phone call to Dubose from Washington. Both Dubose and Roswell intelligence
  5881. chief Jesse Marcel said the weather balloon was not what Marcel brought from Roswell,
  5882. being nothing but a cover story to get rid of the press.
  5883. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5884. 15 "... U.S. Women's Army Air Force..."
  5885. "The Women's Army Corps (WAC) was the women's branch of the US Army. It was created
  5886. as an auxiliary unit, the Women's Army Auxiliary Corps in 1942, and converted to full status
  5887. as the WAC in 1943. About 150,000 American women served in the WAAC and WAC
  5888. during World War II. They were the first women other than nurses to serve with the Army."
  5889. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5890. 16 "...Flight Nurse"...
  5891. 169
  5892. "The Flight Nurse Badge is issued in two different versions, one for the Navy and the other
  5893. for the Air Force. To be awarded the Flight Nurse Badge, a service member must be a
  5894. commissioned officer and a Registered Nurse and must also complete training normally
  5895. befitting the award of the Aircrew Badge. The Flight Nurse Badge is then presented after a
  5896. probationary period of in-flight instruction and observation."
  5897. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  5898. 17 ..."Sheridan Cavitt of the Counter Intelligence Officer"...
  5899. (Please see the following Footnote)
  5900. 18 "... I was asked to accompany Mr. Cavitt, the Counter Intelligence officer, to the
  5901. crash site as the driver of his vehicle ...
  5902. "Most of the testimony in this (the following) document is from the 1992 book “Crash at
  5903. Corona” by Stanton Friedman and Don Berliner, published in the United States by Paragon
  5904. House. That book contains lots of other interesting material, including material regarding
  5905. another crash site in New Mexico.
  5906. Sequence of Events:
  5907. On July 2, 1947, during the evening, a flying saucer crashed on the Foster Ranch near
  5908. Corona, New Mexico. The crash occurred during a severe thunderstorm. (The military base
  5909. nearest the crash site is in Roswell, New Mexico; hence, Roswell is more closely associated
  5910. with this event than Corona, even though Corona is closer to the crash site.)
  5911. On July 3, 1947, William “Mac” Brazel (rhymes with “frazzle”) and his 7-year-old neighbor
  5912. Dee Proctor found the remains of the crashed flying saucer. Brazel was foreman of
  5913. the Foster Ranch. The pieces were spread out over a large area, perhaps more than half a
  5914. mile long. When Brazel drove Dee back home, he showed a piece of the wreckage to Dee’s
  5915. parents, Floyd and Loretta Proctor. They all agreed the piece was unlike anything they had
  5916. ever seen.
  5917. On July 6, 1947, Brazel showed pieces of the wreckage to Chaves County Sheriff George
  5918. Wilcox. Wilcox called Roswell Army Air Field (AAF) and talked to Major Jesse Marcel, the
  5919. intelligence officer. Marcel drove to the sheriff’s office and inspected the wreckage. Marcel
  5920. reported to his commanding officer, Colonel William “Butch” Blanchard. Blanchard ordered
  5921. Marcel to get someone from the Counter Intelligence Corps, and to proceed to the ranch
  5922. with Brazel, and to collect as much of the wreckage as they could load into their two
  5923. vehicles.
  5924. Soon after this, military police arrived at the sheriff’s office, collected the wreckage Brazel
  5925. had left there, and delivered the wreckage to Blanchard’s office. The wreckage was then
  5926. flown to Eighth Air Force headquarters in Fort Worth, and from there to Washington.
  5927. Meanwhile, Marcel and Sheridan Cavitt of the Counter Intelligence Corps drove to the ranch
  5928. with Mac Brazel. They arrived late in the evening. They spent the night in sleeping bags in a
  5929. small out-building on the ranch, and in the morning proceeded to the crash site.
  5930. On July 7, 1947, Marcel and Cavitt collected wreckage from the crash site. After filling
  5931. Cavitt’s vehicle with wreckage, Marcel told Cavitt to go on ahead, that Marcel would collect
  5932. more wreckage, and they would meet later back at Roswell AAF. Marcel filled his vehicle
  5933. 170
  5934. with wreckage. On the way back to the air field, Marcel stopped at home to show his wife
  5935. and son the strange material he had found.
  5936. On July 7, 1947, around 4:00 pm, Lydia Sleppy at Roswell radio station KSWS began
  5937. transmitting a story on the teletype machine regarding a crashed flying saucer out on
  5938. the Foster Ranch. Transmission was interrupted, seemingly by the FBI.
  5939. On July 8, 1947, in the morning, Marcel and Cavitt arrived back at Roswell AAF with two
  5940. carloads of wreckage. Marcel accompanied this wreckage, or most it, on a flight to Fort
  5941. Worth AAF.
  5942. On July 8, 1947, around noon, Colonel Blanchard at Roswell AAF ordered Second
  5943. Lieutenant Walter Haut to issue a press release telling the country that the Army had found
  5944. the remains of a crashed a flying saucer. Haut was the public information officer for the
  5945. 509th Bomb Group at Roswell AAF. Haut delivered the press release to Frank Joyce at radio
  5946. station KGFL. Joyce waited long enough for Haut to return to the base, then called Haut
  5947. there to confirm the story. Joyce then sent the story on the Western Union wire to the
  5948. United Press bureau.
  5949. On July 8, 1947, in the afternoon, General Clemence McMullen in Washington spoke by
  5950. telephone with Colonel (later Brigadier General) Thomas DuBose in Fort Worth, chief of
  5951. staff to Eighth Air Force Commander General Roger Ramey. McMullen ordered DuBose to
  5952. tell Ramey to quash the flying saucer story by creating a cover story, and to send some of
  5953. the crash material immediately to Washington.
  5954. On July 8, 1947, in the afternoon, General Roger Ramey held a press conference at Eighth
  5955. Air Force headquarters in Fort Worth in which he announced that what had crashed at
  5956. Corona was a weather balloon, not a flying saucer. To make this story convincing, he
  5957. showed the press the remains of a damaged weather balloon that he claimed was the actual
  5958. wreckage from the crash site. (Apparently, the obliging press did not ask why the Army
  5959. hurriedly transported weather balloon wreckage to Fort Worth, Texas, site of the press
  5960. conference, from the crash site in a remote area of New Mexico.)
  5961. The only newspapers that carried the initial flying saucer version of the story were evening
  5962. papers from the Midwest to the West, including the Chicago Daily News, the Los Angeles
  5963. Herald Express, the San Francisco Examiner, and the Roswell Daily Record. The New York
  5964. Times, the Washington Post, and the Chicago Tribune were morning papers and so carried
  5965. only the cover-up story the next morning.
  5966. At some point, a large group of soldiers were sent to the debris field on the Foster Ranch,
  5967. including a lot of MPs whose job was to limit access to the field. A wide search
  5968. was launched well beyond the limits of the debris field. Within a day or two, a few miles from
  5969. the debris field, the main body of the flying saucer was found, and a mile or two from that
  5970. several bodies of small humanoids were found.
  5971. The military took Mac Brazel into custody for about a week, during which time he was seen
  5972. on the streets of Roswell with a military escort. His behavior aroused the curiosity of
  5973. friends when he passed them without any sign of recognition. Following this period of
  5974. detention, Brazel repudiated his initial story."
  5975. --- Reference: http://ufo.jack.sk/unidentified-flying-objects/roswell/
  5976. 171
  5977. 19 "...I discovered that one of the personnel on board the craft had survived the
  5978. crash... "
  5979. The following is a verbatim copy of the signed Affidavit submitted on 8-7-1991 by
  5980. Glenn Dennis, a mortician, in Roswell, N.M. at the time of the incident described in the
  5981. letter from Mrs. MacElroy: (PLEASE NOTE: Mrs. MacElroy is NOT the same nurse that
  5982. Mr. Dennis mentions in his Affidavit. Although no official identification has been made,
  5983. several witnesses have identified "Nurse X" as 1st Lt. Adeline "Eileen" Fanton.)
  5984. "AFFIDAVIT OF GLENN DENNIS
  5985. (1) My name is Glenn Dennis
  5986. (2) My address is: XXXXXXXXXX
  5987. (3) I am ( ) employed as: __________________________________ ( ) retired,
  5988. (4) In July 1947, I was a mortician, working for the Ballard Funeral Home in Roswell, which
  5989. had a contract to provide mortuary services for the Roswell Army Air Field. One afternoon,
  5990. around 1:15 or 1:30, I received a call from the base mortuary officer who asked what was the
  5991. smallest size hermetically sealed casket that we had in stock. He said, "We need to know
  5992. this in case something comes up in the future." He asked how long it would take to get one,
  5993. and I assured him I could get one for him the following day. He said he would call back if
  5994. they needed one.
  5995. (5) About 45 minutes to an hour later, he called back and asked me to describe the
  5996. preparation for bodies that had been lying out on the desert for a period of time. Before I
  5997. could answer, he said he specifically wanted to know what effect the preparation procedures
  5998. would have on the body's chemical compounds, blood and tissues. I explained that our
  5999. chemicals were mainly strong solutions of formaldehyde and water, and that the procedure
  6000. would probably alter the body's chemical composition. I offered to come out to the base to
  6001. assist with any problem he might have, but he reiterated that the information was for future
  6002. use. I suggested that if he had such a situation that I would try to freeze the body in dry ice
  6003. for storage and transportation.
  6004. (6) Approximately a hour or an hour and 15 minutes later, I got a call to transport a
  6005. serviceman who had a laceration on his head and perhaps a fractured nose. I gave him first
  6006. aid and drove him out to the base. I got there around 5:00 PM.
  6007. (7) Although I was a civilian, I usually had free access on the base because they knew me.
  6008. I drove the ambulance around to the back of the base infirmary and parked it next to another
  6009. ambulance. The door was open and inside I saw some wreckage. There were several
  6010. pieces which looked like the bottom of a canoe, about three feet in length. It resembled
  6011. stainless steel with a purple hue, as if it had been exposed to high temperature. There was
  6012. some strange-looking writing on the material resembling Egyptian hieroglyphics. Also there
  6013. were two MPs present.
  6014. (8) I checked the airman in and went to the staff lounge to have a Coke. I intended to look
  6015. for a nurse, a 2nd Lieutenant, who had been commissioned about three months earlier right
  6016. out of college. She was 23 years of age at the time (I was 22). I saw her coming out of one
  6017. of the examining rooms with a cloth over her mouth. She said, "My gosh, get out of here or
  6018. you're going to be in a lot of trouble." She went into another door where a Captain stood.
  6019. 172
  6020. He asked me who I was and what I was doing here. I told him, and he instructed me to stay
  6021. there. I said, "It looks like you've got a crash; would you like me to get ready?" He told me
  6022. to stay right there. Then two MPs came up and began to escort me out of the infirmary.
  6023. They said they had orders to follow me out to the funeral home.
  6024. (9) We got about 10 or 15 feet when I heard a voice say, "We're not through with that SOB.
  6025. Bring him back." There was another Captain, a redhead with the meanest-looking eyes I
  6026. had ever seen, who said, "You did not see anything, there was no crash here, and if you say
  6027. anything you could get into a lot of trouble." I said, "Hey look mister, I'm a civilian and you
  6028. can't do a damn thing to me." He said, "Yes we can; somebody will be picking your bones
  6029. out of the sand." There was a black Sergeant with a pad in his hand who said, "He would
  6030. make good dog food for our dogs." The Captain said, "Get the SOB out." The MPs followed
  6031. me back to the funeral home.
  6032. (10) The next day, I tried to call the nurse to see what was going on. About 11:00 AM, she
  6033. called the funeral home and said, "I need to talk to you." We agreed to meet at the officers
  6034. club. She was very upset. She said, "Before I talk to you, you have to give me a sacred
  6035. oath that you will never mention my name, because I could get into a lot of trouble." I
  6036. agreed.
  6037. (11) She said she had gone to get supplies in a room where two doctors were performing a
  6038. prelimary autopsy. The doctors said they needed her to take notes during the procedure.
  6039. She said she had never smelled anything so horrible in her life, and the sight was the most
  6040. gruesome she had ever seen. She said, "This was something no one has ever seen." As
  6041. she spoke, I was concerned that she might go into shock.
  6042. (12) She drew me a diagram of the bodies, including an arm with a hand that had only four
  6043. fingers; the doctors noted that on the end of the fingers were little pads resembling suction
  6044. cups. She said the head was disproportionately large for the body; the eyes were deeply
  6045. set; the skulls were flexible; the nose was concave with only two orifices; the mouth was a
  6046. fine slit, and the doctors said there was heavy cartilage instead of teeth. The ears were only
  6047. small orifices with flaps. They had no hair, and the skin was black--perhaps due to exposure
  6048. in the sun. She gave me the drawings.
  6049. (13) There were three bodies; two were very mangled and dismembered, as if destroyed by
  6050. predators; one was fairly intact. They were three-and-a-half to four feet tall. She told me the
  6051. doctors said: "This isn't anything we've ever see before; there's nothing in the medical
  6052. textbooks like this." She said she and the doctors became ill. They had to turn off the air
  6053. conditioning and were afraid the smell would go through the hospital. They had to move the
  6054. operation to an airplane hangar.
  6055. (14) I drove her back to the officers' barracks. The next day I called the hospital to see how
  6056. she was, and they said she wasn't available. I tried to get her for several days, and finally
  6057. got one of the nurses who said the Lieutenant had been transferred out with some other
  6058. personnel. About 10 days to two weeks later, I got a letter from her with an APO number.
  6059. She indicated we could discuss the incident by letter in the future. I wrote back to her and
  6060. about two weeks later the letter came back marked "Return to Sender--DECEASED." Later,
  6061. one of the nurses at the base said the rumor was that she and five other nurses had been on
  6062. a training mission and had been killed in a plane crash.
  6063. (15) Sheriff George Wilcox and my father were very close friends. The Sheriff went to my
  6064. folks' house the morning after the events at the base and said to my father, "I don't know
  6065. what kind of trouble Glenn's in, but you tell your son that he doesn't know anything and
  6066. 173
  6067. hasn't seen anything at the base." He added, "They want you and your wife's name, and
  6068. they want your and your children's addresses." My father immediately drove to the funeral
  6069. home and asked me what kind of trouble I was in. He related the conversation with Sheriff
  6070. Wilcox, and so I told him about the events of the previous day. He is the only person to
  6071. whom I have told this story until recently.
  6072. (16) I had filed away the sketches the nurse gave me that day. Recently, at the request of a
  6073. researcher, I tried to locate my personal files at the funeral home, but they had all been
  6074. destroyed.
  6075. (17) I have not been paid or given anything of value to make this statement, which is the
  6076. truth to the best of my recollection.
  6077. Signed: Glenn Dennis
  6078. Date: 8-7-91"
  6079. -- Reference: http://roswellproof.homestead.com/Dennis.html
  6080. (Copyright ©2001 by David Rudiak. E-Mail: drudiak@lmi.net )
  6081. ______________________________________________________________________
  6082. 20 "...telepathic thought..."
  6083. "Telepathy, from the Greek τελε, tele meaning "remote" and πάθεια, patheia meaning "to be
  6084. affected by", describes the purported transfer of information on thoughts or feelings between
  6085. individuals by means other than the five classical senses. The term was coined in 1882 by
  6086. the classical scholar Fredric W. H. Myers, a founder of the Society for Psychical Research,
  6087. specifically to replace the earlier expression thought-transference. A person who is able to
  6088. make use of telepathy is said to be able to read the minds of others. Telepathy, along with
  6089. psychokinesis forms the main branches of parapsychological research, and many studies
  6090. seeking to detect and understand telepathy have been done within the field.
  6091. Telepathy is a common theme in fiction and science fiction, with many superheroes and
  6092. supervillains having telepathic abilities. Such abilities include both sensing the thoughts of
  6093. others, and controlling the minds of other people. Transhumanists believe that
  6094. technologically enabled telepathy, called "techlepathy", will be the inevitable future of
  6095. humanity, and seek to develop practical, safe devices for directly connecting human nervous
  6096. systems."
  6097. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6098. 21 "...I was the only women at the site..."
  6099. "Another story about the alien bodies and a vanishing nurse came from Pete and Ruben
  6100. Anaya, who said they picked up N.M. Lt. Governor Joseph Montoya outside the large base
  6101. hangar. Besides the hangar being heavily guarded by MPs, they said there was a base
  6102. nurse (or maybe two different nurses) who came outside the hangar and spoke briefly with
  6103. them. Ruben said she told him that the bodies were "not from this world" and then noticed
  6104. one of them moving. Ruben said he then went to take a look and also glimpsed two small
  6105. bodies from a distance under sheets inside the hangar and one of them moving. He
  6106. described the nurse he spoke to as blondish and heavyset. [Note: Of the five nurses that are
  6107. pictured in the base yearbook from around June/July 1947, none of them appear blondish or
  6108. heavyset, though.
  6109. 174
  6110. In contrast, Pete Anaya said he knew the nurse he spoke to from the Officer's Club (his
  6111. brother Ruben worked there as a cook), had danced with her once the previous Halloween
  6112. at a party, said she resembled his wife Mary, and was a beautiful women with beautiful hair.
  6113. He wanted to go inside the hangar to see what was going on, and she told him he didn't
  6114. want to see anything. After that, he said he never saw her again. (Source: Tim Shawcross,
  6115. The Roswell File, 1997)
  6116. Former Roswell police chief L.M. Hall remembered Dennis telling him only a few days after
  6117. the newspaper stories of the crashed flying saucer, about strange calls from the base for
  6118. child-size caskets "to ship or bury those aliens."
  6119. Another witness that recently came forth to corroborate parts of Dennis' story was S/Sgt.
  6120. Milton Sprouse, then a B-29 crew chief with the 830th Bomb Squadron. Sprouse said he
  6121. spoke to Dennis several years later while Dennis handled a funeral for a friend. Dennis told
  6122. him he had received a call from the base for five children's caskets for a crash that had
  6123. happened 2 or 3 days before. Thus it seems that Dennis' story of the child casket call is not
  6124. of recent origin but dates back to the original event itself.
  6125. Sprouse said the bodies were taken to a hangar heavily guarded by MPs with machine
  6126. guns. He also said he knew something about the autopsy initially described by Dennis. A
  6127. fellow staff sergeant in his barracks, who worked as an emergency room medic at the base
  6128. hospital, was called out there. When he came back he related that an autopsy on one or two
  6129. of the "humanoid bodies" had been carried out by two doctors and two nurses. His friend
  6130. said he had seen the bodies. Similar to Dennis' nurse, the sergeant was transferred the
  6131. following day and nobody ever found out what became of him.
  6132. Sprouse also heard that the doctors and nurses involved with the autopsy were also
  6133. transferred and nobody found out what became of them either. Five members of his ground
  6134. crew were also sent to the ranch to help clean up the debris field. They told him the material
  6135. was "out of this world," including foil that when crumpled returned to its original shape."
  6136. -- Reference: (San Diego Union-Tribune story, 10/26/2007; North County Times story,
  6137. 9/30/2007 --San Diego, Riverside)
  6138. 22 "...prehensile..."
  6139. "The word is derived from the Latin term prehendere, meaning "to grasp." It is the quality of
  6140. an organ that has adapted for grasping or holding. Examples of prehensile body parts
  6141. include the tails of New World monkeys and opossums, the trunks of elephants, the tongues
  6142. of giraffes, the lips of horses and the proboscides of tapir. The hands of primates are all
  6143. prehensile to varying degrees, and many species (even a few humans) have prehensile feet
  6144. as well. The claws of cats are also prehensile. Many extant lizards have prehensile tails
  6145. (geckos, chameleons, and a species of skink). The fossil record shows prehensile tails in
  6146. lizards (Simiosauria) going back many million years to the Triassic period .
  6147. Prehensility is an evolutionary adaptation that has afforded species a great natural
  6148. advantage in manipulating their environment for feeding, digging, and defense. It enables
  6149. many animals, such as primates, to use tools in order to complete tasks that would
  6150. otherwise be impossible without highly specialized anatomy. For example, chimpanzees
  6151. have the ability to use sticks to fish for termites and grubs. However, not all prehensile
  6152. organs are applied to tool use- the giraffe tongue, for instance, is instead used in feeding
  6153. and self-cleaning behaviors."
  6154. 175
  6155. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6156. 23 "... able to detect waves or particles beyond the visual spectrum of light."
  6157. The visible spectrum (or sometimes called the optical spectrum) is the portion of the
  6158. electromagnetic spectrum that is visible to (can be detected by) the human eye.
  6159. Electromagnetic radiation in this range of wavelengths is called visible light or simply light.
  6160. A typical human eye will respond to wavelengths in air from about 380 to 750 nm. The
  6161. corresponding wavelengths in water and other media are reduced by a factor equal to the
  6162. refractive index. In terms of frequency, this corresponds to a band in the vicinity of 400-790
  6163. terahertz. A light-adapted eye generally has its maximum sensitivity at around 555 nm (540
  6164. THz), in the green region of the optical spectrum. The spectrum does not, however, contain
  6165. all the corlors that the human eyes and brain can distinguish. Brown, pink, and magenta are
  6166. absent, for example, because they need a mix of multiple wavelengths, preferably shades of
  6167. red.
  6168. Wavelengths visible to the eye also pass through the "optical window", the region of the
  6169. electromagnetic spectrum which passes largely unattenuated through the Earth's
  6170. atmosphere (although blue light is scattered more than red light, which is the reason the sky
  6171. is blue). The response of the human eye is defined by subjective testing, but the
  6172. atmospheric windows are defined by physical measurement. The "visible window" is so
  6173. called because it overlaps the human visible response spectrum; the near infrared windows
  6174. lie just out of human response window, and the Medium Wavelength and Long Wavelength
  6175. or Far Infrared are far beyond the human response region.
  6176. The eyes of many species perceive wavelengths different from the spectrum visible to the
  6177. human eye. For example, many insects, such as bees, can see light in the ultraviolet, which
  6178. is useful for finding nectar in flowers. For this reason, plant species whose life cycles are
  6179. linked to insect pollination may owe their reproductive success to their appearance in
  6180. ultraviolet light, rather than how colorful they appear to our eyes."
  6181. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6182. 24 "... this may have included the full range of the electromagnetic spectrum..."
  6183. "The electromagnetic spectrum is the range of all possible electromagnetic radiation. The
  6184. "electromagnetic spectrum" (usually just spectrum) of an object is the characteristic
  6185. distribution of electromagnetic radiation from that object.
  6186. The electromagnetic spectrum extends from below the frequencies used for modern radio (at
  6187. the long-wavelength end) through gamma radiation (at the short-wavelength end), covering
  6188. wavelengths from thousands of kilometres down to a fraction the size of an atom. It's thought
  6189. that the short wavelength limit is the vicinity of the Planck length, and the long wavelength
  6190. limit is the size of the universe itself, although in principle the spectrum is infinite and
  6191. continuous."
  6192. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6193. 25 "... her gaze seemed to penetrate right through me, as though she had "x-ray
  6194. vision".
  6195. "In fictional stories, X-ray vision has generally been portrayed as the ability to see through
  6196. layers of objects at the discretion of the holder of this superpower. People often pretend to
  6197. 176
  6198. have this ability through the use of X-ray glasses, which are a special type of "joke-around"
  6199. or prank-gag toys with the secret of its "x-ray properties" being unknown. The goal is usually
  6200. to see through clothing, usually to determine if someone is carrying a concealed weapon, but
  6201. sometimes for purpose of seeing a person's private parts. In the non-fictional realm, X-rays
  6202. have many practical uses in the fields of science and medicine. While there are devices
  6203. currently extant which can "see" through clothing (using terahertz waves), most are quite
  6204. bulky. However, there are night vision equipped video cameras that can be modified to see
  6205. through clothing at a frequency just below visible light."
  6206. -- Source Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6207. 26 ..."Technically, from a medical standpoint, I would say that Airl's body could not
  6208. even be called "alive". "
  6209. "The word "organism" may broadly be defined as an assembly of molecules that function as
  6210. a more or less stable whole and has the properties of life. However, many sources, lexical
  6211. and scientific, add conditions that are problematic to defining the word.
  6212. The Oxford English Dictionary defines an organism as "[an] individual animal, plant, or
  6213. single-celled life form".
  6214. This definition problematically excludes non-animal and plant multicellular life forms such as some fungi and protista. Less controversially, perhaps, it excludes
  6215. viruses and theoretically-possible man-made non-organic life forms.
  6216. Chambers Online Reference provides a much broader definition: "any living structure, such
  6217. as a plant, animal, fungus or bacterium, capable of growth and reproduction". The definition
  6218. "any life form capable of independent reproduction, organic or otherwise" would encompass
  6219. all cellular life, as well as the possibility of synthetic life capable of independent reproduction,
  6220. but would exclude viruses, which are dependent on the biochemical machinery of a host cell
  6221. for reproduction. Some may use a definition that would also include viruses."
  6222. -- Source Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6223. 27 "...in space there is not gravity..."
  6224. "The terms gravitation and gravity are mostly interchangeable in everyday use, but in
  6225. scientific usage a distinction may be made. "Gravitation" is a general term describing the
  6226. attractive influence that all objects with mass exert on each other, while "gravity" specifically
  6227. refers to a force that is supposed in some theories (such as Newton's) to be the cause of this
  6228. attraction. By contrast, in general relativity gravitation is due to space-time curvatures that
  6229. cause inertially moving objects to accelerate towards each other.
  6230. Isaac Newton's theory of universal gravitation is a physical law describing the
  6231. gravitational attraction between bodies with mass. It is a part of classical mechanics and was
  6232. first formulated in Newton's work Philosophiae Naturalis Principia Mathematica, published in
  6233. 1687. In modern language it states the following:
  6234. Every point mass attracts every other point mass by a force pointing along the line
  6235. intersecting both points. The force is proportional to the product of the two masses and
  6236. inversely proportional to the square of the distance between the point masses:
  6237. 177
  6238. where:
  6239. • F is the magnitude of the gravitational force between the two point masses,
  6240. • G is the gravitational constant,
  6241. • m1 is the mass of the first point mass,
  6242. • m2 is the mass of the second point mass,
  6243. • r is the distance between the two point masses."
  6244. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6245. 28 "...stenographer..."
  6246. "Shorthand is an abbreviated and/or symbolic writing method that increases speed or brevity
  6247. of writing as compared to a normal method of writing a language. The process of writing in
  6248. shorthand is called stenography, from the Greek stenos (narrow) and graphē (writing). It has
  6249. also been called brachygraphy, from Greek brachys (short) and tachygraphy, from Greek
  6250. tachys (swift, speedy), depending on whether compression or speed of writing is the goal.
  6251. Many forms of shorthand exist. A typical shorthand system provides symbols or
  6252. abbreviations for words and common phrases, which allow someone well trained in the
  6253. system to write as quickly as people speak. Shorthand was used more widely in the past,
  6254. before the invention of recording and dictation machines."
  6255. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6256. 29 "... INVESTIGATION OF "BURNING CLOUDS" / RADIATION / EXPLOSIONS..."
  6257. "July 16, 1945..." -- The first test of a nuclear device was made in the desert north of
  6258. Alamogordo, New Mexico. Roswell, New Mexico is only 117 miles from Alamogordo.
  6259. NOTE: In 1932 that British explorers in Model-A Fords first visited this area of western
  6260. Egypt, where they discovered a mysterious yellow-green glass scattered across the surface.
  6261. Ever since, Libyan Desert Glass has fascinated scientists, who have dreamed up all sorts of
  6262. ideas about how it could have formed. It’s too silica rich to be volcanic. In some ways it
  6263. resembles the tektites generated by the high pressures associated with asteroid impacts.
  6264. Vincenzo de Michele visited the Egyptian Museum in Cairo, and noticed that one of King
  6265. Tutankhamun’s jeweled breastplates contained a carved scarab that looked suspiciously like
  6266. a piece of the glass. A simple optical measurement confirmed the match in 1998. Nuclear
  6267. explosions are hot enough to fuse surface materials into glass, much like the first
  6268. atomic explosion generated yellow - green glass at the Trinity, New Mexico site in
  6269. 1945. Many similar sites around the world that are associated with unexplainable
  6270. "cataclysmic" events reveal the same yellow - green glass. This "yellow-green glass" has
  6271. been discovered in strata of rock which contain dinosaur fossils all over the world.
  6272. June 30, 1947 -- "The Evaluation of the Atomic Bomb as a Military Weapon", made by the
  6273. Atomic Energy Commission was received by President Truman. With a brilliant flourish of
  6274. suicidal logic, that only the military, politicians other lunatics are capable of fathoming, the
  6275. recommendation of the Commission, based on explosions of bombs in Alamogordo, New
  6276. Mexico, on innocent civilians in two Japanese cities, and on the Marshall Islands, was as
  6277. follows: (Seriously, you can't make this shit up, folks!)
  6278. "PART III -- Conclusions and Recommendations
  6279. 178
  6280. Section One - CONCLUSIONS
  6281. 1. The Board has reached the following major conclusions:
  6282. (1) If used in numbers, atomic bombs not only can nullify any nation's military effort,
  6283. but can demolish its social and economic structures and prevent their reestablishment
  6284. for long periods of time. With such weapons, especially if employed in conjunction with
  6285. other weapons of mass destruction as, for example, pathogenic bacteria, it is quite
  6286. possible to depopulate vast areas of the earth's surface, leaving only vestigial remnants
  6287. of man's material works.
  6288. (2) The threat of the uncontrolled use of the atomic bomb and of other weapons of
  6289. mass destruction is a threat to mankind and to civilization. Only the outlawing of all war
  6290. and the setting up on an adequate international control of weapons of mass destruction
  6291. can lift this threat from the peoples of the world.
  6292. (3) In the absence of absolute guarantees of abiding peace, the United States has
  6293. not alternative but to continue the manufacture and stockpiling of weapons of nuclear
  6294. fission and to carry on continuous research and development for their improvement in
  6295. the means of their delivery."
  6296. (REFERENCE: President's Secretary's File, Truman Papers.
  6297. ( http://www.trumanlibrary.org/whistlestop/study_collections/bomb/large/index.php )
  6298. July 8, 1947 -- Alien space craft crashes at Roswell, NM while investigation nuclear testing
  6299. in the area.-- The Editor
  6300. 30 "...trillions..."
  6301. One thousand thousand = one million. ( 1,000,000 )
  6302. One thousand million = one billion. ( 1,000,000,000 )
  6303. One thousand billion = one trillion. ( 1,000,000,000,000 )
  6304. "The English names for large numbers are coined from the Latin names for small numbers n
  6305. by adding the ending -illion suggested by the name "million." Thus billion and trillion are
  6306. coined from the Latin prefixes bi- (n = 2) and tri- (n = 3), respectively.
  6307. In recent years, American usage has eroded the European number definitions, particularly in
  6308. Britain and to a lesser extent in other countries. This is primarily due to American finance,
  6309. because Americans insist that $1,000,000,000 be called a billion dollars. In 1974, the
  6310. government of Prime Minister Harold Wilson announced that henceforth "billion" would mean
  6311. 109
  6312. and not 1012 in official British reports and statistics. Anyone who uses the words "billion"
  6313. and "trillion" internationally should make clear which meaning of those words is intended."
  6314. -- Reference: Russ Rowlett and the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill.
  6315. 31 "...her name was Gertrude something or other..."
  6316. This was probably Gertrude R. Schmeidler, who was a notable experimental psychologist
  6317. and parapsychologist at the time. She published journal articles and books about how
  6318. various factors and traits affect a person's extrasensory perception (ESP) abilities.
  6319. Studied the role of women in parapsychology, and formed groups and institutes interested in
  6320. the study of ESP, such as the American Society for Psychical Research, the Duke University
  6321. Parapsychology Laboratory, and the Parapsychology Foundation, Inc.
  6322. 179
  6323. Reflected in much of her research is the work for which Schmeidler is most notable, the
  6324. development of the metaphor of the sheep and goats. She determined through several
  6325. cycles of ESP card-guessing experiments that "sheep" (persons who believed that success
  6326. was possible in ESP tasks) scored higher than "goats" (those who rejected the possibility of
  6327. success).
  6328. -- Reference: http://library.duke.edu/
  6329. 32 "...Krishnamurti..."
  6330. "Jiddu Krishnamurti (May 12, 1895 – February 17, 1986) was born into a Telugu Brahmin
  6331. family in Madanapalle, India, and in 1909 met C.W. Leadbeater on the private beach at the
  6332. Theosophical Society headquarters at Adyar in Madras (now Chennai), India. He was
  6333. subsequently raised under the tutelage of Annie Besant and C.W. Leadbeater, leaders of the
  6334. Society at the time, who believed him to be a "vehicle" for an expected "World Teacher". As
  6335. a young man, he disavowed this idea and dissolved a world-wide organization (the Order of
  6336. the Star) established to support it. He spent the rest of his life traveling the world as an
  6337. individual speaker, speaking to large and small groups, as well as with interested individuals.
  6338. He was a well-known writer and speaker on fundamental philosophical and spiritual subjects.
  6339. His subject matter included (but was not limited to): the purpose of meditation, human
  6340. relationships, and how to enact positive change in global society. At the age of 34, he
  6341. publicly renounced the fame and messiah status he had gained from being proclaimed the
  6342. new incarnation of the Maitreya Buddha by the Theosophical Society, and spent the rest of
  6343. his life publishing regularly and holding public talks, mostly in South Asia, Europe and the
  6344. United States. At age 90 he addressed the United Nations on the subject of peace and
  6345. awareness, and was awarded the 1984 UN Peace Medal."
  6346. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6347. 33 "...The powers that be..."
  6348. "Meaning -- The established government of authority.
  6349. Origin -- From the Bible, Romans 13:1 (King James Version): "Let every soul be subject unto
  6350. the higher powers. For there is no power but of God: The powers that be are ordained of
  6351. God."
  6352. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6353. 34 "...Columbus..."
  6354. "The name Christopher Columbus is the Anglicization of the Latin Christophorus
  6355. Columbus. Also well known are his name's rendering in modern Italian as Cristoforo
  6356. Colombo, in Portuguese as Cristóvão Colombo (formerly Christovam Colom), and in
  6357. Spanish as Cristóbal Colón."
  6358. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6359. "Pre-Columbian trans-oceanic contacts involve the interactions between the indigenous
  6360. peoples of the Americas and peoples of other continents – Europe, Africa, Asia, or Oceania
  6361. – before the arrival of Christopher Columbus in 1492. Many such events have been
  6362. 180
  6363. proposed at various times, based on historical reports, archaeological finds, and cultural
  6364. comparisons."
  6365. (Please refer to the following website address for details of many other contacts with
  6366. the "new world" before Columbus):
  6367. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pre-Columbian_trans-oceanic_contact
  6368. 35 "...unexplored universe..."
  6369. That is, "unexplored" by homo sapiens. Much like Columbus, who "discovered" the
  6370. Western Hemisphere, which had not yet been explored by Europeans, it had obviously been
  6371. explored by the millions of indigenous inhabitants long before Europe existed.
  6372. If any of the information in the "Alien Interview" transcripts is factual, it appears that the
  6373. universe has been very, very thoroughly explored indeed -- but not be humans.
  6374. -- The Editor
  6375. 36 "...show us on a map of the stars which is the star of your home planet..."
  6376. "There are probably more than 100 billion (1011) galaxies in the observable universe. Most
  6377. galaxies are 1,000 to 100,000 parsecs (approximately 3.086×1016 m, 3.262 light-years or
  6378. 19,176,075,967,324.937 miles) in diameter and are usually separated by distances on the
  6379. order of millions of parsecs (or megaparsecs). Intergalactic space (the space between
  6380. galaxies) is filled with a tenuous gas of an average density less than one atom per cubic
  6381. meter.
  6382. Beginning in the 1990s, the Hubble Space Telescope yielded improved observations.
  6383. Among other things, it established that the missing dark matter in our galaxy cannot solely
  6384. consist of inherently faint and small stars. The Hubble Deep Field, an extremely long
  6385. exposure of a relatively empty part of the sky, provided evidence that there are (at least)
  6386. 125 billion galaxies in the universe."
  6387. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6388. 37 "... a Japanese language specialist from the Navy ..."
  6389. "John A. Kneubuhl, was of mixed Samoan/American ancestry, John was an acclaimed
  6390. Pacific Island playwright who died in 1992. Born of Samoan, English and German ancestry,
  6391. Kneubuhl grew up in his Samoan grandmother's thatched hut until he was 13 years old. He
  6392. was educated at Punahou and Yale and wrote plays for the Honolulu Community Theater.
  6393. He joined the US Navy in 1942, entering the US Navy Japanese Language School at the
  6394. University of Colorado in July 1942 and graduated in August 1943. He served as a Navy
  6395. Japanese Language Officer. After the War, he spent 20 years as a TV writer in Hollywood,
  6396. writing scripts for the Wild, Wild West, Waterfront, Markham, West Point Story, and other
  6397. shows. John wrote the story for the Star Trek: The Original Series episode "Bread and
  6398. Circuses", although he did not receive screen credit in the finished episode.
  6399. Overview: Captain Kirk and his companions are forced to fight in gladiatorial games on a
  6400. planet modeled after the Roman Empire."
  6401. -- References: Wikipedia.org and
  6402. http://209.85.173.104/search?q=cache:zIAm_bPdRQEJ:ucblibraries.colorado.edu/archives/c
  6403. ollections/jlsp/interpreter131.doc+language+expert,+1947&hl=en&ct=clnk&cd=3&gl=us.
  6404. 181
  6405. 38 "... the Japanese people have a great number of homonyms..."
  6406. "In linguistics, a homonym is one of a group of words that share the same spelling and the
  6407. same pronunciation but have different meanings. Some sources only require that homonyms
  6408. share the same spelling or pronunciation (in addition to having different meanings).
  6409. Examples of homonyms are stalk (which can mean either part of a plant or to follow
  6410. someone around), bear (animal) and bear (carry), left (opposite of right) and left (past tense
  6411. of leave). Some sources also consider the following trio of words to be homonyms, but
  6412. others designate them as "only" homophones: to, too and two (actually, to, to, too, too and
  6413. two, being "for the purpose of" as in "to make it easier", the opposite of "from", also,
  6414. excessively, and "2", respectively). The word "homonym" comes from the conjunction of the
  6415. Greek prefix homo- (meaning same) and suffix -onym (meaning name). Thus, it refers to two
  6416. or more distinct words sharing the "same name"."
  6417. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6418. 39 "...standard Chinese characters..."
  6419. "A Chinese character or Han character (simplified Chinese: ; traditional Chinese: ;
  6420. pinyin: Hànzì) is a logogram used in writing Chinese, Japanese, sometimes Korean, and
  6421. formerly Vietnamese. The number of Chinese characters contained in the Kangxi
  6422. dictionary is approximately 47,035, although a large number of these are rarely used
  6423. variants accumulated throughout history. Studies carried out in China have shown that full
  6424. literacy requires a knowledge of between three and four thousand characters.
  6425. In the Chinese writing system, each character corresponds to a single spoken syllable. A
  6426. majority of words in all modern varieties of Chinese are poly-syllabic and thus require two or
  6427. more characters to write. Cognates in the various Chinese languages/dialects which have
  6428. the same or similar meaning but different pronunciations can be written with the same
  6429. character. In addition, many Chinese characters were adopted according to their
  6430. meaning by the Japanese and Korean languages to represent native words,
  6431. disregarding pronunciation altogether."
  6432. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6433. 40 "...McGuffey's Eclectic Readers..."
  6434. "McGuffey's Eclectic Readers were written by William Holmes McGuffey who began
  6435. teaching school at the age of 14. He was a professor of ancient languages at Miami
  6436. University from 1826 until his resignation in 1836. He then served as president of Cincinnati
  6437. College (1836-1839) and Ohio University (1839-1843). Returning to Cincinnati, McGuffey
  6438. taught at Woodward College from 1843 until 1845, when he became a professor of moral
  6439. philosophy at the University of Virginia. He was ordained as a Presbyterian minister in 1829.
  6440. It was during his years at Miami when McGuffey was approached to write a series of readers
  6441. for school children. In addition to the work done on these by William Holmes McGuffey, he
  6442. was assisted by his brother, Alexander Hamilton McGuffey, who also compiled a speller and
  6443. had sole responsibility for the Fifth Reader. Alexander taught school while working on his law
  6444. degree and opened a law office in Cincinnati in 1839. The McGuffey Readers sold over
  6445. 125,000,000 copies.
  6446. McGuffey became a "roving" teacher at the age of 14, beginning with 48 students in a one
  6447. room school in Calcutta, Ohio. The size of the class was just one of several challenges faced
  6448. 182
  6449. by the young McGuffey. In many one-teacher schools, children's ages varied from six to
  6450. twenty-one. McGuffey often worked 11 hours a day, 6 days a week in a succession of
  6451. frontier schools. He had a remarkable ability to memorize, and could commit to mind entire
  6452. books of the Bible.
  6453. The first Reader taught reading by using the phonics method, the identification of letters and
  6454. their arrangement into words, and aided with slate work. The second Reader came into play
  6455. once the student could read, and helped them to understand the meaning of sentences while
  6456. providing vivid stories which children could remember. The third Reader taught the
  6457. definitions of words, and was written at a level equivalent to the modern 5th or 6th grade.
  6458. The fourth Reader was written for the highest levels of ability on the grammar school level,
  6459. which students completed with this book.
  6460. McGuffey's Readers were among the first textbooks in America that were designed to
  6461. become progressively more challenging with each volume. They used word repetition in the
  6462. text as a learning tool, which built strong reading skills through challenging reading.
  6463. Sounding-out, enunciation and accents were emphasized. Colonial-era texts had offered dull
  6464. lists of 20 to 100 new words per page for memorization. In contrast, McGuffey used new
  6465. vocabulary words in the context of real literature, gradually introducing new words and
  6466. carefully repeating the old.
  6467. McGuffey believed that teachers should study the lessons as well as their students and
  6468. suggested they read aloud to their classes. He also listed questions after each story for he
  6469. believed in order for a teacher to give instruction, one must ask questions. The Readers
  6470. emphasized spelling, vocabulary, and formal public speaking, which, in 19th century
  6471. America, was a more common requirement than today.
  6472. Henry Ford cited McGuffey's Readers as one of his most important childhood
  6473. influences. He was an avid fan of McGuffey's Readers first editions, and claimed as an
  6474. adult to be able to quote from McGuffey's by memory at great length. Ford republished all six
  6475. Readers from the 1857 edition, and distributed complete sets of them, at his own expense,
  6476. to schools across the United States.
  6477. McGuffey's Readers contain many derogatory references to ethnic and religious minorities.
  6478. For example, Native Americans are referred to as "savages". There are those who regard
  6479. the references in the book to the Jews and Judaism as anti-Semitic. For instance, in Neil
  6480. Baldwin's Henry Ford and the Jews, the author makes the case that Henry Ford's selfavowed anti-Semitism originated with his study of McGuffey's as a schoolboy. Baldwin cites
  6481. numerous anti-semitic references to Shylock and to Jews attacking Jesus and Paul. He also
  6482. quotes the Fourth Reader to the effect that "Jewish authors were incapable of the diction
  6483. and strangers to the morality contained in the gospel." The readers further characterize Jews
  6484. as "Christ killers" and labels their reverence of the Old Testament as "superstitious," and
  6485. teach that Jews have been rejected by God for being "unfaithful"."
  6486. You may download text versions of the McGuffy's Reader from the following website:
  6487. http://www.gutenberg.org/etext/14640
  6488. 41 "... the phonics method ..."
  6489. "Phonics refers to an instructional method for teaching children to read English. Phonics
  6490. involves teaching children to connect sounds with letters or groups of letters (e.g., that the
  6491. 183
  6492. sound /k/ can be represented by c, k, or ck spellings) and teaching them to blend the sounds
  6493. of letters together to produce approximate pronunciations of unknown words."
  6494. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6495. 42 "... brought in a set of the Encyclopedia Britannica..."
  6496. "The Encyclopædia Britannica is a general English-language encyclopaedia published by
  6497. Encyclopædia Britannica, Inc., a privately held company. The Britannica has a popular
  6498. reputation for summarizing all of human knowledge. To further their education, many have
  6499. devoted themselves to reading the entire Britannica, taking anywhere from three to 22 years
  6500. to do so. When Fat'h Ali became the Shah of Persia in 1797, he was given a complete set of
  6501. the Britannica's 3rd edition, which he read completely; after this feat, he extended his royal
  6502. title to include "Most Formidable Lord and Master of the Encyclopædia Britannica." Writer
  6503. George Bernard Shaw claimed to have read the complete 9th edition—except for the
  6504. science articles—and Richard Evelyn Byrd took the Britannica as reading material for his
  6505. five-month stay at the South Pole in 1934.
  6506. The articles in the Britannica are aimed at educated adult readers, and written by a staff of
  6507. 19 full-time editors and over 4,000 expert contributors. It is widely perceived as the most
  6508. scholarly of encyclopaedias. Since the 3rd edition, the Britannica has enjoyed a popular and
  6509. critical reputation for general excellence. On the release of the 14th edition, Time magazine
  6510. dubbed the Britannica the "Patriarch of the Library". In a related advertisement, naturalist
  6511. William Beebe was quoted as saying that the Britannica was "beyond comparison because
  6512. there is no competitor." References to the Britannica can be found throughout English
  6513. literature, most notably in one of Arthur Conan Doyle's favorite Sherlock Holmes stories,
  6514. "The Red-Headed League"."
  6515. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6516. 43 "...her favorite books were Alice's Adventures in Wonderland ..."
  6517. "Alice's Adventures in Wonderland (1865) is a work of literary nonsense written by
  6518. English author Charles Lutwidge Dodgson under the pseudonym Lewis Carroll, considered a
  6519. classic example of the genre and of English literature in general. It tells the story of a girl
  6520. named Alice who falls down a rabbit-hole into a fantastic realm populated by peculiar and
  6521. anthropomorphic creatures. The tale is filled with allusions to Dodgson's friends (and
  6522. enemies), and to the lessons that British schoolchildren were expected to memorize. The
  6523. tale plays with logic in ways that have made the story of lasting popularity with adults as well
  6524. as children. It is considered to be one of the most characteristic examples of the genre of
  6525. literary nonsense, and its narrative course and structure has been enormously influential,
  6526. mainly in the fantasy genre."
  6527. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6528. 44 "...Don Quixote de la Mancha..."
  6529. "An early novel written by Spanish author Miguel de Cervantes Saavedra. Cervantes created
  6530. a fictional origin for the story based upon a manuscript by the invented Moorish historian,
  6531. Cide Hamete Benengeli. The work was published in two volumes: the first in 1605, and the
  6532. second in 1614.
  6533. 184
  6534. The protagonist, Alonso Quixano, is a country gentleman who has read so many stories of
  6535. chivalry that he descends into fantasy and becomes convinced he is a knight errant.
  6536. Together with his earthy squire Sancho Panza, the self-styled "Don Quixote de la Mancha"
  6537. sets out in search of adventure. The "lady" for whom Quixote seeks to toil is Dulcinea del
  6538. Toboso, an imaginary object crafted from a neighboring farm girl (her real name is Aldonza
  6539. Lorenzo) by the illusion-struck "knight" to be the object of his courtly love. "Dulcinea" is
  6540. totally unaware of Quixote's feelings for her, nor does she actually appear in the novel.
  6541. Published in two volumes a decade apart, Don Quixote is the most influential work of
  6542. literature to emerge from the Spanish Golden Age and perhaps the entire Spanish literary
  6543. canon. As a founding work of modern Western literature, it regularly appears at or near the
  6544. top of lists of the greatest works of fiction ever published and is the best-selling non-religious,
  6545. non-political work of fiction of all time."
  6546. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6547. 45 "...One Thousand and One Nights..."
  6548. "One Thousand and One Nights (Arabic: باتك فلأ ةليل ةليلو - kitāb 'alf laylah wa-laylah;
  6549. Persian: رازه و کی بش - ezār-o yak šab) is a collection of stories collected over thousands
  6550. of years by various authors, translators and scholars in various countries. These collections
  6551. of tales trace their roots back to ancient Arabia and Yemen, ancient India, ancient Persia
  6552. (especially the Sassanid Hazār Afsān Persian: رازه ناسفا ,lit. Thousand Tales), ancient
  6553. Egypt, ancient Mesopotamian Mythology, ancient Syria, and medieval Arabic folk stories
  6554. from the Caliphate era. Though an original manuscript has never been found several
  6555. versions date the collection's genesis to somewhere between AD 800-900.
  6556. The main frame story concerns a Persian king and his new bride. The king, Shahryar, upon
  6557. discovering his former wife's infidelity has her executed and then declares all women to be
  6558. unfaithful. He begins to marry a succession of virgins only to execute each one the next
  6559. morning. Eventually the vizier cannot find any more virgins. Scheherazade, the vizier's
  6560. daughter, offers herself as the next bride and her father reluctantly agrees. On the night of
  6561. their marriage, Scheherazade tells the king a tale, but does not end it. The king is thus
  6562. forced to keep her alive in order to hear the conclusion. The next night, as soon as she
  6563. finishes the tale, she begins (and only begins) another. So it goes for 1,001 nights.
  6564. The tales vary widely: they include historical tales, love stories, tragedies, comedies, poems,
  6565. burlesques, various forms of erotica, and Muslim religious legends. Numerous stories depict
  6566. djinn, magicians, and legendary places, which are often intermingled with real people and
  6567. geography; the historical caliph Harun al-Rashid is a common protagonist, as are his alleged
  6568. court poet Abu Nuwas and his vizier, Ja'far al-Barmaki. Sometimes a character in
  6569. Scheherazade's tale will begin telling other characters a story of his own, and that story may
  6570. have another one told within it, resulting in a richly-layered narrative texture.
  6571. The different versions have different individually detailed endings (in some Scheherazade
  6572. asks for a pardon, in some the king sees their children and decides not to execute his wife,
  6573. in some other things happen that make the king distracted) but they all end with the king
  6574. giving his wife a pardon and sparing her life.
  6575. The narrator's standards for what constitutes a cliffhanger seem broader than in modern
  6576. literature. While in many cases a story is cut off with the hero in danger of losing his life or
  6577. another kind of deep trouble, in some parts of the full text Scheherazade stops her narration
  6578. 185
  6579. in the middle of an exposition of abstract philosophical principles or complex points of
  6580. Islamic philosophy, and in one case during a detailed description of human anatomy
  6581. according to Galen—and in all these cases turns out to be justified in her belief that the
  6582. king's curiosity about the sequel would buy her another day of life.
  6583. The Indian folklore is represented by certain animal stories, which reflect influence from
  6584. ancient Sanskrit fables. The Jataka is a collection of 547 stories, which are for the most part
  6585. moral stories with an ethical purpose. The Tale of the Bull and the Ass and the linked Tale of
  6586. the Merchant and his Wife are found in the frame stories of both the Jataka and the Arabian
  6587. Nights."
  6588. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6589. 46 "... Adventures of Huckleberry Finn...”
  6590. "Adventures of Huckleberry Finn (1884) (often shortened to Huck Finn) by Mark Twain. The
  6591. book is noted for its innocent young protagonist, its colorful description of people and places
  6592. along the Mississippi River, and its sober and often scathing look at entrenched attitudes,
  6593. particularly racism. The drifting journey of Huckleberry Finn and his friend, runaway slave
  6594. Jim, down the Mississippi River on their raft may be one of the most enduring images of
  6595. escape and freedom in all of American literature."
  6596. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6597. 47 "... Gulliver's Travels ..."
  6598. "Gulliver's Travels (1726, amended 1735), officially Travels into Several Remote Nations of
  6599. the World, in Four Parts. By Lemuel Gulliver, First a Surgeon, and then a Captain of several
  6600. Ships, is a novel by Jonathan Swift that is both a satire on human nature and a parody of the
  6601. "travellers' tales" literary sub-genre. It is Swift's best known full-length work, and a classic of
  6602. English literature. The book became tremendously popular as soon as it was published
  6603. (John Gay said in a 1726 letter to Swift that "it is universally read, from the cabinet council to
  6604. the nursery"), and it is likely that it has never been out of print since then. The book
  6605. presents itself as a simple traveller's narrative with the disingenuous title Travels into
  6606. Several Remote Nations of the World, its authorship assigned only to "Lemuel Gulliver, first
  6607. a surgeon, then a captain of several ships"."
  6608. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6609. 48 "...Peter Pan..."
  6610. Peter Pan is a character created by Scottish novelist and playwright J. M. Barrie (1860–
  6611. 1937). A mischievous boy who flies and magically refuses to grow up, Peter Pan spends his
  6612. never-ending childhood adventuring on the small island of Neverland as the leader of his
  6613. gang the Lost Boys, interacting with fairies and pirates, and from time to time meeting
  6614. ordinary children from the world outside.
  6615. Barrie never described Peter's appearance in detail, leaving much of it to the imagination of
  6616. the reader and the interpretation of anyone adapting the character. He describes him as a
  6617. beautiful boy with a beautiful smile, "clad in skeleton leaves and the juices that flow from
  6618. trees".
  6619. 186
  6620. Peter is mainly an exaggerated stereotype of a boastful and careless boy. He is quick to
  6621. point out how great he is. Peter has a nonchalant, devil-may-care attitude, and is fearlessly
  6622. cocky when it comes to putting himself in danger. Barrie writes that when Peter thought he
  6623. was going to die on Marooner's Rock, he felt scared, yet he felt only one shudder run
  6624. through him when any other person would've felt scared up until death. With his blissful
  6625. unawareness of the tragedy of death, he says, "To die will be an awfully big adventure".
  6626. Peter's archetypal ability is his refusal to grow up. Barrie did not explain how he was able to
  6627. do this, leaving the implication that it was by an act of will.
  6628. Peter is a skilled swordsman, with the skill to rival even Captain Hook, whose hand he cut off
  6629. in a duel. He has remarkably keen vision and hearing. Peter Pan is said to be able to do
  6630. almost anything. Peter has an effect on the whole of Neverland and its inhabitants when he
  6631. is there. Barrie states that the island wakes up when he returns from his trip to London.
  6632. Peter is the leader of the Lost Boys, a band of boys who were lost by their parents, and
  6633. came to live in Neverland. He is friends with Tinker Bell, a common fairy who is often
  6634. jealously protective of him."
  6635. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6636. 49 "...The Legend of Sleepy Hollow... "
  6637. "A short story by Washington Irving contained in his collection The Sketch Book of Geoffrey
  6638. Crayon, Gent., written while he was living in Birmingham, England, and first published in
  6639. 1820. With Irving's companion piece "Rip Van Winkle", "The Legend of Sleepy Hollow" is
  6640. among the earliest American fiction still read today.
  6641. The story is set circa 1790 in the Dutch settlement of Tarry Town, New York, in a secluded
  6642. glen called Sleepy Hollow. It tells the story of Ichabod Crane, a lanky schoolmaster from
  6643. Connecticut, who competes with Abraham "Brom Bones" Van Brunt, the town rowdy, for the
  6644. hand of 18-year-old Katrina Van Tassel, only daughter of a wealthy farmer. As Crane leaves
  6645. a party at the Van Tassel home on an autumn night, he is pursued by the Headless
  6646. Horseman, supposedly the ghost of a Hessian trooper who lost his head to a cannonball
  6647. during "some nameless battle" of the American Revolutionary War and who "rides forth to
  6648. the scene of battle in nightly quest of his head." Crane disappears from town, leaving Katrina
  6649. to marry Brom Bones, who was "to look exceedingly knowing whenever the story of Ichabod
  6650. was related."
  6651. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6652. 50 "...Sanskrit of the Vedic Hymns..."
  6653. "Sanskrit (संःकृता वाक् sasktā vāk, for short संःकृतम sa् sktam) is a classical
  6654. language of South Asia, a liturgical language of Hinduism, Buddhism, Sikhism, Jainism, and
  6655. one of the 23 official languages of India.
  6656. Its position in the cultures of South and Southeast Asia is akin to that of Latin and Greek in
  6657. Europe and it has evolved into, as well as influenced, many modern-day languages of the
  6658. world. It appears in pre-Classical form as Vedic Sanskrit, with the language of the Rigveda
  6659. being the oldest and most archaic stage preserved. Dating back to as early as 1500 BCE,
  6660. 187
  6661. Vedic Sanskrit is the earliest attested Indo-Aryan language, and one of the earliest attested
  6662. members of the Indo-European language family.
  6663. The corpus of Sanskrit literature encompasses a rich tradition of poetry and drama as well
  6664. as scientific, technical, philosophical and religious texts. Today, Sanskrit continues to be
  6665. widely used as a ceremonial language in Hindu religious rituals in the forms of hymns and
  6666. mantras. Spoken Sanskrit is still in use in a few traditional institutions in India, and there are
  6667. some attempts at revival.
  6668. The scope of this article is the Classical Sanskrit language as laid out in the grammar of
  6669. Panini, around the 4th century BCE."
  6670. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6671. 51 "Part of the search required interaction with the human population that inhabited
  6672. the adjoining at that time."
  6673. -- Editor's Note: (The western borders of Pakistan include the Khyber Pass and Bolan
  6674. Pass, traditional invasion routes between Central Asia. The closest civilization using
  6675. Sanskrit at the date and nearest the location of "The Domain Base" would have been in the
  6676. foothills of the Himalayas. This was the in the area of "Mehrgarh", an early beginning of the
  6677. Indus Valley civilization which has been recently excavated.)
  6678. "(Bolan Pass (Urdu:  ) is a mountain pass through the Toba Kakar Range of
  6679. mountains in western Pakistan, 120 kilometres from the Afghanistan border. Strategically
  6680. located, traders, invaders, and nomadic tribes have also used it as a gateway to and from
  6681. the South Asia.)
  6682. The Khyber Pass, (also spelled Khaiber or Khaybar) (Urdu:  ) (altitude:
  6683. 1,070 m , 3,510 ft) is the mountain pass that links Pakistan and Afghanistan. Throughout
  6684. history it has been an important trade route between Central Asia and South Asia and a
  6685. strategic military location.
  6686. "Mehrgarh is now seen as a precursor to the Indus Valley Civilization. "Discoveries at
  6687. Mehrgarh changed the entire concept of the Indus civilization," according to Ahmad Hasan
  6688. Dani, professor emeritus of archaeology at Quaid-e-Azam University, Islamabad, "There we
  6689. have the whole sequence, right from the beginning of settled village life.
  6690. The Kachi plain and in the Bolan basin (are) situated at the Bolan peak pass, one of the
  6691. main routes connecting southern Afghanistan, eastern Iran, the Balochistan hills and the
  6692. Indus valley. This area of rolling hills is thus located on the western edge of the Indus valley,
  6693. where, around 2500 BC, a large urban civilization emerged at the same time as those of
  6694. Mesorpotamia and the ancient Egyptian empire. For the first time in the Indian subcontinent,
  6695. a continuous sequence of dwelling-sites has been established from 7000 BC to 500 BC. The
  6696. chalcolithic people of Mehrgarh also had contacts with contemporaneous cultures in
  6697. northern Afghanistan, northeastern Iran and southern central Asia.
  6698. in April 2006, it was announced in the scientific journal Nature that the oldest (and first early
  6699. Neolithic) evidence for the drilling of human teeth in vivo (i.e. in a living person) was found in
  6700. Mehrgarh. According to the authors, their discoveries point to a tradition of proto-dentistry in
  6701. the early farming cultures of that region. "Here we describe eleven drilled molar crowns from
  6702. 188
  6703. nine adults discovered in a Neolithic graveyard in Pakistan that dates from 7,500 to 9,000
  6704. years ago."
  6705. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6706. 52 "... they reported sighting "vimanas" or space craft in the area.."
  6707. "A vimāna (Sanskrit: ǒवमान) is a mythical flying machine, described in the Sanskrit epics.
  6708. The predecessors of the flying vimanas of the Sanskrit epics are the flying chariots
  6709. employed by various gods in the Vedas.
  6710. The first flying vimana mentioned in Hindu mythology:
  6711. "The Pushpaka chariot that resembles the Sun and belongs to my brother was
  6712. brought by the powerful Ravana; that aerial and excellent car going everywhere at
  6713. will .... that car resembling a bright cloud in the sky ... and the King [Rama] got in,
  6714. and the excellent car at the command of the Raghira, rose up into the higher
  6715. atmosphere.'
  6716. The Rigveda does not mention Vimanas, but verses RV 1.164.47-48 have been taken as
  6717. evidence for the idea of "mechanical birds":
  6718. "Dark the descent: the birds are golden-coloured; up to the heaven they fly robed in
  6719. the waters.
  6720. Again descend they from the seat of Order, and all the earth is moistened with their
  6721. fatness."
  6722. "Twelve are the fellies, and the wheel is single; three are the naves. What man hath
  6723. understood it?
  6724. Therein are set together spokes three hundred and sixty, which in nowise can be
  6725. loosened." (trans. Griffith)
  6726. In Dayananda Saraswati's "translation", these verses become:
  6727. "jumping into space speedily with a craft using fire and water ... containing twelve
  6728. stamghas (pillars), one wheel, three machines, 300 pivots, and 60 instruments."
  6729. But likelier in the original Indian symbolism when that hymn was composed, the wheel is a
  6730. year, the 12 "fellies" are months (lunations), and the 360 spokes are days.
  6731. In the Ramayana, the pushpaka ("flowery") vimana of Ravana is described as follows:
  6732. "The Pushpaka chariot that resembles the Sun and belongs to my brother was
  6733. brought by the powerful Ravana; that aerial and excellent car going everywhere at
  6734. will .... that car resembling a bright cloud in the sky ... and the King [Rama] got in,
  6735. and the excellent car at the command of the Raghira, rose up into the higher
  6736. atmosphere.'
  6737. It is the first flying vimana mentioned in Hindu mythology (as distinct from the gods' flying
  6738. horse-drawn chariots).
  6739. 189
  6740. Pushpaka was originally made by Maya for Kubera, the God of wealth, but was later stolen,
  6741. along with Lanka, by his half-brother, the demon king Ravana.
  6742. One example is that the Asura Maya had a Vimana measuring twelve cubits in
  6743. circumference, with four strong wheels. Apart from 'blazing missiles', the poem records the
  6744. use of other deadly weapons. 'Indra's Dart' (Indravajrā) operated via a circular 'reflector'.
  6745. When switched on, it produced a 'shaft of light' which, when focused on any target,
  6746. immediately 'consumed it with its power'.
  6747. In one exchange, the hero, Krishna, is pursuing his enemy, Salva, in the sky, when Salva's
  6748. Vimana, the Saubha, is made invisible in some way. Undeterred, Krishna immediately fires
  6749. off a special weapon: "I quickly laid on an arrow, which killed by seeking out sound".
  6750. Many other terrible weapons are described in the Mahabharata, but the most fearsome of all
  6751. is the one used against the Vrishis. The narrative records:
  6752. "Gurkha flying in his swift and powerful Vimana hurled against the three cities of the
  6753. Vrishnis and Andhakas a single projectile charged with all the power of the Universe.
  6754. An incandescent column of smoke and fire, as brilliant as ten thousands suns, rose
  6755. in all its splendour. It was the unknown weapon, the Iron Thunderbolt, a gigantic
  6756. messenger of death which reduced to ashes the entire race of the Vrishnis and
  6757. Andhakas."
  6758. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6759. 53 " I have now scanned all of the books and material you provided me. This has been
  6760. processed through the computers of the space station in this region, translated into
  6761. my own language and relayed back to me. "
  6762. Editors Note -- Apparently Airl is able to "scan" something she sees through the lenses of
  6763. her "doll body" eyes, upload the data to a computer on the "space station", have it processed
  6764. and downloaded to her? Or, maybe she does it telepathically? This is not clarified
  6765. anywhere in the transcripts or notes.
  6766. 54 "... I was "outside" of my body, looking down from the ceiling..."
  6767. "An out-of-body experience (OBE), is an experience that typically involves a sensation of
  6768. floating outside of one's body and, in some cases, perceiving one's physical body from a
  6769. place outside one's body (autoscopy). About one in ten people has reported having an outof-body experience at some time in their lives. It is claimed that those experiencing an OBE
  6770. sometimes observe details which were unknown to them beforehand.
  6771. The first extensive scientific study of OBEs was made by Celia Green (1968). She collected
  6772. written, first-hand accounts from a total of 400 subjects, recruited by means of appeals in the
  6773. mainstream media, and followed up by questionnaire. some 80% reported feeling they were
  6774. a ‘disembodied consciousness’, with no external body at all.
  6775. Another form of a spontaneous OBE occurs during a near death experience (NDE). The
  6776. phenomenology of an NDE usually includes physiological, psychological and transcendental
  6777. factors (Parnia, Waller, Yeates & Fenwick, 2001) such as impressions of being outside the
  6778. physical body (an out-of-body experience), Typically the experience follows a distinct
  6779. progression, starting with the sensation of floating above one's body and seeing the
  6780. surrounding area."
  6781. 190
  6782. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6783. 55 ..."the space craft was struck by a bolt of lighting"...
  6784. "Lightning is an atmospheric discharge of electricity, which typically occurs during
  6785. thunderstorms, and sometimes during volcanic eruptions or dust storms. The leader of a bolt
  6786. of lightning can travel at speeds of 60,000 m/s, and can reach temperatures approaching
  6787. 30,000 °C (54,000 °F), hot enough to fuse soil or sand into glass channels. There are over
  6788. 16 million lightning storms every year."
  6789. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6790. 56 ..."electronic wavelength"...
  6791. "In physics, wavelength is the distance between repeating units of a propagating wave of a
  6792. given frequency. It is commonly designated by the Greek letter lambda (λ). Examples of
  6793. wave-like phenomena are light, water waves, and sound waves. In a wave, a property varies
  6794. with the position. For example, this property can be the air pressure for a sound wave, or the
  6795. magnitude of the electric or the magnetic field for light. The wavelengths of frequencies
  6796. audible to the human ear (20 Hz–20 kHz) are between approximately 17 m and 17 mm,
  6797. respectively. Visible light ranges from deep red, roughly 700 nm to violet, roughly 400 nm
  6798. (430–750 THz). For other examples, see electromagnetic spectrum."
  6799. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6800. 57 ..."space opera" civilization"...
  6801. "It was not until the 1920s that the space opera proper appeared in the pulp magazines
  6802. Weird Tales and Amazing Stories. Unlike earlier stories of space adventure, which either
  6803. related the invasion of Earth by extraterrestrials, or concentrated on the invention of a space
  6804. vehicle by a genius inventor, pure space opera simply took space travel for granted (usually
  6805. by setting the story in the far future), skipped the preliminaries, and launched straight into
  6806. tales of derring-do among the stars.
  6807. The first stories of this type were J. Schlossel's The Second Swarm (Spring 1928) in
  6808. Amazing Stories Quarterly and Edmond Hamilton's Crashing Suns (August-September
  6809. 1928) and The Star Stealers (February 1929) in Weird Tales . Similar stories by other writers
  6810. followed through 1929 and 1930; by 1931 the space opera was well-established as a
  6811. dominant sub-genre of science fiction.
  6812. The transition from the older space-voyage story to the space opera can be seen in the
  6813. works of E. E. "Doc" Smith. His first published work, The Skylark of Space (August-October
  6814. 1928, Amazing Stories), merges the traditional tale of a scientist inventing a space-drive with
  6815. planetary romance in the style of Edgar Rice Burroughs; but by the time of the sequel,
  6816. Skylark Three (August-October 1930, Amazing Stories) which introduces the space faring
  6817. race of the Fenachrone, Smith had moved closer to a space opera mode.
  6818. Space opera in its most familiar form was a product of 1930s-40s pulp magazines. Like early
  6819. science fiction in general, space opera borrowed much of its style from established
  6820. adventure, crime, and thriller genres. Notable influences included stories that described
  6821. adventures on exotic or uncivilized frontiers, e.g. the American West, Africa, or the Orient.
  6822. 191
  6823. The imagined future of space opera included immense space liners, intrepid explorers of
  6824. unknown worlds, pirates of the space ways, and tough but incorruptible space police.
  6825. E. E. "Doc" Smith's later Lensman Series and the works of Edmond Hamilton, John W.
  6826. Campbell, and Jack Williamson in the 1930s and 1940s were popular with readers and much
  6827. imitated by other writers. By the early 1940s, the repetitiousness and extravagance of some
  6828. of these stories led to objections from some fans."
  6829. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6830. 58 "...1493 AD -- "The Requirement"...
  6831. "The Requirement was published as a papal "bull", issued by the infamous Pope Alexander
  6832. VI, (Rodrigo Borgia), Roman Catholic Pope from 1492 until his death, is the most memorable
  6833. of the Popes of the Renaissance.
  6834. Because of the pre-existence of millions of people living in the Americas in 1493, the King of
  6835. Spain, had a small twinge of fear at the prospect that God might become angry at him for all
  6836. the murder, theft and mayhem he endorsed in the New World. So, he persuaded Pope
  6837. Alexander VI to sanction an official proclamation intended to dissolve the stain of bloody
  6838. culpability from the King's own immortal soul. This document, called "The Requirement",
  6839. was supposed to be read, whether translated into the native language of the inhabitants or
  6840. not, to the citizens of every foreign nation just prior to their conquest. The gist of the
  6841. proclamation was to inform the soon to be vanquished that their lands were being "donated"
  6842. to Spain.
  6843. The Requirement read, in part:
  6844. "I, (name of the Conquistador), servant of the high and mighty Kings of Castile and
  6845. Leon, conquerors of barbarian peoples, and being their messenger and Captain, hereby
  6846. notify and inform you ... that God Our Lord, One and Eternal, created Heaven and Earth and
  6847. a man and a woman from whom you and I and all the multitude begotten from these over the
  6848. past five thousand and some years since the world was made ... And so I request and
  6849. require you ... to recognize the Church as your Mistress and as Governess of the World and
  6850. Universe, and the High Priest, called the Pope, in Her name, and His Majesty (the King of
  6851. Spain) in Her place, as Ruler and Lord King ... And if you do not do this ... with the help of
  6852. God I shall come mightily against you, and I shall make war on you everywhere and in every
  6853. way that I can, and I shall subject you to the yoke and obedience of the Church and His
  6854. Majesty, and I shall seize your women and children, and I shall make them slaves, to sell
  6855. and dispose of as His Majesty commands, and I shall do all the evil and damage to you that I
  6856. am able. And I insist that the deaths and destruction that result from this will be your fault."
  6857. One of the first to hear The Requirement were the chiefs of the Maya, whose scale of time
  6858. for the creation of life on Earth did not begin a mere 5,000 years earlier, as suggested by the
  6859. Pope, rather the Mayan measured original creation in millions of years by the astronomical
  6860. calendars they kept, which tracked the solar year accurately to within a few seconds a year.
  6861. Their comment upon hearing The Requirement was, "The Holy Father has indeed been
  6862. generous with others' property".
  6863. The Requirement was originally intended as a response to complaints by Spanish clerics
  6864. that the wars against the Native American peoples were unjust. Comparing them to Spain's
  6865. wars against the Moors, the clerics claimed that Muslims had knowledge of Christ and
  6866. rejected Him, so that waging a Crusade against them was legitimate. In contrast, wars
  6867. 192
  6868. against the Native Americans, who had never come into contact with Christianity were
  6869. unacceptable. The Requirement was intended as a legal loophole to place the native
  6870. population in the position of having rejected Christianity. It stated: "We protest that any
  6871. deaths that result from this [rejection of Christianity] are your fault…"
  6872. Many critics of the conquistadors' policies were appalled by the flippant nature of the
  6873. Requirement, and the priest, Bartolomeo de Las Casas, said in response to it that he did not
  6874. know whether to laugh or to cry. While the conquistadors were encouraged to use an
  6875. interpreter to read the Requirement, this was not absolutely necessary, and in many cases, it
  6876. was read out to an uncomprehending populace. In some instances, it was read to barren
  6877. beaches and empty villages, long after the natives had fled, to prisoners after they were
  6878. captured, or even from the decks of ships once they had just spotted the coast.
  6879. Nevertheless, for the conquistadors, it provided a religious justification for attacking and
  6880. enslaving the native population, and because of its potential to enrich the coffers of Spain,
  6881. the Requirement was not generally questioned."
  6882. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  6883. The net result of the "discovery" of the "New World" which wasn't really "new" as it had been
  6884. around as long as any other continent, and had a larger population than Europe, was as
  6885. follows:
  6886. 1) hundreds of indigenous cultures were eradicated 2) approximately 100 million people
  6887. were killed by disease and war brought upon them by "aliens" 3) 100 million people from the
  6888. Gold Coast of Africa were enslaved, and/ or murdered by Europeans in an effort to replace
  6889. the "labor force" of slaughtered indigenous population of the Western Hemisphere 4) nearly
  6890. all of the priceless literature, history, cultural and artistic artifacts of the Western hemisphere
  6891. were destroyed 5) most of the gold and gems mined over a period of thousands of years by
  6892. indigenous people were stolen and shipped off the a handful of greedy, idiotic, uneducated,
  6893. filthy, disease-ridden, superstitious, murderous, thieves in Europe who squandered it on
  6894. mindless self-indulgences. -- The Editor
  6895. 59 "... They are interested primarily in the "low gravity" satellites in this space station
  6896. which consists mainly of the dark side of the moon...".
  6897. "According to the NASA Astronaut Neil Armstrong the aliens have a base on the Moon and
  6898. (the aliens) told us in no uncertain terms to get off and stay off the Moon!
  6899. Sound far fetched? Milton Cooper, a Naval Intelligence Officer tells us that not only does the
  6900. Alien Moon Base exist but the U.S. Naval Intelligence Community refers to the Alien Moon
  6901. Base as "Luna," that there is a huge mining operation going on there, and that is where the
  6902. aliens keep their huge mother ships while the trips to Earth are made in smaller "flying
  6903. saucers".
  6904. LUNA: The Alien base on the far side of the Moon. It was seen and filmed by the Apollo
  6905. astronauts. A base, a mining operation using very large machines, and the very large alien
  6906. craft described in sighting reports as mother ships exist there. -Milton Cooper
  6907. Did Apollo 11 Encounter UFOs on the Moon? from the Book "Above Top Secret" by Timothy
  6908. Good.
  6909. 193
  6910. According to hitherto unconfirmed reports, both Neil Armstrong and Edwin "Buzz" Aldrin saw
  6911. UFOs shortly after their historic landing on the Moon in Apollo 11 on 21 July 1969. I
  6912. remember hearing one of the astronauts refer to a "light" in or on a carter during the
  6913. television transmission, followed by a request from mission control for further information.
  6914. Nothing more was heard.
  6915. According to a former NASA employee Otto Binder, unnamed radio hams with their own
  6916. VHF receiving facilities that bypassed NASA's broadcasting outlets picked up the following
  6917. exchange:
  6918. NASA: What's there? Mission Control calling Apollo 11...
  6919. Apollo: These "Babies" are huge, Sir! Enormous! OH MY GOD! You wouldn't believe it! I'm
  6920. telling you there are other spacecraft out there, lined up on the far side of the crater edge!
  6921. They're on the Moon watching us!
  6922. In 1979, Maurice Chatelain, former chief of NASA Communications Systems confirmed that
  6923. Armstrong had indeed reported seeing two UFOs on the rim of a crater. "The encounter was
  6924. common knowledge in NASA," he revealed, "but nobody has talked about it until now."
  6925. Soviet scientists were allegedly the first to confirm the incident. "According to our
  6926. information, the encounter was reported immediately after the landing of the module," said
  6927. Dr. Vladimir Azhazha, a physicist and Professor of Mathematics at Moscow University. "Neil
  6928. Armstrong relayed the message to Mission Control that two large, mysterious objects were
  6929. watching them after having landed near the moon module. But his message was never
  6930. heard by the public-because NASA censored it. "
  6931. According to another Soviet scientist, Dr. Aleksandr Kazantsev, Buzz Aldrin took color movie
  6932. film of the UFOs from inside the module, and continued filming them after he and Armstrong
  6933. went outside. Dr. Azhazha claims that the UFOs departed minutes after the astronauts came
  6934. out on to the lunar surface.
  6935. Maurice Chatelain also confirmed that Apollo 11's radio transmissions were interrupted on
  6936. several occasions in order to hide the news from the public. Before dismissing Chatelain's
  6937. sensational claims, it is worth noting his impressive background in the aerospace industry
  6938. and space program. His first job after moving from France was as an electronics engineer
  6939. with Convair, specializing in telecommunications, telemetry, and radar. In 1959 he was in
  6940. charge of an electromagnetic research group, developing new radar and
  6941. telecommunications systems for Ryan. One of his eleven patents was an automatic flights to
  6942. the Moon. Later, at North American Aviation, Chatelain was offered the job of designing and
  6943. building the Apollo communications and data-processing systems.
  6944. Chatelain claims that "all Apollo and Gemini flights were followed, both at a distance and
  6945. sometimes also quite closely, by space vehicles of extraterrestrial origin-flying saucers, or
  6946. UFOs, if you want to call them by that name. Every time it occurred, the astronauts informed
  6947. Mission Control, who then ordered absolute silence." He goes on to say:
  6948. "I think that Walter Schirra aboard Mercury 8 was the first of the astronauts to use the code
  6949. name 'Santa Claus' to indicate the presence of flying saucers next to space capsules.
  6950. However, his announcements were barely noticed by the general public.
  6951. 194
  6952. It was a little different when James Lovell on board the Apollo 8 command module came out
  6953. from behind the moon and said for everybody to hear:
  6954. 'PLEASE BE INFORMED THAT THERE IS A SANTA CLAUS.'
  6955. Even though this happened on Christmas Day 1968, many people sensed a hidden meaning
  6956. in those words."
  6957. Rumors persist. NASA may well be a civilian agency, but many of its programs are funded
  6958. by the defense budget and most of the astronauts are subject to military security regulations.
  6959. Apart from the fact that the National Security Agency screens all films and probably radio
  6960. communications as well. We have the statements by Otto Binder, Dr. Garry Henderson and
  6961. Maurice Chatelain that the astronauts were under strict orders not to discuss their sightings.
  6962. And Gordon Cooper has testified to a United Nations committee that one of the astronauts
  6963. actually witnessed a UFO on the ground. If there is no secrecy, why has this sighting not
  6964. been made public?
  6965. A certain professor, who wished to remain anonymous, was engaged in a discussion with
  6966. Neil Armstrong during a NASA symposium.
  6967. Professor: What REALLY happened out there with Apollo 11?
  6968. Armstrong: It was incredible, of course we had always known there was a possibility, the fact
  6969. is, we were warned off! (by the Aliens). There was never any question then of a space
  6970. station or a moon city.
  6971. Professor: How do you mean "warned off"?
  6972. Armstrong: I can't go into details, except to say that their ships were far superior to ours both
  6973. in size and technology - Boy, were they big!... and menacing! No, there is no question of a
  6974. space station.
  6975. Professor: But NASA had other missions after Apollo 11?
  6976. Armstrong: Naturally-NASA was committed at that time, and couldn't risk panic on Earth. But
  6977. it really was a quick scoop and back again.
  6978. Armstrong confirmed that the story was true but refused to go into further detail, beyond
  6979. admitting that the CIA was behind the cover-up.
  6980. Reasonable activity of an alien civilization showed up unexpectedly close to us. We were not
  6981. ready for it psychologically
  6982. We still can come across publications trying to find an answer to the question: Are we alone
  6983. in the universe? At the same time, presence of reasonable creatures has been detected just
  6984. close to our home, in the Moon. However, the discovery was immediately classified as
  6985. secret, as it was so much incredible that even could shake the already existing social
  6986. principles, reports Russia's newspaper "Vecherny Volgograd."
  6987. Here is an extract from the official press-release:
  6988. 195
  6989. “NASA scientists and engineers participating in exploration of Mars and Moon reported
  6990. results of their discoveries at a briefing at the Washington national press club on March 21,
  6991. 1996. It was announced for the first time that man-caused structures and objects had been
  6992. discovered on the Moon.” The scientists spoke rather cautiously and evasively about the
  6993. functioning objects, with the exception of UFO. They always mentioned the man-caused
  6994. objects as possible, and pointed out the information was still under study, and official results
  6995. would be published later.
  6996. It was mentioned at the briefing as well that the Soviet Union used to own some photo
  6997. materials proving presence of reasonable activity on the Moon. And although it wasn't
  6998. identified what kind of reasonable activity it was, thousands of photo-and video materials
  6999. photographed from the Apollo and the Clementine space station demonstrated many parts
  7000. on the lunar surface where the activity and its traces were perfectly evident. The video films
  7001. and photos made by U.S. astronauts during the Apollo program were demonstrated at the
  7002. briefing. And people were extremely surprised why the materials hadn't been presented to
  7003. the public earlier. And NASA specialists answered: “It was difficult to forecast the reaction of
  7004. people to the information that some creatures had been or still were on the Moon. Besides,
  7005. there were some other reasons to it, which were beyond NASA.”
  7006. Specialist for lunar artifacts Richard Hoagland says that NASA is still trying to veil photo
  7007. materials before they are published in public catalogues and files, they do retouching or
  7008. partially refocus them while copying. Some investigators, Hoagland is among them, suppose
  7009. that an extraterrestrial race had used the Moon as a terminal station during their activity on
  7010. the Earth. The suggestions are confirmed by the legends and myths invented by different
  7011. nations of our planet.
  7012. Ruins of lunar cities stretched along many kilometers, huge transparent domes on massive
  7013. basements, numerous tunnels and other constructions make scientists reconsider their
  7014. opinions concerning the lunar problems. How the Moon appeared and principles of its
  7015. revolving around the Earth still pose a great problem for scientists.
  7016. Some partially destroyed objects on the lunar surface can’t be placed among natural
  7017. geological formations, as they are of complex organization and geometrical structure. In the
  7018. upper part of Rima hadley, not far from the place where the Apollo-15 had landed, a
  7019. construction surrounded with a tall D-shaped wall was discovered. As of now, different
  7020. artifacts have been discovered in 44 regions.
  7021. The NASA Goddard Space Flight Center, the Houston Planetary Institute and specialists
  7022. from the bank of space information are investigating the regions. Mysterious terrace-shaped
  7023. excavations of the rock have been discovered near the Tiho crater. The concentric
  7024. hexahedral excavations and the tunnel entry at the terrace side cant be results of natural
  7025. geological processes; instead, they look very much like open cast mines.
  7026. A transparent dome raised above the crater edge was discovered near the crater
  7027. Copernicus. The dome is unusual as it is glowing white and blue from inside. A rather
  7028. unusual object, which is unusual indeed even for the Moon, was discovered in the upper part
  7029. of the Factory area. A disk of about 50 meters in diameter stands on a square basement
  7030. surrounded with rhombi walls. In the picture, close to the rhombi, we can also see a dark
  7031. round embrasure in the ground, which resembles an entry in an underground caponier.
  7032. There is a regular rectangular area between Factory and the crater Copernicus which is 300
  7033. meters wide 400 meters long.
  7034. 196
  7035. Apollo 10 astronauts made a unique picture (AS10-32-4822) of a one-mile long object called
  7036. Castle, which is hanging at the height of 14 kilometers and casts a distinct shadow on the
  7037. lunar surface. The object seems to be consisting of several cylindrical units and a large
  7038. conjunctive unit. Internal porous structure of the Castle is clearly seen in one of the pictures,
  7039. which makes an impression that some parts of the object are transparent.
  7040. As it turned out at the briefing where many NASA scientists were present, when Richard
  7041. Hoagland had requested originals of the Castle pictures for the second time, no pictures
  7042. were found there at all. They disappeared even from the list of pictures made by the Apollo
  7043. 10 crew. Only intermediate pictures of the object were found in the archives, which
  7044. unfortunately don't depict the internal structure of the object.
  7045. When Apollo-12 crew landed on the lunar surface, they saw that the landing was observed
  7046. by a half-transparent pyramidal object. It was hanging just several meters above the lunar
  7047. surface and shimmered with all rainbow colors against the black sky.
  7048. In 1969, when the film about astronauts traveling to the Sea of Storms was demonstrated
  7049. (the astronauts saw the strange objects once again, which were later called “striped
  7050. glasses”), NASA finally understood what consequences such kind of control could bring.
  7051. Astronaut Mitchell answered the question about his feelings after a successful return the
  7052. following: “My neck still aches as I had to constantly turn my head around because we felt
  7053. we were not alone there. We had no choice but pray.” Johnston, who worked at the Houston
  7054. Space Center and studied photos and video materials done during the Apollo program,
  7055. discussed the artifacts with Richard Hoagland and said, the NASA leadership was awfully
  7056. annoyed with the great number of anomalous, to put it mildly, objects on the Moon. It was
  7057. even said that piloted flights to the Moon could be banned in the programs network.
  7058. Investigators are especially interested in ancient structures resembling partially destroyed
  7059. cities. The orbital shooting reveals an astonishingly regular geometry of square and
  7060. rectangular constructions. They resemble our terrestrial cities seen from the height of 5-8
  7061. kilometers. A mission control specialist commented on the pictures: “Our guys observed
  7062. ruins of the Lunar cities, transparent pyramids, domes and God knows what else, which are
  7063. currently hidden deep inside the NASA safes, and felt like Robinson Crusoe when he
  7064. suddenly came across prints of human bare feet on the sand of the desert island.” What do
  7065. geologists and scientists say after studying the pictures of lunar cities and other anomalous
  7066. objects? They say, such objects can't be natural formations. “We should admit they are
  7067. artificial, especially the domes and pyramids.” Reasonable activity of an alien civilization
  7068. showed up unexpectedly close to us. We were not ready for it psychologically, and some
  7069. people hardly believe they are true even now."
  7070. Translated by Maria Gousseva (original source =
  7071. http://english.pravda.ru/main/2002/10/05/37771.html)
  7072. -- Source: http://www.ufocasebook.com/moon.html
  7073. 60 "... synthesized from gypsum..."
  7074. "Gypsum is a common mineral, with thick and extensive evaporite beds in association with
  7075. sedimentary rocks. Deposits are known to occur in strata from as early as the Permian age.
  7076. Gypsum is deposited in lake and sea water, as well as in hot springs, from volcanic vapors,
  7077. and sulfate solutions in veins. Hydrothermal anhydrite in veins is commonly hydrated to
  7078. 197
  7079. gypsum by groundwater in near surface exposures. It is often associated with the minerals
  7080. halite and sulfur.
  7081. The word gypsum is derived from the aorist form of the Greek verb µαγειρεύω, "to cook",
  7082. referring to the burnt or calcined mineral. Because the gypsum from the quarries of the
  7083. Montmartre district of Paris has long furnished burnt gypsum used for various purposes, this
  7084. material has been called plaster of Paris. It is also used in foot creams, shampoos and many
  7085. other hair products.
  7086. Because gypsum dissolves over time in water, gypsum is rarely found in the form of sand.
  7087. However, the unique conditions of the White Sands National Monument in the US state of
  7088. New Mexico have created a 710 km² (275 sq mile) expanse of white gypsum sand, enough
  7089. to supply the construction industry with drywall for 1,000 years."
  7090. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7091. 61 "... electromagnetic force..."
  7092. "In physics, the Lorentz force is the force on a point charge due to electromagnetic fields.
  7093. Lorentz introduced this force in 1892. However, the discovery of the Lorentz force was
  7094. before Lorentz's time. In particular, it can be seen at equation (77) in Maxwell's 1861 paper
  7095. On Physical Lines of Force. Later, Maxwell listed it as equation "D" of his 1864 paper, A
  7096. Dynamical Theory of the Electromagnetic Field, as one of the eight original Maxwell's
  7097. equations. In this paper the equation was written as follows:
  7098. where
  7099. A is the magnetic vector potential,
  7100. φ is the electrostatic potential,
  7101. H is the magnetic field H,
  7102. µ is magnetic permeability.
  7103. Although this equation is obviously a direct precursor of the modern Lorentz force equation,
  7104. it actually differs in two respects:
  7105. • It does not contain a factor of q, the charge. Maxwell didn't use the concept of
  7106. charge. The definition of E used here by Maxwell is unclear. He uses the term
  7107. electromotive force. He operated from Faraday's electro-tonic state A, which he
  7108. considered to be a momentum in his vortex sea. The closest term that we can trace
  7109. to electric charge in Maxwell's papers is the density of free electricity, which appears
  7110. to refer to the density of the aethereal medium of his molecular vortices and that
  7111. gives rise to the momentum A. Maxwell believed that A was a fundamental quantity
  7112. from which electromotive force can be derived.
  7113. • The equation here contains the information that what we nowadays call E, which
  7114. today can be expressed in terms of scalar and vector potentials according to
  7115. 198
  7116. The fact that E can be expressed this way is equivalent to one of the four modern
  7117. Maxwell's equations, the Maxwell-Faraday equation.
  7118. Despite its historical origins in the original set of eight Maxwell's equations, the Lorentz force
  7119. is no longer considered to be one of "Maxwell's equations" as the term is currently used (that
  7120. is, as reformulated by Heaviside). It now sits adjacent to Maxwell's equations as a separate
  7121. and essential law.
  7122. Significance of the Lorentz force
  7123. While the modern Maxwell's equations describe how electrically charged particles and
  7124. objects give rise to electric and magnetic fields, the Lorentz force law completes that picture
  7125. by describing the force acting on a moving point charge q in the presence of electromagnetic
  7126. fields. The Lorentz force law describes the effect of E and B upon a point charge, but such
  7127. electromagnetic forces are not the entire picture. Charged particles are possibly coupled to
  7128. other forces, notably gravity and nuclear forces. Thus, Maxwell's equations do not stand
  7129. separate from other physical laws, but are coupled to them via the charge and current
  7130. densities. The response of a point charge to the Lorentz law is one aspect; the generation of
  7131. E and B by currents and charges is another.
  7132. In real materials the Lorentz force is inadequate to describe the behavior of charged
  7133. particles, both in principle and as a matter of computation. The charged particles in a
  7134. material medium both respond to the E and B fields and generate these fields. Complex
  7135. transport equations must be solved to determine the time and spatial response of charges,
  7136. for example, the Boltzmann equation or the Fokker–Planck equation or the Navier-Stokes
  7137. equations. For example, see magnetohydrodynamics, fluid dynamics, electrohydrodynamics,
  7138. superconductivity, stellar evolution. An entire physical apparatus for dealing with these
  7139. matters has developed. See for example, Green–Kubo relations and Green's function
  7140. (many-body theory).
  7141. Although one might suggest that these theories are only approximations intended to deal
  7142. with large ensembles of "point particles", perhaps a deeper perspective is that the chargebearing particles may respond to forces like gravity, or nuclear forces, or boundary
  7143. conditions."
  7144. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7145. 62 "... quadrillion..."
  7146. "Quadrillion may mean either of the two numbers:
  7147. 1,000,000,000,000,000 (one thousand million million; 1015; SI prefix peta) - increasingly
  7148. common meaning in English language usage.
  7149. 1,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000,000 (1024; SI prefix yotta) -
  7150. increasingly rare meaning in English language usage."
  7151. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7152. 199
  7153. 63 "...points of origin to establish age and duration."
  7154. "So far scientists have not found a way to determine the exact age of the Earth directly from
  7155. Earth rocks because Earth's oldest rocks have been recycled and destroyed by the process
  7156. of plate tectonics. If there are any of Earth's primordial rocks left in their original state, they
  7157. have not yet been found. Nevertheless, scientists have been able to determine the probable
  7158. age of the Solar System and to calculate an age for the Earth by assuming that the Earth
  7159. and the rest of the solid bodies in the Solar System formed at the same time and are,
  7160. therefore, of the same age.
  7161. The ages of Earth and Moon rocks and of meteorites are measured by the decay of longlived radioactive isotopes of elements that occur naturally in rocks and minerals and that
  7162. decay with half lives of 700 million to more than 100 billion years to stable isotopes of other
  7163. elements. These dating techniques, which are firmly grounded in physics and are known
  7164. collectively as radiometric dating, are used to measure the last time that the rock being
  7165. dated was either melted or disturbed sufficiently to rehomogenize its radioactive elements."
  7166. -- Reference: http://pubs.usgs.gov/gip/geotime/age.html
  7167. 64 "... The physical universe itself is formed from the convergence and amalgamation
  7168. of many other individual universes..."
  7169. "A creation myth is a supernatural mytho-religious story or explanation that describes the
  7170. beginnings of humanity, earth, life, and the universe (cosmogony), usually as a deliberate
  7171. act of "creation" by a supreme being. Many accounts of creation share broadly similar
  7172. themes. Common motifs include the fractionation of the things of the world from a primordial
  7173. chaos; the separation of the mother and father gods; land emerging from an infinite and
  7174. timeless ocean; or creation ex nihilo (Latin: out of nothing)."
  7175. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7176. 65 "... energy and forms can be created, but not destroyed..."
  7177. "In physics, the law of conservation of energy states that the total amount of energy in any
  7178. isolated system remains constant but cannot be recreated, although it may change forms,
  7179. e.g. friction turns kinetic energy into thermal energy. In thermodynamics, the first law of
  7180. thermodynamics is a statement of the conservation of energy for thermodynamic systems,
  7181. and is the more encompassing version of the conservation of energy. In short, the law of
  7182. conservation of energy states that energy can not be created or destroyed, it can only be
  7183. changed from one form to another."
  7184. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7185. 66 "... Tales of magic, sorcery and enchantment, fairy tales and mythology speak of
  7186. such things..."
  7187. Magic, sometimes known as sorcery, is a conceptual system that asserts human ability to
  7188. control the natural world (including events, objects, people, and physical phenomena)
  7189. through mystical, paranormal or supernatural means. The term can also refer to the
  7190. practices employed by a person asserting this influence, and to beliefs that explain various
  7191. 200
  7192. events and phenomena in such terms. In many cultures, magic is under pressure from, and
  7193. in competition with, scientific and religious conceptual systems.
  7194. Adherents to magic believe that it may work by one or more of the following basic principles:
  7195. • Natural forces that cannot be detected by science at present, and in fact may not
  7196. be detectable at all. These magical forces are said to exist in addition to and
  7197. alongside the four fundamental forces of nature: gravity, electromagnetism, the
  7198. strong force and the weak force.
  7199. • Intervention of spirits similar to these hypothetical natural forces, but with their
  7200. own consciousness and intelligence. Believers in spirits will often describe a whole
  7201. cosmos of beings of many different kinds, sometimes organized into a hierarchy.
  7202. Aleister Crowley preferred the spelling magick, defining it as "the science and art of causing
  7203. change to occur in conformity with the will." By this, he included "mundane" acts of will as
  7204. well as ritual magic. In Magick in Theory and Practice, Chapter XIV, Crowley says:
  7205. "What is a Magical Operation? It may be defined as any event in nature which is
  7206. brought to pass by Will. We must not exclude potato-growing or banking from our
  7207. definition. Let us take a very simple example of a Magical Act: that of a man blowing
  7208. his nose." "
  7209. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7210. 67 "...they will capture other IS-BEs as slaves..."
  7211. "The word slave in the English language originates from the Middle English sclave, from the
  7212. Old French esclave, the Medieval Latin sclavus, the early Greek sklabos, from sklabenoi,
  7213. Slavs, of Slavic origin; akin to Old Russian Slovene, an East Slavic tribe. The term sclavus
  7214. originally referred to the Slavs of Eastern and Central Europe, as many of these people had
  7215. been captured and then sold as slaves by Otto the Great and his successors. The former
  7216. Latin word for "slave" was servus (cf. English serf).
  7217. The evidence for slavery predates written records. It can be found in almost all cultures and
  7218. continents. Slavery can be traced to the earliest records, such as the Code of Hammurabi in
  7219. Mesopotamia (~1800 BC), which refers to slavery as an already established institution. In
  7220. important exception occurred under the reign of the Achaemenid Empire in Persia in 500
  7221. BC. The forced labor of women in some ancient and modern cultures may also be identified
  7222. as slavery. Slavery, in this case, includes sexual services.
  7223. Historically, most slaves were captured in wars or kidnapped in isolated raids, but some
  7224. persons were sold into slavery by their parents, or by themselves, as a means of surviving
  7225. extreme conditions. Most slaves were born into that status, to parents who were enslaved.
  7226. Ancient Warfare often resulted in slavery for prisoners and their families, who were either
  7227. killed, ransomed or sold as slaves. Captives were often considered the property of those
  7228. who captured them and were looked upon as a prize of war. Slavery may originally have
  7229. been more humane than simply executing those who would return to fight if they were freed,
  7230. but the effect led to widespread enslavement of particular groups of people. Those captured
  7231. sometimes differed in ethnicity, nationality, religion, or race from their enslavers, but often
  7232. were the same as the captors. The dominant group in an area might take captives and turn
  7233. them into slaves with little fear of suffering the like fate. The possibility always existed of
  7234. 201
  7235. reversals of fortune, as when Seneca warned, at the height of the Roman Empire, when
  7236. powerful nations fought among themselves, anyone might find himself enslaved."
  7237. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7238. 68 "...asteroid belt..."
  7239. "The asteroid belt is the region of the Solar System located roughly between the orbits of
  7240. the planets Mars and Jupiter. It is occupied by numerous irregularly shaped bodies called
  7241. asteroids or minor planets. More than half the mass within the main belt is contained in the
  7242. four largest objects: Ceres, 4 Vesta, 2 Pallas, and 10 Hygiea. All of these have mean
  7243. diameters of more than 400 km, while Ceres, the main belt's only dwarf planet, is about
  7244. 950 km in diameter. The remaining bodies range down to the size of a dust particle. The
  7245. asteroid material is so thinly distributed that multiple unmanned spacecraft have traversed it
  7246. without incident."
  7247. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7248. 69 "... the Big Dipper constellation..."
  7249. "Within Ursa Major the stars of the Big Dipper have Bayer designations in consecutive Greek
  7250. alphabetical order from the bowl to the handle.
  7251. Proper
  7252. Name
  7253. Bayer
  7254. Designation
  7255. Apparent
  7256. Magnitude
  7257. Distance
  7258. (L Yrs)
  7259. Dubhe α
  7260. UMa
  7261. 1.8
  7262. 124
  7263. M
  7264. era
  7265. k
  7266. β
  7267. UM
  7268. a
  7269. 2.4
  7270. 79
  7271. Phecda γ UMa 2.4 84
  7272. Megrez δ
  7273. UMa
  7274. 3.3
  7275. 81
  7276. Ali
  7277. oth
  7278. ε
  7279. UM
  7280. a
  7281. 1.8
  7282. 81
  7283. Mi
  7284. zar
  7285. ζ
  7286. UM
  7287. a
  7288. 2.1
  7289. 78
  7290. Al
  7291. kai
  7292. d
  7293. η
  7294. UM
  7295. a
  7296. 1.9
  7297. 101
  7298. Near Mizar is a star called Alcorr and together they are informally known as the Horse and
  7299. Rider. At magnitude 4.1, Alcor would normally be relatively easy to see with the unaided eye,
  7300. but its proximity to Mizar renders it more difficult to resolve, and it has served as a traditional
  7301. test of sight. In the 17th century, Mizar itself was discovered to be a binary star system —
  7302. 202
  7303. the first telescopic binary found. The component stars are known as Mizar A and Mizar B. In
  7304. 1889, Mizar A was discovered to in fact be a binary as well, the first spectroscopic binary
  7305. discovered, and with the subsequent discovery that Mizar B itself is also a binary, in total
  7306. Mizar currently is known to be at least a quadruple star system."
  7307. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7308. 70 "... the body of the Archduke of Austria..."
  7309. "Franz Ferdinand (December 18, 1863 – June 28, 1914) was an Archduke of Austria-Este,
  7310. Prince Imperial of Austria and Prince Royal of Hungary and Bohemia, and from 1896 until
  7311. his death, heir presumptive to the Austro-Hungarian throne. His assassination in Sarajevo
  7312. precipitated the Austrian declaration of war. This caused countries allied with AustriaHungary (the Central Powers) and countries allied with Serbia (the Entente Powers) to
  7313. declare war on each other, starting World War I.
  7314. In 1889, Franz Ferdinand's life changed dramatically. His cousin Crown Prince Rudolf
  7315. committed suicide at his hunting lodge in Mayerling, leaving Franz Ferdinand's father,
  7316. Archduke Karl Ludwig, as first in line to the throne. However his father renounced his
  7317. succession rights a few days after the Crown Prince's death. Henceforth, Franz Ferdinand
  7318. was groomed to succeed.
  7319. On June 28, 1914, at approximately 11:15 am, Franz Ferdinand and his wife were killed in
  7320. Sarajevo, the capital of the Austro-Hungarian province of Bosnia and Herzegovina, by
  7321. Gavrilo Princip, a member of Young Bosnia and one of several (a few) assassins organized
  7322. by The Black Hand (Црна рука/Tsrna Ruka). The event, known as the Assassination in
  7323. Sarajevo, triggered World War I.
  7324. Franz and Sophie had previously been attacked when a bomb was thrown at their car. It
  7325. missed them, but many civilians were injured. Franz and Sophie both insisted on going to
  7326. see all those injured at the hospital. As a result of this, Princip saw them and shot Sophie in
  7327. the abdomen. Franz was shot in the jugular and was still alive when witnesses arrived to his
  7328. aid, but it was too late; he died within minutes.
  7329. The assassinations, along with the arms race, nationalism, imperialism, militarism, and the
  7330. alliance system all contributed to the beginning of World War I, which began less than two
  7331. months after Franz Ferdinand's death, with Austria-Hungary's declaration of war against
  7332. Serbia."
  7333. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7334. 71 ..."force field"...
  7335. "Originally a term coined by Michael Faraday to provide an intuitive paradigm, but theoretical
  7336. construct, for the behavior of electromagnetic fields, the term force field refers to the
  7337. lines of force one object (the "source object") exerts on another object or a collection
  7338. of other objects. An object might be a mass particle or an electric or magnetic
  7339. charge, for example. The lines do not have to be straight, in the Euclidean geometry case,
  7340. but may be curved. Faraday called these theoretical connections between objects lines of
  7341. force because the objects are most directly connected to the source object along this line.
  7342. 203
  7343. Examples of force fields:
  7344. • A local Newtonian gravitational field near Earth ground typically consists of a uniform
  7345. array of vectors pointing in one direction---downwards, towards the ground; its force
  7346. field is represented by the Cartesian vector , where points in a direction away from
  7347. the ground, and m refers to the mass, and g refers to the acceleration due to gravity.
  7348. • A global Gravitational field consists of a spherical array of vectors pointing towards
  7349. the center of gravity. Its classical force field, in spherical coordinates, is represented
  7350. by the vector, , which is just Newton's Law of Gravity, with the radial unit vector
  7351. pointing towards the origin of the sphere (center of the Earth).
  7352. • A conservative Electric field has an electric charge (or a smeared plum pudding of
  7353. electric charges) as its source object. In the case of the point charges, the force field
  7354. is represented by , where is the position vector that represents the straightest line
  7355. between the source charge and the other charge.
  7356. • A static Magnetic field has a magnetic charge (a magnetic monopole or a charge
  7357. distribution).
  7358. • The electromagnetic force is given by the Lorentz force formula, which in SI units is,
  7359. ."
  7360. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7361. 72 "Electroshock..."
  7362. "The story of electric shock began in 1938, when Italian psychiatrist Ugo Cerletti visited a
  7363. Rome slaughterhouse to see what could be learned from the method that was employed to
  7364. butcher hogs. In Cerletti's own words, "As soon as the hogs were clamped by the [electric]
  7365. tongs, they fell unconscious, stiffened, then after a few seconds they were shaken by
  7366. convulsions.... During this period of unconsciousness (epileptic coma), the butcher stabbed
  7367. and bled the animals without difficulty....
  7368. "At this point I felt we could venture to experiment on man, and I instructed my assistants to
  7369. be on the alert for the selection of a suitable subject."
  7370. Cerletti's first victim was provided by the local police - a man described by Cerletti as "lucid
  7371. and well-oriented." After surviving the first blast without losing consciousness, the victim
  7372. overheard Cerletti discussing a second application with a higher voltage. He begged Cerletti,
  7373. "Non una seconda! Mortifierel" ("Not another one! It will kill me!")
  7374. Ignoring the objections of his assistants, Cerletti increased the voltage and duration and fired
  7375. again. With the "successful" electrically induced convulsion of his victim, Ugo Cerletti
  7376. brought about the application of hog-slaughtering skills to humans, creating one of the most
  7377. brutal techniques of psychiatry.
  7378. *Electric shock is also called electro-convulsive "therapy" or treatment (ECT), electroshock
  7379. therapy or electric shock treatment (EST), electrostimulation, and electrolytic therapy (ELT).
  7380. All are euphemistic terms for the same process: sending a searing blast of electricity through
  7381. the brain in order to alter behavior." (Reference: http://www.sntp.net/ect/ect3.htm)
  7382. Today Electroshock therapy (ECT) is most often used as a treatment for severe major
  7383. depression which has not responded to other treatment, and is also used in the treatment of
  7384. mania, catatonia, schizophrenia and other disorders. It first gained widespread use as a form
  7385. 204
  7386. of treatment in the 1940s and 50s. Today, an estimated 1 million people worldwide receive
  7387. ECT every year, usually in a course of 6-12 treatments administered 2 or 3 times a week.
  7388. Electroconvulsive therapy has "side-effects" which include confusion and memory loss for
  7389. events around the time period of treatment. ECT have been shown to cause persistent
  7390. memory loss. It is the effects of ECT on long-term memory that give rise to much of the
  7391. concern surrounding its use. The acute effects of ECT include amnesia.
  7392. Registered nurse Barbara C. Cody reports in a letter to the Washington Post that her life
  7393. "was forever changed by 13 outpatient ECTs I received in 1983. Shock 'therapy' totally and
  7394. permanently disabled me. "EEGs [electroencephalograms] verify the extensive damage
  7395. shock did to my brain. Fifteen to 20 years of my life were simply erased; only small bits
  7396. and pieces have returned. I was also left with short-term memory impairment and serious
  7397. cognitive deficits. "Shock 'therapy' took my past, my college education, my musical
  7398. abilities, even the knowledge that my children were, in fact, my children."
  7399. Ernest Hemingway, American author, committed suicide shortly after Electric Shock
  7400. treatment at the Menninger Clinic in 1961. He is reported to have said to his biographer,
  7401. "Well, what is the sense of ruining my head and erasing my memory, which is my
  7402. capital, and putting me out of business? It was a brilliant cure but we lost the
  7403. patient...."
  7404. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7405. 73 "...electric voltage..."
  7406. "The general public may consider household mains circuits (100–250 V AC), which carry the
  7407. highest voltages they normally encounter, to be high voltage. For example, an installer of
  7408. heating, ventilation and air conditioning equipment may be licensed to install 24 Volt control
  7409. circuits, but may not be permitted to connect the 240 volt power circuits of the equipment.
  7410. Voltages over approximately 50 volts can usually cause dangerous amounts of
  7411. current to flow through a human being touching two points of a circuit.
  7412. Voltages of greater than 50 V are capable of producing heart fibrillation if they produce
  7413. electric currents in body tissues which happen to pass through the chest area. The
  7414. electrocution danger is mostly determined by the low conductivity of dry human skin. If skin
  7415. is wet, or if there are wounds, or if the voltage is applied to electrodes which penetrate the
  7416. skin, then even voltage sources below 40 V can be lethal if contacted."
  7417. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7418. 74 "...Post hypnotic suggestions..."
  7419. "The ability of a human to be induced into a form of behavior or thinking pattern after coming
  7420. out of the hypnotic state. Post hypnotic suggestions are administered by the hypnotist
  7421. and may optionally include a time scope. An altered sense of perception or behavioral
  7422. pattern may be "programmed" into the person under hypnosis. Certain sequences of
  7423. events may be set as triggers to enter or exit the post-hypnotic pattern. The behavior
  7424. patterns resemble conditioned reflexes, though administered without classical behavior
  7425. alteration techniques.
  7426. 205
  7427. Examples:
  7428. Any number, color, object, etc. may be induced to be ignored by the patient after full
  7429. consciousness. A certain keyword starts the suggestion and a different word ends it. The
  7430. patient will not know nor use the item to be ignored. He/she may state that the sea is
  7431. colored red, if suggested to ignore the color blue. A count of eleven may be achieved if
  7432. asked to count ones fingers if a number -say 5- is suggested to be ignored. Thus the patient
  7433. counts 1-2-3-4-6-7-8-9-10-11
  7434. Different type of behavior patterns may be induced such as forcing the patient to recite a
  7435. certain sentence whenever anyone says out loud the special keyword. The patient is
  7436. fully aware of the conditioned action but it is very difficult, if not impossible, to restrain from
  7437. doing it. Sweating, loss of coordination and full lack of concentration plagues the
  7438. patient until he/she performs the programmed action.
  7439. An object may be set to be perceived as invisible and it will be fully ignored and evaded
  7440. during the period of suggestion. Experiments may be performed with a coffee mug, induced
  7441. to be invisible. If the mug is put on top of a page with writing, the patient will only read the
  7442. parts not covered by the mug. Even though the sentences may make no sense, nothing is
  7443. seemingly wrong to the suspected. It is difficult to suggest an object be invisible, yet stay
  7444. tactile. Usually the object is completely ignored by all senses. Thus, the mug in the
  7445. example will reportedly not exist, even when the patient is touching it.
  7446. Stage hypnotists will sometimes perform shows in which they hypnotize participants to think
  7447. they are some celebrity and behave exactly like them. John Mohl, stage hypnotist and
  7448. member of The National Guild of Hypnotists, says that he has often hypnotized people to
  7449. become someone else! Mohl noticed that adults often became a celebrity while Middle or
  7450. High School students usually become something much more creative or imaginative."
  7451. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7452. 75 "... Untouchables..."
  7453. "In the Indian caste system, a Dalit, often called an untouchable, or an outcaste, is a
  7454. person who according to traditional Hindu belief does not have any "varnas". Varna refers to
  7455. the Hindu belief that most humans were supposedly created from different parts of the body
  7456. of the divinity Purusha. The part from which a varna was supposedly created defines a
  7457. person's social status with regard to issues such as whom they may marry and which
  7458. professions they may hold. Dalits fall outside the varnas system and have historically been
  7459. prevented from doing any but the most menial jobs. (However, a distinction must be made
  7460. between lower-caste people and Pariahs.) Included are leather-workers (called chamar),
  7461. carcass handlers (called mahar),poor farmers and landless labourers, night soil scavengers
  7462. (called bhangi or chura), street handicrafters, folk artists, street cleaners, dhobi, etc.
  7463. Traditionally, they were treated as pariahs in South Asian society and isolated in their own
  7464. communities, to the point that even their shadows were avoided by the upper castes.
  7465. Discrimination against Dalits still exists in rural areas in the private sphere, in ritual matters
  7466. such as access to eating places and water sources. It has largely disappeared, however, in
  7467. urban areas and in the public sphere, in rights of movement and access to schools. The
  7468. earliest rejection of discrimination, at least in spiritual matters, was made as far back as the
  7469. 206
  7470. Bhagavada Gita, which says that no person, no matter what, is barred from enlightenment
  7471. There are an estimated 160 million Dalits in India."
  7472. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7473. "Human rights abuses against these people, known as Dalits, are legion. A random sampling
  7474. of headlines in mainstream Indian newspapers tells their story: "Dalit boy beaten to death for
  7475. plucking flowers"; "Dalit tortured by cops for three days"; "Dalit 'witch' paraded naked in
  7476. Bihar"; "Dalit killed in lock-up at Kurnool"; "7 Dalits burnt alive in caste clash"; "5 Dalits
  7477. lynched in Haryana"; "Dalit woman gang-raped, paraded naked"; "Police egged on mob to
  7478. lynch Dalits".
  7479. "Dalits are not allowed to drink from the same wells, attend the same temples, wear shoes in
  7480. the presence of an upper caste, or drink from the same cups in tea stalls," said Smita
  7481. Narula, a senior researcher with Human Rights Watch, and author of Broken People: Caste
  7482. Violence Against India's "Untouchables." Human Rights Watch is a worldwide activist
  7483. organization based in New York. India's Untouchables are relegated to the lowest jobs, and
  7484. live in constant fear of being publicly humiliated, paraded naked, beaten, and raped with
  7485. impunity by upper-caste Hindus seeking to keep them in their place. Merely walking through
  7486. an upper-caste neighborhood is a life-threatening offense. Nearly 90 percent of all the poor
  7487. Indians and 95 percent of all the illiterate Indians are Dalits."
  7488. Reference:
  7489. http://news.nationalgeographic.com/news/2003/06/0602_030602_untouchables.html
  7490. 76 "...political prisoners..."
  7491. "A political prisoner is someone held in prison or otherwise detained, perhaps under house
  7492. arrest, for his/her involvement in political activity.
  7493. political prisoners are arrested and tried with a veneer of legality, where false criminal
  7494. charges, manufactured evidence, and unfair trials are used to disguise the fact that an
  7495. individual is a political prisoner. This is common in situations which may otherwise be
  7496. decried nationally and internationally as a human rights violation and suppression of a
  7497. political dissident. A political prisoner can also be someone that has been denied bail
  7498. unfairly, denied parole when it would reasonably have been given to a prisoner charged with
  7499. a comparable crime, or special powers may be invoked by the judiciary.
  7500. Particularly in this latter situation, whether an individual is regarded as a political prisoner
  7501. may depend upon subjective political perspective or interpretation of the evidence.
  7502. Governments typically reject assertions that they hold political prisoners.
  7503. Examples:
  7504. In the Soviet Union, dubious psychiatric diagnoses were sometimes used to confine
  7505. political prisoners. In Nazi Germany, "Night and Fog" prisoners were among the first victims
  7506. of fascist repression. In North Korea, entire families are jailed if one family member is
  7507. suspected of anti-government sentiments."
  7508. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7509. 77 "... His commanding officer ordered that a battle cruiser be dispatched..."
  7510. 207
  7511. Editor's Note: The only Wikipedia.org reference to the term "battle cruiser" is a US or
  7512. British Navy ships. Another interesting and entertaining reference is as follows:
  7513. "The Honorverse is the semi-official name for the setting of a military science fiction
  7514. series of stories by David Weber featuring Honor Harrington, the Nelsonesque heroine in a
  7515. series reminiscent of C. S. Forester's Horatio Hornblower book series. The books are
  7516. popular in the United States and new releases regularly make The New York Times Best
  7517. Seller list.
  7518. The following list refers to starship classes within different areas of Honorverse:
  7519. These starship classes are in the People's Republic of Haven:
  7520. • Cimeterres-class: LAC
  7521. • Program 13-class: LAC
  7522. • Bastogne-class: destroyer
  7523. • City-class: destroyer
  7524. • Desforge-class: destroyer
  7525. • Frigate-class l: light cruiser
  7526. • Conqueror-class: light cruiser
  7527. • Charles Wade Pope-class: light cruiser
  7528. • Brillance-class: light cruiser
  7529. • Mars-A-class: heavy cruiser
  7530. • Mars-B-class: heavy cruiser
  7531. • Scimitar-class: heavy cruiser
  7532. • Sword-class: heavy cruiser
  7533. • Tiger-class: battlecruiser
  7534. • Warlord-class: battlecruiser
  7535. • Sultan-class: battlecruiser
  7536. • Triumphant-class: battleship
  7537. • Nouveau Paris-class: dreadnought - Formally thought to be the New Boston-class
  7538. • Rousseau-class: dreadnought
  7539. • DuQuesne-class: superdreadnought
  7540. • Sovereign of Space-class: pod-superdreadnaught
  7541. • Temeraire-class: pod-superdreadnaught
  7542. • Astra-class: LAC Carrier
  7543. • Aviary-class: LAC Carrier"
  7544. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7545. 78 "...a few hundred miles north of the equator on Mars in the Cydonia region."
  7546. This statement was made by Airl in 1947. The following photographs of this area were not
  7547. taken by NASA satellites in the 1970s!
  7548. ( The following internet links shows maps of a complex of artificial looking structures which
  7549. some people have referred to a the "Pyramid Complex, The Face on Mars, and other
  7550. geological features that are strikingly similar to symbols and architecture found in
  7551. Mesoamerican and Egyptian pyramid civilizations. Notice how the "pyramids and face
  7552. structures look as though they have been partially destroyed! Had there been an "Old
  7553. 208
  7554. Empire" base at this location, which was destroyed by a cruiser attack from The Domain
  7555. Force, it base would have been significantly damaged. )
  7556. http://www.greatdreams.com/cydonia.htm
  7557. http://www.qtm.net/~geibdan/cydonia.html
  7558. "In addition, a team of scientists from the United States Geological Survey reported at the
  7559. recent annual Lunar and Planetary Science Conference in Houston, Texas, that images
  7560. taken by NASA’s Mars-orbiting spacecraft Mars Odyssey show what appear to be cave
  7561. entrances where primitive life forms – “past or present microbial life” – could have been
  7562. sheltered, and where water could exist in liquid form.
  7563. A more detailed perusal of the report reveals that the spacecraft actually photographed, in
  7564. both visual and infrared, puzzling dark circular structures associated with these caves -
  7565. structures ranging in size from 100 to 250 meters (330 to 825 feet). Picking up the hardlynoticed story in its June 2007 issue, the prestigious journal Scientific American has now
  7566. provided additional information: Seven such “football size” caverns were identified; they are
  7567. 425 feet deep. "
  7568. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7569. 79 "... mind control..."
  7570. "Mind control (or "brainwashing") refers to a broad range of psychological tactics able to
  7571. subvert an individual's control of his own thinking, behavior, emotions, or decisions. The
  7572. concept is closely related to hypnosis, but differs in practical approach.
  7573. William Sargant connected Pavlov’s findings (the Russian researcher who experimented on
  7574. stimulus-response mechanism with dogs) to the ways people learned and internalized belief
  7575. systems. Conditioned behavior patterns could be changed by stimulated stresses beyond a
  7576. dog’s capacity for response, in essence causing a breakdown. This could also be caused by
  7577. intense signals, longer than normal waiting periods, rotating positive and negative signals
  7578. and changing a dog’s physical condition, as through illness. Depending on the dog’s initial
  7579. personality, this could possibly cause a new belief system to be held tenaciously. Sargant
  7580. also connected Pavlov’s findings to the mechanisms of brain-washing....
  7581. "Though men are not dogs, they should humbly try to remember how much they
  7582. resemble dogs in their brain functions, and not boast themselves as demigods. They
  7583. are gifted with religious and social apprehensions, and they are gifted with the power
  7584. of reason; but all these faculties are physiologically entailed to the brain. Therefore
  7585. the brain should not be abused by having forced upon it any religious or political
  7586. mystique that stunts the reason, or any form of crude rationalism that stunts the
  7587. religious sense." (p. 274)
  7588. Psychologist Margaret Singer describes six conditions which would create an
  7589. atmosphere in which thought reform is possible. Singer states that these conditions
  7590. involve no need for physical coercion or violence.
  7591. • Keep the victim unaware of what is going on and how he is being changed a step at
  7592. a time.
  7593. 209
  7594. • Control the victim's social and/or physical environment; especially control the
  7595. victim's time.
  7596. • Systematically create a sense of powerlessness in the victim. This is accomplished
  7597. by getting victims away from their normal social support group for a period of time
  7598. and into an environment where the majority of people are already group members.
  7599. o The victims serve as models of the attitudes and behaviors of the group and
  7600. speak an in-group language.
  7601. o Strip victims of their main occupation (quit jobs, drop out of school) or
  7602. source of income or have them turn over their income (or the majority of) to
  7603. the group.
  7604. o Once stripped of your usual support network, your confidence in your own
  7605. perception erodes.
  7606. o As your sense of powerlessness increases, your good judgment and
  7607. understanding of the world are diminished. (ordinary view of reality is
  7608. destabilized)
  7609. o As group attacks your previous worldview, it causes you distress and inner
  7610. confusion; yet you are not allowed to speak about this confusion or object to
  7611. it -- leadership suppresses questions and counters resistance.
  7612. o This process is sped up if you are kept tired.
  7613. • Manipulate a system of rewards, punishments and experiences in such a way as to
  7614. inhibit behavior that reflects the victim's former social identity.
  7615. o Manipulation of experiences can be accomplished through various methods
  7616. of trance induction, including leaders using such techniques as paced
  7617. speaking patterns, guided imagery, chanting, long prayer sessions or
  7618. lectures, and lengthy meditation sessions.
  7619. o Your old beliefs and patterns of behavior are defined as irrelevant or evil.
  7620. Leadership wants these old patterns eliminated, so the victims must
  7621. suppress them.
  7622. o Victims get positive feedback for conforming to the group's beliefs and
  7623. behaviors and negative feedback for old beliefs and behavior.
  7624. • Manipulate a system of rewards, punishments, and experiences in order to promote
  7625. learning the group's ideology or belief system and group-approved behaviors.
  7626. o Good behavior, demonstrating an understanding and acceptance of the
  7627. group's beliefs, and compliance are rewarded while questioning, expressing
  7628. doubts or criticizing are met with disapproval, redress and possible rejection.
  7629. If one expresses a question, he or she is made to feel that there is
  7630. something inherently wrong with them to be questioning.
  7631. o The only feedback victims get is from the group, they become totally
  7632. dependent upon the rewards given by those who control the environment.
  7633. o Victims must learn varying amounts of new information about the beliefs of
  7634. the group and the behaviors expected by the group.
  7635. o The more complicated and filled with contradictions the new system is and
  7636. the more difficult it is to learn, the more effective the conversion process will
  7637. be.
  7638. o Esteem and affection from peers is very important to new recruits. Approval
  7639. comes from having the new victim's behaviors and thought patterns conform
  7640. to the models (victims). Victims' relationship with peers is threatened
  7641. whenever they fail to learn or display new behaviors. Over time, the easy
  7642. solution to the insecurity generated by the difficulties of learning the new
  7643. system is to inhibit any display of doubts -- new recruits simply acquiesce,
  7644. affirm and act as if they do understand and accept the new ideology.
  7645. 210
  7646. • Put forth a closed system of logic and an authoritarian structure that permits no
  7647. feedback and refuses to be modified except by leadership approval or executive
  7648. order.
  7649. o The group has a top-down, pyramid structure. The leaders must have verbal
  7650. ways of never losing.
  7651. o Victims are not allowed to question, criticize or complain -- if they do, the
  7652. leaders allege that the victim is defective -- not the organization or the
  7653. beliefs.
  7654. o The individual is always wrong -- the system, its leaders and its belief are
  7655. always right.
  7656. o Remolding of the individual victim happens in a closed system. As victims
  7657. learn to modify their behavior in order to be accepted in this closed system,
  7658. they change -- begin to speak the language -- which serves to further isolate
  7659. them from their prior beliefs and behaviors."
  7660. Social psychology tactics
  7661. A contemporary view of mind control sees it as an intensified and persistent use of well
  7662. researched social psychology principles like compliance, conformity, persuasion,
  7663. dissonance, reactance, framing or emotional manipulation.
  7664. One of the most notable proponents of such theories is social psychologist Philip Zimbardo,
  7665. former president of the American Psychological Association:
  7666. "I conceive of mind control as a phenomena encompassing all the ways in
  7667. which personal, social and institutional forces are exerted to induce
  7668. compliance, conformity, belief, attitude, and value change in others.
  7669. "Mind control is the process by which individual or collective freedom of
  7670. choice and action is compromised by agents or agencies that modify or
  7671. distort perception, motivation, affect, cognition and/or behavioral outcomes. It
  7672. is neither magical nor mystical, but a process that involves a set of basic
  7673. social psychological principles."
  7674. In Influence, Science and Practice, social psychologist Robert Cialdini argues that mind
  7675. control is possible through the covert exploitation of the unconscious rules that
  7676. underlie and facilitate healthy human social interactions. He states that common social rules
  7677. can be used to prey upon the unwary, and he titles them as follows:
  7678. • "Reciprocation: The Old Give and Take...and Take"
  7679. • "Commitment and Consistency: Hobgoblins of the Mind"
  7680. • "Social Proof: Truths Are Us"
  7681. • "Liking: The Friendly Thief"
  7682. • "Authority: Directed Deference"
  7683. • "Scarcity: The Rule of the Few"
  7684. Using these six broad categories, he offers specific examples of both mild and extreme mind
  7685. control (both one on one and in groups), notes the conditions under which each social rule is
  7686. most easily exploited for false ends, and offers suggestions on how to resist such methods."
  7687. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7688. 211
  7689. 80 "... remote thought control..."
  7690. EDITOR'S NOTE: If "hypersonic sound" (see reference below) can already be used
  7691. on Earth, which has been using electricity for only 150 years, imagine a technology
  7692. that has been refined over millions of years, that could transmit thoughts that are
  7693. precisely targeted to an individual person across millions of miles of space.
  7694. "The lunatic is in my head," sang Pink Floyd on their landmark "Dark Side of the Moon"
  7695. album released 35 years ago. "There's someone in my head but it's not me."
  7696. In 2008, there is a chance that the voice inside your head may be trying to sell you
  7697. something. Advertisers are using a new acoustic technology to project advertising slogans
  7698. directly into your head. And not everyone is happy about the aural intrusion.
  7699. In fact, the space between your ears may be the newest battleground in the conflict
  7700. between privacy and technology. The technique is called hypersonic sound and it was
  7701. created by inventor Woody Norris. Hypersonic sound (HSS) projection enables sound to
  7702. be directed precisely to one individual without any spillover.
  7703. In tandem with an ultrasonic emitter and a signal processor/amplifier, HSS projects a column
  7704. of modulated ultrasonic frequencies into the air. The ultrasonic frequencies are inaudible by
  7705. themselves, but the interaction of the frequencies with the air create sounds that can be
  7706. heard by anyone inside the column. Hypersonic sound can direct sound as precisely as a
  7707. laser beam can direct light.
  7708. One only needs to be standing in the path of an HSS beam in order to hear the sound.
  7709. However, the sensation to those hearing is that the sound is being projected from inside their
  7710. skull.
  7711. Pretty cool, thinks inventor Norris. Or pretty creepy if you don't know what's going on. It is
  7712. already being done from a billboard on Prince Street in New York City.
  7713. Advertising for a television show called "Paranormal State," which airs on the Arts and
  7714. Entertainment Network (A&E), has been sent through HSS to unsuspecting pedestrians who
  7715. trigger a sensor as they stroll by. The sound that is emitted can be heard only by them.
  7716. Science and technology writer Clive Thompson, has written about the Prince Street billboard
  7717. for Wired magazine. He experienced HSS himself, writing that it felt "creepy" to hear a
  7718. woman's voice whisper, "Who's there? Who's there?"
  7719. It used to be that we could at least be guaranteed privacy in the space between our ears.
  7720. That is no longer true, thanks to the invention of "in-head advertising."
  7721. The freedom to think our own thoughts without artificial manipulation from outside
  7722. sources may be our latest civil rights battle."
  7723. By RUTH N. GELLER
  7724. HumanistNetworkNews.org
  7725. April 2, 2008
  7726. -- Reference: http://humaniststudies.org/enews/?id=342&showAll=true
  7727. 81 "... the remote mind-control operation..."
  7728. 212
  7729. "One of the earliest examples of remote control was developed in 1893 by Nikola Tesla,
  7730. and described in his patent, U.S. Patent 613,809 , named "Method of an Apparatus for
  7731. Controlling Mechanism of Moving Vehicle or Vehicles".
  7732. "In 1903, Leonardo Torres Quevedo presented the Telekino at the Paris Academy of
  7733. Science, accompanied by a brief, and making an experimental demonstration. In the same
  7734. year, he obtained a patent in France, Spain, Great Britain, and the United States. The
  7735. Telekino consisted of a robot that executed commands transmitted by electromagnetic
  7736. waves. It constituted the world's first apparatus for radio control and was a pioneer in the
  7737. field of remote control. In 1906, in the presence of the king and before a great crowd, Torres
  7738. successfully demonstrated the invention in the port of Bilbao, guiding a boat from the shore.
  7739. Later, he would try to apply the Telekino to projectiles and torpedoes, but had to abandon
  7740. the project for lack of financing.
  7741. The first remote-controlled model airplane flew in 1932, and the use of remote control
  7742. technology for military purposes was worked intensively during the Second World War,
  7743. one result of this being the German Wasserfall missile."
  7744. Remote control technology is also used in space travel, for instance the Russian
  7745. Lunokhod vehicles were remote-controlled from the ground. Direct remote control of
  7746. space vehicles at greater distances from the earth is not practical due to increasing signal
  7747. delay times."
  7748. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7749. 82 "... mind control..."
  7750. Editor's Note: The most famously publicized evidence of the use of mind-control
  7751. operations is the CIA project, "MK-ULTRA":
  7752. "Project MK-ULTRA, or MKULTRA, was the code name for a covert CIA mind-control and
  7753. chemical interrogation research program, run by the Office of Scientific Intelligence, that
  7754. began in the early 1950s and continued at least through the late 1960s. There is much
  7755. published evidence that the project involved the surreptitious use of many types of drugs, as
  7756. well as other methodology, to manipulate individual mental states and to alter brain function.
  7757. Project MK-ULTRA was first brought to wide public attention in 1975 by the U.S. Congress,
  7758. through investigations by the Church Committee, and by a presidential commission known
  7759. as the Rockefeller Commission. Investigative efforts were hampered by the fact that CIA
  7760. Director Richard Helms ordered all MK-ULTRA files destroyed in 1973.
  7761. Although the CIA insists that MK-ULTRA-type experiments have been abandoned, 14-year
  7762. CIA veteran Victor Marchetti has stated in various interviews that the CIA routinely conducts
  7763. disinformation campaigns and that CIA mind control research continued. In a 1977 interview,
  7764. Marchetti specifically called the CIA claim that MK-ULTRA was abandoned a 'cover story.'.
  7765. On the Senate floor in 1977, Senator Ted Kennedy said:
  7766. The Deputy Director of the CIA revealed that over thirty universities and institutions were
  7767. involved in an 'extensive testing and experimentation' program which included covert drug
  7768. 213
  7769. tests on unwitting citizens 'at all social levels, high and low, native Americans and foreign.'
  7770. Several of these tests involved the administration of LSD to 'unwitting subjects in social
  7771. situations.' At least one death, that of Dr. [Frank] Olson, resulted from these activities. The
  7772. Agency itself acknowledged that these tests made little scientific sense. The agents doing
  7773. the monitoring were not qualified scientific observers.
  7774. A precursor of the MK-ULTRA program began in 1945 when the Joint Intelligence Objectives
  7775. Agency was established and given direct responsibility for Operation Paperclip. Operation
  7776. Paperclip was a program to recruit former Nazi spies, scientists and experts in torture
  7777. and brain washing, some of whom had just been identified and prosecuted as war criminals
  7778. during the Nuremberg Trials.
  7779. Several secret U.S. government projects grew out of Operation Paperclip. These projects
  7780. included Project CHATTER (established 1947), and Project BLUEBIRD (established 1950),
  7781. which was later renamed to Project ARTICHOKE in 1951. Their purpose was to study mindcontrol, interrogation, behavior modification and related topics.
  7782. Headed by Dr. Sidney Gottlieb, the MK-ULTRA project was started on the order of CIA
  7783. director Allen Dulles on April 13, 1953, largely in response to Soviet, Chinese, and North
  7784. Korean use of mind-control techniques on U.S. prisoners of war in Korea. The CIA wanted to
  7785. use similar methods on their own captives. The CIA was also interested in being able to
  7786. manipulate foreign leaders with such techniques, and would later invent several schemes to
  7787. drug Fidel Castro.
  7788. Experiments were often conducted without the subjects' knowledge or consent. In some
  7789. cases, academic researchers being funded through grants from CIA front organizations were
  7790. unaware that their work was being used for these purposes.
  7791. In 1964, the project was renamed MK-SEARCH. The project attempted to produce a perfect
  7792. truth drug for use in interrogating suspected Soviet spies during the Cold War, and
  7793. generally to explore any other possibilities of mind control.
  7794. An MK-ULTRA program tagged "Operation Teapot" involved the testing of pregnant women
  7795. with radiation, among other things. Also under this program, U.S. army soldiers were dosed
  7796. with LSD to study the effects of panic.
  7797. Another MK-ULTRA effort, Subproject 54, was the Navy's top secret "Perfect Concussion"
  7798. program, which used sub aural frequency blasts to erase memory. During this program
  7799. LSD's corollary effect on controlled and channeled mass panic was discovered.
  7800. MK-ULTRA head Sidney Gottlieb was involved with both Operation Teapot and Subproject
  7801. 54. The U.S. government officially denied involvement until 1995 when an official apology
  7802. was issued to the pregnant women and to the affected U.S. army soldiers. However no
  7803. apologies were offered to the affected U.S. Navy soldiers or to a group of Oregon prison
  7804. inmates, whose testicles were irradiated without their knowledge. Compensation for medical
  7805. treatment resulting from these experiments has been disputed and remains tied up in
  7806. arbitration more than 40 years after the fact. Since 1995, most of the associated files have
  7807. been reclassified as Top Secret.
  7808. 214
  7809. Because most MK-ULTRA records were deliberately destroyed in 1973 by order of then CIA
  7810. Director Richard Helms, it has been difficult, if not impossible, for investigators to gain a
  7811. complete understanding of the more than 150 individually funded research sub-projects
  7812. sponsored by MK Ultra and related CIA programs.
  7813. Aims
  7814. The Agency poured millions of dollars into studies probing dozens of methods of
  7815. influencing and controlling the mind. One 1955 MK-ULTRA document gives an indication
  7816. of the size and range of the effort; this document refers to the study of an assortment of
  7817. mind-altering substances described as follows:
  7818. 1. Substances which will promote illogical thinking and impulsiveness to the point
  7819. where the recipient would be discredited in public.
  7820. 2. Substances which increase the efficiency of mentation and perception.
  7821. 3. Materials which will prevent or counteract the intoxicating effect of alcohol.
  7822. 4. Materials which will promote the intoxicating effect of alcohol.
  7823. 5. Materials which will produce the signs and symptoms of recognized diseases in a
  7824. reversible way so that they may be used for malingering, etc.
  7825. 6. Materials which will render the induction of hypnosis easier or otherwise
  7826. enhance its usefulness.
  7827. 7. Substances which will enhance the ability of individuals to withstand privation,
  7828. torture and coercion during interrogation and so-called "brain-washing".
  7829. 8. Materials and physical methods which will produce amnesia for events preceding
  7830. and during their use.
  7831. 9. Physical methods of producing shock and confusion over extended periods of time
  7832. and capable of surreptitious use.
  7833. 10. Substances which produce physical disablement such as paralysis of the legs, acute
  7834. anemia, etc.
  7835. 11. Substances which will produce "pure" euphoria with no subsequent let-down.
  7836. 12. Substances which alter personality structure in such a way that the tendency of the
  7837. recipient to become dependent upon another person is enhanced.
  7838. 13. A material which will cause mental confusion of such a type that the individual under
  7839. its influence will find it difficult to maintain a fabrication under questioning.
  7840. 14. Substances which will lower the ambition and general working efficiency of men
  7841. when administered in undetectable amounts.
  7842. 15. Substances which promote weakness or distortion of the eyesight or hearing
  7843. faculties, preferably without permanent effects.
  7844. 16. A knockout pill which can surreptitiously be administered in drinks, food, cigarettes,
  7845. as an aerosol, etc., which will be safe to use, provide a maximum of amnesia, and
  7846. be suitable for use by agent types on an ad hoc basis.
  7847. 17. A material which can be surreptitiously administered by the above routes and which
  7848. in very small amounts will make it impossible for a man to perform any physical
  7849. activity whatsoever.
  7850. Historians have learned that creating a "Manchurian Candidate" subject through
  7851. "mind control" techniques was undoubtedly a goal of MK-ULTRA and related CIA
  7852. projects.
  7853. 215
  7854. Budget
  7855. A secretive arrangement granted a percentage of the CIA budget. The MK-ULTRA
  7856. director was granted six percent of the CIA operating budget in 1953, without oversight or
  7857. accounting.
  7858. Experiments
  7859. CIA documents suggest that "chemical, biological and radiological" means were investigated
  7860. for the purpose of mind control as part of MK-ULTRA.
  7861. Drugs
  7862. LSD
  7863. Early efforts focused on LSD, which later came to dominate many of MK-ULTRA's programs.
  7864. Experiments included administering LSD to CIA employees, military personnel, doctors,
  7865. other government agents, prostitutes, mentally ill patients, and members of the general
  7866. public in order to study their reactions. LSD and other drugs were usually administered
  7867. without the subject's knowledge and informed consent, a violation of the Nuremberg Code
  7868. that the U.S. agreed to follow after WWII.
  7869. Efforts to "recruit" subjects were often illegal, even discounting the fact that drugs were being
  7870. administered (though actual use of LSD, for example, was legal in the United States until
  7871. October 6, 1966). In Operation Midnight Climax, the CIA set up several brothels to obtain a
  7872. selection of men who would be too embarrassed to talk about the events. The men were
  7873. dosed with LSD, and the brothels were equipped with one-way mirrors and the "sessions"
  7874. were filmed for later viewing and study.
  7875. Some subjects' participation was consensual, and in many of these cases, the subjects
  7876. appeared to be singled out for even more extreme experiments. In one case, volunteers
  7877. were given LSD for 77 consecutive days.
  7878. LSD was eventually dismissed by MK-ULTRA's researchers as too unpredictable in its
  7879. effects. Although useful information was sometimes obtained through questioning subjects
  7880. on LSD, not uncommonly the most marked effect would be the subject's absolute and utter
  7881. certainty that they were able to withstand any form of interrogation attempt, even physical
  7882. torture.
  7883. Other drugs
  7884. Another technique investigated was connecting a barbiturate IV into one arm and an
  7885. amphetamine IV into the other. The barbiturates were released into the subject first, and as
  7886. soon as the subject began to fall asleep, the amphetamines were released. The subject
  7887. would begin babbling incoherently at this point, and it was sometimes possible to ask
  7888. questions and get useful answers.
  7889. Other experiments involved heroin, morphine, temazepam (used under code name MKSEARCH), mescaline, psilocybin, scopolamine, marijuana, alcohol, and sodium pentothal.
  7890. 216
  7891. Hypnosis
  7892. Declassified MK-ULTRA documents indicate hypnosis was studied in the early 1950s.
  7893. Experimental goals included: the creation of "hypnotically induced anxieties," "hypnotically
  7894. increasing ability to learn and recall complex written matter," studying hypnosis and
  7895. polygraph examinations, "hypnotically increasing ability to observe and recall complex
  7896. arrangements of physical objects," and studying "relationship of personality to susceptibility
  7897. to hypnosis."
  7898. Canadian experiments
  7899. The experiments were exported to Canada when the CIA recruited Scottish psychiatrist
  7900. Donald Ewen Cameron, creator of the "psychic driving" concept, which the CIA found
  7901. particularly interesting. Cameron had been hoping to correct schizophrenia by erasing
  7902. existing memories and completely rebuilding the psyche. He commuted from Albany, New
  7903. York to Montreal every week to work at the Allan Memorial Institute of McGill University and
  7904. was paid $69,000 from 1957 to 1964 to carry out MKULTRA experiments there.
  7905. In addition to LSD, Cameron also experimented with various paralytic drugs as well as
  7906. electroconvulsive therapy at thirty to forty times the normal power. His "driving"
  7907. experiments consisted of putting subjects into drug-induced coma for weeks at a time (up to
  7908. three months in one case) while playing tape loops of noise or simple repetitive statements.
  7909. His experiments were typically carried out on patients who had entered the institute for minor
  7910. problems such as anxiety disorders and postpartum depression, many of whom suffered
  7911. permanently from his actions. His treatments resulted in victims' incontinence, amnesia,
  7912. forgetting how to talk, forgetting their parents, and thinking their interrogators were their
  7913. parents. His work was inspired and paralleled by the British psychiatrist Dr William Sargant
  7914. at St Thomas' Hospital, London, and Belmont Hospital, Surrey, who also experimented
  7915. extensively and very damagingly on his patients without their consent and was equally
  7916. involved with the Intelligence Services.
  7917. It was during this era that Cameron became known worldwide as the first chairman of
  7918. the World Psychiatric Association as well as president of the American and Canadian
  7919. psychiatric associations. Cameron had also been a member of the Nuremberg medical
  7920. tribunal only a decade earlier.
  7921. Revelation
  7922. In 1973, CIA Director Richard Helms ordered all MK-ULTRA files destroyed. Pursuant to
  7923. this order, most CIA documents regarding the project were destroyed, making a full
  7924. investigation of MK-ULTRA all but impossible.
  7925. In December 1974, The New York Times reported that the CIA had conducted illegal
  7926. domestic activities, including experiments on U.S. citizens, during the 1960s. That report
  7927. prompted investigations by the U.S. Congress, in the form of the Church Committee, and by
  7928. a presidential commission known as the Rockefeller Commission that looked into domestic
  7929. activities of the CIA, the FBI, and intelligence-related agencies of the military.
  7930. In the summer of 1975, congressional Church Committee reports and the presidential
  7931. Rockefeller Commission report revealed to the public for the first time that the CIA
  7932. and the Department of Defense had conducted experiments on both unwitting and
  7933. 217
  7934. cognizant human subjects as part of an extensive program to influence and control
  7935. human behavior through the use of psychoactive drugs such as LSD and mescaline
  7936. and other chemical, biological, and psychological means. They also revealed that at
  7937. least one subject had died after administration of LSD.
  7938. The congressional committee investigating the CIA research, chaired by Senator Frank
  7939. Church, concluded that "[p]rior consent was obviously not obtained from any of the
  7940. subjects". The committee noted that the "experiments sponsored by these researchers ...
  7941. call into question the decision by the agencies not to fix guidelines for experiments."
  7942. In Canada, the issue took much longer to surface, becoming widely known in 1984 on a
  7943. CBC news show, The Fifth Estate. It was learned that not only had the CIA funded Dr.
  7944. Cameron's efforts, but perhaps even more shockingly, the Canadian government was
  7945. fully aware of this, and had later provided another $500,000 in funding to continue the
  7946. experiments. This revelation largely derailed efforts by the victims to sue the CIA as their
  7947. U.S. counterparts had, and the Canadian government eventually settled out of court for
  7948. $100,000 to each of the 127 victims.
  7949. U.S. General Accounting Office Report
  7950. The U.S. General Accounting Office issued a report on September 28, 1994, which stated
  7951. that between 1940 and 1974, DOD and other national security agencies studied thousands
  7952. of human subjects in tests and experiments involving hazardous substances.
  7953. The quote from the study:
  7954. ... Working with the CIA, the Department of Defense gave hallucinogenic drugs to thousands
  7955. of "volunteer" soldiers in the 1950's and 1960's. In addition to LSD, the Army also tested
  7956. quinuclidinyl benzilate, a hallucinogen code-named BZ. Many of these tests were conducted
  7957. under the so-called MKULTRA program, established to counter perceived Soviet and
  7958. Chinese advances in brainwashing techniques. Between 1953 and 1964, the program
  7959. consisted of 149 projects involving drug testing and other studies on unwitting human
  7960. subjects...
  7961. Extent of participation
  7962. 44 American colleges or universities, 15 research foundations or chemical or pharmaceutical
  7963. companies and the like, 12 hospitals or clinics (in addition to those associated with
  7964. universities), and 3 prisons are known to have participated in MKULTRA.
  7965. Famous subjects
  7966. Considerable evidence supports the contention that Unabomber Theodore Kaczynski
  7967. participated in CIA-sponsored MK-ULTRA experiments conducted at Harvard University by
  7968. Henry A. Murray, a professor in Social Relations, from the fall of 1959 through the spring of
  7969. 1962. Kaczynski was a precocious, though impressionable, sixteen-year-old when he began
  7970. his participation; his assigned code name was "Lawful." He emerged, years later, as a
  7971. terrorist and has been sentenced to life in prison without the possibility of parole.
  7972. "Merry Prankster" Ken Kesey, author of One Flew Over the Cuckoo's Nest, volunteered for
  7973. MK-ULTRA experiments while a student at Stanford University. Kesey's ingestion of LSD
  7974. 218
  7975. during these experiments led directly to his widespread promotion of the drug and the
  7976. subsequent development of hippie culture."
  7977. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  7978. 83 ..."Dark Ages"...
  7979. "It is generally accepted that the concept (Dark Ages)was created by Petrarch in the 1330s.
  7980. Writing of those who had come before him, he said, "Amidst the errors there shone forth
  7981. men of genius, no less keen were their eyes, although they were surrounded by darkness
  7982. and dense gloom." Christian writers had traditional metaphors of "light versus darkness" to
  7983. describe "good versus evil". Petrarch was the first to co-opt the metaphor and give it secular
  7984. meaning by reversing its application. Classical Antiquity, so long considered the "dark" age
  7985. for its lack of Christianity, was now seen by Petrarch as the age of "light" because of its
  7986. cultural achievements, while Petrarch's time, lacking such cultural achievements, was seen
  7987. as the age of darkness.
  7988. As an Italian, Petrarch saw the Roman Empire and the classical period as expressions of
  7989. Italian greatness. He spent much of his time traveling through Europe rediscovering and
  7990. republishing the classic Latin and Greek texts. He wanted to restore the classical Latin
  7991. language to its former purity. Humanists saw the preceding 900-year period as a time of
  7992. stagnation. They saw history unfolding, not along the religious outline of St. Augustine's Six
  7993. Ages of the World, but in cultural (or secular) terms through the progressive developments of
  7994. classical ideals, literature, and art.
  7995. Petrarch wrote that history had had two periods: the classic period of the Greeks and
  7996. Romans, followed by a time of darkness, in which he saw himself as still living. Humanists
  7997. believed one day the Roman Empire would rise again and restore classic cultural purity, and
  7998. so by the late 14th and early 15th century, humanists such as Leonardo Bruni believed they
  7999. had attained this new age, and that a third, Modern Age had begun. The age before their
  8000. own, which Petrarch had labeled dark, thus became a "middle" age between the classic and
  8001. the modern."
  8002. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8003. 84 "... the basic laws of physics..."
  8004. "The early modern period is seen as a flowering of the Renaissance, in what is often known
  8005. as the "Scientific Revolution", viewed as a foundation of modern science. Historians like
  8006. Howard Margolis hold that the Scientific Revolution began in 1543, when Nicolaus
  8007. Copernicus received the first copy of his De Revolutionibus, printed in Nuremberg
  8008. (Nürnberg) by Johannes Petreius. Most of its contents had been written years prior, but the
  8009. publication had been delayed. Copernicus died soon after receiving the copy.
  8010. Further significant advances were made over the following century by Galileo Galilei,
  8011. Christiaan Huygens, Johannes Kepler, and Blaise Pascal. During the early seventeenth
  8012. century, Galileo made extensive use of experimentation to validate physical theories, which
  8013. is the key idea in the modern scientific method. Galileo formulated and successfully tested
  8014. several results in dynamics, in particular the Law of Inertia. In Galileo's Two New Sciences,
  8015. a dialogue between the characters Simplicio and Salviati discuss the motion of a ship (as a
  8016. moving frame) and how that ship's cargo is indifferent to its motion. Huygens used the
  8017. motion of a boat along a Dutch canal to illustrate an early form of the conservation of
  8018. momentum.
  8019. 219
  8020. The scientific revolution is considered to have culminated with the publication of the
  8021. Philosophiae Naturalis Principia Mathematica in 1687 by the mathematician, physicist,
  8022. alchemist and inventor Sir Isaac Newton (1643-1727). In 1687, Newton published the
  8023. Principia, detailing two comprehensive and successful physical theories: Newton's laws of
  8024. motion, from which arise classical mechanics; and Newton's Law of Gravitation, which
  8025. describes the fundamental force of gravity. Both theories agreed well with experiment. The
  8026. Principia also included several theories in fluid dynamics.
  8027. After Newton defined classical mechanics, the next great field of inquiry within physics was
  8028. the nature of electricity."
  8029. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8030. 85 "...electricity..."
  8031. "Electricity would remain little more than an intellectual curiosity for over two millennia until
  8032. 1600, when the English physician William Gilbert made a careful study of electricity and
  8033. magnetism, distinguishing the lodestone effect from static electricity produced by rubbing
  8034. amber. He coined the New Latin word electricus ("of amber" or "like amber", from ηλεκτρον
  8035. [elektron], the Greek word for "amber") to refer to the property of attracting small objects
  8036. after being rubbed. This association gave rise to the English words "electric" and "electricity",
  8037. which made their first appearance in print in Thomas Browne's Pseudodoxia Epidemica of
  8038. 1646.
  8039. Further work was conducted by Otto von Guericke, Robert Boyle, Stephen Gray and C. F.
  8040. du Fay. In the 18th century, Benjamin Franklin conducted extensive research in electricity,
  8041. selling his possessions to fund his work. In June 1752 he is reputed to have attached a
  8042. metal key to the bottom of a dampened kite string and flown the kite in a storm-threatened
  8043. sky. He observed a succession of sparks jumping from the key to the back of his hand,
  8044. showing that lightning was indeed electrical in nature.
  8045. In 1791 Luigi Galvani published his discovery of bioelectricity, demonstrating that electricity
  8046. was the medium by which nerve cells passed signals to the muscles. Alessandro Volta's
  8047. battery, or voltaic pile, of 1800, made from alternating layers of zinc and copper, provided
  8048. scientists with a more reliable source of electrical energy than the electrostatic machines
  8049. previously used. André-Marie Ampère discovered the relationship between electricity and
  8050. magnetism in 1820; Michael Faraday invented the electric motor in 1821, and Georg Ohm
  8051. mathematically analyzed the electrical circuit in 1827.
  8052. While it had been the early nineteenth century that had seen rapid progress in electrical
  8053. science, the late nineteenth century would see the greatest progress in electrical
  8054. engineering. Through such people as Nikola Tesla, Thomas Edison, George Westinghouse,
  8055. Ernst Werner von Siemens, Alexander Graham Bell and Lord Kelvin, electricity was turned
  8056. from a scientific curiosity into an essential tool for modern life, becoming a driving force for
  8057. the Second Industrial Revolution."
  8058. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8059. 86 "... Sir Isaac Newton..."
  8060. "Sir Isaac Newton (4 January 1643 – 31 March 1727) was an English physicist,
  8061. mathematician, astronomer, theologian, natural philosopher, and alchemist. His treatise
  8062. 220
  8063. Philosophiæ Naturalis Principia Mathematica was published in 1687, and said to be the
  8064. greatest single work in the history of science, described universal gravitation and the
  8065. three laws of motion, laying the groundwork for classical mechanics, which dominated
  8066. the scientific view of the physical universe for the next three centuries and is the basis
  8067. for modern engineering. He showed that the motions of objects on Earth and of celestial
  8068. bodies are governed by the same set of natural laws by demonstrating the consistency
  8069. between Kepler's laws of planetary motion and his theory of gravitation, thus removing
  8070. the last doubts about heliocentrism and advancing the scientific revolution.
  8071. In mechanics, Newton enunciated the principles of conservation of momentum and
  8072. angular momentum. In optics, he invented the reflecting telescope and developed a
  8073. theory of colour based on the observation that a prism decomposes white light into a
  8074. visible spectrum. He also formulated an empirical law of cooling and studied the speed of
  8075. sound.
  8076. In mathematics, Newton shares the credit with Gottfried Leibniz for the development of the
  8077. calculus. He also demonstrated the generalized binomial theorem, developed the socalled "Newton's method" for approximating the zeroes of a function, and contributed to
  8078. the study of power series.
  8079. In a 2005 poll of the Royal Society of who had the greatest effect on the history of
  8080. science, Newton was deemed much more influential than Albert Einstein."
  8081. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8082. 87 "...between lifetimes."
  8083. "Dr. Carl Sagan was a noted scientist, teacher and skeptic. Sagan was a founding member
  8084. of a group that set out to debunk unscientific claims, and wrote the book The DemonHaunted World in which he said that there were several areas in parapsychology which
  8085. deserved serious study:
  8086. "At the time of writing there are three claims in the ESP field which, in my opinion,
  8087. deserve serious study: (1) that by thought alone humans can (barely) affect random
  8088. number generators in computers; (2) that people under mild sensory deprivation can receive
  8089. thoughts or images "projected" at them; and (3) that young children sometimes report the
  8090. details of a previous life, which upon checking turn out to be accurate and which they
  8091. could not have known about in any way other than reincarnation. I pick these claims
  8092. not because I think they're likely to be valid (I don't), but as examples of contentions
  8093. that might be true."
  8094. "University of Virginia psychiatrists Dr. Jim Tucker and Professor Ian Stevenson have
  8095. published books and peer-reviewed research papers about their work in examining cases of
  8096. early childhood past life memories and birthmarks. The most detailed collections of personal
  8097. reports in favor of reincarnation have been published by Professor Ian Stevenson, in books
  8098. such as Twenty Cases Suggestive of Reincarnation.
  8099. Stevenson has spent over 40 years devoted to the study of children who have spoken about
  8100. past lives. In each case, Stevenson methodically documents the child's statements. Then,
  8101. he identifies the deceased person the child allegedly identifies with, and verifies the facts of
  8102. the deceased person's life that match the child's memory. Stevenson believes that his
  8103. meticulous methods rule out all possible "normal" explanations for the child’s
  8104. 221
  8105. memories. However, it should be noted that a significant proportion of the University of
  8106. Virginia's reported cases of reincarnation originate in Eastern societies, where dominant
  8107. religions often permit the concept of reincarnation. In India — where this phenomenon is
  8108. quite common — if a child from a poor family claims to be the reincarnated person from a
  8109. rich family, this can lead to the child to be adopted by that family, a motive that has led to
  8110. children making fraudulent reincarnation claims.
  8111. Stevenson has said about the 2500 cases of children who appeared to remember past lives,
  8112. which he and his associates investigated:
  8113. "My conclusion so far is that reincarnation is not the only explanation for these cases, but
  8114. that it is the best explanation we have for the stronger cases, by which I mean those in
  8115. which a child makes a considerable number (say 20 or 30) of correct statements about
  8116. another person who lives in a family that lives quite remote from his own and with which his
  8117. family has had no prior contacts. When we talk about remoteness, we don't necessarily just
  8118. mean physical distance. We know that two families can live only 10 kilometers apart and yet
  8119. they can be very remote because they belong to different economic and social classes."
  8120. Professor Stevenson has also matched birthmarks and birth defects to wounds and
  8121. scars on the deceased, verified by medical records such as autopsy photographs.
  8122. Stevenson's research into birthmarks and congenital defects has particular importance for
  8123. the demonstration of reincarnation, since it furnishes objective and graphic evidence of
  8124. reincarnation, superior to the (often fragmentary) memories and reports of the children and
  8125. adults questioned, which even if verified afterwards probably cannot be assigned the same."
  8126. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8127. 88 "... lost civilizations of Atlantis..."
  8128. The following website has most of the popular information about Atlantis:
  8129. http://www.lost-civilizations.net/atlantis.html
  8130. 89 "... and Lemuria..."
  8131. "The rise and fall of the Lemurian civilization cannot be accurately documented, though
  8132. many have gone in quest of this mythological continent. Lost civilizations have been known
  8133. to rise and fall - or just appear and disappear without explanation. As with Atlantis one can
  8134. only speculate as to what happened, based on archaeological evidence, legends, theories
  8135. pieced together by researchers, and for some, metaphysical channelings.
  8136. The exact location of Lemuria varies with different researchers and authors, though it is part
  8137. of the mysteries of the Pacific region flowing into the American continent, just as Atlantis is
  8138. linked to the Atlantic land areas that stretch to the Mediterranean Sea. Wherever you believe
  8139. the location of Lemuria to be, it is linked with the Ring of Fire. This area has become active
  8140. with a Tsunami in December 26, 2004, powerful earthquakes and volcanoes that continue,
  8141. after being dormant for many years. It would seem that the legends of ancient Lemuria
  8142. speak to us once again with warning signs - as they supposedly did to the Lemurians -
  8143. before the continent - or group of islands - fell into the sea.
  8144. 222
  8145. The fate of Lemuria, also known as Pacifica, Mu, and what Cayce called Zu or Oz, is not
  8146. unlike that proposed for Atlantis. It is much like the destiny of humanity foreseen in our
  8147. timeline by prophets of old and modern-day clairvoyants. The legends are all the same ... a
  8148. thriving, advanced culture that suddenly manifested out of nowhere. Their origins and
  8149. downfall are linked to destruction when their continent sank beneath the 'sea' due to natural
  8150. cataclysms and human imbalance."
  8151. -- Reference: http://www.crystalinks.com/lemuria.html
  8152. 90 "...polar shift"...
  8153. "In 1852, mathematician Joseph Adhemar suggested that the accumulation of thick ice at
  8154. the poles periodically caused the earth to flip and the equator to move to where the poles
  8155. were. An early mention of a shifting of the Earth's axis can be found in an 1872 article
  8156. entitled "Chronologie historique des Mexicains" which interpreted ancient Mexican myths as
  8157. evidence for four periods of global cataclysms that had begun around 10,500 B.C.
  8158. The novel Geyserland: Empiricisms in Social Reform. Being Data and Observations
  8159. Recorded by the Late Mark Stubble, M.D., Ph.D. (1908) by Richard Hatfield used the device
  8160. of a fictional study to locate a blissful nation of pure Communism at the North Pole on the
  8161. island of Atlantis. This fictional Utopia was destroyed by a pole shift set in 9262 B.C.
  8162. Hugh Auchincloss Brown, an electrical engineer, advanced a theory of catastrophic pole shift
  8163. influenced by Adhemar's earlier model. Brown also argued that accumulation of ice at the
  8164. poles caused recurring tipping of the axis. identifying cycles of approximately 7 millennia.
  8165. Charles Hapgood is now perhaps the best remembered early proponent, from in his books
  8166. The Earth's Shifting Crust (1958) (which includes a foreword by Albert Einstein) and
  8167. Path of the Pole (1970). Hapgood, building on Adhemar's much earlier model, speculated
  8168. that the ice mass at one or both poles over-accumulates and destabilizes the earth's
  8169. rotational balance, causing slippage of all or much of earth's outer crust around the earth's
  8170. core, which retains its axial orientation. Based on his own research, he argued that each
  8171. shift took approximately five thousand years, followed by 20 to 30 thousand year periods
  8172. with no polar movements. Also, in his calculations, the area of movement never covered
  8173. more than 40 degrees. His examples of recent locations for the North Pole include the
  8174. Yukon Territory, Hudson Bay, and in the Atlantic Ocean between Iceland and Norway.
  8175. This is an example of slow pole shift motion, which displays the most minor alterations and
  8176. no destruction. A more dramatic view assumes more rapid changes, with dramatic
  8177. alterations of geography and localized areas of destruction due to earthquakes and
  8178. tsunamis. Several recent books propose changes that take place in weeks, days, or even
  8179. hours, resulting in a variety of doomsday scenarios.
  8180. Regardless of speed, the results of a shift occurring results in major climate changes for
  8181. most of the earth's surface, as areas that were formerly equatorial become temperate, and
  8182. areas that were temperate become either more equatorial or more arctic.
  8183. Hapgood wrote to Canadian librarian, Rand Flem-Ath, encouraging him in his pursuit of
  8184. scientific evidence to back Hapgood's claim and in his expansion of the theory. Flem-Ath
  8185. published the results of this work in 1995 in When the Sky Fell co-written with his wife, Rose.
  8186. 223
  8187. Other theories which are not dependent upon polar ice masses include those involving:
  8188. • a high-velocity asteroid or comet which hits Earth at such an angle that the
  8189. lithosphere moves independent of the mantle
  8190. • a high-velocity asteroid or comet which hits Earth at such an angle that the entire
  8191. planet shifts axis.
  8192. • an unusually magnetic celestial object which passes close enough to Earth to
  8193. temporarily reorient the magnetic field, which then “drags” the lithosphere about a
  8194. new axis of rotation. Eventually, the sun's magnetic field again determines the
  8195. Earth's, after the intruding celestial object “returns” to a location from which it cannot
  8196. influence Earth.
  8197. • perturbations of the topography of the core-mantle boundary, perhaps induced by
  8198. differential core rotation and shift of its axial rotation vector, leading to CMB mass
  8199. redistributions. See, e.g., Bowin.
  8200. • mass redistributions in the mantle from mantle avalanches or other deformations.
  8201. See, e.g., Ladbury, and Steinberger and O'Connell."
  8202. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8203. 91 "... Totalitarian..."
  8204. "Totalitarianism is a concept used in political science that describes a state that regulates
  8205. nearly every aspect of public and private behavior. Totalitarian regimes or movements
  8206. maintain themselves in political power by means of secret police, propaganda disseminated
  8207. through the state-controlled mass media, personality cults, regulation and restriction of free
  8208. discussion and criticism, single-party states, the use of mass surveillance, and widespread
  8209. use of terror tactics.
  8210. Many consider the first totalitarian regimes to have begun in the 20th century, which include
  8211. the communist regimes of the Soviet Union and Cuba, as well as totalitarianism of Nazi
  8212. Germany, Fascist Italy, Spain under Franco, Portugal under Salazar, as well as others.
  8213. However some argue that totalitarianism has existed centuries prior, such as in ancient
  8214. China under the political leadership of Prime Minister Li Si who helped the Qin dynasty unify
  8215. China. Li Si adopted the political philosophy of Legalism as the ruling philosophical thought
  8216. of China and restricted political activities and destroyed all literature and killed scholars who
  8217. did not support Legalism. Totalitarianism was also used by the Spartan state in Ancient
  8218. Greece. Its “educational system” was part of the totalitarian military society. The oligarchy
  8219. running the state machine dictated every aspect of life, including the rearing of children."
  8220. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8221. 92 "...planetary governments, regulated by a brutal social, economic, and political
  8222. hierarchy..."
  8223. "A hierarchy (in Greek: hieros, 'sacred', and arkho, 'rule') is a system of ranking and
  8224. organizing things or people, where each element of the system (except for the top element)
  8225. is a subordinate to a single other element.
  8226. A hierarchy can link entities either directly or indirectly, and either vertically or horizontally.
  8227. The only direct links in a hierarchy, insofar as they are hierarchical, are to one's immediate
  8228. superior or to one of one's subordinates, although a system that is largely hierarchical can
  8229. also incorporate other organizational patterns. Indirect hierarchical links can extend
  8230. 224
  8231. "vertically" upwards or downwards via multiple links in the same direction. All parts of the
  8232. hierarchy which are not vertically linked to one another can nevertheless be "horizontally"
  8233. linked by traveling up the hierarchy to find a common direct or indirect superior, and then
  8234. down again. This is akin to two co-workers, neither of whom is the other's boss, but both of
  8235. whose chains of command will eventually meet."
  8236. Many human organizations, such as governments, educational institutions, businesses,
  8237. churches, armies and political movements are hierarchical organizations, at least officially;
  8238. commonly seniors, called "bosses", have more power than their subordinates. Thus the
  8239. relationship defining this hierarchy is "commands" or "has power over". Some analysts
  8240. question whether power "actually" works in the way the traditional organizational chart
  8241. indicates, however. This view tends to emphasize the significance of the informal
  8242. organization."
  8243. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8244. 93 "...royal monarch as its figurehead."
  8245. "In politics, a figurehead, by metaphor with the carved figurehead at the prow of a sailing
  8246. ship, is a person who holds an important title or office yet executes little actual power.
  8247. Common figureheads include constitutional monarchs, such as the Emperor of Japan, or
  8248. presidents in parliamentary democracies, such as the President of Israel.
  8249. While the authority of a figurehead is generally symbolic, respect and access to high levels
  8250. of government can give them significant influence on some events. An example would be
  8251. Emperor Hirohito's involvement in World War II. In parliamentary systems, presidents are
  8252. figureheads at times of peace (delegated such powers as convening or dismissing the
  8253. national legislature), but at wartime they are often commanders in chief.
  8254. Sometimes a figurehead can be exploited in times of emergency. For example, Indian Prime
  8255. Minister Indira Gandhi used the figurehead President of India to issue unilateral decrees that
  8256. allowed her to bypass parliament when it no longer supported her.
  8257. The word can also have more sinister overtones, and refer to a powerless leader who should
  8258. be exercising full authority, yet is actually being controlled by a more powerful figure behind
  8259. the throne.
  8260. The tendency of this word to drift, like many words that are in a strong process of changed
  8261. meanings, into the pejorative is beginning to make it unsuitable to apply to a head of state
  8262. with limited constitutional authority, such that its use may become increasingly inappropriate
  8263. in referring to monarchs and presidents in parliamentary systems."
  8264. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8265. 94 "... united by a egalitarian esprit de corps..."
  8266. "Esprit de corps, when discussing the morale of a group, is an intangible term used for
  8267. the capacity of people to maintain belief in an institution or a goal, or even in oneself
  8268. and others. According to Alexander H. Leighton, "morale is the capacity of a group of
  8269. people to pull together persistently and consistently in pursuit of a common
  8270. purpose".
  8271. 225
  8272. Egalitarian, (derived from the French word égal, meaning equal) is a political doctrine that
  8273. holds that all people should be treated as equals from birth. Generally it applies to being
  8274. held equal under the law, the church, and society at large. In actual practice, one may be
  8275. considered an egalitarian in most areas listed above, even if not subscribing to equality in
  8276. every possible area of individual difference. For example, one might support equal rights in
  8277. race matters but not in gender issues, or vice versa."
  8278. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8279. 95 "... Many of the IS-BEs on Earth are here because they are violently opposed to
  8280. totalitarian governments..."
  8281. -- Editor's Note: Coincidentally, or perhaps NOT coincidentally, almost one year after this
  8282. interview, the novel "1984" by George Orwell, which was published in June of 1948. The
  8283. state of the U.S. government has grown to mirror many of the features described by Orwell
  8284. in the book, "Nineteen Eighty-Four". It is easy to speculate that Orwell may have been
  8285. "influenced" by an IS-BE of The Domain while writing this book. Or, at the very least, he was
  8286. one of the IS-BEs sentenced to Earth because he is one of "... the IS-BEs on Earth are
  8287. here because they are violently opposed to totalitarian governments...".
  8288. The following description of the basis for Orwell's "1984" are taken verbatim from
  8289. Wikipedia.org. It is a very close description of the "Old Empire" government:
  8290. "Much of Oceanic society is based upon Stalin's Soviet Union. The "Two Minutes' Hate"
  8291. was the ritual demonization of State enemies and rivals; Big Brother resembles Joseph
  8292. Stalin; the Party's archenemy, Emmanuel Goldstein, resembles Leon Trotsky (both are
  8293. Jewish, both have the same physiognomy, and Trotsky's real surname was 'Bronstein').
  8294. Another suggested inspiration for Goldstein is Emma Goldman, the famous Anarchist figure.
  8295. Doctored photography is a propaganda technique and the creation of unpersons in the
  8296. story, analogous to Stalin's enemies being made nonpersons and being erased from
  8297. official photographic records; the police treatment of several characters recalls the
  8298. Moscow Trials of the Great Purge."
  8299. There a very many interesting parallels between the concepts discussed by Orwell in
  8300. "1984", and the description of the "Old Empire" government and the Earth prison
  8301. planet activities in the transcripts of the "Alien Interviews" with Airl.
  8302. For example, a few of these are parallels cited in the following excerpt from the
  8303. internet encyclopedia, Wikipedia.org:
  8304. "The Thought Police capture Winston and Julia in their sanctuary bedroom and they are
  8305. separately interrogated at the Ministry of Love, where the regime's opponents are tortured
  8306. and killed, but sometimes released (to be executed at a later date); Charrington, the shop
  8307. keeper who rented them the room reveals himself an officer of the Thought Police. In the
  8308. Ministry of Love torture chamber, O'Brien tells Smith that he will be cured of his hatred
  8309. for the Party. During a session, he explains to Winston that torture's purpose is to alter
  8310. his way of thinking, not to extract a fake confession, adding that once cured — accepting
  8311. reality as the Party describes — he then will be executed; electroshock torture will
  8312. achieve that, continuing until O'Brien decides Winston is cured."
  8313. For complete comparative analysis, read the book, "1984" or read the entire reference to the
  8314. book on the internet at Wikipedia.org, excerpted below:
  8315. 226
  8316. "Nineteen Eighty-Four (also titled 1984), by George Orwell (the pen name of Eric Arthur
  8317. Blair), is an English dystopian novel about life in a dictatorship as lived by Winston Smith, an
  8318. intellectual worker at the Ministry of Truth, and his degradation when he runs afoul of the
  8319. totalitarian government of Oceania, the state in which he lives in the year 1984.
  8320. Orwell's influences
  8321. In the essay Why I Write, Orwell explains that all the serious work he wrote since the
  8322. Spanish Civil War in 1936 was "written, directly or indirectly, against totalitarianism and for
  8323. democratic socialism." Therefore, Nineteen Eighty-Four is an anti-totalitarian cautionary tale
  8324. about the betrayal of a revolution by its defenders. He already had stated distrust of
  8325. totalitarianism and betrayed revolutions in Homage to Catalonia and Animal Farm. Coming
  8326. Up For Air, at points, celebrates the personal and political freedoms lost in Nineteen EightyFour.
  8327. The novel's title, its terms and its language (Newspeak), and its author's surname are
  8328. bywords for personal privacy lost to national state security. The adjective "Orwellian"
  8329. denotes totalitarian action and organization; the phrase: Big Brother is Watching You
  8330. connotes pervasive, invasive surveillance. The following quotation has become famous:
  8331. War is Peace
  8332. Freedom is Slavery
  8333. Ignorance is Strength
  8334. Although the novel has been banned or challenged in some countries, it, along with Brave
  8335. New World, by Aldous Huxley, and Fahrenheit 451, by Ray Bradbury, is among literature's
  8336. most famous dystopias. In 2005, Time magazine listed it among the best one hundred
  8337. English-language novels published since 1923.
  8338. Nineteen Eighty-Four introduces Oceania, one of the world's three intercontinental
  8339. totalitarian super-states. The story occurs in London, the "chief city of Airstrip One", itself a
  8340. province of Oceania that "had been called England or Britain". Posters of "Big Brother", the
  8341. Party leader, with the caption BIG BROTHER IS WATCHING YOU, dominate the city
  8342. landscapes; two-way television (the telescreen) dominates the private and public spaces of
  8343. the populace.
  8344. Oceania's people are in three classes — (i) the Inner Party, (ii) the Outer Party, and (iii) the
  8345. "Proles". This government, the Party, controls them via the Ministry of Truth (MiniTru), where
  8346. Winston Smith, the protagonist, works; he is a member of the Outer Party. His job in MiniTru
  8347. is the continual rewriting and altering of history so that the government is always right and
  8348. correct: destroying evidence, amending newspaper articles, deleting the existence of people
  8349. identified as "unpersons".
  8350. The story begins on April 4, 1984: "It was a bright cold day in April, and the clocks were
  8351. striking thirteen." The date is questionable, because it is what Winston Smith perceives. In
  8352. the story's course, he concludes it as irrelevant, because the State can arbitrarily alter it; the
  8353. year 1984 and its world are transmutable.
  8354. The novel does not render the world's full history to 1984. Indeed, because the book
  8355. Winston reads is given to him by a Party member, it is possible that the book itself is meant
  8356. to be a deception, and the history of the world of 1984 is somewhat different. Winston's
  8357. 227
  8358. recollections, and what he reads in The Theory and Practice of Oligarchical Collectivism, by
  8359. Emmanuel Goldstein, reveal that after the Second World War, the United Kingdom fell to
  8360. civil war, becoming part of Oceania. Simultaneously, the Soviet Union encompassed
  8361. mainland Europe, forming Eurasia; the third super state, Eastasia, comprises the east Asian
  8362. countries around China and Japan.
  8363. There was an atomic war, fought mainly in Europe, western Russia, and North America. It is
  8364. unclear what occurred first: the civil war wherein the Party assumed power or the United
  8365. States' annexation of the British Empire or the war during which Colchester was bombed.
  8366. During the Second World War, George Orwell repeatedly said that British democracy, as it
  8367. existed before 1939, would not survive the war; the question being: Would it end via Fascist
  8368. coup d'état (from above) or via Socialist revolution (from below)? During the war, Orwell
  8369. admitted events proved him wrong: "What really matters is that I fell into the trap of
  8370. assuming that 'the war and the revolution are inseparable' "
  8371. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8372. 96 "... Wars are fought with electronic cannon."...
  8373. "I have not thought it hazardous to predict, that wars in the future will be waged by
  8374. electrical means." -- Nikola Tesla, 1915
  8375. Tesla made some remarkable claims concerning a "teleforce" weapon. The press called it a
  8376. "peace ray" or death ray. In total, the components and methods included:
  8377. 1. An apparatus for producing manifestations of energy in free air instead of in a high
  8378. vacuum as in the past. This, according to Tesla in 1934, was accomplished.
  8379. 2. A mechanism for generating tremendous electrical force. This, according to Tesla,
  8380. was also accomplished.
  8381. 3. A means of intensifying and amplifying the force developed by the second
  8382. mechanism.
  8383. 4. A new method for producing a tremendous electrical repelling force. This would be
  8384. the projector, or gun, of the invention.
  8385. Tesla worked on plans for a directed-energy weapon between the early 1900s till the time of
  8386. his death. In 1937, Tesla composed a treatise entitled "The Art of Projecting Concentrated
  8387. Non-dispersive Energy through the Natural Media" concerning charged particle beams.
  8388. Tesla published the document in an attempt to expound on the technical description of a
  8389. "superweapon that would put an end to all war". This treatise of the particle beam is currently
  8390. in the Nikola Tesla Museum archive in Belgrade. It described an open ended vacuum tube
  8391. with a gas jet seal that allowed particles to exit, a method of charging particles to millions of
  8392. volts, and a method of creating and directing nondispersive particle streams (through
  8393. electrostatic repulsion).
  8394. Records of his indicate that it was based on a narrow stream of atomic clusters of liquid
  8395. mercury or tungsten accelerated via high voltage (by means akin to his magnifying
  8396. transformer). Tesla gave the following description concerning the particle gun's operation:
  8397. [The nozzle would] send concentrated beams of particles through the free air, of such
  8398. tremendous energy that they will bring down a fleet of 10,000 enemy airplanes at a distance
  8399. of 200 miles from a defending nation's border and will cause armies to drop dead in their
  8400. tracks."
  8401. 228
  8402. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8403. 97 "... like the Axis powers..."
  8404. "The Axis powers, also interpreted as Axis alliance, Axis nations, Axis countries or
  8405. sometimes just the Axis were those countries opposed to the Allies during World War II. The
  8406. three major Axis powers, Nazi Germany, Fascist Italy, and Imperial Japan were part of a
  8407. military alliance on the signing of the Tripartite Pact in September 1940, which officially
  8408. founded the Axis powers. At their zenith, the Axis powers ruled empires that dominated large
  8409. parts of Europe, Africa, East and Southeast Asia and the Pacific Ocean, but World War II
  8410. ended with their total defeat. Like the Allies, membership of the Axis was fluid, and some
  8411. nations entered and later left the Axis during the course of the war.
  8412. The term was first used by Benito Mussolini, in November 1936, when he spoke of a RomeBerlin axis arising out of the treaty of friendship signed between Italy and Germany on
  8413. October 25, 1936. Mussolini declared that the two countries would form an "axis" around
  8414. which the other states of Europe would revolve. This treaty was forged when Italy, originally
  8415. opposed to Germany, was faced with opposition to its war in Abyssinia from the League of
  8416. Nations and received support from Germany. Later, in May 1939, this relationship
  8417. transformed into an alliance, called by Mussolini the "Pact of Steel"."
  8418. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8419. 98 "...Vedic Hymns..."
  8420. The Vedas are very exhaustive scriptures. Each veda contains several sections and
  8421. thousands of hymns. Some of the Vedic hymns, especially the hymns of the Rig veda, are
  8422. considered to be at least 6000-8000 years old. The Vedas are believed to be revealed
  8423. scriptures, because they are considered to be divine in origin. Since they were not written by
  8424. any human beings but were only heard in deep meditative states, they are commonly
  8425. referred a "those that were heard".
  8426. Here is one of the most famous hymns from the Rig Vega: :The Hymn of Creation"
  8427. "A time is envisioned when the world was not, only a watery chaos (the dark,
  8428. "indistinguishable sea") and a warm cosmic breath, which could give an impetus of life.
  8429. Notice how thought gives rise to desire (when something is thought of it can then be desired)
  8430. and desire links non-being to being (we desire what is not but then try to bring it about that it
  8431. is). Yet the whole process is shrouded in mystery.
  8432. Where do the gods fit in this creation scheme?
  8433. The non-existent was not; the existent was not at that time. The atmosphere was not nor the
  8434. heavens which are beyond. What was concealed? Where? In whose protection? Was it
  8435. water? An unfathomable abyss?
  8436. There was neither death nor immortality then. There was not distinction of day or night. That
  8437. alone breathed windless by its own power. Other than that there was not anything else.
  8438. Darkness was hidden by darkness in the beginning. All this was an indistinguishable sea.
  8439. That which becomes, that which was enveloped by the void, that alone was born through the
  8440. power of heat.
  8441. 229
  8442. Upon that desire arose in the beginning. This was the first discharge of thought. Sages
  8443. discovered this link of the existent to the nonexistent, having searched in the heart with
  8444. wisdom.
  8445. Their line [of vision] was extended across; what was below, what was above? There were
  8446. impregnators, there were powers: inherent power below, impulses above.
  8447. Who knows truly? Who here will declare whence it arose, whence this creation? The gods
  8448. are subsequent to the creation of this. Who, then, knows whence it has come into being?
  8449. Whence this creation has come into being; whether it was made or not; he in the highest
  8450. heaven is its surveyor. Surely he knows, or perhaps he knows not."
  8451. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8452. 99 "... the Aryan people..."
  8453. "The Vedic term arya- in its earliest attestations has a meaning of "stranger", but
  8454. "stranger" in the sense of "potential guest". The Sanskrit lexicon defines Arya as
  8455. mahākula kulīnārya "being of a noble family", sabhya "having gentle or refined
  8456. behavior and demeanor", sajjana "being well-born and respectable", and sādhava
  8457. "being virtuous, honourable, or righteous". Arya, is a title of honor and respect given
  8458. to certain people for noble behavior.
  8459. The Aryan race was a term used in the early 20th century by European racial theorists who
  8460. believed strongly in the division of humanity into biologically distinct races with differing
  8461. characteristics. Such writers believed that the Proto-Indo-Europeans constituted a specific
  8462. race that had expanded across parts of Europe, Iran and small parts of northern India. This
  8463. usage tends to merge the Sanskrit meaning of "noble" or "elevated" with the idea of
  8464. distinctive behavioral and ancestral ethnicity marked by language distribution.
  8465. Nazism portrayed their interpretation of an "Aryan race" as the only race capable of, or with
  8466. an interest in, creating and maintaining culture and civilizations, while other races are merely
  8467. capable of conversion, or destruction of culture. These arguments derived from late
  8468. nineteenth century racial hierarchies. Some Nazis were also influenced by Madame
  8469. Blavatsky's The Secret Doctrine (1888) where she postulates "Aryans" as the fifth of her
  8470. "Root Races", dating them to about a million years ago, tracing them to Atlantis,
  8471. Because of historical racist use of Aryan, and especially use of Aryan race in connection with
  8472. the propaganda of Nazism, the word is sometimes avoided in the West as being tainted, in
  8473. the same manner as the swastika symbol. Currently, India and Iran are the only countries
  8474. to use the word Aryan in a demographic denomination."
  8475. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8476. 100 "... the Vedic Hymns..."
  8477. "The term veda means "knowledge, (sacred) lore" embraces a body of writings the origin
  8478. of which is ascribed to divine revelation (shruti, literally "hearing"), and which forms the
  8479. foundation of the Brahmanical system of religious belief. This sacred canon is divided into
  8480. three or (according to a later scheme) four co-ordinate collections, likewise called Veda:
  8481. 230
  8482. (I) the Rig-veda, or lore of praise (or hymns); (2) the Samaveda, or lore of tunes (or
  8483. chants); (3) the Yajurveda, or lore of prayer (or sacrificial formulas); and (4) the Atharvaveda,
  8484. or lore of the Atharvans. Each of these four Vedas consists primarily of a collection
  8485. (samihita) of sacred, mostly poetical, texts of a devotional nature, called mantra. This entire
  8486. body of texts (and particularly the first three collections) is also frequently referred to as the
  8487. trayi vidya, or threefold wisdom, of hymns (rik), tune or chant (saman), and prayer (yajus),
  8488. the fourth Veda, if at all included, being in that case classed together with the Rik."
  8489. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8490. 101 "...Vishnu..."
  8491. "Vishnu is the All-Pervading essence of all beings, the master of and beyond the past,
  8492. present and future, the creator and destroyer of all existences, one who supports, sustains
  8493. and governs the Universe and originates and develops all elements within. In the Rigveda,
  8494. Vishnu is mentioned 93 times.
  8495. The traditional Sanskrit explanation of the name Viu involves the root viś, meaning "to
  8496. settle, to enter", or "to pervade", and a suffix nu, translating to approximately "the AllPervading One".
  8497. He has nine avatars, or 'incarnations' (which) are described as having occurred in the past,
  8498. with one still to happen at the end of Kali Yuga. The Bhagavad Gita mentions their purpose
  8499. as being to vanquish negative forces."
  8500. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8501. 102 "...past lives."
  8502. A "past lives" scenario automatically infers a "future life" in the context of an amnesia and
  8503. prison planet operation. This implies the phenomenon of reincarnation:
  8504. "Reincarnation literally "to be made flesh again", is a doctrine or metaphysical belief that
  8505. some essential part of a living being (in some variations only human beings) survives death
  8506. to be reborn in a new body. This essential part is often referred to as the spirit or soul, the
  8507. "higher" or "true" self, "divine spark", or "I". According to such beliefs, a new personality is
  8508. developed during each life in the physical world, but some part of the self remains constant
  8509. throughout the successive lives.
  8510. Belief in reincarnation is an ancient phenomenon. This doctrine is a central tenet within the
  8511. majority of Indian religious traditions, such as Hinduism (including Yoga, Vaishnavism, and
  8512. Shaivism), Jainism, and Sikhism. The idea was also entertained by some Ancient Greek
  8513. philosophers. Many modern Pagans also believe in reincarnation as do some New Age
  8514. movements, along with followers of Spiritism, practitioners of certain African traditions, and
  8515. students of esoteric philosophies such as Kabbalah, Sufism and Gnostic and Esoteric
  8516. Christianity. The Buddhist concept of Rebirth although often referred to as reincarnation
  8517. differs significantly from the Hindu-based traditions and New Age movements in that there is
  8518. no "self" (or eternal soul) to reincarnate.
  8519. During recent decades, a significant minority of people in the West have developed a belief
  8520. in reincarnation. Notable exceptions include Henry Ford and General George Patton.
  8521. 231
  8522. Henry Ford was convinced he had lived before, most recently as a soldier killed at the battle
  8523. of Gettysburg. A quote from the San Francisco Examiner from August 26, 1928 described
  8524. Ford's beliefs:
  8525. "I adopted the theory of Reincarnation when I was twenty-six. Religion offered
  8526. nothing to the point. Even work could not give me complete satisfaction. Work is
  8527. futile if we cannot utilize the experience we collect in one life in the next. When I
  8528. discovered Reincarnation it was as if I had found a universal plan I realized that
  8529. there was a chance to work out my ideas. Time was no longer limited. I was no
  8530. longer a slave to the hands of the clock. Genius is experience. Some seem to think
  8531. that it is a gift or talent, but it is the fruit of long experience in many lives. Some are
  8532. older souls than others, and so they know more. The discovery of Reincarnation put
  8533. my mind at ease. If you preserve a record of this conversation, write it so that it puts
  8534. men’s minds at ease. I would like to communicate to others the calmness that the
  8535. long view of life gives to us."
  8536. General George S. Patton was a staunch believer in reincarnation and, along with many
  8537. other members of his family, often claimed to have seen vivid, lifelike visions of his
  8538. ancestors. In particular, Patton believed he was a reincarnation of Carthaginian General
  8539. Hannibal.
  8540. The most detailed collections of personal reports in favor of reincarnation have been
  8541. published by Professor Ian Stevenson, from the University of Virginia, in books such as
  8542. Twenty Cases Suggestive of Reincarnation.
  8543. Stevenson spent over 40 years devoted to the study of children who have apparently spoken
  8544. about a past life. In each case, Professor Stevenson methodically documented the child's
  8545. statements. Then he identified the deceased person the child allegedly identified with, and
  8546. verified the facts of the deceased person's life that matched the child's memory. He also
  8547. matched birthmarks and birth defects to wounds and scars on the deceased, verified by
  8548. medical records such as autopsy photographs.
  8549. In a fairly typical case, a boy in Beirut spoke of being a 25-year-old mechanic, thrown to his
  8550. death from a speeding car on a beach road. According to multiple witnesses, the boy
  8551. provided the name of the driver, the exact location of the crash, the names of the mechanic's
  8552. sisters and parents and cousins, and the people he went hunting with -- all of which turned
  8553. out to match the life of a man who had died several years before the boy was born, and who
  8554. had no apparent connection to the boy's family.
  8555. Stevenson believed that his strict methods ruled out all possible "normal" explanations for
  8556. the child’s memories. However, it should be noted that a significant majority of Professor
  8557. Stevenson's reported cases of reincarnation originate in Eastern societies, where dominant
  8558. religions often permit the concept of reincarnation. Following this type of criticism, Stevenson
  8559. published a book on European cases suggestive of reincarnation."
  8560. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8561. 103 "...Moses..."
  8562. "The cartouche of Akhenaten's god and heavenly father, the Aten, bore the name Imram. In
  8563. the Bible, Moses is referred to as the son of Amram, the Hebrew equivalent.
  8564. 232
  8565. The name of the Egyptian deity Aten transliterates into the Hebrew word Adon. Adon,
  8566. which is translated by English Bibles as "the Lord" (and Adonai, translated as "my Lord") is
  8567. used along with Jehovah (Yhwh) in the Bible as the exclusive personal names of God.
  8568. Moreover, in ancient times, the name Jehovah (Yhwh) was written, but never spoken.
  8569. Whenever the written name Jehovah (Yhwh) was to be read out loud, Adon (Aten) was
  8570. voiced instead. The written form of Adon is infrequent, however, its limited usage is
  8571. significant, especially in the first six books of the Bible (See under "LORD" in Strong's
  8572. Exhaustive Concordance), where it is reserved for the following applications alone: Moses
  8573. addresses God using the title Adon/Aten (Exodus 4:10,13; 5:22; 34:9; Numbers 14:17;
  8574. Deuteronomy 3:23; 7:26; 10:17); Moses, himself, is addressed both by Aaron
  8575. (Ex.32:22; Num.12:11) and by Joshua (Numbers 11:28) using the title Adon/Aten; and
  8576. Joshua also addresses God using the title Adon/Aten (Joshua 5:14 b; 7:7). As
  8577. mentioned above, there is an established relationship between the literature of the Egyptian
  8578. 18th Dynasty and the Bible. Psalm 104 is an embellishment of the Hymn to the Aten which
  8579. was found by archaeologists at the city of Akhetaten."
  8580. http://www.domainofman.com/ankhemmaat/moses.html
  8581. "Recent and non-Biblical view places Moses as a noble in the court of the Pharaoh
  8582. Akhenaten. A significant number of scholars, from Sigmund Freud to Joseph Campbell,
  8583. suggest that Moses may have fled Egypt after Akhenaten's death (ca. 1334 BC) when many
  8584. of the pharaoh's monotheistic reforms were being violently reversed. The principal ideas
  8585. behind this theory are: the monotheistic religion of Akhenaten being a possible
  8586. predecessor to Moses' monotheism, and the "Amarna Letters", written by nobles to
  8587. Akhenaten, which describe raiding bands of "Habiru" attacking the Egyptian territories in
  8588. Mesopotamia."
  8589. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8590. 104 "...Amenhotep III..."
  8591. "Amenhotep III, meaning Amun is Satisfied was the ninth pharaoh of the Eighteenth
  8592. dynasty. According to different authors, he ruled Egypt from June 1391 BC-December 1353
  8593. BCE or June 1388 BCE to December 1351 BC/1350 BCE after his father Thutmose IV died.
  8594. Amenhotep III was the son of Thutmose IV by Mutemwia, a minor wife of Amenhotep's
  8595. father. Amenhotep III fathered two sons with his Great Royal Wife Tiye, a great queen
  8596. known as the progenitor of monotheism via the Crown Prince Tuthmose who predeceased
  8597. his father, and his second son, Akhenaten, who ultimately succeeded him to the throne."
  8598. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8599. 105 "...Akhenaten..."
  8600. "Akhenaten, meaning Effective spirit of Aten, first known as Amenhotep IV (sometimes read
  8601. as Amenophis IV and meaning Amun is Satisfied) before his first year, was a Pharaoh of the
  8602. Eighteenth dynasty of Egypt. He is especially noted for attempting to compel the Egyptian
  8603. population in the monotheistic worship of Aten, although there are doubts as to how
  8604. successful he was at this.
  8605. Amenhotep IV succeeded his father after Amenhotep III's death at the end of his 38-year
  8606. reign, possibly after a coregency lasting between either 1 to 2 or 12 years. Suggested dates
  8607. for Akhenaten's reign (subject to the debates surrounding Egyptian chronology) are from
  8608. 1353 BCE - 1336 BCE or 1351 BCE – 1334 BCE Akhenaten's chief wife was Nefertiti.
  8609. 233
  8610. His religious reformation appears to have begun with his decision to celebrate a Sed festival
  8611. in his third regnal year – a highly unusual step, since a Sed-festival, a sort of royal jubilee
  8612. intended to reinforce the Pharaoh's divine powers of kingship, was traditionally held in the
  8613. thirtieth year of a Pharaoh's reign.
  8614. Year eight marked the beginning of construction on his new capital, Akhetaten ('Horizon of
  8615. Aten'), at the site known today as Amarna. In the same year, Amenhotep IV officially
  8616. changed his name to Akhenaten ('Effective Spirit of Aten') as evidence of his shifting
  8617. religious perspective. Very soon afterward he centralized Egyptian religious practices in
  8618. Akhenaten, though construction of the city seems to have continued for several more years.
  8619. In honor of Aten, Akhenaten also oversaw the construction of some of the most massive
  8620. temple complexes in ancient Egypt, including one at Karnak, close to the old temple of
  8621. Amun. In these new temples, Aten was worshipped in the open sunlight, rather than in dark
  8622. temple enclosures, as had been the previous custom. Akhenaten is also believed to have
  8623. composed the Great Hymn to the Aten.
  8624. Initially, Akhenaten presented Aten as a variant of the familiar supreme deity Amun-Ra (itself
  8625. the result of an earlier rise to prominence of the cult of Amun, resulting in Amun becoming
  8626. merged with the sun god Ra), in an attempt to put his ideas in a familiar Egyptian religious
  8627. context. However, by Year 9 of his reign Akhenaten declared that Aten was not merely the
  8628. supreme god, but the only god, and that he, Akhenaten, was the only intermediary between
  8629. Aten and his people. He ordered the defacing of Amun's temples throughout Egypt, and in a
  8630. number of instances inscriptions of the plural 'gods' were also removed.
  8631. Aten's name is also written differently after Year 9, to emphasize the radicalism of the new
  8632. regime, which included a ban on idols, with the exception of a rayed solar disc, in which the
  8633. rays (commonly depicted ending in hands) appear to represent the unseen spirit of Aten,
  8634. who by then was evidently considered not merely a sun god, but rather a universal deity. It is
  8635. important to note, however, that representations of the Aten were always accompanied with
  8636. a sort of "hieroglyphic footnote", stating that the representation of the sun as Allencompassing Creator was to be taken as just that: a representation of something that, by
  8637. its very nature as something transcending creation, cannot be fully or adequately
  8638. represented by any one part of that creation."
  8639. This Amarna period is also associated with a serious outbreak of a pandemic, possibly the
  8640. plague, or polio, or perhaps the world's first recorded outbreak of influenza, which came from
  8641. Egypt and spread throughout the Middle East, killing Suppiluliuma I, the Hittite King.
  8642. Influenza is a disease associated with the close proximity of water fowl, pigs and humans,
  8643. and its origin as a pandemic disease may be due to the development of agricultural systems
  8644. that allow the mixing of these animals and their wastes.
  8645. Some of the first archaeological evidence for this agricultural system is during the Amarna
  8646. period of Ancient Egypt, and the pandemic that followed this period throughout the Ancient
  8647. Near East may have been the earliest recorded outbreak of influenza. However, the precise
  8648. nature of this Egyptian plague remains unknown and Asia has also been suggested
  8649. as a possible site of origin of pandemic influenza in humans. The prevalence of disease
  8650. may help explain the rapidity with which the site of Akhetaten was subsequently abandoned.
  8651. It may also explain why later generations considered the gods to have turned against
  8652. the Amarna monarchs. The black plague has also been suggested due to the fact that at
  8653. Amarna the traces of the plague have been found."
  8654. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8655. 234
  8656. 106 "... Nefertiti...
  8657. "Nefertiti (pronounced at the time something like *nafratita) (c. 1370 BCE - c. 1330 BCE)
  8658. was the Great Royal Wife (or chief consort/wife) of the Egyptian Pharaoh Akhenaten. She
  8659. was the mother-in-law and probable stepmother of the Pharaoh Tutankhamun. Nefertiti may
  8660. have also ruled as pharaoh in her own right under the name Neferneferuaten briefly after her
  8661. husband's death and before the accession of Tutankhamun, although this identification is
  8662. doubted by the latest research. Her name roughly translates to "the beautiful (or perfect) one
  8663. has arrived". She also shares her name with a type of elongated gold bead, called "nefer",
  8664. that she was often portrayed as wearing. She was made famous by her bust, now in Berlin's
  8665. Altes Museum.
  8666. Nefertiti's parentage is not known with certainty, but it is now generally believed that she was
  8667. the daughter of AY later to be pharaoh. Another theory that gained some support identified
  8668. Nefertiti with the Mitanni princess Tadukhipa. The name Nimerithin has been mentioned in
  8669. older scrolls, as an alternative name, but this has not yet been officially confirmed. It has
  8670. also been suggested that Nefertiti was a daughter or relative of Amenhotep III, or of the high
  8671. Theban nobility. Another theory places Nefertiti as the daughter of Sitamun, half-sister of
  8672. Amenhotep III. Queen Iaret was Sitamun's mother. Iaret held important hereditary titles that
  8673. ceased to exist after the ascension of Amenhotep III. Sitamun is elevated to Great Royal
  8674. Wife beside Tiye but there is no indication that she ever had children and if so with whom.
  8675. There is some evidence based upon the titles of each of these women that suggests that
  8676. they were somehow related to one another in her family... Her name means "beautiful one".
  8677. Nefertiti only worshiped one god by the name of Aten. Depending on which reconstruction of
  8678. the genealogy of the ancient Egyptian pharaohs is followed, her husband Akhenaten may
  8679. have been the father or half-brother of the Pharaoh Tutankhaten (later called Tutankhamen).
  8680. She had six known daughters with the Pharaoh Akhenaten. This is a list with suggested
  8681. years of birth:
  8682. • Meritaten: Before year one or the very beginning of year one.(1356 BC).
  8683. • Meketaten: Year 1 or three (1349 BC).
  8684. • Ankhesenpaaten, later queen of Tutankhamun
  8685. • Neferneferuaten Tasherit: Year 6 (1344 BC)
  8686. • Neferneferure: Year 9 (1341 BC).
  8687. • Setepenre: Year 11 (1339 BC)."
  8688. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8689. 107 "... Tutankhamun..."
  8690. "He was the son of Akhenaten, also known as Amenhotep IV, and his minor wife Queen
  8691. Kiya. Queen Kiya's title was "Greatly Beloved Wife of Akhenaten" so it is possible that she
  8692. could have borne him an heir. Supporting this theory, images on the tomb wall in the tomb of
  8693. Akhenaten show a royal fan bearer standing next to Kiya's death bed, fanning what is either
  8694. a princess or more likely a wet nurse holding a baby, which would indicate that the wet nurse
  8695. was holding the boy-king-to-be.
  8696. Tutankhamun was only nine or ten years old when he became pharaoh, and reigned for
  8697. approximately ten years, making him nineteen years old at death. In historical terms
  8698. Tutankhamun significance stems from his rejection of the radical religious innovations
  8699. 235
  8700. introduced by his predecessor Akenhaten and that his tomb, uniquely, in the Valley of the
  8701. Kings was discovered almost completely intact -- the most complete ancient Egyptian tomb
  8702. ever found. As Tutankhamun began his reign at such an early age, his vizier and eventual
  8703. successor Ay was probably making most of the important political decisions during
  8704. Tutankhamun's reign."
  8705. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8706. 108 ..."Brothers of the Snake"...
  8707. "It cannot be overemphasized that the serpent or snake plays no role in the teachings or
  8708. ritual of regular Freemasonry. Its introduction as a fastener for masonic aprons is easily seen
  8709. as the work of regalia manufacturers. That said, the symbolic usages of the snake are of
  8710. interest to students of religion, esoterica, and of history.
  8711. On the other hand, George Oliver writes that the serpent is a "significant symbol in
  8712. Freemasonry : Moses' rod changed into a serpent, "The serpentine emblem of Masonry... is
  8713. a bright symbol of Hope; for the promised Deliverer will open the gates of Heaven to his
  8714. faithful followers by bruising its head, and they shall enter triumphantly, trampling on its
  8715. prostrate body." "A striking emblem of Christianity triumphant; and bearing an undoubted
  8716. reference to the promise made to Adam after his unhappy fall." In mainstream Christian
  8717. beliefs, the snake represents temptation and evil: the snake is the servant of Satan. But it
  8718. has also had its more positive significance.
  8719. In ancient Egyptian mythology the world was created by four powers, one of which was the
  8720. sun god Amun-Ra who took the form of a snake and emerged from the water to
  8721. inseminated the cosmic egg, the kneph, which was created by the other gods. In another
  8722. story, a god named Hathor transformed himself into a poisonous snake called Agep and
  8723. killed Seth. He also guarded the wheat fields where the spirit of Horus was said to live,
  8724. bringing the sheaf of wheat to be regarded as the symbol of rebirth. W. Bro. H. Meij suggests
  8725. that this is the root of the masonic usage of an ear of corn in the Fellowcraft degree.
  8726. In Greek mythology Zeus freed two eagles which met at the centre of the world, sometimes
  8727. called the navel of the earth, which is guarded by a snake called Pytho. The symbol Serpens
  8728. Candivorens, a snake biting its tail, represents the unending cycle of nature between
  8729. destruction, and new creation, life and death. The Greeks called this figure Ouroboros.
  8730. Chinese mythology maintained that the world was surrounded by two entwined snakes,
  8731. which symbolized the power and wisdom of the creator. In another legend the Buddha was
  8732. attacked by a snake which bound itself seven times around his waist. Due to the inner
  8733. strength of the Buddha, the snake could not kill him but instead became his follower.
  8734. Astrologers, or those interested in the historical development of astrology, will point out that
  8735. some systems include a thirteenth sign of the zodiac known as Ophiuchus Serpentarius, the
  8736. Serpent Holder. This constellation lies between Sagittarius and Libra, somewhat over
  8737. Scorpio. In the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries this constellation was called Alpheichius.
  8738. Known as the "God of Invocation", this house was named after the legendary healer,
  8739. Ophiuchus (Asclepius). The two serpents in his hands later replaced the twin ribbons around
  8740. the caduceus which became a symbol for physicians."
  8741. -- Reference: freemasonry.bcy.ca/symbolism/serpent.html
  8742. 236
  8743. 109 "...assassinated by the Priests of Amen..."
  8744. "The High Priest of Amun or First Prophet of Amun was the highest ranking priest in the
  8745. priesthood of the ancient Egyptian god Amun.
  8746. "Maya" was the High Priest of Amen until year 4 of Akhenaten. Redford speculates that
  8747. Maya is short for Ptahmose and that Ptahmose served from the end of the reign of
  8748. Amenhotep III until the beginning of the time of Akhenaten.
  8749. "Parennefer" was the High Priest of Amen during the reigns of Tutankhamen and
  8750. Horemheb."
  8751. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8752. 110 "...Moses..."
  8753. "(The Exodus of Hebrew slave from Egypt, led by Moses) may have occurred around 1400s
  8754. BC, since the Amarna letters, written ca. forty years later to Pharaohs Amenhotep III and
  8755. Amenhotep IV (Akhenaten) indicate that Canaan was being invaded by the "Habiru" —
  8756. whom some scholars in the 1950s to 1970s interpret to mean "Hebrews".
  8757. Exodus 34:29-35 tells that after meeting with God the skin of Moses' face became radiant,
  8758. frightening the Israelites and leading Moses to wear a veil. Jonathan Kirsch, in his book
  8759. Moses: A Life, thought that, since he subsequently had to wear a veil to hide it, Moses' face
  8760. was disfigured by a sort of "divine radiation burn".
  8761. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8762. 111 .. Yahweh..."
  8763. "The cartouche of Akhenaten's god and heavenly father, the Aten, bore the name Imram. In
  8764. the Bible, Moses is referred to as the son of Amram, the Hebrew equivalent. The name of
  8765. the Egyptian deity Aten transliterates into the Hebrew word Adon. Adon, which is
  8766. translated by English Bibles as "the Lord" (and Adonai, translated as "my Lord") is used
  8767. along with Jehovah (Yhwh) in the Bible as the exclusive personal names of God. Moreover,
  8768. in ancient times, the name Jehovah (Yhwh) was written, but never spoken. Whenever the
  8769. written name Jehovah (Yhwh) was to be read out loud, Adon (Aten) was voiced instead. The
  8770. written form of Adon is infrequent, however, its limited usage is significant, especially in the
  8771. first six books of the Bible (See under "LORD" in Strong's Exhaustive Concordance), where
  8772. it is reserved for the following applications alone: Moses addresses God using the title
  8773. Adon/Aten (Exodus 4:10,13; 5:22; 34:9; Numbers 14:17; Deuteronomy 3:23; 7:26;
  8774. 10:17); Moses, himself, is addressed both by Aaron (Ex.32:22; Num.12:11) and by
  8775. Joshua (Numbers 11:28) using the title Adon/Aten; and Joshua also addresses God
  8776. using the title Adon/Aten (Joshua 5:14 b; 7:7). As mentioned above, there is an
  8777. established relationship between the literature of the Egyptian 18th Dynasty and the Bible.
  8778. Psalm 104 is an embellishment of the Hymn to the Aten which was found by archaeologists
  8779. at the city of Akhetaten."
  8780. -- Reference: http://www.domainofman.com/ankhemmaat/moses.html
  8781. "Yahweh is an English rendition of הוהי ,the name of the God of Israel. During the
  8782. Babylonian captivity, the Hebrew language spoken by the Jews was replaced by the
  8783. 237
  8784. Aramaic language of their Babylonian captors, which was closely related to Hebrew and,
  8785. while sharing many vocabulary words in common, contained some words that sounded the
  8786. same or similar but had other meanings. In Aramaic, the Hebrew word for “blaspheme” used
  8787. in Leviticus 24:16, “Anyone who blasphemes the name of YHWH must be put to death”
  8788. carried the meaning of “pronounce” rather than “blaspheme”.
  8789. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8790. 112 "...Torah...decoded..."
  8791. "The Bible Code is a best-selling controversial book by Michael Drosnin, first published in
  8792. 1997. A sequel, The Bible Code II, was published in 2002 and also reached best-seller
  8793. status.
  8794. Drosnin describes an alleged "Bible code", in which messages are encoded in the Hebrew
  8795. bible. The messages are purported to be hidden in the Torah, and can be deciphered by
  8796. placing the letters of various Torah passages at equal intervals in a text that has been
  8797. formatted to fit inside a graph.
  8798. Drosnin suggests that the Code was written by extraterrestrial life (which he claims also
  8799. brought the DNA of the human genetic code to Earth). Drosnin elaborates on this theory in
  8800. The Bible Code II, suggesting that the alien who brought the code left the key to the code in
  8801. a steel obelisk. Drosnin attempted to find this obelisk, which he believes is buried near the
  8802. Dead Sea. Drosnin's book is based on the technique described in the paper "Equidistant
  8803. Letter Sequences in the Book of Genesis" by Professor Eliyahu Rips of the Hebrew
  8804. University in Israel with Doron Witztum and Yoav Rosenberg."
  8805. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8806. 113 "... Buddha ..."
  8807. "The following points are the a few of the fundamentals of the teachings attributed to
  8808. Gautama Buddha:
  8809. The Four Noble Truths: that suffering is an inherent part of existence; that the origin
  8810. of suffering is ignorance and the main symptoms of that ignorance are attachment and
  8811. craving; that attachment and craving can be ceased; and that following the Noble Eightfold
  8812. Path will lead to the cessation of attachment and craving and therefore suffering.
  8813. The Noble Eightfold Path: right understanding, right thought, right speech, right
  8814. action, right livelihood, right effort, right mindfulness, and right concentration.
  8815. Dependent origination: that any phenomenon 'exists' only because of the ‘existence’
  8816. of other phenomena in a complex web of cause and effect covering time past, present and
  8817. future.
  8818. Because all things are thus conditioned and transient (anicca), they have no real
  8819. independent identity (anatta).
  8820. Anicca (Sanskrit: anitya): That all things are impermanent.
  8821. Anatta (Sanskrit: anātman): That the perception of a constant "self" is an illusion.
  8822. Dukkha (Sanskrit: dukha): That all beings suffer from all situations due to unclear
  8823. mind.
  8824. According to tradition, the Buddha emphasized ethics and correct understanding. He
  8825. questioned the average person's notions of divinity and salvation. He stated that gods are
  8826. subjected to karma themselves; and the Buddha is solely a guide and teacher for the
  8827. 238
  8828. sentient beings who must tread the path of Nirvāa themselves to attain the spiritual
  8829. awakening called bodhi and see truth and reality as it is. The Buddhist system of insight and
  8830. meditation practice is not believed to have been revealed divinely, but by the understanding
  8831. of the true nature of the mind, which must be discovered by personally treading a spiritual
  8832. path guided by the Buddha's teachings."
  8833. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8834. 114 "... Laozi..."
  8835. "The Daodejing, often called simply the Laozi after its reputed author, describes the Dao (or
  8836. Tao) as the mystical source and ideal of all existence: it is unseen, but not transcendent,
  8837. immensely powerful yet supremely humble, being the root of all things. According to the
  8838. Daodejing, humans have no special place within the Dao, being just one of its many ("ten
  8839. thousand") manifestations. People have desires and free will (and thus are able to alter their
  8840. own nature). Many act "unnaturally", upsetting the natural balance of the Dao. The
  8841. Daodejing intends to lead students to a "return" to their natural state, in harmony with Dao.
  8842. Language and conventional wisdom are critically assessed. Taoism views them as
  8843. inherently biased and artificial, widely using paradoxes to sharpen the point.
  8844. Wu wei, literally "non-action" or "not acting", is a central concept of the Daodejing. The
  8845. concept of wu wei is very complex and reflected in the words' multiple meanings, even in
  8846. English translation; it can mean "not doing anything", "not forcing", "not acting" in the
  8847. theatrical sense, "creating nothingness", "acting spontaneously", and "flowing with the
  8848. moment."
  8849. Laozi used the term broadly with simplicity and humility as key virtues, often in contrast to
  8850. selfish action. On a political level, it means avoiding such circumstances as war, harsh laws
  8851. and heavy taxes. Some Taoists see a connection between wu wei and esoteric practices,
  8852. such as the "sitting in oblivion" (emptying the mind of bodily awareness and thought) found
  8853. in the Zhuangzi.
  8854. Taoism is a religion addressing the quest of immortality."
  8855. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8856. 115 "...Zoroaster..."
  8857. "The best known (Zoroastrians were the) Magi, the "Wise Men from the East" in the Bible,
  8858. (who brought gifts to Bethlehem) and whose graves Marco Polo claimed to have seen in
  8859. what is today the district of Saveh, near Tehran, Iran. In English, the term is the origin of
  8860. the words magic and magician.
  8861. "Many traits of Zoroastrianism can be traced back to the culture and beliefs of the protoIndo-Iranian period, and Zoroastrianism consequently shares some elements with the
  8862. historical Vedic religion that also has its origins in that era.
  8863. Central to Zoroastrianism is the emphasis on moral choice, to choose between the
  8864. responsibility and duty for which one is in the mortal world, or to give up this duty and
  8865. so facilitate the work of druj. Similarly, predestination is rejected in Zoroastrian teaching.
  8866. Humans bear responsibility for all situations they are in, and in the way they act to one
  8867. another. Reward, punishment, happiness and grief all depend on how individuals live
  8868. their life.
  8869. 239
  8870. In Zoroastrianism, good transpires for those who do righteous deeds. Those who do evil
  8871. have themselves to blame for their ruin. Zoroastrian morality is then to be summed up in the
  8872. simple phrase, "good thoughts, good words, good deeds".
  8873. There is one universal and transcendental God, Ahura Mazda, the one uncreated creator
  8874. and to whom all worship is ultimately directed.
  8875. Ahura Mazda's creation — evident as truth and order — is the antithesis of chaos, falsehood
  8876. and disorder. The resulting conflict involves the entire universe, including humanity, which
  8877. has an active role to play in the conflict.
  8878. Active participation in life through good thoughts, good words and good deeds is necessary
  8879. to ensure happiness and to keep the chaos at bay. This active participation is a central
  8880. element in Zoroaster's concept of free will."
  8881. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8882. 116 "The land masses continually crack, crumble and drift."
  8883. "Plate tectonics (from Greek τέκτων, tektōn "builder" or "mason") is a theory of geology that
  8884. has been developed to explain the observed evidence for large scale motions of the Earth's
  8885. lithosphere. The theory encompassed and superseded the older theory of continental drift
  8886. from the first half of the 20th century and the concept of seafloor spreading developed during
  8887. the 1960s.
  8888. The outermost part of the Earth's interior is made up of two layers: above is the lithosphere,
  8889. comprising the crust and the rigid uppermost part of the mantle. Below the lithosphere lies
  8890. the asthenosphere. Although solid, the asthenosphere has relatively low viscosity and shear
  8891. strength and can flow like a liquid on geological time scales. The deeper mantle below the
  8892. asthenosphere is more rigid again. This is, however, not because of cooler temperatures but
  8893. due to high pressure.
  8894. The lithosphere is broken up into what are called tectonic plates — in the case of Earth,
  8895. there are seven major and many minor plates. The lithospheric plates ride on the
  8896. asthenosphere. These plates move in relation to one another at one of three types of plate
  8897. boundaries: convergent or collision boundaries, divergent or spreading boundaries, and
  8898. transform boundaries. Earthquakes, volcanic activity, mountain-building, and oceanic trench
  8899. formation occur along plate boundaries. The lateral movement of the plates is typically at
  8900. speeds of 5 - 10 centimeters / yr."
  8901. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8902. 117 " The magnetic poles of the planet shift radically about once every 20,000 years".
  8903. "The pole shift theory is a hypothesis that the axis of rotation of a planet has not always
  8904. been at its present-day locations or that the axis will not persist there; in other words, that its
  8905. physical poles had been or will be shifted. Pole shift theory is almost always discussed in the
  8906. context of Earth, but other solar system bodies may have experienced axial reorientation
  8907. during their existences.
  8908. 240
  8909. Pole shift theories are not to be confused with plate tectonics, the well-accepted geological
  8910. theory that the Earth's surface consists of solid plates which shift over a fluid asthenosphere;
  8911. nor with continental drift, the corollary to plate tectonics which maintains that locations of the
  8912. continents have moved slowly over the face of the earth, resulting in the gradual emerging
  8913. and breakup of continents and oceans over hundreds of millions of years.
  8914. Pole shift theories are also not to be confused with Geomagnetic reversal, the periodic
  8915. reversal of the earth's magnetic field (effectively switching the north and south magnetic
  8916. poles). Geomagnetic reversal has more acceptance in the scientific community than pole
  8917. shift theories."
  8918. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8919. 118 " This operation is managed by the secret police..."
  8920. "Secret police (sometimes political police) are a police organization which operates in
  8921. secrecy to maintain national security against internal threats to the state. Secret police
  8922. forces are typically associated with totalitarian regimes, as they are often used to
  8923. maintain the political power of the state rather than uphold the rule of law. Secret police are
  8924. law enforcement organizations officially endowed with authority superior to civil police forces,
  8925. operating outside the normal boundaries of the law, and they are often accountable only
  8926. to the executive branch of the government. They operate entirely or partially in secrecy;
  8927. i.e., most or all of their operations are obscure and hidden from the general public and from
  8928. all government officials, except for the topmost executive officials. Secret police
  8929. organizations have often been used as an instrument of political repression. States
  8930. where the secret police wield significant power are sometimes referred to as police states.
  8931. Secret police differ from the domestic security agencies in modern liberal democracies,
  8932. because domestic security agencies are generally subject to government regulation,
  8933. reporting requirements, and other accountability measures. Despite such oversight, there
  8934. still exists the possibility of domestic-security agencies acting unlawfully and taking on some
  8935. characteristics of secret police.
  8936. Secret police not only have the traditional police authority to arrest and detain, but in some
  8937. cases they are given unsupervised control of the length of detention, assigned to implement
  8938. punishments independent of the public judiciary, and allowed to administer those
  8939. punishments without external review. The tactics of investigation and intimidation used by
  8940. secret police enable them to accrue so much power that they usually operate with little or no
  8941. practical restraint. Secret-police organizations employ internal spies and civilian
  8942. informants to find protest leaders or dissidents, and they may also employ agents
  8943. provocateurs to incite political opponents to perform illegal acts against the government,
  8944. whereupon such opponents may be arrested. Secret police may open mail, tap telephone
  8945. lines, use various techniques to trick, blackmail, or coerce relatives or friends of a
  8946. suspect into providing information. The secret police are renowned for raiding homes
  8947. between midnight and dawn, to apprehend people suspected of dissent.
  8948. People apprehended by the secret police are often arbitrarily arrested and detained
  8949. without due process. While in detention, arrestees may be tortured or subjected to
  8950. inhumane treatment. Suspects may not receive a public trial, and instead may be convicted
  8951. in a kangaroo court-style show trial, or by a secret tribunal.
  8952. Secret police have been used by many types of governments. Secret police forces in
  8953. dictatorships and totalitarian states usually use violence and acts of terror to
  8954. 241
  8955. suppress political opposition and dissent, and may use death squads to carry out
  8956. assassinations and "disappearances". Although secret police normally do not exist in
  8957. democratic states there are different varieties of democracy and, in times of emergency or
  8958. war, a democracy may lawfully grant its policing and security services additional or sweeping
  8959. powers, which may be seen or construed as a secret police."
  8960. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8961. 119 "...using false provocation operations to disguise their activities..."
  8962. "False flag operations are covert operations conducted by governments,
  8963. corporations, or other organizations, which are designed to appear as if they are
  8964. being carried out by other entities. The name is derived from the military concept of flying
  8965. false colors; that is, flying the flag of a country other than one's own. False flag operations
  8966. are not limited to war and counter-insurgency operations, and have been used in peacetime; for example, during Italy's strategy of tension.
  8967. During the Italian strategy of tension in which several bombings in the 1970s, attributed to
  8968. far-left organizations, were in fact carried out by far-right organizations cooperating with the
  8969. Italian secret services (see Operation Gladio, 1969 Piazza Fontana bombing, 1972 Peteano
  8970. attack by Vincenzo Vinciguerra, 1973 assassination attempt of former Interior Minister
  8971. Mariano Rumor, 1980 Bologna massacre, etc. and various investigations, for example by
  8972. Guido Salvini). In France, the Masada Action and Defense Movement, supposedly a Zionist
  8973. group, was really a neo-fascist terrorist group which hoped to increase tension between
  8974. Arabs and Jews in France.
  8975. False flag tactics were also employed during the Algerian civil war, starting in the mid-1994.
  8976. Death squads composed of DRS(Département du Renseignement et de la Sécurité) security
  8977. forces disguised themselves as Islamist terrorists and committed false flag terror attacks.
  8978. Such groups included the OJAL (Organisation of Young Free Algerians) or the OSSRA
  8979. (Secret Organisation for the safeguard of the Algerian Republic) According to Roger Faligot
  8980. and Pascal Kropp (1999), the OJAL reminded of "the Organization of the French Algerian
  8981. Resistance (ORAF), a group of counter-terrorists created in December 1956 by the DST
  8982. (Direction de la Surveillance du Territoire / Territorial Surveillance Directorate) whose
  8983. mission was to carry out terrorist attacks with the aim of quashing any hopes of political
  8984. compromise."
  8985. On the night of Feb. 27, 1933 the Reichstag building was set on fire. At the urging of
  8986. Hitler, Hindenburg responded the next day by issuing an emergency decree “for the
  8987. Protection of the people and the State,” which stated: “Restrictions on personal
  8988. liberty, on the right of free expression of opinion, including freedom of the press; on
  8989. the rights of assembly and association; and violations of the privacy of postal,
  8990. telegraphic and telephonic communications and warrants for house searches, orders
  8991. for confiscations as well as restrictions on property, are also permissible beyond the
  8992. legal limits otherwise prescribed.” After 74 years, the question of who actually started the
  8993. Reichstag fire is still unknown and occasionally debated.
  8994. There are various 9/11 conspiracy theories (and a very large body of hard evidence -
  8995. Editor) which say the September 11, 2001 attacks on the US were a false flag
  8996. operation."
  8997. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  8998. 242
  8999. 120 "... mind-control methods developed by government psychiatrists..."
  9000. "William Sargant was a consultant to the British Secret Intelligence Service (MI5/MI6). In
  9001. 1953 he associated with Frank Olson, Deputy Acting Head of Special Operations for the
  9002. CIA, investigating the use of mind-bending drugs at the Biological Warfare Centre at Porton
  9003. Down.
  9004. In 1944 he collaborated with Slater in writing An Introduction to Physical Methods of
  9005. Treatment in Psychiatry, a textbook on biological psychiatry that included lobotomy
  9006. and shock therapy and remained in print for three decades.
  9007. William Sargant was a pioneer in methods of placing false memories into patients. He
  9008. attested at the 1977 U.S. Senate hearing, "that the therapist should deliberately distort
  9009. the facts of the patient's life-experience to achieve heightened emotional response
  9010. and abreaction. In the drunken state of narcoanalysis patients are prone to accept the
  9011. therapist's false constructions."
  9012. In 1957 William Sargant published one of the first books on the psychology of brainwashing,
  9013. Battle for the Mind. William Sargant connected Pavlov’s findings to the ways people learned
  9014. and internalized belief systems. Conditioned behavior patterns could be changed by
  9015. stimulated stresses beyond a dog’s capacity for response, in essence causing a breakdown.
  9016. This could also be caused by intense signals, longer than normal waiting periods, rotating
  9017. positive and negative signals and changing a dog’s physical condition, as through illness.
  9018. Depending on the dog’s initial personality, this could possibly cause a new belief system to
  9019. be held tenaciously. Sargant also connected Pavlov’s findings to the mechanisms of brainwashing in religion and politics.
  9020. Sargant and Dr Ewen Cameron of Project MKULTRA notoriety, were friends and
  9021. colleagues who shared and exchanged views and information on brainwashing and depatterning techniques and their mutual researches in this area. Both men had extensive CIA
  9022. and British Secret Intelligence Service connections.
  9023. The aim of Cameron, Sargant and the CIA’s researches was to find a way to obliterate
  9024. the memories of an allied spy ('de-patterning') and implant false memories at a deep
  9025. level so that if that spy was captured in his adoptive country, he would be incapable under
  9026. duress or even torture of revealing his true American/British allegiance. He would only be
  9027. able to reveal the falsely implanted memories that supported his assumed persona.
  9028. This concept became termed 'The Manchurian Candidate' after the novel. The extensive
  9029. use of 'heroic' doses of Electron Convulsive Shock Treatment combined with Deep
  9030. Sleep Treatment (narcosis), anti-depressants, tape-loops, insulin coma therapy, and other
  9031. drugs in this context, was designed to induce catastrophic memory loss which would
  9032. then supposedly be replaced with false memories and ideas (via tape loops, hypnosis,
  9033. LSD or conversations while the person was drugged).
  9034. In addition to LSD, Cameron also experimented with various paralytic drugs, as well
  9035. as electroconvulsive therapy at 30 to 40 times the normal power. His "driving"
  9036. experiments consisted of putting subjects into drug-induced coma for months on end
  9037. (up to three in one case) while playing tape loops of noise or simple repetitive statements.
  9038. His experiments were typically carried out on patients who had entered the institute for minor
  9039. problems such as anxiety disorders and post-partum depression, many of whom suffered
  9040. permanently from his actions."
  9041. 243
  9042. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9043. 121 ..."Earth is a "ghetto" planet..."
  9044. "Ghetto" is also used figuratively to indicate geographic areas with a concentration of any
  9045. type of person.
  9046. Ghetto is formed in three ways:
  9047. • As ports of entry for racial minorities, and immigrant racial minorities.
  9048. • When the majority uses compulsion (typically violence, hostility, or legal barriers) to
  9049. force minorities into particular areas.
  9050. • When the majority is willing and able to pay more than the minority to live with its
  9051. own kind.
  9052. During World War II ghettos in occupied Europe 1939-1944 were established by the Nazis to
  9053. confine Jews and sometimes Gypsies into tightly packed areas of the cities of Eastern
  9054. Europe turning them into de-facto concentration camps and death camps in the
  9055. Holocaust."
  9056. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9057. 122 "... Holocaust..."
  9058. "The Holocaust (from the Greek λόκαυστον (holókauston): holos, "completely" and
  9059. kaustos, "burnt"), is the term generally used to describe the killing of approximately six
  9060. million European Jews during World War II, as part of a program of deliberate extermination
  9061. planned and executed by the National Socialist (Nazi) regime in Germany led by Adolf Hitler.
  9062. Other groups were persecuted and killed by the regime, including the Roma; Soviets,
  9063. particularly prisoners of war; ethnic Poles; other Slavic people; the disabled; gay
  9064. men; and political and religious dissidents.
  9065. The persecution and genocide were accomplished in stages. Legislation to remove the
  9066. Jews from civil society was enacted years before the outbreak of World War II.
  9067. Concentration camps were established in which inmates were used as slave labour until
  9068. they died of exhaustion or disease. Where the Third Reich conquered new territory in
  9069. eastern Europe, specialized units called Einsatzgruppen murdered Jews and political
  9070. opponents in mass shootings. Jews and Roma were crammed into ghettos before being
  9071. transported hundreds of miles by freight train to extermination camps where, if they survived
  9072. the journey, the majority of them were killed in gas chambers. Every arm of Germany's
  9073. bureaucracy was involved in the logistics of the mass murder, turning the country into what
  9074. one Holocaust scholar has called "a genocidal state."
  9075. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9076. 123 "..."final solution"..."
  9077. "Holocaust documenters argue that the medicalization of social problems and systematic
  9078. euthanasia of people in German mental institutions in the 1930s provided the institutional,
  9079. 244
  9080. procedural, and doctrinal origins of the mass murder of the 1940s. The Nuremberg Trials
  9081. convicted a number of psychiatrists who held key positions in Nazi regimes."
  9082. -- Reference: Lapon, Lenny (1986). Mass Murderers in White Coats : Psychiatric Genocide
  9083. in Nazi Germany and the United States.
  9084. The tie between Hitler and the eugenic psychiatrists was so close that much of Mein
  9085. Kampf is literally indistinguishable in language and in tone from the major
  9086. international journals and psychiatric textbooks of the time. To quote from a few of
  9087. many such passages in Mein Kampf:
  9088. "To demand that defective people be prevented from propagating equally defective
  9089. offspring is a demand for the clearest reason and, if systematically executed,
  9090. represents the most humane act of mankind ..."
  9091. "Those who are physically and mentally unhealthy and unworthy must not
  9092. perpetuate their ;suffering in the bodies of their children ..."
  9093. "A prevention of the faculty and opportunity to procreate on the part of the physically
  9094. degenerate and the mentally sick ... would not only free humanity from an
  9095. immeasurable misfortune but would lead to a recovery which today seems scarcely
  9096. conceivable."
  9097. Hitler received support from psychiatrists and social scientists around the world after
  9098. he took power. Many articles in the world's leading medical journals monitored and heaped
  9099. praise on Hitler's eugenic legislation and policies.
  9100. Records uncovered by Abrams at the hospital confirm that the extermination had begun as
  9101. a part of a national psychiatric program before Hitler took on the systematic murder of
  9102. the Jews. Hundreds of patients had been shipped off to psychiatric extermination centers
  9103. prior to the end of 1941, when the national program was largely abandoned and local state
  9104. mental hospitals took over "the action" on their own.
  9105. The psychiatric extermination program was not a hidden, secret shame of psychiatry - at
  9106. least, not at the start. It was organized by leading professors of psychiatry and directors
  9107. of mental hospitals through a series of national meetings and workshops. So-called
  9108. euthanasia forms were circulated to individual hospitals, and final approval of each death
  9109. was then given in Berlin by a committee of the nation's outstanding psychiatrists. By
  9110. January 1940 patients were being shipped to six special extermination centers staffed by
  9111. psychiatrists.
  9112. In late 1941, public outrage and lack of enthusiasm from Hitler pushed the program
  9113. underground, but between 100,000 and 200,000 German mental patients had been
  9114. killed. From then on, individual institutions, such as that at Kaufbeuren, continued to act on
  9115. their own, even admitting new patients for the purpose of murdering them. At the end of the
  9116. war, many large institutions were entirely empty, and estimates from various war-crime
  9117. tribunals, including Nuremberg, estimate the number of dead to be between 250,000 and
  9118. 300,000, mostly inmates of psychiatric hospitals and homes for the retarded...
  9119. Psychiatrist Frederic Wertham, by no means a radical critic of his profession, deserves
  9120. the credit for being the first to describe the role of psychiatry in Nazi Germany: ...
  9121. 245
  9122. "The tragedy is that the PSYCHIATRISTS did not have to have an order. They acted on
  9123. their own. They were not carrying out a death sentence pronounced by somebody
  9124. else. They were the legislators who laid down the rules for deciding who was to die;
  9125. they were the administrators who worked out the procedures, provided the patients
  9126. and the places, and decided the methods of killing; they pronounced a sentence of
  9127. life or death in each individual case; they were the executioners who carried the
  9128. sentences out or -- without being coerced to do so -- surrendered their patients to be
  9129. killed in other institutions; they supervised and often watched the slow deaths..."
  9130. By November 1, 1941, the first extermination camps were being built: first Belzec, then
  9131. Sobibor, Treblinka, Chełmno and Majdanek, and finally Auschwitz-Birkenau.
  9132. At first, vague plans were made in Nazi Germany to deport all European Jews to
  9133. Madagascar. Adolf Eichmann, in particular, supported this option before the Wannsee
  9134. Conference of 1942, where he was made privy to the exact details of the "Final Solution".
  9135. SS chief Heinrich Himmler stated:
  9136. "However cruel and tragic each individual case may be, this method is still the mildest and
  9137. best, if one rejects the Bolshevik method of physical extermination of a people out of inner
  9138. conviction as un-German and impossible."
  9139. The original plan was to use the Royal Navy after Britain's defeat to exile all of Europe's
  9140. Jews to Madagascar. However, since the British were not defeated as anticipated by the
  9141. Nazis, the Madagascar Plan had to be abandoned.
  9142. The extermination process in Belzec, Sobibor and Treblinka was similar to the method used
  9143. in the six extermination camps in Germany and Austria, but hugely scaled up for killing
  9144. whole transports of people at a time.
  9145. Victims would hand over their valuables, which became property of the German
  9146. Reichsbank. They then undressed, and their clothes were searched for jewelry and
  9147. other valuables. Victims were then marched into the gas chamber and packed tightly
  9148. to minimize the available fresh air. An engine created carbon monoxide gas which
  9149. was then discharged through gas pipes, killing the occupants. Their corpses were
  9150. cremated after any gold dental fillings were removed. The mass murder was carefully
  9151. tracked and documented.
  9152. For example, the intercepted Höfle Telegram sent by SS-Sturmbannführer Hermann Höfle
  9153. on January 11, 1943 to SS-Obersturmbannführer Adolf Eichmann in Berlin listed
  9154. 1,274,166 total arrivals to the four camps of Aktion Reinhard through the end of 1942,
  9155. as well as the total arrivals by camp for the last two weeks of 1942.
  9156. The structure of all camps was nearly identical. From the reception area with ramp and
  9157. undressing barracks, the Jews entered a narrow, camouflaged path (called sluice or tube) to
  9158. the extermination area with gas chambers, pits and cremation grids. The SS and Trawnikis
  9159. stayed in a separate area. Barbed wire fences, partially camouflaged with pine branches,
  9160. surrounded the camp and separated the different parts. Unlike Auschwitz, no electric fences
  9161. were used. Wooden watchtowers guarded the camp.
  9162. 246
  9163. Approximately 2 million Jews lost their lives in Belzec, Sobibor, Treblinka and Majdanek in
  9164. the course of Operation Reinhard. Approximately 178,045,960 German Reichsmark worth of
  9165. Jewish property (today's value: around 700,000,000 $US or 550,000,000 Euros) was stolen.
  9166. This money went not only to German authorities, but also to single individuals (SS and police
  9167. men, camp guards, non-Jewish inhabitants of towns and villages with ghettos or adjacent
  9168. camps)."
  9169. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9170. 124 "... the "Old Empire", whose headquarters located near one of the "tail stars" in
  9171. the Ursa Major (Big Dipper)..."
  9172. The "Tail Stars" of Ursa Major are Alcor, Alioth, and Alkaid."
  9173. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9174. 125 "... radioactivity..."
  9175. "Nuclear weapons emit large amounts of electromagnetic radiation as visible, infrared, and
  9176. ultraviolet light. The chief hazards are burns and eye injuries. On clear days, these injuries
  9177. can occur well beyond blast ranges. The light is so powerful that it can start fires that spread
  9178. rapidly in the debris left by a blast. The range of thermal effects increases markedly with
  9179. weapon yield. Thermal radiation accounts for between 35-45% of the energy released in the
  9180. explosion, depending on the yield of the device.
  9181. The first atomic bomb actually used in war time was dropped on Hiroshima on August 6th,
  9182. 1945 killing between 130,000 and 150,000 people by the end of that year. Those who
  9183. survived the bombing are rapidly aging now after struggling for many years.
  9184. In Hiroshima, a tremendous fire storm developed within 20 minutes after detonation and
  9185. destroyed many more buildings and homes. A fire storm has gale force winds blowing in
  9186. towards the center of the fire from all points of the compass.
  9187. Mr. Hiroshi Sawachika was 28 years old when the bomb was dropped. He was an army
  9188. doctor stationed at the army headquarters in Ujina. When he was exposed, he was inside
  9189. the building at the headquarters, 4.1 km from the hypocenter. Being rather far from the
  9190. hypocenter, he was not seriously injured. Afterwards, he was very busy getting medical
  9191. treatment to the survivors.
  9192. INTERVIEWER: How many patients did you treat on August 6?
  9193. ANSWER: Well, at least 2 or 3 thousand on that very day if you include those patients whom
  9194. I gave directions to. I felt that as if once that day started, it never ended. I had to keep on
  9195. and on treating the patients forever. It was the longest day of my life. Later on, when I had
  9196. time to reflect on that day, I came to realize that we, doctors learned a lot through the
  9197. experience, through the suffering of all those people. It's true that the lack of medical
  9198. knowledge, medical facilities, integrated organization and so on prevented us from giving
  9199. sufficient medical treatment. Still there was a lot for us, medical doctors to learn on that day.
  9200. I learned that the nuclear weapons which gnaw the minds and bodies of human beings
  9201. should never be used. Even the slightest idea using nuclear arms should be completely
  9202. exterminated the minds of human beings. Otherwise, we will repeat the same tragedy. And
  9203. we will never stop being ashamed of ourselves."
  9204. 247
  9205. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9206. 126 "...Atlanta..."
  9207. "Atlantis was a continent. Its capital was called by the same name or by that of Poseidonis,
  9208. and was located on an island next to its coast. After this continent sunk under the seas, only
  9209. the peaks of its loftiest mountains remained above the water, forming what the ancients later
  9210. knew as the Islands of the Blest, and which we know as those of Indonesia.
  9211. Atlantis created a worldwide empire, and had colonies the world over. These colonies, as
  9212. usual, attempted to duplicate the motherland, as colonists are wont to do. Atlantis and
  9213. Lemuria have been grossly distorted and misplaced by all sorts of investigators in what
  9214. concerns both their epochs and their sizes and locations. Indeed, Atlantis and Lemuria
  9215. coexisted side by side, at more or less the same date.
  9216. More exactly, Lemuria was the archetypal Atlantis, the same as Eden or Paradise, the site of
  9217. origin of both Mankind and Civilization. From there, the Lemurian Atlanteans colonized the
  9218. nearby region of India, which became its "twin" and partner. In mythical terms, we can say
  9219. that Lemuria-Indonesia was the Mother, and that Atlantis-India was the Father of all the
  9220. other civilizations.
  9221. Our Atlantean heritage also encompasses the arts and techniques such as Agriculture and
  9222. Animal Domestication, the greatest inventions ever. Without the domesticated plants and
  9223. animals — most or all of which originated in Atlantis, and often embody an advanced use of
  9224. genetic engineering — Civilization could never have developed at all. Besides these, a
  9225. series of inventions of mysterious origins, who came to us from the dawn of time, are also
  9226. owed to Atlantis and Lemuria: metallurgy, stone masonry and sculpture, paper, the alphabet,
  9227. medicinal drugs, gunpowder, weaving, and so on."
  9228. Reference: http://www.atlan.org/
  9229. 127 "...Lemur..."
  9230. "Lemuria is the name of a hypothetical "lost land" variously located in the Indian and Pacific
  9231. Oceans. Its 19th century origins lie in attempts to account for discontinuities in
  9232. biogeography. Though Lemuria has passed out of the realm of conventional science, it has
  9233. been adopted by occult writers, as well as some Tamil writers of India. Accounts of Lemuria
  9234. differ according to the requirements of their contexts, but all share a common belief that a
  9235. continent existed in ancient times and sank beneath the ocean as a result of geological
  9236. change, often cataclysmic.
  9237. Lemuria entered the lexicon of the Occult through the works of Madame Blavatsky, who
  9238. claimed in the 1880s to have been shown an ancient, pre-Atlantean Book of Dzyan by the
  9239. Mahatmas. Kumari Kandam is a sunken kingdom sometimes compared with Lemuria.
  9240. According to these modernist interpretations of motifs in classical Tamil literature — the
  9241. epics Cilappatikaram and Manimekalai that describe the submerged city of Puhar — the
  9242. Dravidians originally came from land south of the present day coast of South India that
  9243. became submerged by successive floods. There are various claims from Tamil authors that
  9244. there was a large land mass connecting Australia and the present day Tamil Nadu coast.
  9245. It is interesting to note that Madame Blavatsky described the Lemurians (her third root race)
  9246. as being colored black and described the Negroid race, the Dravidians and the Australoids,
  9247. Papuans and Melanesians as being descended from them.
  9248. 248
  9249. prior to the acceptance of continental drift, biologists frequently postulated submerged land
  9250. masses in order to account for populations of land-based species now separated by barriers
  9251. of water. Similarly, geologists tried to account for striking resemblances of rock formations
  9252. on different continents. The first systematic attempt was made by Melchior Neumayr in his
  9253. book Erdgeschichte in 1887. Many hypothetical submerged land bridges and continents
  9254. were proposed during the 19th century, in order to account for the present distribution of
  9255. species.
  9256. As Lemuria gained some acceptance within the scientific community, it began to appear in
  9257. the works of other scholars. Ernst Haeckel, a German Darwinian taxonomist, proposed
  9258. Lemuria as an explanation for the absence of "missing link" fossil records. According to
  9259. another source, Haeckel put forward this thesis prior to Sclater (but without using the name
  9260. 'Lemuria'). Locating the origins of the human species on this lost continent, he claimed the
  9261. fossil record could not be found because it had sunk beneath the sea.
  9262. Other scientists hypothesized that Lemuria had extended across parts of the Pacific oceans,
  9263. explaining distributions of species across Asia and the Americas.
  9264. The Lemuria theory disappeared completely from conventional scientific consideration after
  9265. the theories of plate tectonics and continental drift were accepted by the larger scientific
  9266. community. According to the theory of plate tectonics (which is nowadays the only accepted
  9267. paradigm in geology), Madagascar and India were indeed once part of the same landmass
  9268. (thus accounting for geological resemblances), but plate movement caused India to break
  9269. away millions of years ago, and move to its present location. The original landmass broke
  9270. apart - it did not sink beneath the sea level."
  9271. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9272. 128 ..."Lake Toba in Sumatra"...
  9273. The Toba eruption (the Toba event) occurred at what is now Lake Toba about 67,500 to
  9274. 75,500 years ago. It had an estimated Volcanic Explosivity Index of 8 (described as "megacolossal"), making it possibly the largest explosive volcanic eruption within the last twentyfive million years. The total amount of erupted material was about 2800 cubic km (670 cubic
  9275. miles) — around 2,000 km³ of ignimbrite that flowed over the ground and around 800 km³
  9276. that fell as ash, with the wind blowing most of it to the west.
  9277. By contrast, the 1980 eruption of Mount St. Helens ejected around 1.2 cubic km of material,
  9278. whilst the largest volcanic eruption in historic times, at Mount Tambora in 1815, emitted the
  9279. equivalent of around 100 cubic kilometers of dense rock and created the "Year Without a
  9280. Summer" as far away as North America."
  9281. The Toba eruption was the latest of a series of at least three calderra-forming eruptions
  9282. which have occurred at the volcano. Earlier calderas were formed around 700,000 and
  9283. 840,000 years ago.
  9284. To give an idea of its magnitude, consider that although the eruption took place in Indonesia,
  9285. it deposited an ash layer approximately 15 cm (6 in) thick over the entire Indian
  9286. subcontinent; at one site in central India, the Toba ash layer today is up to 6 m (20 feet)
  9287. thick and parts of Malaysia were covered with 9 m of ashfall. In addition it has been
  9288. calculated that 1010 metric tons of sulphuric acid was ejected into the atmosphere by
  9289. the event, causing acid rain fallout."
  9290. 249
  9291. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9292. 129 "...Mt. Krakatoa..."
  9293. "Mt. Krakatoa is a volcanic island in the Sunda Strait between Java and Sumatra in
  9294. Indonesia. The name is used for the island group, the main island (also called Rakata), and
  9295. the volcano as a whole. It has erupted repeatedly, massively, and with disastrous
  9296. consequences throughout recorded history. The best known eruption culminated in a series
  9297. of massive explosions on August 26-27 1883, which was among the most violent volcanic
  9298. events in modern times. With a Volcanic Explosivity Index of 6, it was equivalent to 200
  9299. megatonnes of TNT — about 13,000 times the yield of the Little Boy bomb (13 to 16 KT),
  9300. which devastated Hiroshima, Japan.
  9301. The 1883 eruption ejected more than 25 cubic kilometres of rock, ash, and pumice, and
  9302. generated the loudest sound historically reported: the cataclysmic explosion was distinctly
  9303. heard as far away as Perth in Australia approx. 1,930 miles (3,110 km), and the island of
  9304. Rodrigues near Mauritius approx. 3,000 miles (5,000 km). Near Krakatoa, according to
  9305. official records, 165 villages and towns were destroyed and 132 seriously damaged, at least
  9306. 36,417 (official toll) people died, and many thousands were injured by the eruption, mostly
  9307. from the tsunamis which followed the explosion.
  9308. The eruption destroyed two thirds of the island of Krakatoa. Eruptions at the volcano since
  9309. 1927 have built a new island in the same location, called Anak Krakatau (child of Krakatoa)."
  9310. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9311. 130 "... colossal volcanic explosion..."
  9312. "A supervolcano is a volcano that produces the largest and most voluminous kinds of
  9313. eruption on Earth. The explosivity of such eruptions varies, but the volume of ejected tephra
  9314. is enough to radically alter the landscape and severely affect global climate for years,
  9315. with cataclysmic consequences for life VEI-8 volcanic events have included eruptions at the
  9316. following locations. Estimates of the volume of erupted material are given in parentheses.
  9317. • Lake Taupo, North Island, New Zealand - Oruanui eruption 26,500 years ago (1,170
  9318. km³)
  9319. • Lake Toba, Sumatra, Indonesia - 75,000 years ago (2,800 km³)
  9320. • Yellowstone Caldera, Wyoming, United States - 2.2 million years ago (2,500 km³)
  9321. and 640,000 years ago (1,000 km³)
  9322. • La Garita Caldera, Colorado, United States - Source of the truly enormous eruption
  9323. of the Fish Canyon Tuff 27.8 million years ago (~5,000 km³)
  9324. The Lake Toba eruption plunged the Earth into a volcanic winter, eradicating an
  9325. estimated 60% of the human population (although humans managed to survive, even
  9326. in the vicinity of the volcano), and was responsible for the formation of sulfuric acid in
  9327. the atmosphere.
  9328. Many other supermassive eruptions have also occurred in the geological past."
  9329. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9330. 250
  9331. 131 "... due to atmospheric pollution as well as an extensive period during which
  9332. radiation from the sun is deflected back into space, and cause global cooling..."
  9333. "Nuclear winter is a hypothetical global climate condition that is predicted to be a possible
  9334. outcome of a large-scale nuclear war. It is thought that severely cold weather can be caused
  9335. by detonating large numbers of nuclear weapons, especially over flammable targets such as
  9336. cities, where large amounts of smoke and soot would be injected into the Earth's
  9337. stratosphere. The term has also been applied to one of the after-effects of an
  9338. supervolcano eruption.
  9339. A global average surface cooling of –7°C to –8°C persists for years, and after a decade the
  9340. cooling is still –4°C (Fig. 2). Considering that the global average cooling at the depth of the
  9341. last ice age 18,000 yr ago was about –5°C, this would be a climate change unprecedented in
  9342. speed and amplitude in the history of the human race. The temperature changes are largest
  9343. over land ... Cooling of more than –20°C occurs over large areas of North America and of
  9344. more than –30°C over much of Eurasia, including all agricultural regions."
  9345. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9346. 132 "...The global cataclysm that destroyed the dinosaurs..."
  9347. "In the past 600 million years there have been five major mass extinctions that on
  9348. average extinguished half of all species. The largest mass extinction to have affected life
  9349. on Earth was in the Permian-Triassic, which ended the Permian period 250 million years ago
  9350. and killed off 90% of all species. The last such mass extinction led to the demise of the
  9351. dinosaurs and has been found to have coincided with a large asteroid impact; this is the
  9352. Cretaceous–Tertiary extinction event. There is no solid evidence of impacts leading to the
  9353. four other major mass extinctions, though a recent report from Ohio State scientists stated
  9354. that they have located a 483-km diameter impact crater beneath the East Antarctic Ice Sheet
  9355. which may date back about 250 million years, based on gravity measurements, which might
  9356. associate it with the Permian-Triassic extinction event.
  9357. In 1980, physicist Luis Alvarez, his son, geologist Walter Alvarez, and nuclear chemists
  9358. Frank Asaro and Helen V. Michael from the University of California, Berkeley discovered
  9359. unusually high concentrations of iridium, an element that is rare in the Earth's crust but
  9360. relatively abundant in many meteorites. From the amount and distribution of iridium present
  9361. in the 65 million year old "iridium layer", the Alvarez team later estimated that an asteroid of
  9362. 10–14 kilometers must have collided with the earth. This iridium layer at the K–T boundary
  9363. has been found worldwide at 100 different sites. Multidirectionally shocked quartz
  9364. (coesite), which is only known to form as the result of large impacts or atomic bomb
  9365. explosions, has also been found in the same layer at more than 30 sites. Soot and ash at
  9366. levels tens of thousands times normal levels were found with the above."
  9367. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9368. "The geologic record of terminal Cretaceous environmental events indicates that iridium and
  9369. other associated elements were not deposited instantaneously but during a time interval
  9370. spanning some 10,000 to 100,000 years. The available geologic evidence favors a mantle
  9371. rather than meteoritic origin for these elements. These results are in accord with the scenario
  9372. of a series of intense eruptive volcanic events occurring during a relatively short geologic
  9373. time interval and not with the scenario of a single large asteroid impact event."
  9374. 251
  9375. -- Reference: Article: Terminal Cretaceous Environmental Events
  9376. Charles B. Officer 1
  9377. and Charles L. Drake 2
  9378. 1 Research professor in the Earth Sciences Department, Dartmouth College,
  9379. Hanover, New Hampshire 03755. 2
  9380. Professor in the Earth Sciences Department, Dartmouth College, Hanover, New
  9381. Hampshire 03755.
  9382. 133 "Atomic explosions cause atmospheric fallout much like that of volcanic
  9383. eruptions."
  9384. "Oct. 26, 2007 -- New evidence dug from the shores of the Bay of Bengal supports the
  9385. radical idea that it was a series of monumental volcanic eruptions that wiped out the
  9386. dinosaurs, not a meteor impact in the Gulf of Mexico. The discovery confirms two important
  9387. things, said Keller: First, that the most massive Deccan eruption and the K-T mass extinction
  9388. happened at the same time. Second, that the later, final eruption is timed right to have
  9389. slowed the recovery of many living things. This latter matter of the slow recovery has long
  9390. been a mystery to paleontologists, she said."
  9391. -- Reference: http://dsc.discovery.com/news/2007/10/26/dinosaur-volcano.html
  9392. "A new statistical study of mass extinctions throughout the history of life on Earth is backing
  9393. up the idea that no single meteor, volcanic eruption or other lone gunman is ever to blame,
  9394. even in the case of the Cretaceous-Tertiary event that brought the end of dinosaurs 65
  9395. million years ago.
  9396. Instead, the worst die-offs happen when some sort of interminable, multi-generational
  9397. pressure on life is combined with a few powerful blows. It's what is now being called the
  9398. press/pulse theory of mass extinctions.
  9399. The theory "is essentially a more eloquent way of saying what I and many other
  9400. paleontologists have been saying for many years," said Gerta Keller of Princeton University.
  9401. "Namely that the impact-kill hypothesis is all wrong. Impacts alone could not have been the
  9402. killing mechanism for the K-T or any of the other major mass extinctions."
  9403. In the late Cretaceous case massive volcanism — the Deccan Traps eruption in India — and
  9404. attendant climate change, coincided with an impact that pushed highly stressed biota over
  9405. the brink."
  9406. -- Reference: http://dsc.discovery.com/news/2006/10/20/extinction_pla.html
  9407. 134 "... Rwenzori Mountains..."
  9408. "The highest Rwenzoris are permanently snow-capped, and they, along with Mount
  9409. Kilimanjaro and Mount Kenya are the only such in Africa. The Ruwenzoris are often
  9410. identified with the "Mountains of the Moon" mentioned by Ptolemy. The Ruwenzori are
  9411. known for their vegetation, ranging from tropical rainforest through alpine meadows to snow;
  9412. and for their animal population, including forest elephants, several primate species and
  9413. many endemic birds."
  9414. 252
  9415. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9416. 135 ..." Pyrenees Mountains"...
  9417. "The Pyrenees are named after Pyrene (fire in Greek) who was the daughter of Bebryx and
  9418. was raped by Herakles. Terrified at giving birth to a serpent, she fled to the mountains
  9419. and was either buried or eaten by wild animals. Herodotus located this legend in his map
  9420. of the Oikumene as early as 450 BC."
  9421. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9422. 136 "... steppes of Mongolia..."
  9423. "In the chaos of the late twelfth century, a chieftain named Temüjin finally succeeded in
  9424. uniting the Mongol tribes between Manchuria and the Altai Mountains. In 1206, he took the
  9425. title Genghis Khan, and he and his successors began expanding the Mongol Empire into
  9426. the largest contiguous land empire in world history, going as far northwest as the
  9427. Kievan Rus, and as far south as northern Vietnam, Tibet, Iran."
  9428. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9429. 137 ..."plunder their possessions."
  9430. "Looting, sacking, plundering, despoiling, or pillaging is the indiscriminate taking of
  9431. goods by force as part of a military or political victory, or during a catastrophe or riot, such as
  9432. during war, natural disaster, or rioting. The term is also used in a broader (some would argue
  9433. metaphorical) sense, to describe egregious instances of theft and embezzlement, such as
  9434. the "plundering" of private or public assets by corrupt or overly greedy corporate executives
  9435. or government authorities. The proceeds of all these activities can be described as loot,
  9436. plunder, or pillage.
  9437. Looting originally referred primarily to the plundering of villages and cities not only by
  9438. victorious troops during warfare, but also by civilian members of the community. For
  9439. example, see War and Peace, which describes widespread looting by Moscow's citizens
  9440. before Napoleon's troops enter the town, and looting by French troops elsewhere; also note
  9441. the looting of art treasures by the Nazis during WWII."
  9442. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9443. 138 "...Tiahuanaco..."
  9444. For more detailed information about the archaeology of this site, visit the following websites:
  9445. http://www.sacredsites.com/americas/bolivia/tiahuanaco.html
  9446. http://www.viewzone.com/tia.html
  9447. http://www.world-mysteries.com/mpl_6.htm
  9448. 139 "...the shift of the poles of the planet...".
  9449. "Charles Hapgood first came to public attention in the mid-1950s with his theory of earth
  9450. crust displacement, a radical geological idea which attracted the curiosity and support of
  9451. 253
  9452. Albert Einstein. The Einstein-Hapgood correspondence is a forgotten page in the history of
  9453. science. Rose and I obtained these letters (ten from Einstein to Hapgood) from Albert
  9454. Einstein's Archives in the Fall of 1995. They show, for the first time, just how extensively
  9455. Albert Einstein was involved in assisting Charles Hapgood in the development of the theory.
  9456. This correspondence is detailed in The Atlantis Blueprint. Here is a brief summary:
  9457. In his second reply (24 November 1952) to Hapgood, Einstein wrote that the idea of earth
  9458. crust displacement should not be ruled out "apriori" just because it didn't fit with what we
  9459. wanted to believe about the earth's past. What was needed, Einstein claimed, was solid
  9460. "geological and paleontological facts."
  9461. For six months, Hapgood gathered geological evidence to support the idea of an earth crust
  9462. displacement. On the 3rd of May 1953 he forwarded thirty-eight pages of this evidence to
  9463. Einstein. Central to his argument was Hapgood's evidence that Lesser Antarctica was icefree at the same time that North America lay smothered in ice. Einstein responded (8 May
  9464. 1953):
  9465. "I find your arguments very impressive and have the impression that your hypothesis is
  9466. correct. One can hardly doubt that significant shifts of the crust have taken place repeatedly
  9467. and within a short time."
  9468. He urged Hapgood to follow up on evidence of "earth fractures". A month later (11 June 1953) Hapgood sent Einstein forty-two pages of evidence on earth fractures and
  9469. the evolution of the ice sheets.
  9470. Einstein wrote (17 December 1953) Hapgood urging him to address the "centrifugal
  9471. momentum" problem. Hapgood responded with four pages on this problem and thirty-seven
  9472. pages of "paleontological evidence" including the frozen mammoths of Arctic Siberia.
  9473. Einstein was now convinced. On the 18th of May 1954, Einstein wrote a very favorable
  9474. foreword for Hapgood's book EARTH'S SHIFTING CRUST: A KEY TO SOME BASIC
  9475. PROBLEMS OF EARTH SCIENCE (published in 1958 by Pantheon Books, New York). The
  9476. Foreword begins:
  9477. "I frequently receive communications from people who wish to consult me concerning their
  9478. unpublished ideas. It goes without saying that these ideas are very seldom possessed of
  9479. scientific validity. The very first communication, however, that I received from Mr. Hapgood
  9480. electrified me. His idea is original, of great simplicity, and - if it continues to prove itself of
  9481. great importance to everything that is related to the history of the earth's surface. ... I think
  9482. that this rather astonishing, even fascinating, idea deserves the serious attention of anyone
  9483. who concerns himself with the theory of the earth's development."
  9484. -- Reference: When the Sky Fell, Rand and Rose Flemth-Ath
  9485. 140 "The alignment of the Pyramids of Giza on the ground matches perfectly the
  9486. alignment of the constellation of Orion as seen in the sky from Giza...".
  9487. "(Robert) Bauval is specifically known for the Orion Correlation Theory (OCT). This proposes
  9488. a relationship between the fourth dynasty Egyptian pyramids of the Giza Plateau and the
  9489. alignment of certain stars in the constellation of Orion.
  9490. One night, while working in Saudi Arabia, he took his family and a friend's family up into the
  9491. sand dunes of the Arabian desert for a camping expedition. His friend pointed out Orion, and
  9492. mentioned that Mintaka, the smaller more easterly of the stars making up Orion's belt was
  9493. 254
  9494. offset slightly from the others. Bauval then made a connection between the layout of the
  9495. three main stars in Orion's belt and the layout of the three main pyramids in the Giza
  9496. necropolis."
  9497. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9498. 141 "... Heliopolis..."
  9499. "Heliopolis has been occupied since the Predynastic Period, with extensive building
  9500. campaigns during the Old and Middle Kingdoms. Today, unfortunately, it is mostly
  9501. destroyed, its temples and other buildings having been used for the construction of medieval
  9502. Cairo; most information about it comes from textual sources.
  9503. According to Diodorus Siculus Heliopolis was built by Actis, one of the sons of Helios and
  9504. Rhode, who named the city after his father. While all Greek cities were destroyed during the
  9505. flood, the Egyptian cities including Heliopolis survived. The chief deity of Heliopolis was the
  9506. god Atum, who was worshipped in the primary temple.
  9507. The city was also the original source of the worship of the Ennead pantheon, although in
  9508. later times, as Horus gained in prominence, worship focused on the synchrentistic solar deity
  9509. Ra-harakhty (literally Ra, (who is) Horus of the Two Horizons).
  9510. During the Amarna Period, Pharoah Akhenaten introduced monotheistic worship of Aten, the
  9511. deified solar disc. As the capital of Egypt for a period of time, grain was stored in Heliopolis
  9512. for the winter months, when many people would descend on the town to be fed, leading to it
  9513. gaining the title place of bread. The Book of the Dead goes further and describes how
  9514. Heliopolis was the place of multiplying bread, recounting a myth in which Horus feeds the
  9515. masses there with only 7 loaves, which is the basis of the Bible New Testament parable."
  9516. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9517. 142 "...Nephilim..."
  9518. "The Nephilim were an antediluvian race (pre-flood) race which are referred to in the Bible
  9519. as giants.". -- Reference: http://www.nwcreation.net/nephilim.html
  9520. "Genesis 6:4 states "The Nephilim were on the earth in those days --and also afterwards--
  9521. when the sons of God went to the daughters of men and had children by them. They were
  9522. the heroes of old, men of renown." The Nephilim were a race of giants that were produced
  9523. by the sexual union of the sons of God (presumably fallen angels) and the daughters of men.
  9524. Translated from the Hebrew texts, "Nephilim" means "fallen ones." They were renowned for
  9525. their strength, prowess, and a great capacity for sinfulness.
  9526. The origination of the Nephilim begins with a story of the fallen angels. Shemhazai, an angel
  9527. of high rank, led a sect of angels in a descent to earth to instruct humans in righteousness.
  9528. The tutelage went on for a few centuries, but soon the angels pined for the human females.
  9529. After lusting, the fallen angels instructed the women in magic and conjuring, mated with
  9530. them, and produced hybrid offspring: the Nephilim.
  9531. The Nephilim were gigantic in stature. Their strength was prodigious and their appetites
  9532. immense. Upon devouring all of humankind's resources, they began to consume humans
  9533. 255
  9534. themselves. The Nephilim attacked and oppressed humans and were the cause of massive
  9535. destruction on the earth.
  9536. Two texts of central import to the story of the Nephilim, the Bible and the Dead Sea Scrolls,
  9537. mention several names for the Nephilim. The diverse kinds of these giants are cited in
  9538. several passages. They are variously referred to as Emim, or "Terrors" (Gen. 14:5; Deut.
  9539. 2:10), Rephaim, or "Weakeners" or "Dead Ones" (2 Sam. 23:13; 1 Chron. 11:15), Gibborim,
  9540. or "Giant Heroes" (Job 16:4), Zamzummim, or "Achievers" (Deut. 2:10), Anakim, or "Longnecked" (Deut. 2:10; Josh. 11:22, 14:15), and Awwim or "Devastators" and "Serpents."
  9541. Other giants are mentioned in these texts as well, such as Goliath (2 Sam. 21:19), a giant
  9542. with twelve fingers and twelve toes who is mentioned as one of the Rephaim (2 Sam. 21:20),
  9543. and a tall Egyptian (1 Chron. 11:23). The passage of Numbers 13:26-33 recounts the
  9544. Nephilim of Canaan that Joshua and the other Hebrew spies saw. Furthermore, according to
  9545. Judaic lore, a certain one of the Nephilim, Arba, built a city, Kiriath Arba, which was named
  9546. for its builder and is now known as Hebron.
  9547. The wickedness of the Nephilim carried with it a heavy toll. Genesis 6:5 alludes to the
  9548. corruption that the Nephilim had caused amongst humans and themselves: "The Lord saw
  9549. how great man's wickedness on the earth had become..." Their evil rebellion had incurred
  9550. both the wrath and grief of God. God instructed the angel Gabriel to ignite a civil war among
  9551. the Nephilim. He also chose Enoch, a righteous man, to inform the fallen angels of the
  9552. judgment pronounced on them and their children. God did not allow the fallen angels any
  9553. peace, for they could not lift their eyes to heaven and were later to be chained. The end of
  9554. the Nephilim came about in the war incited by Gabriel, in which the giants eventually
  9555. annihilated each other."
  9556. -- Reference: http://www.pantheon.org/articles/n/nephilim.html
  9557. 143 "...used cutting tools of highly concentrated light waves and electronic energy..."
  9558. "A laser is an electronic-optical device that emits coherent light radiation. The term "laser" is
  9559. an acronym for Light Amplification by Stimulated Emission of Radiation. A typical laser emits
  9560. light in a narrow, low-divergence monochromatic (single-coloured, if the laser is operating in
  9561. the visible spectrum), beam with a well-defined wavelength. In this way, laser light is in
  9562. contrast to a light source such as the incandescent light bulb, which emits light over a wide
  9563. area and over a wide spectrum of wavelengths.
  9564. The first working laser was demonstrated in May 1960 by Theodore Maiman at Hughes
  9565. Research Laboratories. Recently, lasers have become a multi-billion dollar industry. The
  9566. most widespread use of lasers is in optical storage devices such as compact disc and DVD
  9567. players, in which the laser (a few millimeters in size) scans the surface of the disc. Other
  9568. common applications of lasers are bar code readers, laser printers and laser pointers.
  9569. In industry, lasers are used for cutting steel and other metals and for inscribing patterns
  9570. (such as the letters on computer keyboards). Lasers are also commonly used in various
  9571. fields in science, especially spectroscopy, typically because of their well-defined wavelength
  9572. or short pulse duration in the case of pulsed lasers. Lasers are used by the military for range
  9573. finding, target identification and illumination for weapons delivery. Lasers used in medicine
  9574. are used for internal surgery and cosmetic applications.
  9575. Laser cutting is a technology that uses a laser to cut materials, and is usually used in
  9576. industrial manufacturing. Laser cutting works by directing the output of a high power laser,
  9577. 256
  9578. by computer, at the material to be cut. The material then either melts, burns, vaporizes
  9579. away, or is blown away by a jet of gas, leaving an edge with a high quality surface finish.
  9580. Industrial laser cutters are used to cut flat-sheet material as well as structural and piping
  9581. materials. Some 6-axis lasers can perform cutting operations on parts that have been preformed by casting or machining."
  9582. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9583. 144 "... Baalbek..."
  9584. "The great mystery of the ruins of Baalbek, and indeed one of the greatest mysteries of the
  9585. ancient world, concerns the massive foundation stones beneath the Roman Temple of
  9586. Jupiter. The courtyard of the Jupiter temple is situated upon a platform, called the Grand
  9587. Terrace, which consists of a huge outer wall and a filling of massive stones. The lower
  9588. courses of the outer wall are formed of huge, finely crafted and precisely positioned blocks.
  9589. They range in size from thirty to thirty three feet in length, fourteen feet in height and ten feet
  9590. in depth, and weigh approximately 450 tons each. Nine of these blocks are visible on the
  9591. north side of the temple, nine on the south, and six on the west (others may exist but
  9592. archaeological excavations have thus far not dug beneath all the sections of the Grand
  9593. Terrace). Above the six blocks on the western side are three even larger stones, called the
  9594. Trilithon, whose weight exceeds 1000 tons each. These great stones vary in size between
  9595. sixty-three and sixty-five feet in length, with a height of fourteen feet six inches and a depth
  9596. of twelve feet.
  9597. Another even larger stone lies in a limestone quarry a quarter of a mile from the Baalbek
  9598. complex. Weighing an estimated 1200 tons, it is sixty-nine feet by sixteen feet by thirteen
  9599. feet ten inches, making it the single largest piece of stonework ever crafted in the world.
  9600. Called the Hajar el Gouble, the Stone of the South, or the Hajar el Hibla, the Stone of the
  9601. Pregnant Woman, it lays at a raised angle with the lowest part of its base still attached to the
  9602. quarry rock as though it were almost ready to be cut free and transported to its presumed
  9603. location next to the other stones of the Trilithon.
  9604. Why these stones are such an enigma to contemporary scientists, both engineers and
  9605. archaeologists alike, is that their method of quarrying, transportation and precision
  9606. placement is beyond the technological ability of any known ancient or modern builders.
  9607. Various ‘scholars’, uncomfortable with the notion that ancient cultures might have developed
  9608. knowledge superior to modern science, have decided that the massive Baalbek stones were
  9609. laboriously dragged from the nearby quarries to the temple site. While carved images in the
  9610. temples of Egypt and Mesopotamia do indeed give evidence of this method of block
  9611. transportation - using ropes, wooden rollers and thousands of laborers - the dragged blocks
  9612. are known to have been only 1/10th the size and weight of the Baalbek stones and to have
  9613. been moved along flat surfaces with wide movement paths. The route to the site of Baalbek,
  9614. however, is up hill, over rough and winding terrain, and there is no evidence whatsoever of a
  9615. flat hauling surface having been created in ancient times.
  9616. Next there is the problem of how the mammoth blocks, once they were brought to the site,
  9617. were lifted and precisely placed in position. It has been theorized that the stones were raised
  9618. using a complex array of scaffolding, ramps and pulleys which was powered by large
  9619. numbers of humans and animals working in unison. An historical example of this method has
  9620. been suggested as the solution for the Baalbek enigma. The Renaissance architect
  9621. Domenico Fontana, when erecting a 327-ton Egyptian obelisk in front of St Peter's Basilica
  9622. in Rome, used 40 huge pulleys, which necessitated a combined force of 800 men and 140
  9623. horses. The area where this obelisk was erected, however, was a great open space that
  9624. 257
  9625. could easily accommodate all the lifting apparatus and the men and horses pulling on the
  9626. ropes. No such space is available in the spatial context of how the Baalbek stones were
  9627. placed. Hills slope away from where lifting apparatus would need to have been placed and
  9628. no evidence has been found of a flat and structurally firm surface having been constructed
  9629. (and then mysteriously removed after the lifting was done). Furthermore, not just one obelisk
  9630. was erected but rather a series of giant stones were precisely put in place side-by-side. Due
  9631. to the positioning of these stones, there is simply no conceivable place where a huge pulley
  9632. apparatus could have been stationed."
  9633. References: (both of the following websites have excellent photos of the area)
  9634. http://www.sacredsites.com/middle_east/lebanon/baalbek.htm
  9635. http://www.bibliotecapleyades.net/esp_baalbek_1.htm
  9636. 145 "...The Domain took over the planet Venus..."
  9637. "The second-closest planet to the Sun, orbiting it every 224.7 Earth days. It is the brightest
  9638. natural object in the night sky, except for the Moon, reaching an apparent magnitude of −4.6.
  9639. Because Venus is an inferior planet, from Earth it never appears to venture far from the Sun:
  9640. its elongation reaches a maximum of 47.8°. Venus reaches its maximum brightness shortly
  9641. before sunrise or shortly after sunset, for which reason it is often called the Morning Star or
  9642. the Evening Star.
  9643. Classified as a terrestrial planet, it is sometimes called Earth's "sister planet", for the two are
  9644. similar in size, gravity, and bulk composition. Venus is covered with an opaque layer of
  9645. highly reflective clouds of sulfuric acid, preventing its surface from being seen from space in
  9646. visible light; this was a subject of great speculation until some of its secrets were revealed by
  9647. planetary science in the twentieth century. Venus has the densest atmosphere of all the
  9648. terrestrial planets, consisting mostly of carbon dioxide, as it has no carbon cycle to lock
  9649. carbon back into rocks and surface features, nor organic life to absorb it in biomass. It has
  9650. become so hot that the earth-like oceans the young Venus is believed to have possessed
  9651. have totally evaporated, leaving a dusty dry desert scape with many slab-like rocks. The
  9652. evaporated water vapor has dissociated and hydrogen has escaped into interplanetary
  9653. space. The atmospheric pressure at the planet's surface is 92 times that of the Earth,
  9654. the great majority of it carbon dioxide and other greenhouse gases.
  9655. Venus's surface has been mapped in detail only in the last 20 years; Project Magellan listed
  9656. about a thousand meteor craters, a surprisingly low number compared to Earth. It shows
  9657. evidence of being geologically very young with extensive volcanism, and the sulfur in the
  9658. atmosphere is taken by some experts to show many of its volcanoes are still active today,
  9659. but it is an enigma as to why no evidence of lava flow accompanies any of the visible
  9660. caldera."
  9661. As one of the brightest objects in the sky, Venus has been known since prehistoric times
  9662. and as such has gained an entrenched position in human culture. The Babylonians named
  9663. the planet Ishtar, the personification of womanhood, and goddess of love.
  9664. In western astrology, derived from its historical connotation with goddesses of femininity and
  9665. love, Venus is held to influence those aspects of human life. In Indian Vedic astrology,
  9666. Venus is known as Shukra, meaning "clear, pure" or "brightness, clearness" in Sanskrit.
  9667. 258
  9668. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9669. 146 "... There are a few life forms on Earth that can endure an atmospheric
  9670. environment like Venus..."
  9671. "There are many different classes of extremophiles, each corresponding to the way its
  9672. environmental niche. Many extremophiles fall under multiple categories. For example:
  9673. • Acidophile: An organism with an optimum pH level at or below pH 3.
  9674. • Alkaliphile: An organism with optimal growth at pH levels of 9 or above.
  9675. • Endolith: An organism that lives in microscopic spaces within rocks, such as pores
  9676. between aggregate grains. These may also be called cryptoendoliths. This term also
  9677. includes organisms populating fissures, aquifers, and faults filled with groundwater
  9678. in the deep subsurface.
  9679. • Halophile: An organism requiring at least 2M of salt, NaCl, for growth.
  9680. • Hyperthermophile: An organism that can thrive at temperatures between 80-121 °C,
  9681. such as those found in hydrothermal systems.
  9682. • Hypolith: An organism that lives inside rocks in cold deserts.
  9683. • Lithoautotroph: An organism (usually bacteria) whose sole source of carbon is
  9684. carbon dioxide and exergonic inorganic oxidation (chemolithotrophs) such as
  9685. Nitrosomonas europaea. These organisms are capable of deriving energy from
  9686. reduced mineral compounds like pyrites, and are active in geochemical cycling and
  9687. the weathering of parent bedrock to form soil.
  9688. • Metalotolerant: capable of tolerating high levels of dissolved heavy metals in
  9689. solution, such as copper, cadmium, arsenic, and zinc. Examples include
  9690. Ferroplasma sp. and Ralstonia metallidurans.
  9691. • Oligotroph: An organism capable of growth in nutritionally limited environments.
  9692. • Osmophile: An organism capable of growth in environments with a high sugar
  9693. concentration.
  9694. • Piezophile: An organism that lives optimally at high hydrostatic pressure. Common
  9695. in the deep terrestrial subsurface, as well as in oceanic trenches.
  9696. • Polyextremophile: An organism that qualifies as an extremophiles under more than
  9697. one category.
  9698. • Psychrophile/Cryophile: An organism that grows better at temperatures of 15 °C or
  9699. lower. Common in cold soils, permafrost, polar ice, cold ocean water, and in/under
  9700. alpine snowpack.
  9701. • Radioresistant: resistant to high levels of ionizing radiation, most commonly
  9702. ultraviolet radiation but also includes organisms capable of resisting nuclear
  9703. radiation.
  9704. • Thermophile: An organism that can thrive at temperatures between 60-80 °C.
  9705. • Xerophile: An organism that can grow in extremely dry, desiccating conditions. This
  9706. type is exemplified by the soil microbes of the Atacama Desert.
  9707. Relative to the majority of the deep sea extremophiles, the areas around submarine
  9708. hydrothermal vents are biologically more productive, often hosting complex communities
  9709. fueled by the chemicals dissolved in the vent fluids, supporting diverse organisms, including
  9710. giant tube worms, clams, and shrimp.
  9711. The water emerges from a hydrothermal vent at temperatures ranging up to 400°C,
  9712. compared to a typical 2°C for the surrounding deep ocean water. The high pressure at these
  9713. depths significantly expands the thermal range at which water remains liquid, and so the
  9714. 259
  9715. water doesn't boil. Water at a depth of 3,000 m and a temperature of 407°C becomes
  9716. supercritical
  9717. One community has been discovered dubbed 'Eel City', which consists predominantly of
  9718. eels. Though eels are not uncommon, as mentioned earlier invertebrates typically dominate
  9719. hydrothermal vents. Eel City is located near Nafanua volcanic cone, American Samoa.
  9720. Other examples of the unique fauna who inhabit this ecosystem are a snail armored with
  9721. scales made up of iron and organic materials, and the Pompeii worm (Alvinella Pompejana),
  9722. which is capable of withstanding temperatures up to 80°C (176°F). Over 300 new
  9723. species have been discovered at hydrothermal vents.
  9724. Active hydrothermal vents are believed to exist on Jupiter's moon Europa, and ancient
  9725. hydrothermal vents have been speculated to exist on Mars."
  9726. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9727. 147 "... asteroid belt..."
  9728. "The asteroid belt is the region of the Solar System located roughly between the orbits of
  9729. the planets Mars and Jupiter. It is occupied by numerous irregularly shaped bodies called
  9730. asteroids or minor plarnets. The asteroid belt region is also termed the main belt to
  9731. distinguish it from other concentrations of minor planets within the Solar System, such as the
  9732. Kuiper belt and scattered disk.
  9733. More than half the mass within the main belt is contained in the four largest objects: Ceres,
  9734. 4 Vesta, 2 Pallas, and 10 Hygiea. All of these have mean diameters of more than 400 km,
  9735. while Ceres, the main belt's only dwarf planet, is about 950 km in diameter. The remaining
  9736. bodies range down to the size of a dust particle. The asteroid material is so thinly
  9737. distributed that multiple unmanned spacecraft have traversed it without incident."
  9738. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9739. 148 "... Tiahuanaco..."
  9740. "Tiwanaku monumental architecture is characterized by large stones of exceptional
  9741. workmanship. In contrast to the masonry style of the later Inca, Tiwanaku stone
  9742. architecture usually employs rectangular ashlar blocks laid in regular courses, and
  9743. monumental structures were frequently fitted with elaborate drainage systems.
  9744. Bronze or copper "double-T" clamps were often used to anchor large blocks in place.
  9745. The stone used to build Tiwanaku was quarried and then transported 40 km or more
  9746. to the city. They were moved without the aid of the wheel, though much of the distance was
  9747. over water.
  9748. The community grew to urban proportions (in antiquity) becoming an important regional
  9749. power in the southern Andes. Satellite imaging was used recently to map the extent of
  9750. fossilized suka kollus across the three primary valleys of Tiwanaku, arriving at populationcarrying capacity estimates of anywhere between 285,000 and 1,482,000 people.
  9751. They worshipped many gods, and one of the most important gods was Viracocha, the
  9752. god of action, shaper of many worlds, and destroyer of many worlds. He created
  9753. 260
  9754. people, with two servants, on a great piece of rock. Then he drew sections on the rock
  9755. and sent his servants to name the tribes in those areas. In Tiwanaku he created the people
  9756. out of rock and brought life to them through the earth. The Tiwanaku believed that
  9757. Viracocha created giants to move the massive stones that comprise much of their
  9758. archeology, but then grew unhappy with the giants and created a flood to destroy them."
  9759. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9760. 149 "...Ollantaytambo..."
  9761. "Ollantaytambo is a town in southern Peru, located in the district of Ollantaytambo, province
  9762. of Urubamba, Cusco region. It is approximately 60 km to the northwest of the city of Cusco,
  9763. situated at an altitude of 2792 meters above sea level.
  9764. The city of Ollantaytambo is best known for its ruins, and for the spot where the Inca
  9765. emperor Manco Inca was able to defeat the Spanish in a set-piece battle. The finely cut
  9766. rocks and plantation terraces were very large obstacles for the Conquistadors to
  9767. surpass, and the fortress was also used by Manco to conduct successful attacks on
  9768. Francisco Pizarro and other Conquistadors who were based in Lima."
  9769. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9770. 150 "... Machupiccu ..."
  9771. Machu Picchu (Quechua: Machu Picchu, "Old Peak") is a pre-Columbian Inca site located
  9772. 2,400 meters (7,875 ft) above sea level. It is situated on a mountain ridge above the
  9773. Urubamba Valley in Peru, which is 80 km (50 mi) northwest of Cuzco. Often referred to as
  9774. "The Lost City of the Incas", Machu Picchu is probably the most familiar symbol of the Inca
  9775. Empire.
  9776. One theory maintains that Machu Picchu was an Inca "llacta": a settlement built to control
  9777. the economy of the conquered regions. It may also have been built as a prison for the
  9778. selective few who had commited such henous crimes against the Inca society. Research
  9779. conducted by scholars, such as John Rowe and Richard Burger, has convinced most
  9780. archaeologists that rather than a defensive retreat, Machu Picchu was an estate of the Inca
  9781. emperor, Pachacuti. In addition, Johan Reinhard presented evidence that the site was
  9782. selected based on its position relative to sacred landscape features. One such example is its
  9783. mountains, which are purported to be in alignment with key astronomical events.
  9784. Shamanic legends say that if you're a sensitive person and you rub your forehead against
  9785. the world-famous Intihuatana Stone you will see the spirit world. The Intihuatana stone is
  9786. one of the many ritual stones in South America. They are arranged so they point directly at
  9787. the sun during the winter solstice. The Spanish did not find Machu Picchu until the 20th
  9788. century so the Intihuatana Stone was not destroyed like many other ritual stones. It is also
  9789. called "The Hitching Point of the Sun" because it was supposed to hold the sun in it's place.
  9790. It is (as they said before) believed to be an astronomic clock built by the Incas."
  9791. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9792. 151 "... Pachacamac ..."
  9793. 261
  9794. "The temple of Pachacamac is an archaeological site 40 km southeast of Lima, Peru in the
  9795. Valley of the Lurín River. It had at least one pyramid. They used Pachacamac as primarily
  9796. a religious site for the veneration of the Pacha Kamaq creator god. The Ichma joined the
  9797. Inca empire and Pachacamac became an important administrative center.
  9798. However the Inca maintained it as a religious shrine and allowed the Pachacamac priests to
  9799. continue functioning independently of the Inca priesthood. This included the oracle, whom
  9800. the Inca presumably consulted. The Inca built five additional buildings, including a temple to
  9801. the Sun on the main square."
  9802. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9803. 152 "... an electronic, light-wave emitting stone cutter and carving tools..."
  9804. "There are various laser cutting tools depending on the type of finished product that you
  9805. prefer. Laser cutter routers that are computer-driven can cut each letter precisely, capturing
  9806. every detail of the selected style. The said manufacturing systems are useful in cutting out
  9807. symbols and logos in a cost effective manner.
  9808. Laser that is in a solid state uses one crystal rod with flat and parallel ends. Both ends have
  9809. surfaces that have the ability to reflect. A light source that has high density and a flash tube
  9810. surrounds the crystal.
  9811. When power is given by the network of pulse-forming, an intense light pulse called photon is
  9812. released in one of the rod crystals. The light released is one wavelength and allows for
  9813. minimum divergence.
  9814. A hundred percent of laser light is reflected on the rear mirror while thirty to fifty percent will
  9815. pass through the mirror then to the shutter assembly to the angled mirror before going down
  9816. through the lens and then to the work piece.
  9817. The laser light beam is not only coherent but also has high energy content. When it is
  9818. focused on the surface, the laser light creates heat used for welding, drilling, and cutting.
  9819. The laser beam and the work piece is manipulated through the use of robotics. It can be
  9820. adjusted to different sizes and heat intensity. The smaller laser is used for drilling, cutting,
  9821. and welding while the larger machines are used in off giving heat."
  9822. -- Reference: http://ezinearticles.com/?Laser-Cutting-Tools&id=352889
  9823. 153 "The "great" pyramid..."
  9824. "A total of over 2,300,000 blocks of limestone and granite were used in its construction with
  9825. the average block weighing 2.5 tons and none weighing less than 2 tons. The large blocks
  9826. used in the ceiling of the King's Chamber weigh as much as 9 tons.
  9827. • Construction date (Estimated): 2589 B.C..
  9828. • Construction time (Estimated): 20 years.
  9829. • Total weight (Estimated): 6.5 million tons.
  9830. • The estimated total weight of the structure is 6.5 million tons!
  9831. 262
  9832. • The base of the pyramid covers 13 acres, 568,500 square feet and the length of
  9833. each side was originally 754 feet, but is now 745 feet.
  9834. • The original height was 481 feet tall, but is now only 449 feet.
  9835. The distance when Earth is closest to Sun (perihelion) is 147x106
  9836. km, which is translated
  9837. into royal cubits 280x109
  9838. , hinting at the height of the Great pyramid, 280 royal cubits.
  9839. The earth/moon relationship is the only one in our solar system that contains this unique
  9840. golden section ratio that "squares the circle". Along with this is the phenomenon that the
  9841. moon and the sun appear to be the same size, most clearly noticed during an eclipse. This
  9842. too is true only from earth's vantage point…No other planet/moon relationship in our solar
  9843. system can make this claim.
  9844. Although the problem of squaring the circle was proven mathematically impossible in the
  9845. 19th century (as pi, being irrational, cannot be exactly measured), the Earth, the moon, and
  9846. the Great Pyramid, are all coming about as close as you can get to the solution!
  9847. If the base of the Great Pyramid is equated with the diameter of the earth, then the radius of
  9848. the moon can be generated by subtracting the radius of the earth from the height of the
  9849. pyramid.
  9850. The height of the Great Pyramid times 2π exactly equals the perimeter of the pyramid. This
  9851. proportions result from elegant design of the pyramid with the height equal two diameters of
  9852. a circle and the base equal to the circumference of the circle.
  9853. The Pyramid of the Sun and the Great Pyramid of Egypt are almost or very nearly equal
  9854. to one another in base perimeter. The Pyramid of the Sun is "almost" half the height of the
  9855. Great Pyramid. There is a slight difference. The Great Pyramid is 1.03 - times larger than the
  9856. base of the Pyramid of the Sun. Conversely, the base of the Pyramid of the Sun is 97% of
  9857. the Great Pyramid's base."
  9858. -- Reference: http://www.world-mysteries.com/mpl_2.htm
  9859. 154 "... Pyramid texts."
  9860. "The Pyramid Texts are a collection of ancient Egyptian religious texts from the time of the
  9861. Old Kingdom, mostly inscriptions on the walls of tombs in pyramids. They depict the
  9862. Egyptian view of the afterlife, and the ascent into the sky of the divine Pharaoh after death.
  9863. They were written upwards of five thousand years ago; thus, they are some of the oldest
  9864. known writings in the world.
  9865. The Pyramid Texts are also the oldest collection of religious spells known to us from ancient
  9866. Egypt. This collection forms the basis of much of the later religious theology and literature of
  9867. ancient Egypt. The passages were eventually separated and categorized, as well as
  9868. illustrated and eventually evolved into the Book of the Dead, or more properly, The Book of
  9869. the Coming forth by Day.
  9870. It is difficult to date the Pyramid Texts. Their origins have aroused much speculation
  9871. regarding their origin because they emerge, as a fully-fledged collection of mortuary texts,
  9872. without any precedent in the archaeological record. The fact that the texts are made up of
  9873. distinct utterances which do not have a strict narrative sequence linking them together has
  9874. led scholars to believe that many of them were not composed specifically for the purpose of
  9875. 263
  9876. being inscribed in the pyramids but may have had earlier uses. In fact, spells such as
  9877. Utterances 273-4, called the Cannibal Hymn, and which only appears in the Pyramids of
  9878. Unas and Teti, refer to aspects of the funerary cult that seem to no longer been in practice at
  9879. the time the pyramids were built.
  9880. Early analysts attempted to date the text as early as possible; even from the predynastic
  9881. period. A very early dating of these texts remains a strong possibility, though today, scholars
  9882. place the text's origins with the date of the monuments where they reside. In reality, we have
  9883. very little idea of the date of their initial invention, perhaps other than the antiquated
  9884. language employed."
  9885. -- Reference: http://www.crystalinks.com/pyramidtext.html
  9886. 155 "The great pyramid was located precisely at the exact center of all of the land
  9887. masses of Earth..."
  9888. "The Great Pyramid (the Pyramid of Khufu, or Cheops in Greek) at Gizeh, Egypt,
  9889. demonstrates the remarkable character of its placement on the face of the Earth. The
  9890. Pyramid lies in the center of gravity of the continents. It also lies in the exact center of all the
  9891. land area of the world, dividing the earth's land mass into approximately equal quarters.
  9892. The north-south axis (31 degrees east of Greenwich) is the longest land meridian, and the
  9893. east-west axis (30 degrees north) is the longest land parallel on the globe. There is
  9894. obviously only one place that these longest land-lines of the terrestrial earth can cross, and it
  9895. is at the Great Pyramid!"
  9896. -- Reference: http://www.world-mysteries.com/mpl_2.htm
  9897. 156 "...stars in the constellation of Orion's Belt (Ainitak), Sirius, Alpha Draconis and
  9898. Beta Ursa Minor..."
  9899. "The Hall of Truth in Light" (in the Great Pyramid) are an extension of the upward passage
  9900. way (which) opens as a Grand Gallery. Other interior features include: a Great Step; a lower
  9901. Queen's chamber; an upper King's chamber with an open tomb which was never used for
  9902. burial; and, two passage ways which actually pinpoint Sirius and Ainitak in the "belt" of the
  9903. Orion Constellation -- the other two precisely point to Thuban in the Draco Constellation
  9904. which was the old North Star at the time of the Pyramid's supposed construction and the
  9905. present North Star.
  9906. -- Reference: http://www.geocities.com/regkeith/rkeith5a.htm
  9907. Big Dipper Constellation stars include:
  9908. Dubhe
  9909. Merak
  9910. Phecda
  9911. Megrez
  9912. Alioth
  9913. Mizar
  9914. Alkaid
  9915. 264
  9916. Alnitak is a double star system. Alnitak A is a blue O9.7Ib supergiant star about 15 times the
  9917. diameter of the sun, at least 11,000 times more luminous than the sun.
  9918. Thuban is another name for the star is Adib from the Arabic Al Dhi'bah, "The Hyenas". A
  9919. number of stars in the constellation of Draco. According to Allen, seamen were accustomed
  9920. to call Thuban "The Dragon's Tail." Thuban is a white A0III giant having a luminosity about
  9921. 260 times that of the sun. Spectral analysis indicates that Thuban has a companion star
  9922. orbiting with a 51.4 day period.
  9923. Sirius is also known colloquially as the "Dog Star", reflecting its prominence in its
  9924. constellation, Canis Major. It is the subject of more mythological and folkloric tales than any
  9925. other star apart from the sun. The heliacal rising of Sirius marked the flooding of the Nile in
  9926. Ancient Egypt and the 'Dog Days' of summer
  9927. Sirius is the brightest star in the night sky with a visual apparent magnitude of −1.47, almost
  9928. twice as bright as Canopus, the next brightest star. What appears as a single star to the
  9929. naked eye is actually a binary star system, consisting of Sirius A, and a faint white dwarf
  9930. companion of spectral type DA2, termed Sirius B.
  9931. Sirius is bright due to both its intrinsic luminosity and its closeness to the Sun. At a distance
  9932. of 2.6 parsecs (8.6 light-years), the Sirius system is one of our near neighbors. Sirius A is
  9933. about twice as massive as the Sun and has an absolute visual magnitude of 1.42. It is 25
  9934. times more luminous than the Sun.
  9935. Sirius is recorded in the earliest astronomical records, known in Ancient Egypt as Sopdet
  9936. (Greek: Sothis). During the era of the Middle Kingdom, Egyptians based their calendar on
  9937. the heliacal rising of Sirius, namely the day it becomes visible just before sunrise after
  9938. moving far enough away from the glare of the sun. This occurred just before the annual
  9939. flooding of the Nile and the summer solstice, after a 70 day absence from the skies. The
  9940. hieroglyph for Sothis features a star and a triangle. Sothis was identified with the great
  9941. goddess Isis who formed a part of a trinity with her husband Osiris and their son Horus,
  9942. while the 70 day period symbolized the passing of Isis and Osiris though the duat (Egyptian
  9943. underworld).
  9944. North Star, also known as the Pole Star, is the star that lies closest in the sky to the north
  9945. celestial pole, and which appears directly overhead to an observer at the Earth's North Pole.
  9946. The current North Star is Polaris, which lies about two-thirds of a degree from the pole at the
  9947. end of the "handle" of the Little Dipper asterism in the constellation Ursa Minor. Polaris has a
  9948. visual magnitude of 1.97 (second magnitude). (Some people mistakenly think that Polaris is
  9949. the brightest star in the night sky. This title belongs to Sirius, and there are many others
  9950. stars also brighter than Polaris.)
  9951. Due to the precession of the equinoxes the direction of the Earth's axis is very slowly but
  9952. continuously changing, and as the projection of the Earth's axis moves around the celestial
  9953. sphere over the millennia, the role of North Star passes from one star to another. Since the
  9954. precession of the equinoxes is so slow, a single star typically holds that title for many
  9955. centuries.
  9956. In 3000 BC the faint star Thuban in the constellation Draco was the North Star. At
  9957. magnitude 3.67 (fourth magnitude) it is only one-fifth as bright as Polaris, the current North
  9958. Star (situated 430 light-years away).
  9959. 265
  9960. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  9961. 157 "...Pan, God of The Woods..."
  9962. -- Reference: For more detailed information about the IS-BE know as Pan, please read the
  9963. book "Pan, God of The Woods" by Lawrence R. Spencer ( www.godofthewoods.com )
  9964. 158 " The human pharaoh moved the Capital city of Egypt from Memphis to
  9965. Heracleopolis".
  9966. "Heracleopolis was the main city of Egypt during a turbulent time in our history, the First
  9967. Intermediate Period. Details are not clear, but apparently when the VIth dynasty ended, the
  9968. rulers who followed were too weak to rule the whole land. Akhtoy, the local nomarch,
  9969. declared independence from Memphis, and when the last Memphite pharaoh died childless,
  9970. he declared himself god-king of the Two Lands and founder of the IXth dynasty. All of Middle
  9971. Egypt and part of the eastern Nile Delta submitted to Akhtoy's authority. Akhmin, in the 9th
  9972. nome, became the southern boundary between those who supported Akhtoy and those who
  9973. opposed him.
  9974. In Upper Egypt there were at least three governors who refused to acknowledge the new
  9975. order: those of Thinis, Wast (Thebes) and Nekhen (Hierakonopolis). For a long time they
  9976. fought among themselves, because chaos always reigns where there is no central authority.
  9977. Finally one of them, Inyotef II of Wast, prevailed against the others; the nomarchs of Asyut
  9978. now became the defenders of the dignity of the Heracleopolitan kings. The IXth dynasty was
  9979. succeeded by the Xth at home, and for more than sixty years the line was held at Akhmin,
  9980. despite frequent raids from both sides. Finally the grandson of Inyotef, Mentuhotep II,
  9981. captured Asyut; once that happened he quickly marched downstream and overthrew the Xth
  9982. dynasty. That marked the reunification of Egypt and the beginning of the Middle Kingdom.
  9983. Heracleopolis was never as important afterwards, though it marked the site of a key fortress
  9984. in the XXIInd dynasty, built by the second son of Osorkon II."
  9985. -- Reference: http://members.tripod.com/~Raseneb/Akhtoy.htm
  9986. 159 "... when Atlantis fell..."
  9987. "Plato's reference to Egypt as the source of the Atlantis myth, via Solon. The Egyptians
  9988. called Atlantis Kepchu, which also happens to be their name for the people of Crete. It is
  9989. speculated that survivors of the Minoan volcanic disaster asked Egypt for help, since they
  9990. were the only other civilization with high culture at the time.
  9991. Plato described quarries on the island of Atlantis where "rocks of white, black, and red" were
  9992. extracted from the hills and used to construct a great island city. The description matches
  9993. the rocks found on Santorini.
  9994. The island-city of Atlantis was described as being laid out in a series of concentric circles of
  9995. land and water, each one connected to the sea by a deep canal. Docks for a huge number of
  9996. ships, and a causeway for unloading cargo of said ships, also was described. Unearthed
  9997. frescos from the island have depicted Santorini with a configuration that can be interpreted in
  9998. this way. It also shows a huge city on the island, theorized by archaeologists to represent the
  9999. center of the caldera.
  10000. 266
  10001. At Akrotiri there are multi-story buildings. This city may have had the earliest form of town
  10002. planning (structured assembly of interconnecting roads and paths) ever discovered, again,
  10003. with fresh running water and toilets in each house leading to a sewer system. Many such
  10004. sites now have been unearthed, both on Crete and Santorini."
  10005. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org (See "Santorini")
  10006. 160 "... the Egyptians., who called "Atlantis" Kepchu, which also happens to be their
  10007. name for the people of Crete."
  10008. "Minoan civilization disappeared suddenly, at the height of its wealth and power. This also
  10009. was similar to Plato's description of the fate of the "Atlanteans". Scientists theorize that
  10010. multiple tsunamis hit the island of Crete, circa 1500 BC, which came from the direction of the
  10011. island of Santorini (then called Thera) about 100 miles from Crete.
  10012. Santorini is the site of a massive caldera with an island at its center. Vulcanologists have
  10013. determined this ill-fated island was engulfed by the terrible ca. 1500 BC eruption and
  10014. collapse of the Stroggilí volcano there, which affected the entire eastern Mediterranean, as
  10015. far away as the Near East—possibly the most powerful eruption in recorded history, ejecting
  10016. approximately 30 km³ (7 cu miles) of magma, up to 36 km (23 miles) high. Volcanic events of
  10017. this magnitude are known to generate tsunamis."
  10018. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10019. 161 "... the exact geodetic center of Egypt..."
  10020. "Five years into the co-regency, Amenhotep IV changed his name to Akhenaten and left
  10021. Thebes to establish a new Egyptian capital city, which he called Akhetaten (meaning the
  10022. resting place or horizon of the Aten). The change in name indicated that he no longer
  10023. considered himself to be the son of the god Amun, but of Aten. On the monuments marking
  10024. the four corners of the new city, Akhenaten referred to the hateful words spoken about him
  10025. and his forefathers by the priests of Amun. Obviously, he had hoped that the city of
  10026. Akhetaten would be his resting place as well.
  10027. At the city of Akhetaten, the ancient religion of the Aten received a make-over. Aten temple
  10028. design, ritual, and symbolism (by a falcon-headed man and a sun disc referred to as ReHerakhty) derived originally from the traditional solar god Ra whose center of worship had
  10029. been from very ancient times at Memphis and On (Heliopolis). By the end of the coregency,
  10030. the falcon-man had been removed from the Aten's symbol. The Aten had in essence
  10031. become a god without human or animal image. The disc of the sun was now considered to
  10032. be the single physical representation of the invisible and eternal god, Ra, and a deity in its
  10033. own right. (The sun disc was used later as a royal "lamelech" seal by the Kings of Judah).
  10034. The cartouche of Akhenaten's god and heavenly father, the Aten, bore the name Imram. In
  10035. the Bible, Moses is referred to as the son of Amram, the Hebrew equivalent.
  10036. The name of the Egyptian deity Aten transliterates into the Hebrew word Adon. Adon,
  10037. which is translated by English Bibles as "the Lord" (and Adonai, translated as "my Lord") is
  10038. used along with Jehovah (Yhwh) in the Bible as the exclusive personal names of God.
  10039. Moreover, in ancient times, the name Jehovah (Yhwh) was written, but never spoken.
  10040. Whenever the written name Jehovah (Yhwh) was to be read out loud, Adon (Aten) was
  10041. voiced instead. The written form of Adon is infrequent, however, its limited usage is
  10042. significant, especially in the first six books of the Bible (See under "LORD" in Strong's
  10043. 267
  10044. Exhaustive Concordance), where it is reserved for the following applications alone: Moses
  10045. addresses God using the title Adon/Aten (Exodus 4:10,13; 5:22; 34:9; Numbers 14:17;
  10046. Deuteronomy 3:23; 7:26; 10:17); Moses, himself, is addressed both by Aaron
  10047. (Ex.32:22; Num.12:11) and by Joshua (Numbers 11:28) using the title Adon/Aten; and
  10048. Joshua also addresses God using the title Adon/Aten (Joshua 5:14 b; 7:7). As
  10049. mentioned above, there is an established relationship between the literature of the Egyptian
  10050. 18th Dynasty and the Bible. Psalm 104 is an embellishment of the Hymn to the Aten which
  10051. was found by archaeologists at the city of Akhetaten.
  10052. The religious reforms of Akhenaten included the rejection of traditional Egyptian magic and
  10053. astrology associated with the cult of Amun, and the rejection of the cult of Osiris with its
  10054. version of belief in eternal judgment and the afterlife as well. The site chosen for the new
  10055. capital of Egypt further demonstrated Akhenaten's desire for a new balance as it was
  10056. located at the exact geodetic center of the country."
  10057. -- Reference: http://www.domainofman.com/ankhemmaat/moses.html
  10058. 162 "... the destruction of Troy as the finale of the Trojan War."
  10059. "In Greek mythology, the Trojan War was waged against the city of Troy by the Achaeans
  10060. after Paris of Troy stole Helen from her husband Menelaus, the king of Sparta. The war is
  10061. among the most important events in Greek mythology, and was narrated in many works of
  10062. Greek literature, including the Iliad and the Odyssey by Homer. The Iliad relates a part of the
  10063. last year of the siege of Troy, while the Odyssey describes the journey home of Odysseus,
  10064. one of the Achaean leaders. Other parts of the war were told in a cycle of epic poems, which
  10065. has only survived in fragments. Episodes from the war provided material for Greek tragedy
  10066. and other works of Greek literature, and for Roman poets like Virgil and Ovid.
  10067. The war originated from a quarrel between the goddesses Athena, Hera and Aphrodite, after
  10068. Eris, the goddess of strife and discord, gave them a golden apple, sometimes known as the
  10069. Apple of Discord, marked "for the fairest". The goddesses went to Paris, who judged that
  10070. Aphrodite, as the "fairest", should receive the apple. In exchange, Aphrodite made Helen,
  10071. the most beautiful of all women, fall in love with Paris, who took her to Troy. Agamemnon,
  10072. king of Mycenae and the brother of Helen's husband Menelaus, led an expedition of
  10073. Achaean troops to Troy and besieged the city for ten years. After the deaths of many heroes,
  10074. including the Achaeans Achilles and Ajax, and the Trojans Hector and Paris, the city fell to
  10075. the ruse of the Trojan Horse. The Achaeans slaughtered the Trojans and desecrated the
  10076. temples, thus earning the gods' wrath. Few of the Achaeans returned safely to their homes
  10077. and many founded colonies in distant shores. The Romans later traced their origin to
  10078. Aeneas, one of the Trojans, who was said to have led the surviving Trojans to Italy.
  10079. The Ancient Greeks thought the Trojan War was a historical event that had taken place in
  10080. the 13th or 12th century BC, and believed that Troy was located in modern day Turkey near
  10081. the Dardanelles. By modern times both the war and the city were widely believed to be nonhistorical. In 1870, however, the German archaeologist Heinrich Schliemann excavated a
  10082. site in this area which he identified as Troy; this claim is now accepted by most scholars
  10083. The Trojan War derive from a specific historical conflict usually date it to the 12th or 11th
  10084. centuries BC, often preferring the dates given by Eratosthenes, 1194–1184 BC, which
  10085. roughly corresponds with archaeological evidence of a catastrophic burning of Troy."
  10086. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10087. 268
  10088. 163 "Homer, the blind Greek poet..."
  10089. "Homer (ancient Greek: µηρος, Homēros) was an ancient Greek (Ionian) epic poet,
  10090. traditionally considered the author of the epic poems the Iliad and the Odyssey. No reliable
  10091. biographical information about Homer survives from classical antiquity. The cardinal
  10092. qualities of the style of Homer have been well articulated by Matthew Arnold: "the translator
  10093. of Homer," he says, "should above all be penetrated by a sense of the four qualities of his
  10094. author: that he is eminently rapid; that he is eminently plain and direct, both in the evolution
  10095. of his thought and in the expression of it, that is, both in his syntax and in his words; that he
  10096. is eminently plain and direct in the substance of his thought, that is, in his matter and ideas;
  10097. and finally, that he is eminently noble".
  10098. The language used by Homer is an archaic version of Ionic Greek, with admixtures from
  10099. certain other dialects, such as Aeolic Greek. It later served as the basis of Epic Greek, the
  10100. language of epic poetry, typically in dactylic hexameter.
  10101. A number of traditions hold that he was blind (perhaps because, in the Aeolian dialect of
  10102. Cyme, homēros bore this meaning) and that he was born on the island of Chios, at Smyrna
  10103. or elsewhere in Ionia, where various cities vied in claiming him as one of their native sons.
  10104. The characterization of Homer as a blind bard is supported by a possibly self-referential
  10105. passage in the Odyssey in which a shipwrecked Odysseus listens to the tales of a blind bard
  10106. named Demodocus while in the court of the Phaeacian king."
  10107. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10108. 164 "Solon, a wise man from Greece reported the existence of Atlantis.."
  10109. "Solon was a famous Athenian statesman, lawmaker, and Lyric poet. The travel writer,
  10110. Pausanias, listed Solon among the Seven Sages of the ancient world. Solon has acquired a
  10111. place in history and in folklore through his efforts to legislate against political, economic and
  10112. moral decline in archaic Athens. Some of his reforms failed in the short term, yet he is often
  10113. credited with having laid the foundations for Athenian democracy.
  10114. After he had finished reforming the country, Solon traveled abroad. His first stop was Egypt.
  10115. There he visited Heliopolis, where he discussed philosophy with an Egyptian expert on the
  10116. subject, Psenophis. Subsequently, at Sais, he visited Neith's temple and received from
  10117. the priests there an account of the history of Atlantis. Solon wrote out this history as
  10118. a poem, to which Plato subsequently made references in his dialogues Timaios and
  10119. Critias. Next Solon sailed to Cyprus, where he oversaw the construction of a new capital for
  10120. a local king, in gratitude for which the king named it Soloi."
  10121. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10122. 165 " Zoroaster..."
  10123. "Zoroaster, the prophet and poet sees the universe as the cosmic struggle between aša
  10124. “truth” and druj “lie.” The cardinal concept of aša - which is highly nuanced and only vaguely
  10125. translatable - is at the foundation of all other Zoroastrian doctrine, including that of Ahura
  10126. Mazda (who is aša), creation (that is aša), existence (that is aša) and Free Will, which is
  10127. arguably Zoroaster’s greatest contribution to religious philosophy. The purpose of
  10128. humankind, like that of all other creation, is to sustain aša. For humankind, this occurs
  10129. through active participation in life and the exercise of good thoughts, words and deeds.
  10130. 269
  10131. The name Zoroaster was famous in classical antiquity, and a number of different Zoroasters
  10132. - all described as having occult powers - appear in historiographic accounts.
  10133. In Pliny’s Natural History, Zoroaster is said to have laughed on the day of his birth. He lived
  10134. in the wilderness and enjoyed exploring it from a young age. Plutarch compares him with
  10135. Lycurgus and Numa Pompilius (Numa, 4). Plutarch, drawing partly on Theopompus, speaks
  10136. of Zoroaster in Isis and Osiris: In this work, the prophet is empowered by trust in his God and
  10137. the protection of his allies. He faces outward opposition and unbelief, and inward doubt.
  10138. The works of Zoroaster had a significant influence on Greek philosophy and Roman
  10139. philosophy. The ancient Greek writer Eudoxus of Cnidus and the Latin writer Pliny the Elder
  10140. praised Zoroaster’s philosophy as “the most famous and most useful.” Plato learnt of
  10141. Zoroaster’s philosophy through Eudoxus and incorporated some of it into his own Platonic
  10142. realism. In the third century BC, however, Colotes accused Plato’s The Republic of
  10143. plagiarizing parts of (what is attributed to) Zoroaster’s On Nature, such as the Myth of Er.
  10144. Plato’s contemporary, Heraclides Ponticus, wrote a text called Zoroaster based on
  10145. Zoroaster’s philosophy in order to express his disagreement with Plato on natural
  10146. philosophy.
  10147. Zoroaster was mentioned by the nineteenth-century poet William Butler Yeats. His wife and
  10148. he were said to have claimed to have contacted Zoroaster through “automatic writing.”
  10149. The 2005 edition of the Oxford Dictionary of Philosophy places Zoroaster first in a
  10150. chronology of philosophers."
  10151. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10152. 166 "... an IS-BE called Ahura Mazda."
  10153. "Ahura Mazda (Ahura Mazdā) is the Avestan language name for a divinity exalted by
  10154. Zoroaster as the one uncreated Creator, hence God. He is the nameless "Father Asura",
  10155. that is, Varuna of the Rigveda. In this view, Zoroastrian mazda is the equivalent of the Vedic
  10156. medhira, described in Rigveda 8.6.10 as the "(revealed) insight into the cosmic order".
  10157. Ahura Mazda is seen as the Ahura par excellence, superior to both *vouruna and *mitra, and
  10158. the nameless "Father Asura" of the Rigveda and is a distinct divinity. The Zoroastrian faith
  10159. is thus described by its adherents as Mazdayasna, the worship of Mazda. In the Avesta,
  10160. "Ahura Mazda is the highest object of worship".
  10161. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10162. 167 "Laozi, a philosopher who wrote a small book called "The Way"..."
  10163. "According to tradition, it was written around 6th century BC by the Taoist sage Laozi (or Lao
  10164. Tzu, "Old Master"), a record-keeper at the Zhou Dynasty court, by whose name the text is
  10165. known in China. Tao Te Ching is a Chinese classic text. Its name comes from the opening
  10166. words of its two sections:  dào "way," and dé "virtue".
  10167. This ancient book is also central in Chinese religion, not only for Taoism (Dàojiāo ) but
  10168. Chinese Buddhism, which when first introduced into China was largely interpreted through
  10169. the use of Taoist words and concepts. Many Chinese artists, including poets, painters,
  10170. 270
  10171. calligraphers, and even gardeners have used the Tao Te Ching as a source of inspiration. Its
  10172. influence has also spread widely outside East Asia, aided by hundreds of translations into
  10173. Western languages."
  10174. Tao is nameless. (Tao) goes beyond distinctions, and transcends language.
  10175. Laozi describes a state of existence before time or space:
  10176. "The Way that can be told of is not an unvarying way;
  10177. The names that can be named are not unvarying names.
  10178. It was from the Nameless that heaven and Earth sprang;
  10179. The named is but the mother that rears the ten thousand creatures.
  10180. Each after its kind."
  10181. "The Spirit never dies.
  10182. It is the Mysterious Female.
  10183. The doorway of the Mysterious Female
  10184. Is the base from which Heaven and Earth sprang.
  10185. It is there within us, all the while;
  10186. Draw upon it as you will.
  10187. It never runs dry.
  10188. We put spokes together and call it a wheel;
  10189. But it is on the space where there is nothing that the value of the wheel depends.
  10190. We turn clay to make a vessel;
  10191. But it is on the space where there is nothing that the value of the vessel depends.
  10192. We pierce doors and windows to make a house;
  10193. And it is on these spaces where there is nothing that the value of the house
  10194. depends.
  10195. Therefore just as we take advantage of what is,
  10196. we should recognize the value of what is not.
  10197. Knowing others is wisdom;
  10198. Knowing the self is enlightenment.
  10199. Mastering others requires force;
  10200. Mastering the self requires strength;
  10201. He who knows he has enough is rich.
  10202. Perseverance is a sign of will power.
  10203. He who stays where he is, endures.
  10204. To die but not to perish is to be eternally present."
  10205. Many believe the Tao Te Ching contains universal truths that have been independently
  10206. recognized in other philosophies, both religious and secular."
  10207. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10208. 168 "...Genesis..."
  10209. "Genesis (Greek: "birth", "origin") is the first book of the Bible of Judaism and of Christianity,
  10210. and the first of five books of the Pentateuch or Torah.
  10211. "1 Now it came about, when men began to multiply on the face of the land, and daughters
  10212. were born to them,
  10213. 271
  10214. 2 that the "sons of God" saw that the daughters of men were beautiful; and they took wives
  10215. for themselves, whomever they chose.
  10216. 3 Then Yaweh said, “My Spirit shall not strive with man forever, because he also is flesh;
  10217. nevertheless his days shall be one hundred and twenty years.”
  10218. 4 The Nephilim were on the earth in those days, and also afterward, when the "sons of God"
  10219. came in to the daughters of men, and they bore children to them. Those were the mighty
  10220. men who were of old, men of renown.
  10221. 5 Then Yaweh saw that the wickedness of man was great on the earth, and that every intent
  10222. of the thoughts of his heart was only evil continually."
  10223. -- Reference: http://bible.cc/genesis/6-4.htm
  10224. 169 "... Omphalos stones..."
  10225. "An omphalos is an ancient religious stone artifact, or baetylusr. In Greek, the word
  10226. omphalos means "navel" (compare the name of Queen Omphale). According to the ancient
  10227. Greeks, Zeus sent out two eagles to fly across the world to meet at its center, the "navel" of
  10228. the world. Omphalos stones used to denote this point were erected in several areas
  10229. surrounding the Mediterranean Sea; the most famous of those was at the oracle in Delphi.
  10230. Most accounts locate the Omphalos in the temple adyton near the Pythia. The stone itself
  10231. (which may have been a copy) has a carving of a knotted net covering its surface, and has a
  10232. hollow centre, which widens towards its base
  10233. The Omphalos at Delphi came to be identified as the stone which Rhea wrapped in
  10234. swaddling clothes, pretending it was Zeus. This was to deceive Cronus, his father, who
  10235. swallowed his children so they could not grow up and depose him as he had deposed his
  10236. own father, Uranus. Omphalos stones were said to allow direct communication with
  10237. "the gods".
  10238. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10239. 170 "...Python, the serpent..."
  10240. "In Greek mythology Python, serpent, was the earth-dragon of Delphi, always represented
  10241. in sculpture and vase-paintings as a serpent. She resided at the Delphic oracle, which
  10242. existed in the cult center for her mother, Gaia, Earth, Pytho being the place name. The site
  10243. was considered the center of the earth, represented by a stone, the omphalos or navel,
  10244. which Python guarded. Pytho became the enemy of the later Olympian deity Apollo, who
  10245. slew her and remade her former home and the oracle, the most famous in Classical Greece,
  10246. as his own. Many pictures show the serpent Python guarding the Omphalos, the sacred
  10247. navel-stone and mid-point of the earth, which stood in Apollo's temple".
  10248. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10249. 171 "...Cyrus II of Persia..."
  10250. Cyrus the Great (c. 590 BC or 576 — August 529 BC or 530 BC), also known as Cyrus II
  10251. of Persia and Cyrus the Elder, was a Persian emperor. He was the founder of the Persian
  10252. 272
  10253. Empire under the Achaemenid dynasty. The empire expanded under his rule, eventually
  10254. conquering most of Southwest Asia and much of Central Asia, from Egypt and the
  10255. Hellespont in the west to the Indus River in the east, to create the largest state the world
  10256. had yet seen.
  10257. During his twenty-nine year reign, Cyrus fought against some of the greatest states of his
  10258. time, including the Median Empire, the Lydian Empire, and the Neo-Babylonian Empire.
  10259. Cyrus did not venture into Egypt, as he himself died in battle, fighting the Massagetae along
  10260. the Syr Darya in August 530 BC. He was succeeded by his son, Cambyses II, who
  10261. managed to conquer Egypt during his short rule.
  10262. Beyond his nation, Cyrus left a lasting legacy on Jewish religion (through his Edict of
  10263. Restoration), politics, and military strategy, as well as on both Eastern and Western
  10264. civilization.
  10265. The only known example of his religious policy is his treatment of the Jews in Babylon. The
  10266. Bible records that a remnant of the Jewish population returned to the Promised Land from
  10267. Babylon, following an edict from Cyrus to rebuild the temple. This edict is fully reproduced in
  10268. the Book of Ezra. As a result of Cyrus' policies, the Jews honored him as a dignified
  10269. and righteous king. He is the only Gentile to be designated as a messiah, a divinelyappointed king, in the Tanakh (Isaiah 45:1-6).
  10270. Some contemporary Muslim scholars have suggested that the Qur'anic figure of DhulQarnayn is Cyrus the Great. This theory was proposed by Sunni scholar Abul Kalam Azad
  10271. and endorsed by Shi'a scholars Allameh Tabatabaei, in his Tafsir al-Mizan and Makarem
  10272. Shirazi and Sunni scholar Abul Ala Maududi.
  10273. During his reign, Cyrus maintained control over a vast region of conquered kingdoms,
  10274. achieved partly through retaining and expanding Median satrapies. Cyrus' conquests
  10275. began a new era in the age of empire building, where a vast superstate, comprising
  10276. many dozens of countries, races, religions, and languages, were ruled under a single
  10277. administration headed by a central government.
  10278. In 1992, he was ranked #87 on Michael H. Hart's list of the most influential figures in history.
  10279. On December 10, 2003, in her acceptance of the Nobel Peace Prize, Shirin Ebadi evoked
  10280. Cyrus, saying:
  10281. "I am an Iranian, a descendant of Cyrus the Great. This emperor proclaimed at the
  10282. pinnacle of power 2,500 years ago that he 'would not reign over the people if they did
  10283. not wish it.' He promised not to force any person to change his religion and faith and
  10284. guaranteed freedom for all. The Charter of Cyrus the Great should be studied in the
  10285. history of human rights."
  10286. Many of the forefathers of the United States of America sought inspiration from Cyrus the
  10287. Great through works such as Cyropaedia. Thomas Jefferson, for example, had two personal
  10288. copies of the book, "which was a mandatory read for statesmen alongside Machiavelli's The
  10289. Prince."
  10290. In a recent segment of ABC's Nightline with Ted Koppel, Ted Koppel mentioned Cyrus the
  10291. Great, when he was talking about the new documentary film being made in his honor, and
  10292. had this to say of him:
  10293. 273
  10294. “Cyrus the Great is genuinely one of history's towering figures. America's own
  10295. founders such as Thomas Jefferson were influenced by Cyrus the Great in the field of
  10296. Human Rights.”
  10297. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10298. 172 "... unique system of organization used by Cyrus II..."
  10299. "During his reign, Cyrus maintained control over a vast region of conquered kingdoms,
  10300. achieved partly through retaining and expanding Median satrapies. Further organization of
  10301. newly conquered territories into provinces ruled by vassal kings called satraps, was
  10302. continued by Cyrus' successor Darius the Great. Cyrus' empire demanded only tribute
  10303. and conscripts from many parts of the realm.
  10304. Cyrus was distinguished equally as a statesman and as a soldier. By pursuing a
  10305. policy of generosity instead of repression, and by favoring local religions, he was able
  10306. to make his newly conquered subjects into enthusiastic supporters. Due in part to the
  10307. political infrastructure he created, the Achaemenid empire endured long after his demise.
  10308. The rise of Persia under Cyrus's rule had a profound impact on the course of world
  10309. history. Persian philosophy, literature and religion all played dominant roles in world
  10310. events for the next millennia. Despite the Islamic conquest of Persia in the 7th century CE
  10311. by the Islamic Caliphate (Arab Empire), Persia continued to exercise enormous influence
  10312. in the Middle East during the Islamic Golden Age."
  10313. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10314. 173 "... tree of life...."
  10315. "Trees of life appear in folklore, culture and fiction, often relating to immortality. These
  10316. often hold cultural and religious significance to the peoples for whom they appear.
  10317. The Sumerian (or Persian) Tree of Life was represented by a series of nodes and crisscrossing lines. It was an important religious symbol among these peoples, often attended
  10318. to by Eagle Headed Gods & Priests, or the King himself.
  10319. • In Chinese mythology a carving of a Tree of Life depicts a phoenix and a dragon -
  10320. in Chinese mythology the dragon often represents immortality. There is also the
  10321. Taoist story of a tree that produces a peach every three thousand years. The one
  10322. who eats the fruit receives immortality.
  10323. • An archaeological discovery in the 1990s was of a sacrificial pit at Sanxingdui in
  10324. Sechuan, China. Dating from about 1200 BCE, it contained 3 bronze trees, one
  10325. of them 4 meters high. At the base was a dragon, and fruit hanging from the lower
  10326. branches. At the top is a strange bird-like (phoenix) creature with claws. Also from
  10327. Sechuan, from the late Han dynasty (c 25 - 220 CE) is another tree of life. The
  10328. ceramic base is guarded by a horned beast with wings. The leaves of the tree are
  10329. coins and people.
  10330. • In Egyptian mythology, in the Ennead system of Heliopolis, the first couple, apart
  10331. from Shu & Tefnut (moisture & dryness) and Geb & Nuit (earth & sky), are Isis &
  10332. Osiris. They were said to have emerged from the acacia tree of Saosis, which the
  10333. Egyptians considered the tree of life, referring to it as the "tree in which life
  10334. and death are enclosed".
  10335. 274
  10336. • The Egyptian's Holy Sycamore also stood on the threshold of life and death,
  10337. connecting the two worlds.
  10338. • In Germanic paganism, trees played a prominent role, appearing in various
  10339. aspects of surviving texts and possibly in the name of gods.
  10340. • The tree of life appears in Norse religion as Yggdrasil, the world tree, a massive
  10341. tree with extensive lore surrounding it. Perhaps related to the Yggdrasil, accounts
  10342. have survived of Germanic Tribes honouring sacred trees within their societies.
  10343. • In Norse Mythology it is the golden apples from Iðunn's tree that provides
  10344. immortality for the gods.
  10345. • The Tree of Life is mentioned in the Books of Genesis, in which it has the
  10346. potential to grant immortality to Adam and Eve. (However, it is not immediately
  10347. obvious, nor is it universally accepted, that the Book of Genesis account and the
  10348. Book of Revelation account speak of the same Tree of Life.)
  10349. • A Tree of Life, in the form of ten interconnected nodes, is an important part of
  10350. the Kabbalah. As such, it resembles the ten Sephirot.
  10351. • The Tree of Life appears in the Book of Mormon in a revelation to Lehi (see 1 Nephi
  10352. 8:10-12). It is symbolic of the love of God (see 1 Nephi 11:21-23), and sometimes
  10353. understood as salvation and post-mortal existence.
  10354. • Etz Chaim, Hebrew for "Tree of Life", is a common term used in Judaism. The
  10355. expression, found in the Book of Proverbs, is figuratively applied to the Torah itself.
  10356. • Among pre-Columbian Mesoamerican cultures, the concept of "world trees" is a
  10357. prevalent motif in Mesoamerican mythical cosmologies and iconography. World
  10358. trees embodied the four cardinal directions, which represented also the fourfold
  10359. nature of a central world tree, a symbolic axis mundi connecting the planes of
  10360. the Underworld and the sky with that of the terrestrial world.
  10361. • Depictions of world trees, both in their directional and central aspects, are found in
  10362. the art and mythological traditions of cultures such as the Maya, Aztec,
  10363. Izapan, Mixtec, Olmec, and others, dating to at least the Mid/Late Formative
  10364. periods of Mesoamerican chronology.
  10365. • Directional world trees are also associated with the four Year bearers in
  10366. Mesoamerican calendars, and the directional colors and deities.
  10367. • World trees are frequently depicted with birds in their branches, and their roots
  10368. extending into earth or water (sometimes atop a "water-monster", symbolic of
  10369. the underworld).
  10370. • The central world tree has also been interpreted as a representation of the band
  10371. of the Milky Way. Fragment of a bronze helmet from Urartu, with the "Tree of Life"
  10372. depicted.
  10373. • In ancient Armrenia around 13th to 6th century BC, the Tree of Life was a
  10374. religious symbol, drawn onto the exterior walls of fortresses and carved on the
  10375. armour of warriors. The branches of the tree were equally divided on the right and
  10376. left sides of the stem, with each branch having one leaf, and one leaf on the apex of
  10377. the tree. Servants (some winged) stood on each side of the tree with one of their
  10378. hands up as if they are taking care of it. This tree can be found on numerous Urartu
  10379. artifacts, such as paintings on the walls of the Erebuni fortress in Yerevan, Armenia.
  10380. • The symbolism of the tree is mentioned in the 135th hymn of the 10th book of
  10381. Rig-Veda, and in the 15th chapter of Bhagavad-gita (1-4).
  10382. • In the Japanese religion of Shinto, trees were marked with sacred paper
  10383. symbolizing lightning bolts, as trees were thought to be sacred. This was
  10384. 275
  10385. propagated by the fact that after they passed (died), ancestors and animals
  10386. were often portrayed as branches on the tree.
  10387. • The Book of One Thousand and One Nights has a story, 'The Tale of Buluqiya',
  10388. in which the hero searches for immortality and finds a paradise with jewelencrusted trees. Nearby is a Fountain of Youth guarded by Al-Khidr. Unable to
  10389. defeat the guard, Buluqiya has to return empty-handed.
  10390. • The Epic of Gilgamesh is a similar quest for immortality. In Mesopotamian
  10391. mythology, Etana searches for a 'plant of birth' to provide him with a son. This has
  10392. a solid provenance of antiquity, being found in cylinder seals from Akkad (2390 -
  10393. 2249 BCE).
  10394. • One of the earliest forms of ancient Greek religion has its origins associated with
  10395. tree cults.
  10396. In mystical traditions of world religions, sacred texts are read for metaphorical content
  10397. concerning the relationship between states of mind and the external experience of
  10398. reality. As such, the tree is a manifestation/causal symbol - the Tree of Life representing
  10399. the coveted state of eternal aliveness or fulfillment, not immortality of the body or
  10400. soul. In such a state, physical death (which cannot be overcome) is nevertheless a
  10401. choice, and direct experience of the perfect goodness/divine reality/god is not only
  10402. possible, but ever present.
  10403. Once the ego (surface consciousness) experiences shame, having been tempted to absorb
  10404. or believe in duality (such as eating of the Tree of Knowledge of Good and Evil), we are
  10405. protected from living eternally in that limiting, fallen, experience by the cherubim guarding
  10406. the gate of return to paradise. The cherubim are symbolic of the perfect knowledge of
  10407. self or true nature, with the power of purification and return to being."
  10408. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10409. 174 "... the carvings show cone-shaped instruments, and electronic detection devices
  10410. which are stylized as baskets or water buckets, being carried by eagle headed,
  10411. winged beings...."
  10412. EDITOR'S NOTE: Excellent photographs of these can be viewed at the following website:
  10413. http://www.crystalinks.com/godswaterbuckets.html
  10414. 175 "... faravahar..."
  10415. "The faravahar or farohar (transliteration varies) is one of the best-known symbols of
  10416. Zoroastrianism.
  10417. The winged disc has a long history in the art and culture of the ancient Near and Middle
  10418. East. Historically, the symbol is influenced by the "winged sun" hieroglyph appearing on
  10419. Bronze Age royal seals. While the symbol is currently thought to represent a Fravashi (c.
  10420. a guardian angel) and from which it derives its name, what it represented in the minds of
  10421. those who adapted it from earlier Mesopotamian and Egyptian reliefs is unclear. Because
  10422. the symbol first appears on royal inscriptions, it is also thought to represent the 'Divine
  10423. Royal Glory' (khvarenah), or the Fravashi of the king, or represented the divine mandate
  10424. that was the foundation of a king's authority.
  10425. 276
  10426. This relationship between the name of the symbol and the class of divine entities reflects
  10427. the current belief that the symbol represents a Fravashi. However, there is no physical
  10428. description of the Fravashis in the Avesta and in Avestan the entities are
  10429. grammatically feminine.
  10430. Prior to the reign of Darius I, the symbol did not have a human form above the wings.
  10431. In present-day Zoroastrianism, the faravahar is said to be a reminder of one's purpose in
  10432. life, which is to live in such a way that the soul progresses towards frasho-kereti, or
  10433. union with Ahura Mazda."
  10434. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10435. 176 "...Oannes..."
  10436. "Oannes was the name given by the Babylonian writer Berossus in the 3rd century BC to a
  10437. mythical being who taught mankind wisdom. Berossus describes Oannes as having the body
  10438. of a fish but underneath the figure of a man. He is described as dwelling in the Persian Gulf,
  10439. and rising out of the waters in the daytime and furnishing mankind instruction in writing, the
  10440. arts and the various sciences.
  10441. Once thought to be based on the ancient Babylonian god Ea, it is now known that Oannes is
  10442. in fact based on Uan (Adapa) - the first of the seven antediluvian sages or Abgallu (in
  10443. Sumerian Ab=water, Gal=Great, Lu=man), who were sent by Ea to deliver the arts of
  10444. civilization to mankind in ancient Sumerian mythology, at Eridu, the oldest city of Sumer."
  10445. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10446. 177 "Some members of the lost Battalion have been found in the oceans inhabiting the
  10447. bodies of dolphins or whales."
  10448. Dolphins have long played a role in human culture. Dolphins are common in Greek
  10449. mythology and there are many coins from the time which feature a man or boy riding on the
  10450. back of a dolphin. The Ancient Greeks treated them with welcome; a ship spotting dolphins
  10451. riding in their wake was considered a good omen for a smooth voyage. Dolphins also seem
  10452. to have been important to the Minoans, judging by artistic evidence from the ruined
  10453. palace at Knossos. In Hindu mythology, the Ganges River Dolphin is associated with
  10454. Ganga, the deity of the Ganges river.
  10455. Dolphins are often regarded as one of Earth's most intelligent animals, though it is hard
  10456. to say just how intelligent dolphins are, as comparisons of species' relative intelligence
  10457. are complicated by differences in sensory apparatus, response modes, and nature of
  10458. cognition. Furthermore, the difficulty and expense of doing experimental work with large
  10459. aquatics means that some tests which could yield meaningful results still have not been
  10460. carried out, or have been carried out with inadequate sample size and methodology. Dolphin
  10461. behavior has been studied extensively by humans however, both in captivity and in the wild."
  10462. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10463. 178 "... The Anunnaki..."
  10464. "The Anunnaki are a group of Sumerian and Akkadian deities related to, and in some cases
  10465. overlapping with, the Annuna (the 'Fifty Great Gods') and the Igigi (minor gods),
  10466. 277
  10467. meaning something to the effect of 'those of royal blood' or 'princely offspring' or
  10468. "heaven and earth".
  10469. The Annunaki appear in the Babylonian creation myth, Enuma Elish. In the late version
  10470. magnifying Marduk, after the creation of mankind, Marduk divides the Anunnaki and
  10471. assigns them to their proper stations, three hundred in heaven, three hundred on the
  10472. earth. The Anunnaki were the High Council of the Gods, and Anu's companions. They
  10473. were distributed through the Earth and the Underworld."
  10474. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10475. 179 "... flying on a "Winged-Disc". "
  10476. "The winged sun is a symbol associated with divinity, royalty and power in the Ancient
  10477. Near East (Egypt, Mesopotamia, Anatolia, and Persia). The symbol has also been found in
  10478. the records of ancient cultures residing in various regions of South America as well as
  10479. Australia.
  10480. In Ancient Egypt, the symbol is attested from the Old Kingdom (Sneferu, 26th century BC),
  10481. often flanked on either side with a uraeus. In early Egyptian religion, the symbol Behedeti
  10482. represented Horus of Edfu, later identified with Ra-Harachte. It is sometimes depicted on the
  10483. neck of Apis, the bull of Ptah. As time passed (according to interpretation) all of the
  10484. subordinated gods of Egypt were considered to be aspects of the sun god, including e.g.
  10485. Khepri.
  10486. From roughly 2000 BC, the symbol spread to the Levant and to Mesopotamia. It appears in
  10487. reliefs with Assyrian rulers and in Hieroglyphic Anatolian as a symbol for royalty,
  10488. transcribed as literally, "his own self, the Sun". From ca. the 8th century BC, it appears on
  10489. Hebrew seals, by now as a generic symbol for "power". The symbol evolved into the
  10490. Faravahar (the "visual aspect of Ahura Mazda") in Zoroastrian Persia."
  10491. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10492. 180 "... he established a high standard of ethical, and humanitarian philosophy..."
  10493. "Up to the time of the conquest of Media by Cyrus the Great, Median emperors ruled their
  10494. conquered territories as provinces, through client kings and governors. One of the keys to
  10495. the Achaemenid success (as with most enduring great empires) was their open
  10496. attitude to the culture and religion of the conquered people, so ironically the Persian
  10497. culture was the one most affected as the Great King endeavored to melt elements
  10498. from all his subjects into a new imperial style."
  10499. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10500. 181 "... Teotihuacan..."
  10501. "Several authors, including Zecharia Sitchin and Graham Hancock, have repeated each
  10502. other’s argument that there are major correspondences between the pyramids of Gizeh and
  10503. those of Teotihuacan. The Pyramid of the Sun is 225m wide and 65 m high, constructed out
  10504. of five successive layers of mud. Its ascent is via 242 stairs. The floor plan is rather close to
  10505. that of the Pyramid of Khufu at Gizeh. The Pyramid of the Moon is much smaller: 42 m high
  10506. and 150 m wide, yet its summit is as high as that of Sun, because it sits on the site’s highest
  10507. 278
  10508. point. This feature can also be seen in Gizeh, where Khufu’s and Khafre’s pyramid reach an
  10509. equal height, even though one is taller than the other.
  10510. The most obvious comparison, however, is that the layout of both the three pyramids at
  10511. Gizeh and the three main structures of Teotihuacan represent the Belt of Orion. The Pyramid
  10512. of the Moon compares with the smallest pyramid on the plateau, the Sun Pyramid with
  10513. Khafre and the Temple of Quetzalcoatl, which has the largest ground plan, but never was
  10514. built into a full pyramid, compares with that of Khufu.
  10515. Though there are individual differences, I would suggest that the same ingredients have
  10516. been used, answering to the same general ground plan: to represent the Belt of Orion, which
  10517. in ancient Egypt was the symbol of Horus (not Osiris as Adrian Gilbert and Robert Bauval
  10518. have argued) and in the Mayan culture was part of the creation mythology. Local legends
  10519. stated that the complex was built to transform men into gods. For sure, an “alien space
  10520. station” could be an interpretation of that, but it is clear that the answer needs to be located
  10521. in the domain of religion.
  10522. On May 17, ca. 150 AD, the Pleiades rose just before the Sun in the predawn skies. This
  10523. synchronization, known as the heliacal rising of the Pleiades, only lasted approx. 100 year. It
  10524. is now suggested that it was this event that was at the origin of Teotihuacan. The sun and
  10525. the Pleiades are important in the religious rituals. The Sun-Pleiades zenith conjunction
  10526. marked what is known as the New Fire ceremony. Bernardino de Sahugun’s Aztec
  10527. informants stated that the ceremony occurred at the end of every 52 year Calendar Round.
  10528. The Aztecs and their predecessors had carefully observed the Pleiades, and on the
  10529. expected night they were supposed to pass through the zenith, precisely at midnight, when
  10530. the ceremony was performed."
  10531. -- Reference: http://www.philipcoppens.com/orionimage.html
  10532. 182 "... al-Hassan ibn-al-Sabbah..."
  10533. "The story is that al-Hassan ibn-al-Sabbah used hashish to enlist the aid of young men into
  10534. his private army known as assassins (aschishin - or follower of Hassan). One of the primary
  10535. sources for this information comes from the writings of Marco Polo who visited the area in
  10536. 1273, almost 150 years after the reign of Al-Hassan.
  10537. There are many conflicting facts and sources for this information.
  10538. In the early 11th century, al-Hassan became the head of the Persian sect of the Ismailians, a
  10539. rather obscure party of fanatics which gained local power under his guidance. In 1090, alHassan and his followers seized the castle of Alamut, in the province of Rudbar, which lies in
  10540. the mountainous region south of the Caspian Sea. It was from this mountain home that he
  10541. obtained evil celebrity among the Crusaders as "the old man of the mountains", and spread
  10542. terror through the Mohammedan world.
  10543. In the account given by Marco Polo in "The Adventures [or Travels] of Marco Polo" it is told
  10544. that "The Old Man kept at his court such boys of twelve years old as seemed to him destined
  10545. to become courageous men. When the Old Man sent them into the garden in groups of four,
  10546. ten or twenty, he gave them hashish to drink. They slept for three days, then they were
  10547. carried sleeping into the garden where he had them awakened.
  10548. 279
  10549. "When these young men woke, and found themselves in the garden with all these marvelous
  10550. things, they truly believed themselves to be in paradise. And these damsels were always
  10551. with them in songs and great entertainments; they; received everything they asked for, so
  10552. that they would never have left that garden of their own will."
  10553. -- Reference: http://www.alamut.com/subj/ideologies/alamut/etymolAss.html
  10554. 183 "... Knights Templar..."
  10555. "The Poor Fellow-Soldiers of Christ and of the Temple of Solomon commonly known as
  10556. the Knights Templar were among the most famous of the Western Christian military orders.
  10557. The organization existed for approximately two centuries in the Middle Ages. It was founded
  10558. in the aftermath of the First Crusade of 1096 to ensure the safety of the many Europeans
  10559. who made the pilgrimage to Jerusalem after its conquest.
  10560. Around 1119, two veterans of the First Crusade, the French knight Hugues de Payens and
  10561. his relative Godfrey de Saint-Omer, proposed the creation of a monastic order for the
  10562. protection of the pilgrims. King Baldwin II of Jerusalem agreed to their request, and gave
  10563. them space for a headquarters on the Temple Mount, in the captured Al Aqsa Mosque. The
  10564. Temple Mount had a mystique, because it was above what was believed to be the ruins of
  10565. the Temple of Solomon. The Crusaders therefore referred to the Al Aqsa Mosque as
  10566. Solomon's Temple, and it was from this location that the Order took the name of Poor
  10567. Knights of Christ and the Temple of Solomon, or "Templar" knights. The Order, with about
  10568. nine knights, had few financial resources and relied on donations to survive. Their emblem
  10569. was of two knights riding on a single horse, emphasizing the Order's poverty.
  10570. The Templars' impoverished status did not last long. They had a powerful advocate in
  10571. Bernard of Clairvaux, a leading Church figure and a nephew of one of the founding knights.
  10572. He spoke and wrote persuasively on their behalf, and in 1129 at the Council of Troyes, the
  10573. Order was officially endorsed by the Church. With this formal blessing, the Templars became
  10574. a favored charity across Europe, receiving money, land, businesses, and noble-born sons
  10575. from families who were eager to help with the fight in the Holy Land. Another major benefit
  10576. came in 1139, when Pope Innocent II's papal bull Omne Datum Optimum exempted the
  10577. Order from obedience to local laws. This ruling meant that the Templars could pass freely
  10578. through all borders, were not required to pay any taxes, and were exempt from all
  10579. authority except that of the Pope.
  10580. With its clear mission and ample resources, the Order grew rapidly. Templars were often the
  10581. advance force in key battles of the Crusades, as the knights on their heavily armed
  10582. warhorses would set out to gallop full speed at the enemy, in an attempt to break opposition
  10583. lines. One of their most famous victories was in 1177 during the Battle of Montgisard, where
  10584. some 500 Templar knights helped to defeat Saladin's army of more than 26,000 soldiers.
  10585. Although the primary mission of the Order was military, relatively few members were
  10586. combatants. The others acted in support positions to assist the knights and to
  10587. manage the financial infrastructure. The Templar Order, though its members were
  10588. sworn to individual poverty, was given control of wealth beyond direct donations. A
  10589. nobleman who was interested in participating in the Crusades might place all his
  10590. assets under Templar management while he was away. Accumulating wealth in this
  10591. manner across Europe and the Outremer, the Order in 1150 began generating letters of
  10592. credit for pilgrims journeying to the Holy Land: pilgrims deposited their valuables with a
  10593. local Templar preceptory before embarking, received an encrypted document indicating
  10594. 280
  10595. the value of their deposit, then used that document upon arrival in the Holy Land to retrieve
  10596. their funds. This innovative arrangement may have been the first formal system to
  10597. support the use of cheques; it improved the safety of pilgrims by making them less
  10598. attractive targets for thieves, and also contributed to the Templar coffers.
  10599. Based on this mix of donations and business dealing, the Templar established financial
  10600. networks across the whole of Christendom. They acquired large tracts of land, both in
  10601. Europe and the Middle East; they bought and managed farms and vineyards; they built
  10602. churches and castles; they were involved in manufacturing, import and export; they had their
  10603. own fleet of ships; and at one point they even owned the entire island of Cyrprus. The
  10604. Templar arguably qualifies as the world's first multinational corporation."
  10605. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10606. 184 " The Knights Templar were disbanded by King Philip IV of France, who was
  10607. deeply in debt to the Order."
  10608. "King Philip was already deeply in debt to the Templars from his war with the English and
  10609. decided to seize upon the rumors for his own purposes. He began pressuring the Church to
  10610. take action against the Order, as a way of freeing himself from his debts.
  10611. On Friday October 13, 1307 (a date linked with the origin of the Friday the 13th
  10612. superstition), Philip ordered de Molay and scores of other French Templars to be
  10613. simultaneously arrested. The Templars were charged with numerous heresies and tortured
  10614. to extract false confessions of blasphemy. The confessions, despite having been obtained
  10615. under duress, caused a scandal in Paris. After more bullying from Philip, Pope Clement then
  10616. issued the bull Pastoralis Praeeminentiae on November 22, 1307, which instructed all
  10617. Christian monarchs in Europe to arrest all Templars and seize their assets.
  10618. Pope Clement called for papal hearings to determine the Templars' guilt or innocence, and
  10619. once freed of the Inquisitors' torture, many Templars recanted their confessions. Some had
  10620. sufficient legal experience to defend themselves in the trials, but in 1310 Philip blocked this
  10621. attempt, using the previously forced confessions to have dozens of Templars burned at the
  10622. stake in Paris.
  10623. With the last of the Order's leaders gone, the remaining Templars around Europe were
  10624. either arrested and tried under the Papal investigation (with virtually none convicted),
  10625. absorbed into other military orders such as the Knights Hospitaller, or pensioned and
  10626. allowed to live out their days peacefully. Some may have fled to other territories outside
  10627. Papal control, such as excommunicated Scotland or to Switzerland.
  10628. It is estimated that at the Order's peak there were between 15,000 and 20,000
  10629. Templars, of whom about a tenth were actual knights."
  10630. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10631. 185 "The Templars fled to Switzerland where they established an international banking
  10632. system..."
  10633. 281
  10634. "Banking in Switzerland is characterized by stability, privacy and protection of clients'
  10635. assets and information. The country's tradition of bank secrecy, which dates to the
  10636. Middle Ages.
  10637. According to the CIA World Factbook, Switzerland is "a major international financial
  10638. centre vulnerable to the layering and integration stages of money laundering; despite
  10639. significant legislation and reporting requirements, secrecy rules persist and
  10640. nonresidents are permitted to conduct business through offshore entities and various
  10641. intermediaries..."
  10642. In 1998, an international panel of historians released a study that claimed a significant
  10643. amount of gold had been stolen from Holocaust victims, as well as the treasuries of
  10644. conquered countries, and deposited in the Swiss National Bank. The panel found that,
  10645. despite evidence of theft and wrongful acquisition of the gold, the SNB continued to accept
  10646. the deposits. In 2000, a United States District Court judge approved a US$1.85 billion
  10647. settlement between several Swiss banks and Holocaust victims."
  10648. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10649. 186 "A primary influence of "Old Empire" operatives is on international bankers..."
  10650. EDITOR'S NOTE: The most famous example of this kind of activity is the "Bilderberg
  10651. Conference". See the following reference to this organization from Wikipedia.org:
  10652. "The Bilderberg Group or Bilderberg conference is an unofficial annual invitation-only
  10653. conference of around 130 guests, most of whom are persons of influence in the fields of
  10654. business, media and politics.
  10655. The elite group meets annually at luxury hotels or resorts throughout the world — normally
  10656. in Europe — and once every four years in the United States or Canada. It has an office in
  10657. Leiden, South Holland, Netherlands. The 2007 conference took place from May 31 to June 3
  10658. at the Ritz-Carlton Hotel in Istanbul, Turkey.
  10659. Attendees of Bilderberg include central bankers, defense experts, mass media press
  10660. barons, government ministers, prime ministers, royalty, international financiers and
  10661. political leaders from Europe and North America.
  10662. Some of the Western world's leading financiers and foreign policy strategists attend
  10663. Bilderberg. Donald Rumsfeld is an active Bilderberger, as is Peter Sutherland from Ireland,
  10664. a former European Union commissioner and chairman of Goldman Sachs and of British
  10665. Petroleum. Rumsfeld and Sutherland served together in 2000 on the board of the
  10666. Swedish/Swiss engineering company ABB. Former U.S. Deputy Defense Secretary and
  10667. former World Bank head Paul Wolfowitz is also a member. The group's current chairman
  10668. is Etienne Davignon, the Belgian businessman and politician.
  10669. Critics say the Bilderberg Group promotes the careers of politicians whose views are
  10670. representative of the interests of multinational corporations, at the expense of
  10671. democracy.
  10672. The group's secrecy and its connections to power elites has provided fodder for many who
  10673. believe that the group is part of a conspiracy to create a New World Order.
  10674. 282
  10675. Radio host Alex Jones promotes the theory that the group intends to dissolve the
  10676. sovereignty of the United States and other countries into a supra-national structure similar to
  10677. the European Union. Madrid-based author Daniel Estulin claims that the long-term purpose
  10678. of Bilderberg is to "Build a One-World Empire". He states the group "is not the end but the
  10679. means to a future One World Government". Another opponent of the group, Tony Gosling,
  10680. has registered the domain name Bilderberg.org, largely hosting material critical of
  10681. Bilderberg.
  10682. Reporter Jonathan Duffy, writing in BBC News Online Magazine states "In the void created
  10683. by such aloofness, an extraordinary conspiracy theory has grown up around the group that
  10684. alleges the fate of the world is largely decided by Bilderberg."
  10685. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10686. 187 " A primary influence of "Old Empire" operatives on international bankers is to act
  10687. as an unseen, non-combatant provocateur who covertly promote and finance
  10688. weapons and warfare..."
  10689. (EDITOR'S NOTE: An excellent modern example of this activity has been documented in
  10690. the World War II financing of Nazis by (Prescott Bush, Director of Union Banking
  10691. Corp.) the patriarch of President George Bush and his son, President George W.
  10692. Bush.:
  10693. "On October 20, 1942, the U.S. government ordered the seizure of Nazi German banking
  10694. operations in New York City that were being conducted by Prescott Bush, the father of
  10695. former president George Herbert Walker Bush.
  10696. Harriman Bank was the main Wall Street connection for several German companies and the
  10697. varied U.S. financial interests of Fritz Thyssen. Thyssen had been an early financial backer
  10698. of the Nazi party until 1938, but by 1939 had fled Germany and was bitterly denouncing
  10699. Hitler. He was later jailed by the Nazis for his opposition to the regime. Business
  10700. transactions with Germany were not illegal when Hitler declared war on the United States on
  10701. December 11, 1941, but, six days after the attack on Pearl Harbor, President Franklin
  10702. Delano Roosevelt signed the Trading With the Enemy Act after it had been made public that
  10703. U.S. companies were doing business with the declared enemy of the United States.
  10704. On October 20, 1942, the U.S. government ordered the seizure of German banking
  10705. operations in New York City. Roosevelt's Alien Property Custodian, Leo T. Crowley, signed
  10706. Vesting Order Number 248 seizing Bush's property under the Trading with the Enemy Act.
  10707. The order cited only the Union Banking Corporation (UBC), of which Bush was a director
  10708. and held one share, which had connections with a Dutch bank owned by Thyssen.
  10709. Fox News has reported that recently declassified material reveals that the 4,000 Union
  10710. Banking shares owned by the Dutch bank were registered in the names of the seven U.S.
  10711. directors, according to a document signed by Homer Jones, chief of the division of
  10712. investigation and research of the Office of Alien Property Custodian, a World War II-era
  10713. agency. By 1941 Thyssen no longer had control over his banking empire, which was in the
  10714. hands of the Nazi government.
  10715. • E. Roland Harriman – 3991 shares (managed and under voting control of
  10716. Prescott Bush)
  10717. • Cornelis Lievense – 4 shares (He was the New York banker of the Nazi Party)
  10718. 283
  10719. • Harold D. Pennington – 1 share (Employed by Prescott Bush at Brown Brothers
  10720. Harriman)
  10721. • Ray Morris – 1 share (a business partner of the Bush and Harriman families)
  10722. • Prescott S. Bush – 1 share (director of UBC, which was co-founded and
  10723. sponsored by his father-in-law George Walker; senior managing partner for E.
  10724. Roland Harriman and Averell Harriman)
  10725. • H.J. Kouwenhoven – 1 share (organized UBC for Von Thyssen, managed UBC in
  10726. Nazi occupied Netherlands)
  10727. • Johann G. Groeninger – 1 share (German Industrial Executive, a not unimportant
  10728. member of the Nazi party)
  10729. Both E. Roland Harriman and Prescott Bush were members of Skull and Bones as well
  10730. as being members of the board of Brown Brothers Harriman & Co..
  10731. The Harriman business interests seized under the act in October and November 1942
  10732. included:
  10733. • Union Banking Corporation (UBC) (for Thyssen and Brown Brothers Harriman). The
  10734. President of UBC at that time was George Herbert Walker, Bush's father-in-law.
  10735. • Dutch-American Trading Corporation (with Harriman)
  10736. • the Seamless Steel Equipment Corporation (with Harriman)
  10737. • Silesian-American Corporation (this company was partially owned by a German
  10738. entity; during the war the Germans tried to take full control of Silesian-American. In
  10739. response to that, the American government seized German owned minority shares
  10740. in the company, leaving the U.S. partners to carry on the business.)
  10741. The assets were held by the government for the duration of the war, then returned afterward.
  10742. UBC was dissolved in 1951. Bush was on the board of directors of UBC and held one
  10743. share in the company. For it, he was reimbursed $1,500,000.(a huge amount of money
  10744. at the time - but there is no documentary evidence to support this claim) These
  10745. supposed assets were later used to launch Bush family investments in the Texas
  10746. energy industry.
  10747. Toby Rogers has claimed that Bush's connections to Silesian businesses (with Thyssen and
  10748. Flick) make him complicit with the mining operations in Nazi-occupied Poland which used
  10749. slave labor out of Oświęcim, where the Auschwitz concentration camp was later constructed.
  10750. The New York Herald-Tribune referred to Thyssen as "Hitler's Angel" and mentioned
  10751. Bush as an employee of the investment banking firm Thyssen used in the United
  10752. States. Some records in the National Archives, including the Harriman papers, document
  10753. the continued relationship of Brown Brothers Harriman with Thyssen and some of his
  10754. German investments up until his 1951 death. Investigator John Loftus has said, "As a
  10755. former federal prosecutor, I would make a case for Prescott Bush, his father-in-law
  10756. (George Walker) and Averell Harriman [to be prosecuted] for giving aid and comfort to
  10757. the enemy. They remained on the boards of these companies knowing that they were
  10758. of financial benefit to the nation of Germany."
  10759. Two former slave laborers from Poland have filed suit in London against the
  10760. government of the United States and the heirs of Prescott Bush in the amount of $40
  10761. billion. A class-action lawsuit filed in the U.S. in 2001 was dismissed based on the principle
  10762. of state sovereignty.
  10763. 284
  10764. Prescott Bush connection to the Merchants of Death industry came from his father Samuel
  10765. P. Bush who worked for Buckeye Steel Castings Company which manufactured railway
  10766. parts for the railroad industry and barrels for guns and casings for shells for Remington
  10767. Arms."
  10768. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10769. There are also many well documented books which detail the relationship between
  10770. Swiss Banks the Nazi war machine:
  10771. Germany and the Second World War: Volume VI: The Global War (Germany and the
  10772. Second World War by Horst Boog, Werner Rahn, and Reinhard Stumpf
  10773. The complicity of the Swiss banks and government in funding the Nazi regime was
  10774. known at the end of World War II. Read the details on the following website:
  10775. http://www.religioustolerance.org/holo_apol.htm
  10776. "The Secret War Against the Jews, Unholy Trinity (By Mark Aarons, John Loftus) tells
  10777. one of the darkest tales of World War II. After the war had ended, fearing a surge of Soviet
  10778. growth, the Papacy entered into an espionage alliance with British and American intelligence
  10779. agents. Subsuming justice to the nascent Cold War ideology, these three powers ferreted
  10780. Nazi criminals out of Europe so that they could be used in the supposedly greater fight
  10781. against Communism. The Vatica's Nazi smuggling network was penetrated by Prince Anton
  10782. Turkul, the great Soviet double agent who turned the operations into a sting for his masters
  10783. in the Kremlin. Unholy Trinity exposes Turkul's "Red Nazi" operation for the first time and
  10784. shows how Kim Philby, the infamous British-Soviet double agent, and his network were
  10785. nearly sacrificed to preserve Turkul's Vatican operation. Exploring the Vatican's role in aiding
  10786. Nazi criminals to escape punishment for their crimes, this book, originally published in 1991,
  10787. first revealed the Vatican--Swiss bank connection to Nazi gold and documented the hidden
  10788. links to Western investors in Nazi Germany. Since 1991, major revelations about the role of
  10789. Swiss banks have confirmed Unholy Trinity's expose of the flight of the Nazi's stolen
  10790. treasures; the new introduction and new final chapters, written by Aarons and Loftus for this
  10791. edition, bring the book completely up to date and show how the media have missed the vital
  10792. Vatican connection in the Swiss-bank story. Among other things, the authors demonstrate
  10793. that U.S. and British code-breakers were fully aware of the Holocaust as early as 1941 but
  10794. lied to the Western press; that the code-breakers bugged the Swiss banks and then buried
  10795. secrets of Nazi gold transfers to protect U.S. intelligence chief Allen Dulles; and that the
  10796. Australian, British, and Canadian governments are still waging a campaign to keep their
  10797. citizens ignorant about the Nazi war criminals living among them. Covers all these topics and
  10798. more, Unholy Trinity is the definitive history of a series of profoundly disturbing cover-ups
  10799. involving the Holy See, Allen Dulles, the Swiss banks, and the remnants of the Third Reich."
  10800. -- Reference:
  10801. http://books.google.com/books?id=HXxew8zc1GQC&vq=secret+war+funding,+Swiss+Banks
  10802. &source=gbs_summary_s&cad=0
  10803. Otto Nathan (1893-1987) was an economist who taught at Princeton University (1933-35),
  10804. New York University (1935-42), Vassar College (1942-44), and Howard University (1946-
  10805. 52). Dr. Nathan was a close friend of Albert Einstein for many years and was designated by
  10806. Einstein as co-trustee of his literary estate with Helen Dukas. Otto Nathan was the author of
  10807. the following books which detail the Swiss Banks involvement in WW II:
  10808. 285
  10809. Nazi War Finance and Banking Our Economy in War. Cambridge, Massachusetts:
  10810. National Bureau of Economic Research, 1944. Paperback: ASIN B000J0VXBG.
  10811. The Nazi Economic System: Germany's Mobilization for War. New York: Russell &
  10812. Russell, 1971. Hardcover textbook: ISBN 0-846-21501-2, ISBN 978-0-84621-501-1"
  10813. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10814. 188 "...Bloodletting..."
  10815. "Bloodletting is one of the oldest medical practices, having been practiced among diverse
  10816. ancient peoples, including the Mesopotamians, the Egyptians, the Greeks, the Mayans, and
  10817. the Aztecs. In Greece, bloodletting was in use around the time of Hippocrates, who mentions
  10818. bloodletting but in general relied on dietary techniques. Erasistratus, however, theorized that
  10819. many diseases were caused by plethoras, or overabundances, in the blood, and advised
  10820. that these plethoras be treated, initially, by exercise, sweating, reduced food intake, and
  10821. vomiting. Herophilus advocated bloodletting. Archagathus, one of the first Greek physicians
  10822. to practice in Rome, practiced bloodletting extensively and gained a most sanguinary
  10823. reputation.
  10824. The popularity of bloodletting in Greece was reinforced by the ideas of Galen, after he
  10825. discovered the veins and arteries were filled with blood, not air as was commonly believed at
  10826. the time. There were two key concepts in his system of bloodletting. The first was that blood
  10827. was created and then used up, it did not circulate and so it could 'stagnate' in the
  10828. extremities. The second was that humoral balance was the basis of illness or health, the four
  10829. humours being blood, phlegm, black bile, and yellow bile, relating to the four Greek classical
  10830. elements of air, water, earth and fire. Galen believed that blood was the dominant humour
  10831. and the one in most need of control. In order to balance the humours, a physician would
  10832. either remove 'excess' blood (plethora) from the patient or give them an emetic to induce
  10833. vomiting, or a diuretic to induce urination.
  10834. Bloodletting was especially popular in the young United States of America, where Benjamin
  10835. Rush (a signatory of the Declaration of Independence) saw the state of the arteries as the
  10836. key to disease, recommending levels of blood-letting that were high, even for the time.
  10837. George Washington was treated in this manner following a horseback riding accident:
  10838. almost 4 pounds (1.7 litres) of blood was withdrawn, contributing to his death by throat
  10839. infection in 1799."
  10840. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10841. 189 "... you will find "evolution" mentioned in the ancient Vedic Hymns..."
  10842. "The Vedas are very exhaustive scriptures. Each Veda contains several sections and
  10843. thousands of hymns. Some of the Vedic hymns, especially the hymns of the Rig Veda, are
  10844. considered to be at least 6000-8000 years old.
  10845. The Vedas are believed to be revealed scriptures, because they are considered to be
  10846. divine in origin. Since they were not written by any human beings but were only heard
  10847. in deep meditative states, they are commonly referred as srutis or those that were heard."
  10848. -- Reference: http://www.hinduwebsite.com/vedicsection/vedichymns.asp
  10849. 286
  10850. "The Vedas (Sanskrit véda वेद "knowledge") are a large corpus of texts originating in Ancient
  10851. India. They form the oldest layer of Sanskrit literature and the oldest sacred texts of
  10852. Hinduism. According to Hindu tradition, the Vedas are "not human compositions", being
  10853. supposed to have been directly revealed, and thus are called śruti ("what is heard"). Vedic
  10854. mantras are recited at Hindu prayers, religious functions and other auspicious occasions.
  10855. Philosophies and sects that developed in the Indian subcontinent have taken differing
  10856. positions on the Vedas. Schools of Indian philosophy which cite the Vedas as their scriptural
  10857. authority are classified as "orthodox" (āstika). Other traditions, notably Buddhism and
  10858. Jainism, though they are (like the vedanta) similarly concerned with liberation did not regard
  10859. the Vedas as divine ordinances but rather human expositions of the sphere of higher
  10860. spiritual knowledge, hence not sacrosanct."
  10861. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10862. 190 "... the IS-BE who wrote a fictitious story one dark and stormy night..."
  10863. Frankenstein: or, The Modern Prometheus is a novel written by the British author Mary
  10864. Shelley. Shelley wrote the novel when she was 18 years old. The first edition was
  10865. published anonymously in London in 1818. Shelley's name appears on the revised third
  10866. edition, published in 1831. The title of the novel refers to a scientist, Victor Frankenstein,
  10867. who learns how to create life and creates a being in the likeness of man, but larger than
  10868. average and more powerful.
  10869. The story has had an influence across literature and popular culture and spawned a
  10870. complete genre of horror stories and films. It is arguably considered the first fully
  10871. realized science fiction novel. The novel raises many issues that can be linked to
  10872. today's society.
  10873. During the rainy summer of 1816, the "Year Without a Summer," the world was locked
  10874. in a long cold volcanic winter caused by the eruption of Mount Tambora in 1815. Mary
  10875. Wollstonecraft Godwin, age 19, and her lover (and later husband) Percy Bysshe Shelley,
  10876. visited Lord Byron at the Villa Diodati by Lake Geneva in Switzerland. The weather was
  10877. consistently too cold and dreary that summer to enjoy the outdoor holiday activities they had
  10878. planned, so the group retired indoors until almost dawn talking about science and the
  10879. supernatural. After reading Fantasmagoriana, an anthology of German ghost stories,
  10880. they challenged one another to each compose a story of their own, the contest being
  10881. won by whoever wrote the scariest tale.
  10882. Mary conceived an idea after she fell into a waking dream or nightmare during which
  10883. she saw "the pale student of unhallowed arts kneeling beside the thing he had put
  10884. together." Byron managed to write just a fragment based on the vampire legends he heard
  10885. while travelling the Balkans, and from this Polidori created The Vampyre (1819), the
  10886. progenitor of the romantic vampire literary genre. Two legendary horror tales originated from
  10887. this one circumstance.
  10888. Radu Florescu, in his book In Search of Frankenstein, argued that Mary and Percy Shelley
  10889. visited Castle Frankenstein on their way to Switzerland, near Darmstadt along the Rhine,
  10890. where a notorious alchemist named Konrad Dippel had experimented with human bodies."
  10891. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10892. 287
  10893. 191 "...Grimm's Fairy Tales..."
  10894. "The world famous collection of German origin fairy tales Kinder- und Hausmärchen (KHM;
  10895. English: Children's and Household Tales), commonly known as Grimm's Fairy Tales, was
  10896. first published in 1812 by Jacob and Wilhelm Grimm, the Brothers Grimm. The brothers
  10897. developed an interest in ancient fairy tales. They started to collect and write down tales that
  10898. they alleged had been handed down for generations. On December 20, 1812 they published
  10899. the first volume of the first edition, containing 86 stories; the second volume of 70 stories
  10900. followed in 1814.
  10901. The first volumes were much criticized because, although they were called "Children's
  10902. Tales", they were not regarded as suitable for children, both for the scholarly information
  10903. included and the subject matter. Many changes through the editions—such as turning the
  10904. wicked mother of the first edition in Snow White and Hansel and Gretel to a stepmother,
  10905. were probably made with an eye to such suitability. They removed sexual references, such
  10906. as Rapunzel's betraying the prince by asking why her clothing no longer fit, and so revealing
  10907. her pregnancy, but in many respects, violence, particularly when punishing villains, was
  10908. increased.
  10909. The influence of these books was widespread. It ranks behind only the Bible and the works
  10910. of William Shakespeare in sales. W. H. Auden praised it, during World War II, as one of the
  10911. founding works of Western culture. The tales themselves have been put to many uses. The
  10912. Nazis praised them as folkish tales showing children with sound racial instincts seeking
  10913. racially pure marriage partners, and so strongly that the Allied forces warned against them.
  10914. Writers about the Holocaust have combined the tales with their memoirs."
  10915. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10916. 192 "...Hinduism..."
  10917. "Hinduism is often referred to as Sanātana Dharma, a Sanskrit phrase meaning "the eternal
  10918. path" or "the eternal law".
  10919. Hinduism is the world's oldest major religion that is still practiced. Its earliest origins can be
  10920. traced to the ancient Vedic civilization. A conglomerate of diverse beliefs and traditions,
  10921. Hinduism has no single founder. It is the world's third largest religion following Christianity
  10922. and Islam, with approximately a billion adherents, of whom about 905 million live in India and
  10923. Nepal.
  10924. Hinduism is an extremely diverse religion. Although some tenets of the faith are accepted by
  10925. most Hindus, scholars have found it difficult to identify any doctrines with universal
  10926. acceptance among all denominations. Prominent themes in Hindu beliefs include Dharma
  10927. (ethics/duties), Samsāra (The continuing cycle of birth, life, death and rebirth), Karma (action
  10928. and subsequent reaction), Moksha (liberation from samsara), and the various Yogas (paths
  10929. or practices).
  10930. Hinduism is a diverse system of thought with beliefs spanning monotheism, polytheism,
  10931. panentheism, pantheism, monism and atheism. It is sometimes referred to as henotheistic
  10932. (devotion to a single God while accepting the existence of other gods), but any such term is
  10933. an oversimplification of the complexities and variations of belief.
  10934. 288
  10935. Most Hindus believe that the spirit or soul—the true "self" of every person, called the
  10936. ātman—is eternal."
  10937. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10938. 193 "... Arcadia Regeneration Company".
  10939. "One of the birthplaces reported for Zeus is Mount Lycaeum in Arcadia. Lycaon, a
  10940. cannibalistic Pelasgian king, was transformed into a werewolf by Zeus. Lycaon's daughter
  10941. was Callisto. It was also said to have been the birthplace of Zeus' son, Hermes.
  10942. Arcadia remained a rustic, secluded area, and its inhabitants became proverbial as primitive
  10943. herdsmen leading simple pastoral unsophisticated yet happy lives, to the point that Arcadia
  10944. may refer to some imaginary idyllic paradise.
  10945. The Latin phrase Et in Arcadia ego which is usually interpreted to mean "I am also in
  10946. Arcadia" or "I am even in Arcadia" is an example of memento mori, a cautionary
  10947. reminder of the transitory nature of life and the inevitability of death. The phrase is
  10948. most often associated with a 1647 painting by Nicolas Poussin, also known as "The
  10949. Arcadian Shepherds". In the painting the phrase appears as an inscription on a tomb
  10950. discovered by youthful figures in classical garb. It has been suggested that the phrase is an
  10951. anagram for the Latin phrase "I! Tego arcana Dei", which translates to "Begone! I keep
  10952. God's secrets."
  10953. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10954. 194 "... the majority of basic genetic material is common to all species..."
  10955. "The Genetic Core of the Universal Ancestor
  10956. J. Kirk Harris, Scott T. Kelley,1
  10957. George B. Spiegelman,3
  10958. and Norman R. Pace1
  10959. 1 Department of Molecular, Cellular and Developmental Biology, University of Colorado,
  10960. Boulder, Colorado 80309-0347, USA; 2
  10961. Graduate Group in Microbiology, University of
  10962. California, Berkeley, Berkeley, California 94720, USA; 3 Department of Microbiology and
  10963. Immunology, University of British Columbia, Vancouver, British Columbia, Canada V6T 1Z3
  10964. Molecular analysis of conserved sequences in the ribosomal RNAs of modern organisms
  10965. reveals a three-domain phylogeny that converges in a universal ancestor for all life.
  10966. We used the Clusters of Orthologous Groups database and information from published
  10967. genomes to search for other universally conserved genes that have the same phylogenetic
  10968. pattern as ribosomal RNA, and therefore constitute the ancestral genetic core of cells.
  10969. Our analyses identified a small set of genes that can be traced back to the universal
  10970. ancestor and have coevolved since that time.
  10971. As indicated by earlier studies, almost all of these genes are involved with the transfer of
  10972. genetic information, and most of them directly interact with the ribosome. Other universal
  10973. genes have either undergone lateral transfer in the past, or have diverged so much in
  10974. sequence that their distant past could not be resolved. The nature of the conserved genes
  10975. suggests innovations that may have been essential to the divergence of the three
  10976. domains of life. The analysis also identified several genes of unknown function with
  10977. 289
  10978. phylogenies that track with the ribosomal RNA genes. The products of these genes are likely
  10979. to play fundamental roles in cellular processes."
  10980. -- Reference: http://www.genome.org/cgi/content/abstract/GR-6528v1?etoc
  10981. 195 "... biological engineers..."
  10982. "Biomedical engineering is an application of engineering principles and design to
  10983. challenges in human health and medicine. Bioengineering is related to Biological
  10984. Engineering, the latter including applications of engineering principles to the full spectrum of
  10985. living systems, from microbes and plants to ecosystems. Bioengineering exploits new
  10986. developments in molecular biology, biochemistry, microbiology, and neurosciences as well
  10987. as sensing, electronics, and imaging, and applies them to the design of medical devices,
  10988. diagnostic equipment, biocompatible materials, and other important medical needs.
  10989. Bioengineering couples engineering expertise with knowledge in biological sciences such as
  10990. genetics, molecular biology, protein chemistry, cytology, neurobiology, immunology,
  10991. physiology, and pharmacology. Bioengineers work closely with, but are not limited to,
  10992. medical doctors and other health professionals to develop technical solutions to current and
  10993. emerging health concerns.
  10994. Bioengineering is not limited to the medical field. Bioengineers have the ability to exploit new
  10995. opportunities and solve problems within the domain of complex systems. They have a great
  10996. understanding of living systems as complex systems which can be applied to many fields
  10997. including entrepreneurship."
  10998. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  10999. 196 "... Imperfections were worked out, modifications made and eventually the new
  11000. animal was introduced into the actual planetary environment for final testing. "
  11001. "The basic ideals of Eugenics can be found from the beginnings of Western civilization. The
  11002. philosophy was most famously expounded by Plato, who believed human reproduction
  11003. should be monitored and controlled by the state. The basic eugenic principle from Plato’s
  11004. The Republic was, “The best men must have intercourse with the best women as frequently
  11005. as possible, and the opposite is true of the very inferior.
  11006. However, Plato understood this form of government control would not be readily accepted,
  11007. and proposed the truth be concealed from the public via a fixed lottery. Mates, in Plato’s
  11008. Republic, would be chosen by a “marriage number” in which the quality of the individual
  11009. would be quantitatively analyzed, and persons of high numbers would be allowed to
  11010. procreate with other persons of high numbers. In theory, this would lead to predictable
  11011. results and the improvement of the human race. However, Plato acknowledged the failure of
  11012. the “marriage number” since “gold soul” persons could still produce “bronze soul” children.
  11013. This might have been one of the earliest attempts to mathematically analyze genetic
  11014. inheritance, which was not perfected until the development of Mendelian genetics and the
  11015. mapping of the human genome.
  11016. Other ancient civilizations, such as Rome and Sparta, practiced infanticide as a form of
  11017. phenotypic selection. In Sparta, newborns were inspected by the city's elders, who decided
  11018. the fate of the infant. If the child was deemed incapable of living, it was usually thrown from
  11019. the Taygetus mountain. It was more common for girls than boys to be killed this way. Trials
  11020. 290
  11021. for babies which included bathing them in wine and exposing them to the elements. To
  11022. Sparta, this would ensure only the strongest survived and procreated. Adolf Hitler
  11023. considered Sparta to be the first "Völkisch State," and much like Ernst Haeckel before him,
  11024. praised Sparta due to its primitive form of eugenics practice of selective infanticide policy
  11025. which was applied on deformed children.
  11026. The 12 Tables of Roman Law, established early in the formation of the Roman Republic,
  11027. stated in the fourth table that deformed children would be put to death. In addition, patriarchs
  11028. in Roman society were given the right to "discard" infants at their discretion. This was often
  11029. done by drowning undesired newborns in the Tiber River.
  11030. Sir Francis Galton initially developed the ideas of eugenics using social statistics. Sir
  11031. Francis Galton systematized these ideas and practices according to new knowledge about
  11032. the evolution of man and animals provided by the theory of his cousin Charles Darwin during
  11033. the 1860s and 1870s. After reading Darwin's Origin of Species, Galton built upon Darwin's
  11034. ideas whereby the mechanisms of natural selection were potentially thwarted by human
  11035. civilization. He reasoned that, since many human societies sought to protect the
  11036. underprivileged and weak, those societies were at odds with the natural selection
  11037. responsible for extinction of the weakest; and only by changing these social policies could
  11038. society be saved from a "reversion towards mediocrity," a phrase he first coined in statistics
  11039. and which later changed to the now common "regression towards the mean."
  11040. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11041. 197 "...species..."
  11042. "In biology, a species is one of the basic units of biological classification and a taxonomic
  11043. rank. A species is often defined as a group of organisms capable of interbreeding and
  11044. producing fertile offspring. While in many cases this definition is adequate, more precise or
  11045. differing measures are often used, such as based on similarity of DNA or morphology.
  11046. Presence of specific locally-adapted traits may further subdivide species into subspecies.
  11047. The commonly used names for plant and animal taxa sometimes correspond to species: for
  11048. example, "lion," "walrus," and "Camphor tree," each refers to a species. In other cases
  11049. common names do not: for example, "deer" refers to a family of 34 species, including Eld's
  11050. Deer, Red Deer and Wapiti (Elk). The last two species were once considered a single
  11051. species, illustrating how species boundaries may change with increased scientific
  11052. knowledge.
  11053. Each species is placed within a single genus. This is a hypothesis that the species is more
  11054. closely related to other species within its genus than to species of other genera. All species
  11055. are given a binomial name consisting of the generic name and specific name (or specific
  11056. epithet). For example, Pinus palustris (commonly known as the Longleaf Pine).
  11057. A usable definition of the word "species" and reliable methods of identifying particular
  11058. species are essential for stating and testing biological theories and for measuring
  11059. biodiversity. Traditionally, multiple examples of a proposed species must be studied for
  11060. unifying characters before it can be regarded as a species. Extinct species known only from
  11061. fossils are generally difficult to give precise taxonomic rankings to. A species which has
  11062. been described scientifically can be referred to by its binomial names.
  11063. Nevertheless, as Charles Darwin remarked,
  11064. 291
  11065. 'I look at the term species as one arbitrarily given for the sake of convenience to a
  11066. set of individuals closely resembling each other .... it does not essentially differ from
  11067. the term variety, which is given to less distinct and more fluctuating forms. The term
  11068. variety, again in comparison with mere individual difference, is also applied
  11069. arbitrarily, and for mere convenience sake.'
  11070. Because of the difficulties with both defining and tallying the total numbers of different
  11071. species in the world, it is estimated that there are anywhere between 2 million and 100
  11072. million different species."
  11073. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11074. 198 "...species of beetle..."
  11075. "Beetles are a group of insects which have the largest number of species. They are placed
  11076. in the order Coleoptera, which means "sheathed wing" and contains more described species
  11077. than in any other order in the animal kingdom, constituting about twenty-five percent of all
  11078. known life-forms. Forty percent of all described insect species are beetles (about 350,000
  11079. species), and new species are frequently discovered. Estimates put the total number of
  11080. species, described and undescribed, at between 5 and 8 million.
  11081. Beetles can be found in almost all habitats, but are not known to occur in the sea or in the
  11082. polar regions. They interact with their ecosystems in several ways. They often feed on plants
  11083. and fungi, break down animal and plant debris, and eat other invertebrates. Some species
  11084. are prey of various animals including birds and mammals. Certain species are agricultural
  11085. pests, such as the Colorado potato beetle Leptinotarsa decemlineata, the boll weevil
  11086. Anthonomus grandis, the red flour beetle Tribolium castaneum, and the mungbean or
  11087. cowpea beetle Callosobruchus maculatus, while other species of beetles are important
  11088. controls of agricultural pests. For example, coccinellidae ("ladybirds" or "ladybugs") consume
  11089. aphids, scale insects, thrips, and other plant-sucking insects that damage crops."
  11090. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11091. 199 "One species does not evolve to become another species, as the Earth textbooks
  11092. indicate, without the intervention and manipulation of genetic material by an IS-BE."
  11093. "Genetic engineering, recombinant DNA technology, genetic modification /
  11094. manipulation (GM) and gene splicing are terms applied to the direct manipulation of an
  11095. organism's genes. Genetic engineering is not to be confused with traditional breeding where
  11096. the organism's genes are manipulated indirectly. Genetic engineering uses the techniques of
  11097. molecular cloning and transformation. Genetic engineering endeavors have found some
  11098. success in improving crop technology, the manufacture of synthetic human insulin through
  11099. the use of modified bacteria, the manufacture of erythropoietin in Chinese hamster ovary
  11100. cells, and the production of new types of experimental mice such as the oncomouse (cancer
  11101. mouse) for research.
  11102. Since a protein sequence is specified by a segment of DNA called a gene, novel versions of
  11103. that protein can be produced by changing the DNA sequence of the gene. The companies
  11104. that own the modified genome are able to patent it. In the case of basic crops, the
  11105. companies gain control of foodstuffs, controlling food production on a large scale and
  11106. reducing agrobidiversity to a few varieties. The only apparent interest in promoting this
  11107. tecnology appears to be purely economic, despite the claims of seed companies such as
  11108. 292
  11109. Monsanto and Novartis to solve the world food scarcity. It is now popularly understood that it
  11110. is not the lack of food on a wholewide scale that is the main problem, but its distribution,
  11111. aggravated by prohibitive tariffs by rich nations. Genetically modified crops do not reduce
  11112. hunger. The majority of genetically crops are destined for animal food to meet the high
  11113. demand for meat in developed countries. No genetic modification have yet to serve the
  11114. needs of mankind despite all the promises in this direction.
  11115. However, even with regard to this technology's great potential, some people have raised
  11116. concerns about the introduction of genetically engineered plants and animals into the
  11117. environment and the potential dangers of human consumption of GM foods. They say that
  11118. these organisms have the potential to spread their modified genes into native populations
  11119. thereby disrupting natural ecosystems. This has already happened."
  11120. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11121. 200 "...genetic manipulation of a species..."
  11122. "How much genetic variation is there? Historical debate: Classical school held that there
  11123. was very little genetic variation, most individuals were homozygous for a "wild-type" allele.
  11124. Rare heterozygous loci due to recurrent mutation; natural selection purges populations of
  11125. their "load" of mutations. Balance school held that many loci will be heterozygous in natural
  11126. populations and heterozygotes maintained by "balancing selection" (heterozygote
  11127. advantage). Selection thus plays a role in maintaining variation.
  11128. How do we measure variation? To show that there is a genetic basis to a continuously
  11129. varying character one can study 1) resemblance among relatives: look at the offspring of
  11130. individuals from parents in different parts of the distribution; can estimate heritability (more
  11131. later). 2) artificial selection: pigeons and dogs show that there is variation present; does
  11132. not tell how much variation."
  11133. -- Reference: http://biomed.brown.edu/Courses/BIO48/5.Geno.Pheno.HTML
  11134. 201 "... Proteobacteria..."
  11135. "The Proteobacteria are a major group (phylum) of bacteria. They include a wide variety of
  11136. pathogens, such as Escherichia, Salmonella, Vibrio, Helicobacter, and many other notable
  11137. genera. Others are free-living, and include many of the bacteria responsible for nitrogen
  11138. fixation. The group is defined primarily in terms of ribosomal RNA (rRNA) sequences, and is
  11139. named for the Greek god Proteus (also the name of a bacterial genus within the
  11140. Proteobacteria), who could change his shape, because of the great diversity of forms found
  11141. in this group.
  11142. All Proteobacteria are Gram-negative, with an outer membrane mainly composed of
  11143. lipopolysaccharides. Many move about using flagella, but some are non-motile or rely on
  11144. bacterial gliding. The last include the myxobacteria, a unique group of bacteria that can
  11145. aggregate to form multicellular fruiting bodies. There is also a wide variety in the types of
  11146. metabolism. Most members are facultatively or obligately anaerobic and heterotrophic, but
  11147. there are numerous exceptions. A variety of genera, which are not closely related to each
  11148. other, convert energy from light through photosynthesis. These are called purple bacteria,
  11149. referring to their mostly reddish pigmentation."
  11150. 293
  11151. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11152. 202 "...Phylum..."
  11153. "In biological taxonomy, a 'phylum' is a taxonomic rank at the level below Class and above
  11154. Kingdom. "Phylum" is adopted from the Greek φυλαί phylai, the clan-based voting groups in
  11155. Greek city-states."
  11156. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11157. 203 "...intensely hot blue star..."
  11158. "Blue stars are very hot and very luminous; in fact, most of their output is in the ultraviolet
  11159. range. These are the rarest of all main sequence stars, constituting as few as 1 in 3,000,000
  11160. in the solar neighborhood. (Blue) stars shine with a power over a million times our Sun's
  11161. output. Examples: Zeta Orionis, Zeta Puppis, Lambda Orionis, Delta Orionis"..
  11162. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11163. 204 "... responsible for coordinating creature production..."
  11164. Editor"s Note: For detailed information on the organization that controls the World
  11165. Congress of the Biotechnology Industry, visit their website at http://www.bio.org .
  11166. Here is a statement from their website about who they are and what they do:
  11167. "BIO is the world's largest biotechnology organization, providing advocacy, business
  11168. development and communications services for more than 1,150 members worldwide. Our
  11169. mission is to be the champion of biotechnology and the advocate for our member
  11170. organizations—both large and small.
  11171. BIO members are involved in the research and development of innovative healthcare,
  11172. agricultural, industrial and environmental biotechnology technologies. Corporate members
  11173. range from entrepreneurial companies developing a first product to Fortune 100
  11174. multinationals. We also represent state and regional biotech associations, service
  11175. providers to the industry and academic centers. Visit the BIO Member Directory to
  11176. browse BIO members and Web site links as well as BIO state and international affiliates. "
  11177. -- Reference: http://bio.org/aboutbio/
  11178. 205 "... patent licenses for the biological engineering process ..."
  11179. "A biological patent is a patent relating to an invention or discovery in biology.
  11180. The 1970’s marked the first time when scientists patented methods on their biotechnological
  11181. inventions with recombinant DNA. It wasn’t until 1980 that patents for whole-scale living
  11182. organisms was permitted. In Diamond v. Chakrabarty, the Supreme Court overturned a
  11183. previous precedent allowing the patentability of living matter. The subject for this
  11184. particular case was a bacterium that was specifically modified to help clean-up and degrade
  11185. oil spills.
  11186. 294
  11187. Since legal changes have occurred starting in 1980, there has been a general trend of
  11188. patenting inventions on living matter. More knowledge and data has become available in
  11189. recent years that have never before been available. However, for us to get to the point
  11190. where it is making a significant difference in peoples’ lives, a tidy sum of money needs to be
  11191. invested. Biotech and pharmaceutical companies in recent years have found out how
  11192. lucrative biological research can be. These firms foster many research opportunities
  11193. by funding made possible only through the private sector.
  11194. Patents have provided an impetus for research to be pursued in that the end goal of money
  11195. can be envisioned by companies with the funding cash. Especially during the genomic era,
  11196. more patents were issued. Companies and organizations like the University of California
  11197. were patenting whole genomes.
  11198. In 1998, the U.S. Patent and Trademark Office (PTO) issued a broad patent claiming
  11199. primate (including human) embryonic stem cells, entitled "Primate Embryonic Stem
  11200. Cells" (Patent 5,843,780). On 13 March 2001, a second patent (6,200,806) was issued with
  11201. the same title but focused on human embryonic stem cells.
  11202. Recently, there has been a slowdown and backlash against patenting biological
  11203. material worldwide.
  11204. Some feel that the increase in patenting biological information leads to inefficiency in
  11205. research. Many scientists are coming up against patent thickets, which are masses of
  11206. information that they must obtain permission (and often pay large fees to utilize)
  11207. before they can ever work with the information.
  11208. Michael Heller and Rebecca Eisenberg (2005) explain that there is a recent trend of
  11209. patenting more and more steps along the research path. This creates a "tragedy of the
  11210. anticommons," whereby "each upstream patent allows its owner to set up another tollbooth
  11211. on the road to product development, adding to the cost and slowing the pace of downstream
  11212. . . . innovation". A report shows that notwithstanding escalating funding, in the past halfdecade biomedical innovation has slowed markedly. The number of drugs approved by the
  11213. Food and Drug Administration has fallen below previous eras. The technologies approved, it
  11214. continues, are less influential than previous innovations approved. The current trend of
  11215. patenting what previously were thought of as basic science insights have raised the financial
  11216. bar for other scientists wanting to use such insight. The overall trend of more patents may be
  11217. slowing innovation.
  11218. However, others point out that patents are necessary for research. Without them, scientists
  11219. would keep secret all discoveries for fear of colleagues and others stealing their
  11220. ideas. There would also be little incentive for large-scale investments from the private
  11221. sector.
  11222. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11223. 206 "..."cyclical stimulus-response generators".
  11224. "Fixed Action Pattern (FAP) is an instinctive behavioral sequence that is indivisible
  11225. and runs to completion. Fixed action patterns are invariant and are produced by a
  11226. neural network known as the innate releasing mechanism in response to an external
  11227. sensory stimulus known as a sign stimulus or releaser.
  11228. 295
  11229. A mating dance may be used as an example. Many species of birds engage in a specific
  11230. series of elaborate movements, usually by a brightly colored male. How well they perform
  11231. the "dance" is then used by females of the species to judge their fitness as a potential mate.
  11232. The key stimulus is typically the presence of the female.
  11233. Although fixed action patterns are most common in animals with simpler cognitive
  11234. capabilities, humans also demonstrate fixed action patterns. For example, infants grasp
  11235. strongly with their hands as a response to tactile stimulus."
  11236. Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11237. 207 "...chemical-electrical trigger" mechanism..."
  11238. "A taxis (plural taxes) is an innate behavioural response by an organism to a stimulus. A
  11239. taxis differs from a tropism (turning response, often growth towards or away from a stimulus)
  11240. in that the organism has motility and demonstrates guided movement towards or away from
  11241. the stimulus. It also differs from a kinesis, a non-directional change in activity in response to
  11242. a stimulus that results in the illusion of directed motion due to different rates of activity
  11243. depending on stimulus intensity.
  11244. For example, flagellate protozoans of the genus Euglena move towards a light source. Here
  11245. the directional stimulus is light, and the orientation movement is towards the light. This
  11246. reaction or behaviour is a positive one to light and specifically termed "positive phototaxis",
  11247. since phototaxis is a response to a light stimulus, and the organism is moving towards the
  11248. stimulus. If the organism moves away from the stimulus, then the taxis is negative. Many
  11249. types of taxis have been identified and named using prefices to specify the stimulus that
  11250. elicits the response. These include anemotaxis (stimulation by wind), barotaxis (pressure),
  11251. chemotaxis (chemicals), galvanotaxis (electrical current), geotaxis (gravity), hydrotaxis
  11252. (moisture), phototaxis (light), rheotaxis (fluid flow), thermotaxis (temperature changes)
  11253. and thigmotaxis (physical contact).
  11254. Chemotaxis is a migratory response elicited by chemicals. Unicellular (e.g. protozoa) or
  11255. multicellular (e.g. worms) organisms are targets of the substances. A concentration gradient
  11256. of chemicals developed in a fluid phase guides the vectorial movement of responder cells or
  11257. organisms.
  11258. Electrotaxis is directional movement of motile cells in response to a electric field. It
  11259. has been suggested that by detecting and orientating themselves toward the electric fields.
  11260. This notion is based on 1) the existence of measurable electric fields that naturally occur
  11261. during wound healing, development and regeneration; and 2) cells in cultures respond to
  11262. applied electric fields by directional cell."
  11263. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11264. 208 "... reproductive chemical-electrical impulses stimulated by testosterone or
  11265. estrogen."
  11266. "Testosterone is a steroid hormone from the androgen group. In mammals, testosterone is
  11267. primarily secreted in the testes of males and the ovaries of females, although small amounts
  11268. are also secreted by the adrenal glands. It is the principal male sex hormone and an
  11269. anabolic steroid.
  11270. 296
  11271. The period of the early 1930’s to the 1950’s has been called “The Golden Age of Steroid
  11272. Chemistry”, and work during this period progressed quickly. Research in this golden age
  11273. proved that this newly synthesized compound — testosterone — or rather family of
  11274. compounds (for many derivatives were developed in the 1940’s, 50’s and 60’s), was a potent
  11275. multiplier of muscle, strength, and wellbeing
  11276. In both men and women, testosterone plays a key role in health and well-being as well
  11277. as in sexual functioning.
  11278. The human hormone testosterone is produced in greater amounts by males, and less by
  11279. females. The human hormone estrogen is produced in greater amounts by females,
  11280. and less by males. On average, an adult human male body produces about forty to
  11281. sixty times more testosterone than an adult female body.
  11282. Testosterone causes the appearance of masculine traits (i.e deepening voice, pubic and
  11283. facial hairs, muscular build, etc.) Like men, women rely on testosterone to maintain libido,
  11284. bone density and muscle mass throughout their lives."
  11285. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11286. 209 "The debilitating impact and addiction to the "sexual aesthetic-pain" electronic
  11287. wave..."
  11288. "The term Sexual addiction is used to describe the behavior of a person who has an
  11289. unusually intense sex drive or obsession with sex. Sexual addiction, also called sexual
  11290. compulsion is a form of psychological addiction.
  11291. The behavior of sex addicts is comparable to behavior of alcoholics and addicts, where sex
  11292. functions like a drug. A common definition of alcoholism is that a person has a pathological
  11293. relationship with this mood altering drug. It provides a quick mood change, works every time
  11294. and the user loses control over their compulsion. Like alcoholics, sex addicts' lives rotate
  11295. around the constant desire for their "drug" of choice."
  11296. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11297. 210 "...space craft of The Domain travel trillions of light-years in a single day..." --
  11298. Using the Julian Calendar year (not Gregorian) of 365.25 days, or exactly 31,557,600
  11299. seconds, gives the light-year an exact value of 9,460,730,472,580,800 meters. ( A meter =
  11300. 3.281 feet or 39.37 inches.)
  11301. The distance to the nearest star from Earth is 4.24 light years!
  11302. Distances measured in fractions of a light-year usually involve objects within a star system.
  11303. Distances measured in light-years include distances between nearby stars, such as those in
  11304. the same spiral arm or globular cluster.
  11305. One kilolight-year, abbreviated "kly", is one thousand light-years, or about 307 parsecs.
  11306. Kilolight-years are typically used to measure distances between parts of a galaxy.
  11307. 297
  11308. One megalight-year, abbreviated "Mly", is one million light-years, or about 306,600 parsecs.
  11309. Megalight-years are typically used to measure distances between neighboring galaxies and
  11310. galaxy clusters.
  11311. One gigalight-year, abbreviation "Gly", is one billion light-years — one of the largest distance
  11312. measures used. One gigalight-year is about 306.6 million parsecs.
  11313. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11314. 211 "... a heavy gravity, nitrogen/oxygen atmosphere planet..."
  11315. "The Earth's atmosphere is a layer of gases surrounding the planet Earth and retained by
  11316. the Earth's gravity. It contains roughly (by molar content/volume) 78.08% nitrogen, 20.95%
  11317. oxygen, 0.93% argon, 0.038% carbon dioxide, trace amounts of other gases, and a variable
  11318. amount (average around 1%) of water vapor. This mixture of gases is commonly known as
  11319. air. The atmosphere protects life on Earth by absorbing ultraviolet solar radiation and
  11320. reducing temperature extremes between day and night.
  11321. There is no definite boundary between the atmosphere and outer space. It slowly becomes
  11322. thinner and fades into space. Three quarters of the atmosphere's mass is within 11 km of the
  11323. planetary surface. In the United States, people who travel above an altitude of 80.5 km (50
  11324. statute miles) are designated astronauts. An altitude of 120 km (~75 miles or 400,000 ft)
  11325. marks the boundary where atmospheric effects become noticeable during re-entry. The
  11326. Kármán line, at 100 km (62 miles or 328,000 ft), is also frequently regarded as the boundary
  11327. between atmosphere and outer space.
  11328. The atmosphere of Mars is relatively thin, and the atmospheric pressure on the surface
  11329. varies from around 30 Pa (0.03 kPa) on Olympus Mons's peak to over 1155 Pa (1.155 kPa)
  11330. in the depths of Hellas Planitia, with a mean surface level pressure of 600 Pa (0.6 kPa),
  11331. compared to Earth's 101.3 kPa. However, the scale height of the atmosphere is about
  11332. 11 km, somewhat higher than Earth's 6 km. The atmosphere on Mars consists of 95%
  11333. carbon dioxide, 3% nitrogen, 1.6% argon, and contains traces of oxygen, water, and
  11334. methane. The atmosphere is quite dusty, giving the Martian sky a tawny color when seen
  11335. from the surface; data from the Mars Exploration Rovers indicates the suspended dust
  11336. particles are roughly 1.5 micrometres across.
  11337. The atmosphere of Venus, the second planet from the Sun, is much denser and hotter than
  11338. that of Earth. The surface temperature and pressure on Venus are 740 K (467°C) and
  11339. 93 bar, respectively. The Venusian atmosphere supports thick persistent clouds made of
  11340. sulfuric acid, which make optical observations of the surface impossible. The information
  11341. about surface features on Venus has been obtained exclusively by radar imaging conducted
  11342. from the ground and Venera 15-16 and by Magellan space probes. The main atmosphereric
  11343. gases on Venus are carbon dioxide and nitrogen, which make up 96.5% and 3.5% of all
  11344. molecules. Other chemical compounds are present only in trace amounts.
  11345. The atmosphere of Venus is in state of a vigorous circulation and super-rotation. The whole
  11346. atmosphere circles the planet in just four days (super-rotation), which is a short time
  11347. compared with the sideral rotational period of 243 days. The winds supporting super-rotation
  11348. blow as fast as 100 m/s. Near the poles of Venus anticyclonic structures called polar
  11349. vortexes are located. In them the air moves downward. Each vortex is double eyed and
  11350. shows a characteristic S-shaped pattern of clouds.
  11351. 298
  11352. Only the ionosphere and thin induced magnetosphere separate venusian atmosphere from
  11353. the space. They shield the atmosphere from the solar wind, which usually does not
  11354. penetrate deep into it. However they are incapable of preventing the loss of water, which is
  11355. continuously blown away by the solar wind through the induced magnetotail.
  11356. Despite the harsh conditions on the surface, at about a 50 km to 65 km level above the
  11357. surface of the planet the atmospheric pressure and temperature is nearly the same as that of
  11358. the Earth, making its upper atmosphere the most Earth-like area in the Solar System, even
  11359. more so than the surface of Mars. Due to the similarity in pressure, temperature and the fact
  11360. that breathable air (21% oxygen, 78% nitrogen) is a lifting gas on Venus in the same way
  11361. that helium is a lifting gas on Earth."
  11362. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11363. 212 "...Johannes Gutenberg..."
  11364. "Johannes Gensfleisch zur Laden zum Gutenberg (c. 1400 – February 3, 1468) was a
  11365. German goldsmith and printer, who is credited with inventing movable type printing in
  11366. Europe (c. 1439) and mechanical printing globally. His major work, the Gutenberg Bible, also
  11367. known as the 42-line bible, has been acclaimed for its high aesthetic and technical quality.
  11368. Although Gutenberg was financially unsuccessful in his lifetime, the printing technologies
  11369. spread quickly, and news and books began to travel across Europe much faster than before.
  11370. It fed the growing Renaissance, and since it greatly facilitated scientific publishing, it was a
  11371. major catalyst for the later scientific revolution. Gutenberg is thought to have said: "Give me
  11372. 26 soldiers of lead and I shall conquer the world."
  11373. Printing was also a factor in the Reformation: Martin Luther found that the 95 Theses, which
  11374. he posted on the door of his church, were printed and circulated widely; subsequently he
  11375. also issued broadsheets outlining his anti-indulgences position (ironically, indulgences were
  11376. one of the first items Gutenberg had printed). The broadsheet evolved into newspapers and
  11377. defined the mass media we know today."
  11378. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11379. 213 "...George Washington Carver..."
  11380. "George Washington Carver (July 12, 1864 – January 5, 1943) was an American botanical
  11381. researcher and agronomy educator who worked in agricultural extension at the Tuskegee
  11382. Institute in Tuskegee, Alabama, teaching former slaves farming techniques for selfsufficiency.
  11383. George Washington Carver reputedly discovered three hundred uses for peanuts and
  11384. hundreds more uses for soybeans, pecans and sweet potatoes. Among the listed items that
  11385. he suggested to southern farmers to help them economically were adhesives, axle grease,
  11386. bleach, buttermilk, chili sauce, fuel briquettes, ink, instant coffee, linoleum, mayonnaise,
  11387. meat tenderizer, metal polish, paper, plastic, pavement, shaving cream, shoe polish,
  11388. synthetic rubber, talcum powder and wood stain. Three patents (one for cosmetics, and two
  11389. for paints and stains) were issued to George Washington Carver in the years 1925 to 1927;
  11390. however, they were not commercially successful in the end. Aside from these patents and
  11391. some recipes for food, he left no formulas or procedures for making his products. He did not
  11392. keep a laboratory notebook.
  11393. 299
  11394. Carver's most important accomplishments were in areas other than industrial products from
  11395. peanuts, including agricultural extension education, improvement of racial relations,
  11396. mentoring children, poetry, painting, religion, advocacy of sustainable agriculture and
  11397. appreciation of plants and nature. He served as a valuable role model for African-Americans
  11398. and an example of the importance of hard work, a positive attitude and a good education.
  11399. His humility, humanitarianism, good nature, frugality and lack of economic materialism have
  11400. also been widely admired.
  11401. One of his most important roles was that the fame of his achievements and many talents
  11402. undermined the widespread stereotype of the time that the black race was intellectually
  11403. inferior to the white race. In 1941, "Time" magazine dubbed him a "Black Leonardo".
  11404. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11405. 214 "...Jonas Salk..."
  11406. "Jonas Edward Salk (October 28, 1914 – June 23, 1995) was an American biologist and
  11407. physician best known for the research and development of the first effective polio vaccine.
  11408. While being interviewed by Edward R. Murrow on "See It Now" in 1955, Salk was asked:
  11409. "Who owns the patent on this vaccine?" Surprised by the question's assumption of the
  11410. requirement of a profit-motive for his creation, he responded: "There is no patent. Could you
  11411. patent the sun?"
  11412. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11413. 215 "...Richard Trevithick..."
  11414. " Richard Trevithick (born April 13, 1771 in Cornwall - died April 22, 1833 in Kent) was an
  11415. English inventor, mining engineer and builder of the first working railway steam locomotive."
  11416. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11417. 216 "... Renaissance..."
  11418. The Renaissance (from French Renaissance, meaning "rebirth"; Italian: Rinascimento, from
  11419. re- "again" and nascere "be born") was a cultural movement that spanned roughly the 14th
  11420. through the 17th century, beginning in Italy in the late Middle Ages and later spreading to the
  11421. rest of western Europe. It encompassed a revival of learning based on classical sources, the
  11422. development of linear perspective in painting, and educational reform. The Renaissance saw
  11423. developments in most intellectual pursuits, but is perhaps best known for its artistic aspect
  11424. and the contributions of such polymaths as Leonardo da Vinci and Michelangelo, who have
  11425. inspired the term "Renaissance men".
  11426. However, it was not until the nineteenth century that the French word Renaissance
  11427. achieved popularity in describing the cultural movement that began in the late 13th
  11428. century" (1200 AD - 1300 AD).
  11429. The term was first used retrospectively by the Italian artist and critic Giorgio Vasari (1511-
  11430. 1574) in his book The Lives of the Artists (published 1550). In the book Vasari was
  11431. attempting to define what he described as a break with the barbarities of gothic art: the arts
  11432. 300
  11433. had fallen into decay with the collapse of the Roman Empire and only the Tuscan artists,
  11434. beginning with Cimabue (1240-1301) and Giotto (1267-1337) began to reverse this
  11435. decline in the arts. According to Vasari, antique art was central to the rebirth of Italian art.
  11436. During the 12th century in Europe, there was a radical change in the rate of new inventions
  11437. and innovations in the ways of managing traditional means of production and economic
  11438. growth. In less than a century, there were more inventions developed and applied usefully
  11439. than in the previous thousand years of human history all over the globe. The period saw
  11440. major technological advances, including the adoption or invention of printing, gunpowder,
  11441. spectacles, a better clock, the astrolabe, and greatly improved ships. The latter two
  11442. advances made possible the dawn of the Age of Exploration.
  11443. Alfred Crosby described some of this technological revolution in The Measure of
  11444. Reality : Quantification in Western Europe, 1250-1600 and other major historians of
  11445. technology have also noted it.
  11446. • The earliest written record of a windmill is from Yorkshire, England, dated 1185.
  11447. • Paper manufacture began in Italy around 1270.
  11448. • The spinning wheel was brought to Europe (probably from India) in the 13th century.
  11449. • The magnetic compass aided navigation, first reaching Europe some time in the late
  11450. 12th century.
  11451. • Eyeglasses were invented in Italy in the late 1280s.
  11452. • The astrolabe returned to Europe via Islamic Spain.
  11453. • Leonardo of Pisa introduces Hindu-Arabic numerals to Europe with his book Liber
  11454. Abaci in 1202.
  11455. • The West's oldest known depiction of a stern-mounted rudder can be found on
  11456. church carvings dating to around 1180."
  11457. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11458. 217 "... explosions that were tested and used in the past two years on Earth have the
  11459. potential to destroy all of life..."
  11460. "A doomsday device is a hypothetical construction — usually a weapon — which could
  11461. destroy all life on the Earth, or destroy the Earth itself (bringing "doomsday", a term used for
  11462. the end of planet Earth).
  11463. Doomsday devices have been present in literature and art especially in the 20th century,
  11464. when advances in science and technology allowed humans to imagine a definite and
  11465. plausible way of actively destroying the world or all life on it (or at least human life). Many
  11466. classics in the genre of science fiction take up the theme in this respect, especially The
  11467. Purple Cloud (1901) by M. P. Shiel in which the accidental release of a gas kills all people on
  11468. the planet.
  11469. After the advent of nuclear weapons, especially hydrogen bombs, they have usually been
  11470. the dominant components of fictional doomsday devices. RAND strategist Herman Kahn
  11471. proposed a "Doomsday Machine" in the 1950s which would consist of a computer linked to a
  11472. stockpile of hydrogen bombs, programmed to detonate them all and bathe the planet in
  11473. nuclear fallout at the signal of an impending nuclear attack from another nation. Such a
  11474. scheme, fictional as it was, epitomized for many the extremes of the suicidal logic behind the
  11475. strategy of mutually assured destruction, and it was famously parodied in the Stanley
  11476. 301
  11477. Kubrick film from 1964, Dr. Strangelove or: How I Learned to Stop Worrying and Love the
  11478. Bomb. It is also a main topic of the movie Beneath the Planet of the Apes, in parallel with the
  11479. species extermination theme. Most such models either rely on the fact that hydrogen bombs
  11480. can be made arbitrarily large (see Teller-Ulam design) or that they can be "salted" with
  11481. materials designed to create long-lasting and hazardous fallout (e.g.; a cobalt bomb).
  11482. There are many unconfirmed, anecdotal reports of a Soviet doomsday device involving a
  11483. 200-megaton hydrogen bomb sheathed in (or, alternately, "salted" with) a highly radioactive
  11484. material, usually said to be cobalt, of sufficient quantity to saturate the earth's atmosphere
  11485. with deadly fallout should the device be detonated. Details regarding this device vary
  11486. according to the source, but enough similarities in the dozens of different stories exist to
  11487. suggest at least some basis in truth. According to various sources, at some point between
  11488. 1967 and 1985, the device was designed but never constructed; built but never activated;
  11489. built and activated, but dismantled at the end of the cold war; or designed and constructed in
  11490. such a manner that it can never be de-activated, and is still in existence today. Tales of its
  11491. location and means of operation are equally diverse: it was in an underground bunker west
  11492. of Moscow, Siberia, the Ukraine, etc.; it was installed on a special rocket booster that would
  11493. deliver it to the upper atmosphere upon activation; it was actually a series of bombs placed
  11494. at intervals along the western border of the USSR; it was to be detonated upon command
  11495. from the Kremlin, automatically by a special computer, a seismic trigger, or upon detection of
  11496. incoming missiles. Many more versions exist, such as one with the device being
  11497. permanently installed in the hold of an unmarked tramp freighter, steaming randomly from
  11498. port to port in the North Sea."
  11499. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11500. 218 "... paradigm..."
  11501. "Historian of science Thomas Kuhn gave this word its contemporary meaning when he
  11502. adopted it to refer to the set of practices that define a scientific discipline during a particular
  11503. period of time. Kuhn himself came to prefer the terms exemplar and normal science, which
  11504. have more exact philosophical meanings. However, in his book The Structure of Scientific
  11505. Revolutions Kuhn defines a scientific paradigm as:
  11506. • what is to be observed and scrutinized
  11507. • the kind of questions that are supposed to be asked and probed for answers in
  11508. relation to this subject
  11509. • how these questions are to be structured
  11510. • how the results of scientific investigations should be interpreted
  11511. Alternatively, the Oxford English Dictionary defines paradigm as "a pattern or model, an
  11512. exemplar."
  11513. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11514. 219 "...Nicola Tesla..."
  11515. "Nikola Tesla (10 July 1856 – 7 January 1943) was an inventor, physicist, mechanical
  11516. engineer, and electrical engineer. Born in Smiljan, Croatian Krajina, Military Frontier, he was
  11517. an ethnic Serb subject of the Austrian Empire and later became an American citizen. Tesla
  11518. is best known for his many revolutionary contributions to the discipline of electricity and
  11519. magnetism in the late 19th and early 20th century. Tesla's patents and theoretical work
  11520. 302
  11521. formed the basis of modern alternating current electric power (AC) systems, including the
  11522. polyphase power distribution systems and the AC motor, with which he helped usher in the
  11523. Second Industrial Revolution. Contemporary biographers of Tesla have deemed him "the
  11524. man who invented the twentieth century" and "the patron saint of modern electricity."
  11525. After his demonstration of wireless communication (radio) in 1893 and after being the victor
  11526. in the "War of Currents", he was widely respected as America's greatest electrical engineer.
  11527. Much of his early work pioneered modern electrical engineering and many of his discoveries
  11528. were of groundbreaking importance. During this period, in the United States, Tesla's fame
  11529. rivaled that of any other inventor or scientist in history or popular culture but due to his
  11530. eccentric personality and unbelievable and sometimes bizarre claims about possible
  11531. scientific and technological developments, Tesla was ultimately ostracized and regarded as
  11532. a "mad scientist". Never having put much focus on his finances, Tesla died impoverished at
  11533. the age of 86.
  11534. Aside from his work on electromagnetism and engineering, Tesla is said to have
  11535. contributed in varying degrees to the establishment of robotics, remote control, radar
  11536. and computer science, and to the expansion of ballistics, nuclear physics, and
  11537. theoretical physics. In 1943, the Supreme Court of the United States credited him as
  11538. being the inventor of the radio."
  11539. He performed several experiments prior to Roentgen's discovery (including photographing
  11540. the bones of his hand; later, he sent these images to Roentgen) but didn't make his findings
  11541. widely known; much of his research was lost in the 5th Avenue lab fire of March 1895.
  11542. A "world system" for "the transmission of electrical energy without wires" that
  11543. depends upon the electrical conductivity was proposed in which transmission in various
  11544. natural mediums with current that passes between the two point are used to power devices.
  11545. In a practical wireless energy transmission system using this principle, a high-power
  11546. ultraviolet beam might be used to form a vertical ionized channel in the air directly above the
  11547. transmitter-receiver stations. The same concept is used in virtual lightning rods, the
  11548. electrolaser electroshock weapon, and has been proposed for disabling vehicles.
  11549. Tesla demonstrated "the transmission of electrical energy without wires" that depends
  11550. upon electrical conductivity as early as 1891. The Tesla effect (named in honor of Tesla) is
  11551. the archaic term for an application of this type of electrical conduction (that is, the movement
  11552. of energy through space and matter; not just the production of voltage across a conductor)
  11553. Tesla also investigated harvesting energy that is present throughout space. He
  11554. believed that it was just merely a question of time when men will succeed in attaching their
  11555. machinery to the very wheelwork of nature, stating: Ere many generations pass, our
  11556. machinery will be driven by a power obtainable at any point of the universe. —"Experiments
  11557. With Alternate Currents Of High Potential And High Frequency" (February 1892)
  11558. Tesla began to theorize about electricity and magnetism's power to warp, or rather change,
  11559. space and time and the procedure by which man could forcibly control this power. Near the
  11560. end of his life, Tesla was fascinated with the idea of light as both a particle and a wave, a
  11561. fundamental proposition already incorporated into quantum physics. This field of inquiry led
  11562. to the idea of creating a "wall of light" by manipulating electromagnetic waves in a
  11563. certain pattern. This mysterious wall of light would enable time, space, gravity and matter to
  11564. be altered at will, and engendered an array of Tesla proposals that seem to leap
  11565. straight out of science fiction, including anti-gravity airships, teleportation, and time
  11566. travel.
  11567. 303
  11568. The single strangest invention Tesla ever proposed was probably the "thought
  11569. photography" machine. He reasoned that a thought formed in the mind created a
  11570. corresponding image in the retina, and the electrical data of this neural transmission could
  11571. be read and recorded in a machine. The stored information could then be processed through
  11572. an artificial optic nerve and played back as visual patterns on a viewscreen.
  11573. Another of Tesla's theorized inventions is commonly referred to as Tesla's Flying Machine,
  11574. which appears to resemble an ion-propelled aircraft. Tesla claimed that one of his life
  11575. goals was to create a flying machine that would run without the use of an airplane
  11576. engine, wings, ailerons, propellers, or an onboard fuel source. Initially, Tesla pondered
  11577. about the idea of a flying craft that would fly using an electric motor powered by grounded
  11578. base stations. As time progressed, Tesla suggested that perhaps such an aircraft could be
  11579. run entirely electro-mechanically. The theorized appearance would typically take the
  11580. form of a cigar or saucer.
  11581. In the Colorado Springs lab, Tesla observed unusual signals that he later thought may
  11582. have been evidence of extraterrestrial radio communications coming from Venus or
  11583. Mars. He noticed repetitive signals from his receiver which were substantially different from
  11584. the signals he had noted from storms and earth noise. Specifically, he later recalled that the
  11585. signals appeared in groups of one, two, three, and four clicks together. Tesla had mentioned
  11586. before this event and many times after that he thought his inventions could be used to
  11587. talk with other planets. There have even been claims that he invented a "Teslascope" for
  11588. just such a purpose.
  11589. "I hold that space cannot be curved, for the simple reason that it can have no
  11590. properties. It might as well be said that God has properties. He has not, but only
  11591. attributes and these are of our own making. Of properties we can only speak when dealing
  11592. with matter filling the space. To say that in the presence of large bodies space becomes
  11593. curved is equivalent to stating that something can act upon nothing. I, for one, refuse to
  11594. subscribe to such a view." -- New York Herald Tribune, September 11, 1932
  11595. Tesla was critical of Einstein's relativity work, calling it :
  11596. "...[a] magnificent mathematical garb which fascinates, dazzles and makes people blind to
  11597. the underlying errors. The theory is like a beggar clothed in purple whom ignorant people
  11598. take for a king..., its exponents are brilliant men but they are metaphysicists rather than
  11599. scientists... " -- New York Times, July 11, 1935, p 23, c.8
  11600. "Nikola Tesla invented the 20th and 21st Century. A 'discoverer of new principles,' Tesla was
  11601. the sole inventor of the alternating poly-phase current generators that light up every town in
  11602. the world today. He was the original inventor of the radio, and placed his ideas in print and
  11603. demonstrated them before the public 5 years before Marconi. By the turn of the century, he
  11604. had discussed the feasibility of television; he created an atom smasher capable of
  11605. evaporating rubies and diamonds; he built wireless neon lamps that gave off more light than
  11606. today's conventional bulbs provide; he built precursors to the electron microscope, the laser
  11607. and X-ray photographs. He sent his shadowgraphs to the discoverer of X-rays in 1895 as
  11608. soon a Roentgen published his famous pictures. Tesla also created Kirlian-like
  11609. photographs 75 years before they became famous. All of this took place before 1900!'
  11610. Tesla, and not Edison, invented the poly-phase alternators that power our modern
  11611. civilization; and it was Tesla who was eventually awarded Marconi's wireless patents long
  11612. after Tesla and Marconi were both dead. In all, Tesla contributed over 1200 patents, and we
  11613. 304
  11614. are currently using only some 200 of them. Near everyone remembers the Tesla Coil, but
  11615. how many remember that he demonstrated wireless transmission of electric power prior to
  11616. 1900?
  11617. When offered to share the Nobel Prize with Edison for their electrical inventions, Tesla
  11618. turned the prestigious award down! Edison never received the Nobel Prize.
  11619. Tesla is quoted as saying:
  11620. 'In the dark I had the sense of a bat, and could detect the presence of an object at a
  11621. distance of 12 feet away by a peculiar creepy sensation on the forehead...'
  11622. 'In Budapest, I could hear the ticking of a watch with 3 rooms between me and the
  11623. timepiece. A fly alighting on a table in the room would cause a dull thud in my ear. A
  11624. carriage passing at a distance of a few miles fairly shook my whole body. The whistle
  11625. of a locomotive 20 or 30 miles away made the bench or chair on which I sat vibrate so
  11626. strongly that the pain was unbearable. The ground under my feet trembled
  11627. continuously...'
  11628. Tesla said in an 1892 lecture :
  11629. 'Ere many generations pass, our machinery will be driven by a power obtainable at
  11630. any point of the universe. Throughout space there is energy. Is this energy static or
  11631. kinetic? If static, our hopes are in vain; if kinetic - and this we know it is, for certain - then it is
  11632. a mere question of time when men will succeed in attaching their machinery to the very
  11633. wheelwork of nature.'
  11634. -- Reference: http://www.world-mysteries.com/dougy.htm
  11635. 220 "... will be able to "reverse engineer" the technology..."
  11636. "After joining the Army in 1942, Philip Corso served in Army Intelligence in Europe. In 1945,
  11637. Corso arranged for the safe passage of 10,000 Jewish WWII refugees out of Rome to
  11638. Palestine. During the Korean War (1950-1953), Corso performed Intelligence duties under
  11639. General Douglas MacArthur as Chief of the Special Projects branch of the Intelligence
  11640. Division, Far East Command. One of his primary duties was to keep track of enemy prisoner
  11641. of war (POW) camps in North Korea. Corso was in charge of investigating the estimated
  11642. number of U.S. and other United Nations POWs held at each camp and their treatment. At
  11643. later held congressional hearings of the Senate Select Committee on POW/MIA Affairs,
  11644. Philip Corso would provide testimony that many hundreds of American POW's were
  11645. abandoned at these camps.
  11646. Corso was on the staff of President Eisenhower's National Security Council for four years
  11647. (1953-1957). In 1961, he became Chief of the Pentagon's Foreign Technology desk in Army
  11648. Research and Development, working under Lt. Gen. Arthur Trudeau. When he left military
  11649. intelligence in 1963, Corso became a key aide to Senator Strom Thurmond. In 1964, Corso
  11650. was assigned to Warren Commission member Senator Richard Russell Jr. as an investigator
  11651. into the assassination of John F. Kennedy.
  11652. Philip Corso relates in his book The Day After Roswell (co-author William J. Birnes) how he
  11653. stewarded extraterrestrial artifacts recovered from a crash at Roswell, New Mexico in 1947.
  11654. 305
  11655. According to Corso, the reverse engineering of these artifacts indirectly led to the
  11656. development of accelerated particle beam devices, fiber optics, lasers, integrated
  11657. circuit chips and Kevlar material.
  11658. In 1947, according to Corso, a covert government group (see Majestic 12) was assembled
  11659. under the leadership of the first Director of Central Intelligence , Adm. Roscoe H.
  11660. Hillenkoetter. Among its tasks was to collect all information on extraterrestrial spacecraft.
  11661. The US administration simultaneously discounted the existence of flying saucers in the eyes
  11662. of the public, Corso says. Corso further relates that the Strategic Defense Initiative (SDI), or
  11663. Star Wars, was meant to achieve the capability of killing the electronic guidance systems of
  11664. incoming enemy warheads and disabling enemy spacecraft, including those of
  11665. extraterrestrial origin."
  11666. --- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11667. 221 "... attuned to the "neural network" of the craft."
  11668. "Traditionally, the term Neural Networks had been used to refer to a network or circuit of
  11669. biological neurons. The modern usage of the term often refers to artificial neural networks,
  11670. which are composed of artificial neurons or nodes. Thus the term 'Neural Network' has two
  11671. distinct usages:
  11672. 1) Biological neural networks are made up of real biological neurons that are
  11673. connected or functionally-related in the peripheral nervous system or the central nervous
  11674. system. In the field of neuroscience, they are often identified as groups of neurons that
  11675. perform a specific physiological function in laboratory analysis.
  11676. 2) Artificial neural networks are made up of interconnecting artificial neurons
  11677. (programming constructs that mimic the properties of biological neurons). Artificial neural
  11678. networks may either be used to gain an understanding of biological neural networks, or
  11679. for solving artificial intelligence problems without necessarily creating a model of a real
  11680. biological system."
  11681. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11682. 222 "...microscopic wiring or fibers..."
  11683. The transistor was invented in 1947. It was considered a revolution. Small, fast, reliable
  11684. and effective, it quickly replaced the vacuum tube. Freed from the limitations of the vacuum
  11685. tube, engineers finally could begin to realize the electrical constructions of their dreams.
  11686. It seems that the integrated circuit was destined to be invented. Two separate inventors,
  11687. unaware of each other's activities, invented almost identical integrated circuits or ICs at
  11688. nearly the same time.
  11689. Jack Kilby, an engineer with a background in ceramic-based silk screen circuit boards and
  11690. transistor-based hearing aids, started working for Texas Instruments in 1958. A year earlier,
  11691. research engineer Robert Noyce had co-founded the Fairchild Semiconductor Corporation.
  11692. From 1958 to 1959, both electrical engineers were working on an answer to the same
  11693. dilemma: how to make more of less.
  11694. 306
  11695. Although the first integrated circuit was pretty crude and had some problems, the idea was
  11696. groundbreaking. By making all the parts out of the same block of material and adding the
  11697. metal needed to connect them as a layer on top of it, there was no more need for individual
  11698. discrete components. No more wires and components had to be assembled manually. The
  11699. circuits could be made smaller and the manufacturing process could be automated.
  11700. Jack Kilby (Texas Instruments) is probably most famous for his invention of the integrated
  11701. circuit, for which he received the Nobel Prize in Physics in the year 2000. After his success
  11702. with the integrated circuit Kilby stayed with Texas Instruments and, among other things, he
  11703. led the team that invented the hand-held calculator.
  11704. Jack Kilby now holds patents on over sixty inventions and is also well known as the inventor
  11705. of the portable calculator (1967). In 1970 he was awarded the National Medal of Science.
  11706. Robert Noyce, with sixteen patents to his name, founded Intel, the company responsible for
  11707. the invention of the microprocessor, in 1968. But for both men the invention of the integrated
  11708. circuit stands historically as one of the most important innovations of mankind. Almost all
  11709. modern products use chip technology.
  11710. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11711. 223 "...wiring is used for light, sub-light and ultra-light spectrum detection and vision."
  11712. An optical fiber is a glass or plastic fiber designed to guide light along its length. Fiber
  11713. optics is the overlap of applied science and engineering concerned with the design and
  11714. application of optical fibers. Optical fibers are widely used in fiber-optic communication,
  11715. which permits transmission over longer distances and at higher data rates than other forms
  11716. of communications. Fibers are used instead of metal wires because signals travel along
  11717. them with less loss, and they are immune to electromagnetic interference. Optical fibers are
  11718. also used to form sensors, and in a variety of other applications.
  11719. In 1952, physicist Narinder Singh Kapany conducted experiments that led to the invention of
  11720. optical fiber, based on Tyndall's earlier studies; modern optical fibers, where the glass fiber
  11721. is coated with a transparent cladding to offer a more suitable refractive index, appeared later
  11722. in the decade.
  11723. In 1991, the emerging field of photonic crystals led to the development of photonic crystal
  11724. fiber (Science (2003), vol 299, page 358), which guides light by means of diffraction from a
  11725. periodic structure, rather than total internal reflection. The first photonic crystal fibers
  11726. became commercially available in 1996. Photonic crystal fibers can be designed to carry
  11727. higher power than conventional fiber, and their wavelength dependent properties can be
  11728. manipulated to improve their performance in certain applications."
  11729. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11730. 224 "... fabrics of the interior of the craft..."
  11731. "Technical textiles is the term given to textile products manufactured for non aesthetic
  11732. purposes, where function is the primary criterion. This is a large and growing sector and
  11733. supports a vast array of other industries.
  11734. It has been heard that soon textiles will be merged with electronics in all areas. In future
  11735. wearable computers would be launched, these will not be like advance wrist watches etc,
  11736. 307
  11737. they will contain IC s in fabric to develop fabric keyboards and other wearable computer
  11738. devices. These types of products are known as Interactive electronic textiles (IET).
  11739. Research to support IET development is being conducted in many universities. Growing
  11740. consumer interest in mobile, electronic devises will initiate the demand for IET products.
  11741. Technical textiles include textile structures for autmotive applications, medical textiles
  11742. (e.g. implants), geotextiles (reinforcement of embankments), agrotextiles (textiles for crop
  11743. protection), protective clothing (e.g. against heat and radiation for fire figther clothing,
  11744. against molten metals for welders, stab protection and bulletproof vests), spacesuits
  11745. (astronauts)."
  11746. Biotextiles are structures composed of textile fibers designed for use in specific biological
  11747. environments where their performance depends on biocompatibility and biostability with cells
  11748. and biological fluids. Biotextiles include implantible devices such as surgical sutures, hernia
  11749. repair fabrics, arterial grafts, artificial skin and parts of artificial hearts. They were first
  11750. created 30 years ago (1978) by Dr. Martin W. King, a professor in North Carolina State
  11751. University’s College of Textiles.
  11752. Medical textiles are a broader group which also includes bandages, wound dressings,
  11753. hospital linen, preventive clothing etc. Antiseptic biotextiles are textiles used in fighting
  11754. against cutaneous bacterial proliferation. Zeolite and triclosan are at the present time the
  11755. most used molecules. This original property allows to inhibits the development of odors or
  11756. bacterial proliferation in the diabetic foot."
  11757. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11758. 225 "... mechanisms for creating, amplifying and channeling light particles or waves
  11759. as a form of energy."
  11760. In 1947, Willis E. Lamb and R. C. Retherford found apparent stimulated emission in
  11761. hydrogen spectra and made the first demonstration of stimulated emission. In 1950, Alfred
  11762. Kastler (Nobel Prize for Physics 1966) proposed the method of optical pumping.
  11763. The work of Schawlow and Townes, however, can be traced back to the 1940sand early
  11764. 50s* and their interest in the field of microwave spectroscopy, which had emerged as a
  11765. powerful tool for puzzling out the characteristics of a wide variety of molecules.
  11766. The invention of the laser, which stands for light amplification by stimulated emission of
  11767. radiation, can be dated to 1958 with the publication of the scientific paper, Infrared and
  11768. Optical Masers, by Arthur L. Schawlow, then a Bell Labs researcher, and Charles H.
  11769. Townes, a consultant to Bell Labs. That paper, published in Physical Review, the journal of
  11770. the American Physical Society, launched a new scientific field and opened the door to a
  11771. multibillion-dollar industry.
  11772. Many different materials can be used as lasers. Some, like the ruby laser, emit short pulses
  11773. of laser light. Others, like helium-neon gas lasers or liquid dye lasers emit a continuous
  11774. beam of light.
  11775. *NOTE: According to the book, "The Day After Roswell", reports about microwave and light
  11776. projecting components from the Roswell "flying disc", technology were "leaked" to Bell
  11777. Laboratories through the Pentagon.
  11778. 308
  11779. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11780. 226 " There are as many universes as there are IS-BEs to imagine and perceive them,
  11781. existing concurrently within it's own continuum."
  11782. The multiverse (or meta-universe) is the hypothetical set of multiple possible universes
  11783. (including our universe) that together comprise all of reality. The different universes within
  11784. the multiverse are sometimes called parallel universes. The structure of the multiverse, the
  11785. nature of each universe within it and the relationship between the various constituent
  11786. universes, depend on the specific multiverse hypothesis considered.
  11787. Multiverses have been hypothesized in cosmology, physics, astronomy, philosophy,
  11788. theology, and fiction, particularly in science fiction and fantasy.
  11789. The specific term "multiverse," which was coined by William James, was popularized by
  11790. science fiction author Michael Moorcock. In these contexts, parallel universes are also
  11791. called "alternative universes," "quantum universes," "parallel worlds," "alternate realities,"
  11792. "alternative timelines," etc.
  11793. A multiverse of a somewhat different kind has been envisaged within the 11-dimensional
  11794. extension of string theory known as M-theory. In M-theory our universe and others are
  11795. created by collisions between membranes in an 11-dimensional space. This is unlike the
  11796. universes in the "quantum multiverse".
  11797. The string landscape theory asserts that a different universe exists for each of the very large
  11798. ensemble of solutions generated when ten dimensional string theory is reduced to the fourdimensional low-energy world we see.
  11799. "A common feature of all four multiverse levels is that the simplest and arguably most
  11800. elegant theory involves parallel universes by default. To deny the existence of those
  11801. universes, one needs to complicate the theory by adding experimentally unsupported
  11802. processes and ad hoc postulates: finite space, wave function collapse and ontological
  11803. asymmetry. Our judgment therefore comes down to which we find more wasteful and
  11804. inelegant: many worlds or many words."
  11805. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11806. 227 "...political, religious or economic expediency."
  11807. The common denominator of politics, religion and economics is that they are each based on
  11808. vested interests. -- The Editor
  11809. See the definition of "vested interest":
  11810. "1) a survival or non-survival plan or agenda which has been "clothed" to make it seem like
  11811. something other than what it actually is.
  11812. 2) any person, group or entity which prevents or controls communication to serve their own
  11813. purposes, (plans or agenda)."
  11814. -- Reference: English language Dictionary
  11815. 309
  11816. 228 "... just before the Japanese attack on Pearl Harbor..."
  11817. "The attack on Pearl Harbor was a surprise attack against the United States' naval base at
  11818. Pearl Harbor, Hawaii by the Japanese navy, at 0800 hours on the morning of Sunday,
  11819. December 7, 1941, resulting in the United States becoming involved in World War II.
  11820. Hostilities between the U.S. and Japan were expected by many observers, including
  11821. President Roosevelt, who read a decrypted Japanese message (on December 1st, 1941)
  11822. and told his assistant Harry Hopkins, "This means war."
  11823. At 03:42 Hawaiian Time, hours before commanding Admiral Chuichi Nagumo began
  11824. launching strike aircraft, the minesweeper USS Condor spotted a midget submarine outside
  11825. the harbor entrance and alerted destroyer USS Ward. Ward was initially unsuccessful in
  11826. locating the target. Hours later, Ward fired America's first shots in the Pacific theater of WWII
  11827. when she attacked and sank a midget submarine, perhaps the same one, at 06:37.
  11828. Closer to the moment of the attack, the attacking planes were detected and tracked as they
  11829. approached by an Army radar installation being operated that morning as a mostly unofficial
  11830. training exercise. The Opana Point radar station, operated by two enlisted men (Pvts.
  11831. Lockard and Elliot) plotted the approaching force, and their relief team plotted them returning
  11832. to the carriers. The initial radar returns were thought, by the ill-trained junior officer (Lt.
  11833. Kermit A. Tyler) in charge at the barely operational warning information center at Pearl
  11834. Harbor, to be a flight of American bombers expected from the mainland. In fact those
  11835. bombers did arrive, from a somewhat different bearing in the middle of the attack.
  11836. Additionally, Japanese submarines were sighted and attacked (by USS Ward) outside the
  11837. harbor entrance a few hours before the attack commenced, and at least one was sunk—all
  11838. before the planes came within even radar range. This might have provided enough notice to
  11839. disperse aircraft and fly off reconnaissance, except, yet again, reactions of the duty officers
  11840. were tardy. It has been argued failure to follow up on DF bearings saved USS Enterprise. If
  11841. she had been correctly directed, she might have run into the six carrier Japanese strike
  11842. force.
  11843. After the attack, the search for the attack force was concentrated south of Pearl Harbor,
  11844. continuing the confusion and ineffectiveness of the American response.
  11845. Another issue in the debate is the fact neither Admiral Kimmel nor General Short ever faced
  11846. court martial. It is alleged this was to avoid disclosing information conspirators would not
  11847. want to see made public. When asked, Kimmel replied, "Will historians know more later?
  11848. Kimmel's reply to this was: ' ... I'll tell you what I believe. I think that most of the incriminating
  11849. records have been destroyed. ... I doubt if the truth will ever emerge.' ...".
  11850. It is equally,
  11851. probably more, likely this was done to avoid disclosing the fact Japanese codes were being
  11852. read, given there was a war on."
  11853. -- Reference: http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pearl_Harbor_advance-knowledge_debate
  11854. 229 "...General Symington,"...
  11855. His first positions were chairman of the Surplus Property Board (1945), administrator of the
  11856. Property Administration (1945–1946) and Assistant Secretary of War for Air (1946–1947).
  11857. On September 18, 1947, the Office of the Secretary of the Air Force was created and
  11858. 310
  11859. Symington became the first Secretary. Symington once formally requested a report from
  11860. military sources regarding the possible existence of subterranean super humans.
  11861. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11862. 230 "...General Nathan Twining, ..."
  11863. He was named commander of the Air Materiel Command, and in 1947 he took over Alaskan
  11864. Air Command. In 1947, Twining was asked to study UFO reports; he recommended
  11865. that a formal study of the phenomenon take place; Project Sign was the result. When
  11866. Hoyt Vandenberg retired in mid-1953, Twining was selected as chief; during his tenure,
  11867. massive retaliation based on airpower became the national strategy. In 1957, President
  11868. Eisenhower appointed Twining chairman of the Joint Chiefs.
  11869. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11870. 231 "... General Jimmy Doolittle, ..."
  11871. "Soon after the attack on Pearl Harbor and the US entry into World War II, Doolittle was
  11872. promoted to Lieutenant Colonel on January 2, 1942, and went to Headquarters Army Air
  11873. Force to plan the first aerial raid on the Japanese homeland. He volunteered and received
  11874. Gen. H.H. Arnold's approval to lead the attack of 16 B-25 medium bombers from the aircraft
  11875. carrier USS Hornet, with targets in Tokyo, Kobe, Osaka, and Nagoya. It was the first and
  11876. only combat mission of his military career.
  11877. Doolittle received the Medal of Honor, presented by President Franklin D. Roosevelt at the
  11878. White House, for planning and leading the successful operation. The Doolittle Raid is viewed
  11879. by historians as a major public-relations victory for the United States. Although the amount of
  11880. damage done to Japanese war industry was minor, the raid showed the Japanese their
  11881. homeland was not invulnerable.
  11882. Doolittle was portrayed by Spencer Tracy in the 1944 film Thirty Seconds Over Tokyo and by
  11883. Alec Baldwin in the 2001 film Pearl Harbor, in which the Doolittle raid was depicted.
  11884. On May 10, 1946, Doolittle reverted to inactive reserve status and returned to Shell Oil as a
  11885. vice president, and later as a director. He was the highest-ranking reserve officer to serve in
  11886. the U.S. military in World War II."
  11887. EDITOR --
  11888. In March 1951, he was appointed a special assistant to the Air Force chief of staff,
  11889. serving as a civilian in scientific matters which led to Air Force ballistic missile and
  11890. space programs. (?!)
  11891. "He retired from Air Force duty on February 28, 1959 but continued to serve his country
  11892. as Chairman of the Board of Space Technology Laboratories."
  11893. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11894. 232 "...General Vandenberg..."
  11895. 311
  11896. Lieutenant General Vandenberg was designated vice chief of staff of the Air Force on
  11897. October 1, 1947, and promoted to the rank of General.
  11898. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11899. 233 "... General Norstad..."
  11900. "On October 1, 1947, following the division of the War Department into the Departments of
  11901. The Army and The Air Force, General Norstad was appointed deputy chief of staff for
  11902. operations of the Air Force."
  11903. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11904. 234 "... Charles Lindbergh was also in the office..."
  11905. "Charles Lindbergh gained sudden great international fame as the first pilot to fly solo across
  11906. the Atlantic Ocean. He flew from Roosevelt Airfield in Garden City, New York, to Paris (Le
  11907. Bourget Airport) on 20 May - 21 May 1927 in 33.5 hours. His plane was the single-engine
  11908. aircraft, The Spirit of St. Louis.
  11909. Lindbergh's accomplishment won him the Orteig Prize; more significant than the prize
  11910. money was the acclaim that resulted from his daring flight. A ticker-tape parade was held for
  11911. him down 5th Avenue in New York City on 13 June 1927.
  11912. His public stature following this flight was such that he became an important voice on behalf
  11913. of aviation activities, including the central committee of the National Advisory Committee for
  11914. Aeronautics in the United States. The massive publicity surrounding him and his flight
  11915. boosted the aircraft industry and made a skeptical public take air travel seriously. Lindbergh
  11916. is recognized in aviation for demonstrating and charting polar air-routes, high altitude flying
  11917. techniques, and increasing aircraft flying range by decreasing fuel consumption. These
  11918. innovations are the basis of modern intercontinental air travel.
  11919. In his six months during WW II in the Pacific in 1944, Lindbergh took part in fighter bomber
  11920. raids on Japanese positions, flying about 50 combat missions (as a civilian). The U.S.
  11921. Marine and Army Air Force pilots who served with Lindbergh admired and respected him,
  11922. praising his courage and defending his patriotism.
  11923. After World War II he lived quietly in Connecticut as a consultant both to the chief of staff of
  11924. the U.S. Air Force and to Pan American World Airways. His 1953 book The Spirit of St.
  11925. Louis, recounting his non-stop transatlantic flight, won the Pulitzer Prize in 1954.
  11926. Dwight D. Eisenhower restored Lindbergh's assignment with the Army Air Corps and made
  11927. him a Brigadier General in 1954. In that year, he served on the Congressional advisory
  11928. panel set up to establish the site of the United States Air Force Academy. In December
  11929. 1968, he visited the crew of Apollo 8 on the eve of the first manned spaceflight to leave earth
  11930. orbit.
  11931. From the 1960s on, Lindbergh became an advocate for the conservation of the natural
  11932. world, campaigning to protect endangered species like humpback and blue whales, was
  11933. instrumental in establishing protections for the "primitive" Filipino group the Tasaday and
  11934. African tribes, and supporting the establishment of a national park. While studying the native
  11935. 312
  11936. flora and fauna of the Philippines, he also became involved in an effort to protect the
  11937. Philippine eagle.
  11938. In his final years, Lindbergh became troubled that the world was out of balance with
  11939. its natural environment; he stressed the need to regain that balance, and spoke against
  11940. the introduction of supersonic airliners.
  11941. Lindbergh's speeches and writings later in life emphasized his love of both
  11942. technology and nature, and a lifelong belief that "all the achievements of mankind
  11943. have value only to the extent that they preserve and improve the quality of life."
  11944. In a 1967 Life magazine article, he said, "The human future depends on our ability to
  11945. combine the knowledge of science with the wisdom of wildness."
  11946. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11947. 235 "...Dr. Wilcox..."
  11948. Paul h. Wilcox, M. D. The Traverse City State Hospital, Traverse City, Michigan.
  11949. Is the author of the following article, published in the American Journal of Psychiatry
  11950. in August of 1947:
  11951. "A Review of Over 23,000 Treatments Using Unidirectional Currents
  11952. 1. Forty percent of the most chronic patients showed significant improvement in ward
  11953. behavior if adequately and repeatedly treated with suitable type of electroshock therapy.
  11954. Relapses must be treated whenever they occur over months and years.
  11955. 2. At least 60% of early cases, aged 60 or under, were rehabilitated within 1 year when
  11956. adequately treated and 65% by the end of the second year after the start of treatment.
  11957. 3. Adequate treatment means intensive treatment until the expected improvement has
  11958. occurred and intensive treatment of relapses when they occur. No patient, otherwise suitable
  11959. who still is not rehabilitated after 1 year, has had an adequate trial of treatment with less than
  11960. 20 treatments.
  11961. 4. An ideal therapy is one which achieves beneficial results without causing accumulating
  11962. brain damage, thus permitting its use repeatedly for years if necessary.
  11963. 5. This ideal is approached by the relatively low intensity 60-cycle pulsating direct current
  11964. used in the treatment of the patients reviewed in this paper. This technique also has been
  11965. accompanied by an exceptionally low percentage of skeletal complications."
  11966. -- Reference: American Journal of Psychiatry 104:100-112, August 1947, doi:
  11967. 10.1176/appi.ajp.104.2.100 © 1947 American Psychiatric Association
  11968. 236 "...Electroencephalograph..."
  11969. 313
  11970. Electroencephalography (EEG) is the measurement of electrical activity produced by the
  11971. brain as recorded from electrodes placed on the scalp. (EEG) is the measurement of
  11972. electrical activity produced by the brain as recorded from electrodes placed on the scalp.
  11973. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11974. 237 "...introduced himself as Mr. John Reid ..."
  11975. "John Edward Reid, American criminologist developed a Polygraph in 1945 which was
  11976. a scientific recording device designed to register a person's bodily responses to being
  11977. questioned. Popularly known as a lie detector, the polygraph has been used chiefly in
  11978. criminal investigations, although it is also used in employment and security screening
  11979. practices. Because no machine can unerringly recognize when a person is lying, the
  11980. polygraph results are used in conjunction with other evidence, observations, and information.
  11981. Emotional stress reflected by this test, for instance, need not be due to lying. On the other
  11982. hand, a subject may be a pathological liar and therefore show no measurable bodily
  11983. responses when giving false answers. Ordinary nervousness, individual physical or mental
  11984. abnormalities, discomfort, excessive pretest interrogation, or indifference to a question also
  11985. affect test accuracy. The polygraph can, however, provide a basis for an evaluation of
  11986. whether or not the subject's answers are truthful. This test has also been helpful in
  11987. exonerating innocent persons accused of crimes.
  11988. A polygraph is actually several instruments combined to simultaneously record changes in
  11989. blood pressure, pulse, and respiration. The electrical conductivity of the skin's surface can
  11990. also be measured—increased sweat-gland activity reduces the skin's ability to carry
  11991. electrical current."
  11992. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  11993. 238 "...lie detector testing..."
  11994. "Dr. William Moulton Marston (May 9, 1893 – May 2, 1947) was an American psychologist,
  11995. feminist theorist, inventor, and comic book author who created the character Wonder
  11996. Woman. Two strong women, his wife Elizabeth Holloway Marston and Olive Byrne, (who
  11997. lived with the couple in a polyamorous relationship), served as exemplars for the character
  11998. and greatly influenced her creation.
  11999. Dr. William Moulton Marston is credited as the creator of the systolic blood-pressure test
  12000. used in an attempt to detect deception, which became one component of the modern
  12001. polygraph. According to their son, Marston's wife, Elizabeth Holloway Marston, was also
  12002. involved in the development of the systolic blood-pressure test: "According to Marston’s son,
  12003. it was his mother Elizabeth, Marston’s wife, who suggested to him that 'When she got mad
  12004. or excited, her blood pressure seemed to climb'. This would be the basis for Wonder
  12005. Woman's Lasso of Truth.
  12006. The FBI considered William Moulton Marston, who invented the lie detector and created
  12007. the comic book character Wonder Woman under the pseudonym Charles Moulton, to be a
  12008. 'phony' and a 'crackpot.' He is alleged to have misrepresented the result of a study he
  12009. conducted for the Gillette razor company in 1938, for which he reportedly received some
  12010. $30,000, a handsome sum in those days. Despite these misgivings, the FBI today uses
  12011. Marston's creation (the polygraph, not the Lasso of Truth) to guide investigations as well
  12012. as to screen applicants and employees."
  12013. 314
  12014. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12015. 239 "...truth serum..."
  12016. "Sodium thiopental, better known as Sodium Pentothal (a trademark of Abbott
  12017. Laboratories), thiopental, thiopentone sodium, or trapanal, is a rapid-onset short-acting
  12018. barbiturate general anaesthetic. It is an intravenous ultra-short-acting barbiturate. Sodium
  12019. thiopental is a depressant and is sometimes used during interrogations - not to cause pain
  12020. (in fact, it may have just the opposite effect), but to weaken the resolve of the subject and
  12021. make him or her more compliant to pressure.
  12022. Thiopental is still used in some places as a truth serum. The barbiturates as a class
  12023. decrease higher cortical brain functioning. Psychiatrists hypothesize that because lying is
  12024. more complex than telling the truth, suppression of the higher cortical functions may lead to
  12025. the uncovering of the "truth". However, the reliability of confessions made under thiopental is
  12026. dubious; the drug tends to make subjects chatty and cooperative with interrogators, but a
  12027. practiced liar or someone who has a false story firmly established would still be quite able to
  12028. lie while under the influence of the drug."
  12029. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12030. 240 "...the Witness Protection Program..."
  12031. "(also known as the Witness Security Program, or WitSec) was established under Title V
  12032. of the Organized Crime Control Act of 1970, which in turn sets out the manner in which the
  12033. U.S. Attorney General may provide for the relocation and protection of a witness or potential
  12034. witness of the federal government, or for a state government in an official proceeding
  12035. concerning organized crime or other serious offenses. See 18 U.S.C.A 3521 et. seq.
  12036. The Federal Government also gives grants to the states to enable them to provide similar
  12037. services. The federal program is called WITSEC (the Federal Witness Protection Program)
  12038. and was founded in the late 1960s by Gerald Shur when he was in the Organized Crime and
  12039. Racketeering Section of the United States Department of Justice. Most witnesses are
  12040. protected by the U.S. Marshals Service, while protection of incarcerated witnesses is the
  12041. duty of the Federal Bureau of Prisons.
  12042. Normally, the witness is provided with a new name and location. Witnesses are encouraged
  12043. to keep their first names and choose last names with the same initial. The U.S. Marshals
  12044. Service provides new documentation, assists in finding housing and employment and
  12045. provides a stipend until the witness gets on his or her feet, but the stipend can be
  12046. discontinued if the U.S. Marshals Service feels that the witness is not making an aggressive
  12047. effort to find a job. Witnesses are not to travel back to their hometowns or contact
  12048. unprotected family members or former associates. Around 17 percent of protected witnesses
  12049. that have committed a crime will commit another crime, compared to the almost 40 percent
  12050. of parolees who return to crime. This has led to action by Congressional committees
  12051. requiring WITSEC and other witness protection programs to notify local officials of a witness'
  12052. transfer before relocating them.
  12053. Many states, including California, Illinois, and New York, have their own witness protection
  12054. programs for crimes not covered by the federal program. The state-run programs provide
  12055. less extensive protections than the federal program."
  12056. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12057. 315
  12058. 241 "... Suleiman the Magnificent..."
  12059. "Suleiman I (Ottoman Turkish:  Sulaymān, Turkish: Süleyman; almost always
  12060. Kanuni Sultan Süleyman in Turkish) (November 6, 1494 – September 5/6, 1566), was the
  12061. tenth and longest-reigning Sultan of the Ottoman Empire, from 1520 to his death in 1566. He
  12062. is known in the West as Suleiman the Magnificent and in the East, as the Lawgiver (in
  12063. Turkish Kanuni; Arabic:  , alQānūnī), for his complete reconstruction of the
  12064. Ottoman legal system. Suleiman became the pre-eminent monarch of 16th century Europe,
  12065. presiding over the apex of the Ottoman Empire's military, political and economic power.
  12066. Suleiman personally led Ottoman armies to conquer the Christian strongholds of Belgrade,
  12067. Rhodes, and most of Hungary before his conquests were checked at the Siege of Vienna in
  12068. 1529. He annexed most of the Middle East in his conflict with the Persians and large
  12069. swathes of North Africa as far west as Algeria. Under his rule, the Ottoman fleet dominated
  12070. the seas from the Mediterranean to the Indian Ocean.
  12071. At the helm of an expanding empire, Suleiman personally instituted legislative changes
  12072. relating to society, education, taxation, and criminal law. His canonical law (or the Kanuns)
  12073. fixed the form of the empire for centuries after his death. Not only was Suleiman a
  12074. distinguished poet and goldsmith in his own right; he also became a great patron of culture,
  12075. overseeing the golden age of the Ottoman Empire's artistic, literary and architectural
  12076. development.
  12077. In a break with Ottoman tradition, Suleiman married a harem girl who became Hürrem
  12078. Sultan, whose intrigues in the court and power over the Sultan have become as famous as
  12079. Suleiman himself."
  12080. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12081. 242 "... His assistant was a harem girl who rose up from slavery to become his wife..."
  12082. " According to late sixteenth century and early seventeenth century sources such as the
  12083. Polish poet Samuel Twardowski, she was born in the town which was then part of the
  12084. Kingdom of Poland. She was captured by Crimean Tatars during one of their frequent raids
  12085. into this region and taken as a slave, probably first to the Crimean city of Kaffa, a major
  12086. centre of the slave trade, then to Istanbul, and was selected for Süleyman's harem.
  12087. Suleiman was infatuated with Hurrem Sultan, a harem girl of Ruthenian origin. In the West
  12088. foreign diplomats, taking notice of the palace gossip about her, called her "Russelazie" or
  12089. "Roxolana", referring to her Slavic origins. The daughter of an Orthodox Ukrainian priest,
  12090. she was captured and rose through the ranks of the Harem to become Suleiman's favorite.
  12091. Breaking with two centuries of Ottoman tradition, a former concubine had thus
  12092. become the legal wife of the Sultan, much to the astonishment of observers in the palace
  12093. and the city. He also allowed Hurrem Sultan to remain with him at court for the rest of
  12094. her life, breaking another tradition—that when imperial heirs came of age, they would be
  12095. sent along with the imperial concubine who bore them to govern remote provinces of the
  12096. Empire, never to return unless their progeny succeeded to the throne.
  12097. Under his pen name, Muhibbi, Suleiman composed this poem for Roxolana:
  12098. "Throne of my lonely niche, my wealth, my love, my moonlight.
  12099. My most sincere friend, my confidant, my very existence, my Sultan, my one and only love.
  12100. 316
  12101. The most beautiful among the beautiful…
  12102. My springtime, my merry faced love, my daytime, my sweetheart, laughing leaf…
  12103. My plants, my sweet, my rose, the one only who does not distress me in this world…
  12104. My Istanbul, my Caraman, the earth of my Anatolia
  12105. My Badakhshan, my Baghdad and Khorasan
  12106. My woman of the beautiful hair, my love of the slanted brow, my love of eyes full of
  12107. mischief…
  12108. I'll sing your praises always
  12109. I, lover of the tormented heart, Muhibbi of the eyes full of tears, I am happy."
  12110. Roxelana, as she is better known in Europe, is well-known both in modern Turkey and in the
  12111. West, and is the subject of many artistic works. She has inspired paintings, musical
  12112. works (including Joseph Haydn's Symphony No. 63), an opera by Denys Sichynsky, a
  12113. ballet, plays, and several novels."
  12114. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12115. 243 "... Queen Elizabeth..."
  12116. Elizabeth I (7 September 1533 – 24 March 1603) was Queen of England and Queen of
  12117. Ireland from 17 November 1558 until her death. Sometimes called The Virgin Queen,
  12118. Gloriana, The Faerie Queen or Good Queen Bess, Elizabeth was the fifth and last monarch
  12119. of the Tudor dynasty. The daughter of Henry VIII, she was born a princess, but her mother,
  12120. Anne Boleyn, was executed three years after her birth, and Elizabeth was declared
  12121. illegitimate. Perhaps for that reason, her brother, Edward VI, cut her out of the succession.
  12122. His will, however, was set aside, as it contravened the Third Succession Act of 1543, in
  12123. which Elizabeth was named as successor provided that Mary I of England, Elizabeth's halfsister, should die without issue. In 1558, Elizabeth succeeded her half-sister, during whose
  12124. reign she had been imprisoned for nearly a year on suspicion of supporting Protestant
  12125. rebels.
  12126. Elizabeth set out to rule by good counsel. One of her first moves was to support the
  12127. establishment of an English Protestant church, of which she became the Supreme Governor.
  12128. This Elizabethan Religious Settlement held firm throughout her reign and later evolved into
  12129. today's Church of England. It was expected that Elizabeth would marry, but despite several
  12130. petitions from parliament, she never did. The reasons for this choice are unknown, and they
  12131. have been much debated. As she grew older, Elizabeth became famous for her virginity,
  12132. and a cult grew up around her which was celebrated in the portraits, pageants and literature
  12133. of the day.
  12134. One of her mottos was video et taceo: "I see, and say nothing".
  12135. This strategy, viewed with impatience by her counselors, often saved her from political and
  12136. marital misalliances. Though Elizabeth was cautious in foreign affairs and only half-heartedly
  12137. supported a number of ineffective, poorly resourced military campaigns in the Netherlands,
  12138. France and Ireland, the defeat of the Spanish armada in 1588 associated her name
  12139. forever with what is popularly viewed as one of the greatest victories in British
  12140. history. Within twenty years of her death, she was being celebrated as the ruler of a
  12141. golden age, an image that retains its hold on the English people. Elizabeth's reign is known
  12142. as the Elizabethan era, famous above all for the flourishing of English drama, led by
  12143. playwrights such as William Shakespeare and Christopher Marlowe."
  12144. 317
  12145. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12146. 244 "... he was incarnated as Cecil Rhodes."
  12147. Cecil John Rhodes, (July 5, 1853 – March 26, 1902) was a British-born South African
  12148. businessman, mining magnate, and politician. He was the founder of the diamond company
  12149. De Beers, which today markets 60% of the world's rough diamonds and at one time
  12150. marketed 90%. He was an ardent believer in colonialism and was the founder of the state of
  12151. Rhodesia, which was named after him.
  12152. Rhodes profited greatly from controlling Southern Africa's natural resources, the proceeds of
  12153. which funded the Rhodes Scholarship upon his death. Rhodes never married, pleading
  12154. that "I have too much work on my hands" and saying that he would not be a dutiful
  12155. husband. Queen Victoria reportedly asked him if he was a woman-hater, which Rhodes
  12156. denied insisting “How could I dislike a sex to which your Majesty belongs?”
  12157. Rhodes famously declared:
  12158. "To think of these stars that you see overhead at night, these vast worlds which we
  12159. can never reach. I would annex the planets if I could; I often think of that. It makes me
  12160. sad to see them so clear and yet so far."
  12161. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12162. 245 "... she was a Polish princess..."
  12163. "Princess Catherine Radziwill (March 30, 1858 - May 12, 1941) was a Polish princess
  12164. from a famous Polish-Lithuanian aristocratic family called the Radziwills. She was born as
  12165. Countess Ekaterina Adamovna Rzewuska. She married Prince Wilhelm Radziwill at age 15
  12166. and moved to Berlin to live with his family. It was speculated that she was the author of a
  12167. book gossiping about the German Emperor William II and Berlin society in 1884 under the
  12168. pen name Paul Vasili.
  12169. She stalked the English-born South African politician Cecil Rhodes and asked him to
  12170. marry her, but he refused. She wrote a biography of Rhodes called "Cecil Rhodes:
  12171. Man and Empire Maker".
  12172. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12173. 246 "... One was named Kelly..."
  12174. William Kelly (August 22, 1811 - February 11, 1888), born in Pittsburgh, Pennsylvania, was
  12175. an American inventor. Kelly studied metallurgy at the Western University of Pennsylvania.
  12176. Kelly started experimenting with his "air-boiling process," a process of blowing air up through
  12177. molten iron to reduce the carbon content, in 1847. His initial goal was to reduce the amount
  12178. of fuel required for iron and steel making, because of the immense amount of timber
  12179. required to make the charcoal. He discovered that, contrary to the expectations of his iron
  12180. workers, the injected air did not cool the molten iron, but instead combined with the carbon
  12181. to cause the iron to boil and burn violently until the carbon was greatly reduced, improving
  12182. the quality of the iron or converting it to steel. His experiments began in 1847. The same
  12183. process was later independently invented and patented by Henry Bessemer."
  12184. 318
  12185. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12186. 247 "...the other was Bessemer..."
  12187. "Sir Henry Bessemer (January 19, 1813 – March 15, 1898), English engineer and inventor.
  12188. Bessemer's name is chiefly known in connection with the Bessemer process for the
  12189. manufacturing of steel. Patents of such obvious value did not escape criticism, and
  12190. invalidity was freely urged against them on various grounds. But Bessemer was fortunate
  12191. enough to maintain them intact without litigation, though he found it advisable to buy up the
  12192. rights of one patentee, while in another case he was freed from anxiety by the patent being
  12193. allowed to lapse in 1859 through non-payment of fees."
  12194. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12195. 248 " Another IS-BE who did this was Alexander Bell..."
  12196. "As is sometimes common in scientific discoveries, simultaneous developments can occur,
  12197. as evidenced by a number of inventors who were at work on the telephone.
  12198. Alexander Graham Bell (3 March 1847 – 2 August 1922) was an eminent scientist, inventor
  12199. and innovator who is credited with the invention of the telephone. His father, grandfather and
  12200. brother had all been associated with work on elocution and speech, and both his mother
  12201. and wife were deaf, profoundly influencing Bell's life's work. His research on hearing
  12202. and speech further led him to experiment with hearing devices that eventually culminated
  12203. in Bell being awarded the first U.S. patent for the invention of the telephone in 1876.
  12204. In reflection, Bell considered his most famous invention an intrusion on his real work as a
  12205. scientist and refused to have a telephone in his study."
  12206. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12207. 249 ..." it was invented by several others, including Elisha Gray."
  12208. "Elisha Gray (August 2, 1835 – January 21, 1901) was an American electrical engineer and
  12209. is best known for his development of a telephone prototype in 1876 in Highland Park, Illinois,
  12210. U.S.A.. Mr. Elisha Gray, of Chicago also devised a tone telegraph of this kind about the
  12211. same time as Herr La Cour. In this apparatus a vibrating steel reed interrupted the current,
  12212. which at the other end of the line passed through an electromagnet and vibrated a matching
  12213. steel reed near its poles. Gray's 'harmonic telegraph,' with the vibrating reeds, was used by
  12214. the Western Union Telegraph Company. Since more than one set of vibrations — that is to
  12215. say, more than one note — can be sent over the same wire simultaneously, the harmonic
  12216. telegraph can be utilised as a 'multiplex' or many-ply telegraph, conveying several messages
  12217. through the same wire at once; and these can either be read by the operator by the sound,
  12218. or a permanent record can be made by the marks drawn on a ribbon of travelling paper by a
  12219. Morse recorder. Bell's March 10, 1876 laboratory notebook entry describing his first
  12220. successful experiment with the telephone.
  12221. Bell's patent application for the telephone was filed in the US patent office on February 14,
  12222. 1876. The usual story says that Bell got to the patent office an hour or two before his
  12223. rival Elisha Gray, and that Gray lost his rights to the telephone as a result.
  12224. 319
  12225. According to Gray's account, his patent caveat was taken to the US patent office a few
  12226. hours before Bell's application, shortly after the patent office opened and remained near the
  12227. bottom of the in-basket until that afternoon. Bell's application was filed shortly before noon
  12228. on 14 February by Bell's lawyer who requested that the filing fee be entered immediately
  12229. onto the cash receipts blotter and that Bell's application be taken to the examiner
  12230. immediately. Late that afternoon, the fee for Gray's caveat was entered on the cash blotter
  12231. and the caveat was not taken to the examiner until the following day. The fact that Bell's
  12232. filing fee was recorded earlier than Gray's fee led to the story that Bell had arrived at the
  12233. patent office earlier. Bell was in Boston on February 14 and did not know this was happening
  12234. until he arrived in Washington on February 26. Whether Bell's application was filed before or
  12235. after Gray's caveat no longer mattered, because Gray abandoned his caveat, which opened
  12236. the door to Bell being granted U.S. Patent 174,465 for the telephone on 7 March 1876."
  12237. -- Reference: Wikipedia.org
  12238. END OF FOOTNOTES